[]

VIGILANTER

[]

Sir WALTER RALEGH K.t

[...]para- [...]

AMOR ET VIRTUTE.

[]

THE LIFE OF Sir Walter Ralegh, FROM HIS BIRTH TO HIS DEATH on the SCAFFOLD: Containing,

I. An Account of his Family, its Antiquity, Dignity, Power, and Wealth.

II. His gradual Riſe, and the Steps he took in his Youth to that Fame and Reputation which he enjoyed in his riper Years.

III. His gallant Actions in France in Behalf of the Hugonots, and in Ireland againſt the Rebels.

IV. His ſeveral Naval Expeditions to America and other Parts; with his Diſcovery of Virginia.

V. The Share he had in the glorious and ever memorable Victory which the Engliſh Fleet obtained over the Spaniſh Armada in the Year 1588.

VI. A Relation of a moſt deſperate Engagement between Sir Richard Greenvil in the Revenge againſt the whole Spaniſh Fleet.

VII. The Trial at large of Sir Walter Ralegh, his Condemnation, long Impriſonment in the Tower, and Execution.

The Whole compiled from the moſt approved Authorities and curious Manuſcripts.

LONDON: Printed for the Bookſellers in Town and Country.

M DCCXL.

THE LIFE OF Sir Walter Ralegh.

[]

THO' Abundance of ſolid Particulars are naturally ſunk in the rapid Current of Time, while many leſs ſubſtantial are floating upon the Surface, to the Hand of every ordinary Memorialiſt: And though ſome ſhining Circumſtances, in the proſperous Part of Sir Walter Ralegh's Life, have been darkened through Envy; as others, in the unfortunate Period, through Intereſt, by the Age in which he lived; nevertheleſs, his ſingle Life may perhaps be found more fruitful of memorable Incidents, than many Hiſtories of intire Ages: Inſomuch, as I may be apprehenſive, with a late Collector of his Memoirs, ‘"That the deſcribing a Perſon of ſo diffuſive a Praiſe, ſo equally great in ſo many different Parts of Life, will be like attempting a Landſkip from a high Hill, where the Multiplicity and Extent of the Proſpects may rather diſtract the Mind, [4] than direct it; and call for Judgment to reſtrain the Fancy, which is apt to run Riot, when employed upon too many Objects."’ Many Guides may indeed appear to lead us through this Wilderneſs; but, numerous as the Authors are who mention him, they contain but Fragments of his Story; divers whereof, hitherto widely diſperſed, have eſcaped not only our general Hiſtorians, but the many Compilers of diſtinct Pieces on his Actions. Even the Moderns, who have treated of him with Impartiality, have yet been deficient in point of Induſtry, ſo as to prove no leſs injurious to his Merits, than ſome, who in his own Age conſpired to depreciate them. Hence the Generality, having been too ſuperficial and undigeſted; having neither regarded due Choice and Order of Matter, Proportion in the Parts, or Connexion of the whole; nor yet diſcharged themſelves by ſuch References to proper Vouchers, as might ſatisfy thoſe Readers it is my Ambition to pleaſe; I have eſteemed the Number of ſuch Writers, no Diſcouragement to the Revival of his Story.

And firſt for the Name of Ralegh, otherwiſe written Rale and Ralega, in ſome old Deeds I have formerly ſeen; it is certainly of great Antiquity in this Kingdom; ſince there are ſome Villages and Towns in the Weſt, as well as other Parts, ſo called, which might at firſt receive their Denomination from ſome, as well as afterwards give it to others, who were Natives or Poſſeſſors thereof, And ſince we are credibly informed, that one of thoſe Diſtricts belonged antiently to noble Lords of the ſame Name, as alſo that ſeveral of them were ſo called from the very Family we are to ſpeak of: And as the Raleghs of Devonſhire will appear to have flouriſhed there before the Conqueſt; they might be the Progenitors of thoſe in other Countries; as it is expreſly intimated out of the [5] Records they were of thoſe in Warwickſhire. But as we are alſo told of no leſs than five Knights of this Name, at one Time differently ſituated in that Weſtern County before mentioned; and that there were three great Families ſo named alſo there, contemporary with Sir Walter Ralegh's, who bore Arms different from thoſe of his paternal Coat; we may conclude, they were not all of one Lineage; and at the ſame Time, that it is owing to the Eminency of this great Man, that a Diſtinction of the ſeveral Houſes, and his in particular, when all but his were in a Manner extinct, has been ſo elaborately endeavoured by the Antiquaries and Genealogiſts of his own Time.

As to the Family of Sir Walter Ralegh therefore in particular, it is generally agreed on, that Smalridge in the Pariſh of Axminſter, in the County of Devon, was one of their moſt ancient Seats. But Sir William Pole, who is ſaid to have been one of the greateſt Searchers into the Antiquities of that Country, has been ſingularly ſhort in the Time of their firſt ſettling there. However, if we ſhould agree with him upon that Perſon for Sir Walter Ralegh's direct Anceſtor, who firſt removed thither out of Nettlecomb-Ralegh in Somerſetſhire, in the Reign of King Henry III. from whom there is a ſucceſſive Deſcent of thoſe ſix Knights, Sir Wimond, *Sir Hugh, Sir John, Sir Peter, and two Sir Johns more; beſides others, who were either [6] of the ſame Degree themſelves, or married into Families diſtinguiſh'd with it, even down to Wimond the Grandfather of Sir Walter Ralegh: I know not but it may be alſo allowed, that the Honours of this Pedigree were ſufficient to have been boaſted of by ſome of his Traducers. For tho', in the Eye of Heraldry, many Titles are accounted more noble than Knighthood; tho' native and patrimonial Dignities, or ſuch as deſcend neceſſarily from Father to Son, may in the Eye of the common lineal Claimant appear moſt legitimate; and ſuch as are venal, be eſteemed in that of the Wealthy, moſt valuable; yet thoſe which are perſonal, the individual Acquiſition, or Recompence of every Man's proper Merit, will, in the Eye of Reaſon, be held moſt honourable.

John Hooker, a famous Antiquary in one of his Performances, gives us to underſtand; that Smalridge was in the Poſſeſſion of the Raleghs before the Norman Conqueſt; and that one of the Family, being taken Priſoner by the Gauls, did, for his Deliverance upon St. Leonard's Day, build, at his Return home, a Chapel there, conſecrated to that Saint; and therein, as a grateful Monument, hung up his Target; the Records of which Foundation are ſaid to have been given by a Prieſt of Axminſter to Sir Walter Ralegh, as their moſt rightful [7] Owner. *So much for the Antiquity of the Family in Devonſhire; and as for its Derivation, the ſaid Hooker, even in a printed Dedication to Sir Walter Ralegh, as I hinted (which he repeatedly confirms in the aforeſaid Performance) not only avouches his Alliance to the Courtenays, Earls of Devon, and other illuſtrious Houſes; but traces the Stream of Conſanguinity up to the Kings of England, where he ſays, That one of his Anceſtors in the directeſt Line, Sir John de Ralegh of Fardel (another Seat of their ancient Inheritance in the Pariſh of Cornwood, eight Miles Eaſt of Plymouth) eſpouſed the Daughter of Sir Roger D'Amerei, who married Elizabeth Daughter of Gilbert Earl of Glouceſter, by Joan D'Acres, Daughter of King Edward I. which Gilbert was deſcended of Robert Earl of Glouceſter, Son of King Henry I. So goes up to the Conqueror; and farther adds, That in like Manner he may be derived by his Mother alſo out of the ſame Houſe. But ſince theſe two Authors, the likelieſt we have in Print to have confirm'd us in the Truth of this Matter, vary thus from each other; ſince Sir William Pole thought it rather another Family of the Raleghs, which was thus royally deſcended; ſince alſo five or ſix ancient Pedigrees of this Family, which I have ſeen in Manuſcript, by the heraldical Viſitors, and Antiquaries of thoſe weſtern Parts, alſo differ, not only from Hooker, but in ſeveral Points both from Sir William Pole, and from one another; and laſtly, ſince it will be conſider'd, that I have not undertaken to account for the whole [8] Race of the Raleghs, but only one ſelect Perſon of the Name, here let the Truth, as to theſe remote Anceſtors or Alliances, hover for me; for I am not moved, on the Wings of Conjecture, to make myſelf a Party with any of thoſe Antiquaries, nor ſhall endeavour to compromiſe the Difference between them, unleſs ſuch prevailing Authorities had occurr'd, as would enable me to do it with Certanity. Beſides, as thoſe whoſe Virtues have adorned them with a Sufficiency of perſonal Honours, are ever leaſt anxious about ſuch as are relative; ſo it might well argue but little Weight in the Judgment of a Hiſtorian, to ſhew himſelf contentious about theſe Feathers for his Worthy; eſpecially ſuch a one, as ſhall be found to have thought ſo juſtly light of them himſelf.

However, as all Accounts allow him a very honourable Extract; let us prefer which we pleaſe, the Freedom ſome great Courtiers took in calling him Jack and Upſtart, upon his Advancement to Queen Elizabeth's Favour, is thought to have ſomewhat reflected rather on themſelves; in ſuffering their ſprightly Parts to take ſuch Advantage of their noble Principles. One of theſe Sarcaſms I find recorded by Lord Bacon, in his little Book of Apophthegms, where he ſays, ‘"That when Queen Elizabeth had advanced Ralegh, ſhe was one Day playing on the Virginals, and my Lord of Oxford with another Nobleman ſtood by; when it happen'd that the Ledge before the Jacks was taken away, ſo that they were ſeen; whereupon that Lord and the other Nobleman ſmil'd and whiſper'd a little; the Queen mark'd it, and would needs know, what was the Matter? His Lordſhip anſwer'd, They laugh'd to ſee, that when Jacks went up, Heads went down."’ Tho' the Application of this Reflection particularly to Ralegh, if ſuch was made, is diſputable, notwithſtanding [9] Lord Bacon's Alluſion, yet it is plain, that Sir Robert Naunton, who was Secretary of State at the Time of Ralegh's Death, and whoſe Obſervations on that Queen's Favourites were written, though not printed, before thoſe Apophthegms, thought alſo, that it was made upon Ralegh; for he has ſaid, with Relation to this Jeſt by that witty Earl, ‘"We all know it ſavours more of Emulation and his Humour, than of Truth; it being a certain Note of the Times, that the Queen, in her Choice, never took into her Favour a mere new Man, or a Mechanick."’ But it is believ'd, Sir Walter Ralegh himſelf was afterwards pretty even with his Quality-critics; where he ſo ſolidly expoſes the Emptineſs of Merit, nay, the real Detriment to it, in Poſterity's being entitled to the Rewards of their Anceſtor's Virtues, by hereditary Honours, Succeſſion of Blood, and Nobility in Parchment; thoſe only being truly noble, who by worthy Acts have render'd themſelves most notable.

All therefore that needs be added on this Head, as a Matter more immediately requiſite, and indeed ſufficient for my preſent Purpoſe, is, That Sir Walter Ralegh was the Son of Walter Ralegh Eſq; of Fardel aforeſaid; who being thrice married, had by his firſt Wife Joan, Daughter of John Drake of Exmouth in Devon, Eſq; two Sons, one named George, and the other John; which laſt married Anne the Daughter of Sir Bartholomew Forteſcue of Filley in Devon, and Relict of—Gaicrick of Ford; and they had Iſſue. His ſecond Wife was Daughter of one Darell of London; by whom he had a Daughter named Mary, who was married to Hugh Snedale of Hilling in Cornwall, Eſq; and had Iſſue: His third Wife was Catherine Daughter of Sir Philip Champernon of Modbury, and Relict of Otho Gilbert of Compton in Devon, Eſq; He had by this laſt Venter, his third Son, Carew, afterwards [10] knighted, and of Wiltſhire, who married Dorothy Daughter of Sir William Wroughton, and Relict of Sir John Tbynn; by whom he had Iſſue; and laſtly, his fourth Son, named Walter, the Subject of our enſuing Diſcourſe; who was thereby the uterine Brother of thoſe three eminent Knights, Sir John, Sir Humphry, and Sir Adrian Gilbert. By this laſt Wife, Mr. Ralegh had alſo one Daughter, named Margaret; who was married firſt to—Radford of Mount Radford in Devon, Clerk of the Peace; and afterwards to—Hull of Larkebre, Eſq; in St. Leonard's Pariſh, Exeter.

The Family was indeed at this Time much declin'd from its former Splendor of Fame and Affluence of Fortune; for the Eſtate of Smalridge, which remain'd in the Name of Ralegh to the Time of King Henry VIII. was then ſold, by Sir Walter's Grandfather Wimond, to John the Father of Sir John Gilbert of Compton; but I cannot find it reduc'd to that low Ebb, in the latter Reſpect, which ſome have intimated; for Fardel remained ſtill in their Poſſeſſion, which, after the Death of Sir Walter's Father, ſell to the eldeſt Son George; and there were beſides Widdycomb Ralegh, and Coliton-Ralegh in their Poſſeſſion; the former of which was ſold, by Sir Walter's elder Brother Sir Carew Ralegh, to George the natural Son of George aforeſaid; and the latter was ſold, by Sir Walter himſelf, to Richard Martin, or his Father, of Exeter. But neither of theſe Places claim the Honour of his Birth.

For his Father having the Remainder of a four-ſcore-years Leaſe, in a pleaſant Farm call'd Hayes, ſituate in the Pariſh of Budley, in that Part of Devonſhire bordering Eaſtward upon the Sea, near where the Ottery, or River of Otters, diſcharges itſelf into the Britiſh Channel; and reſiding upon the ſaid Farm during the Time of his laſt Marriage; [11] this was the Birth-place of Sir Walter Ralegh; and it is accordingly diſtinguiſh'd, as for nothing more remarkable, by topographical Writers to this Day. After the Expiration of that Leaſe, Ralegh apply'd, but unſucceſsfully, to Mr. Duke of Otterton, to whom the Eſtate devolv'd, to fell it him; as appears by Ralegh's Letter to him, wherein he ſays, That for the natural Diſpoſition he [...]ad to the Place, being born in that Houſe, he had rather ſeat himſelf there, than any where elſe. From whence, it ſeems, that what ſome are, by another Devonian Antiquary, ſaid to have reported, and himſelf appears only to have recorded; as if Sir Walter Ralegh was born in the City of Exeter, and in the Houſe adjoining to the Palace-Gate; has no Authority, and perhaps, had not ſo much as Rumour to countenance it.

As to the Time of his Birth; I find the Computation has been made from Camden's Account of his Age at his Death, that he was born in the Year 1552. And herewith correſponds an Obſervation I have found in an aſtrological Author, who, fixing his Birth in the ſixth Year of King Edward VI. which anſwers to the Year of our Lord aforeſaid, calls it, A Year remarkable in our Chronicles; firſt, for that ſtrange Shole of the largeſt Sea-fiſhes, which, quitting their native Waters for freſh and untaſted Streams, wandered up the Thames ſo high, till the River no longer retained any Brackiſhneſs; and ſecondly, for that it is thought to have been ſomewhat ſtained in our Annals with the Blood of the noble Seymer, Duke of Somerſet: Events (ſays he) ſurpriſingly analogous both to the Life of this adventurous Voyager, Sir Walter Ralegh, whoſe Delight was in the hazardous Diſcovery of unfrequented Coaſts; and alſo to his unfortunate Death.

That his younger Years were ſeaſoned at the Univerſity of Oxford, we may gather from good [12] Authorities; as Hooker aforeſaid, Lord Bacon, and Anthony Wood; which laſt ſays, He became Commoner of Oriel College, in or about the Year 1568, when his Kinſman C. Champernon ſtudied there; and that his natural Parts being ſtrangely advanced by academical Learning, under the Care of an excellent Tutor; he became the Ornament of the Juniors; and was worthily eſteem'd a Proficient in Oratory and Philoſophy. But in that he came ſo late thither as this Author mentions, and ſtayed ſo long there as three Years, is a Miſtake; for he will preſently appear two Years before that Time amounts to, in the Wars abroad. What Time then can we ſpare for his Reſidence at Chriſt-Church College alſo, in that Univerſity; whereof Dr. Fuller would needs have him a Member, either before or after he was of Oriel; unleſs we could find, as I fear we ſhall not, that he return'd from the School of Mars, to that of the Muſes? Little more can we expect to have been obſerved of this remote Part of his Life; and yet ſomething more in it has been preſerved by Lord Bacon aforeſaid, who had the Judgment to foreſee, that every little Circumſtance would be acceptable of a Man, whoſe Fortunes and Misfortunes had render'd him ſo memorable. And indeed it has been repreſented to me as a Matter of no ſmall Honour to Sir Walter Ralegh, that a caſual Expreſſion of his, in his immature and greeneſt Years, ſhould prefer it ſelf to the Commemoration of that great Philoſopher, in his ſageſt and moſt advanced Age. But as he had obſerved, on the Nature of Things, that great Objects may be diſcern'd through a little Crevice; ſo he knew, with Reſpect to the Nature of Men, that a great Diſcovery of Genius may be made through a ſmall and ſudden Repartee; and hence might he be moved to remember; That while Ralegh was a Scholar at Oxford, there was a cowardly Fellow, [13] who happened to be a very good Archer; but having been groſly abuſed by another, he bemoaned himſelf to Ralegh, and aſk'd his Advice; What he ſhould do to repair the Wrong that had been offer'd him? Ralegh anſwer'd, Why, challenge him—at a Match of Shooting.

How long he continued at the Univerſity, is at laſt rightly concluded by Anthony Wood to be uncertain; but as ſure as he thinks himſelf right in ſettling him a Student of the Municipal Laws in the Middle Temple, upon ſeeing a Copy of Verſes he might write in that Inn of Conrt; I take this Aſſertion to be a greater Uncertainty than the other. For though Sir Robert Naunton, and poſſibly from him moſt other Writers of Ralegh's Life, have alſo conſign'd him to the Study of the Law, on his leaving Oxford; there is a late Author who believes it a Miſtake ſo obvious, that no Merit can reaſonably be aſſum'd from correcting it; for Sir Walter, at his Arraignment, in a Reply to the Attorney-general, lays a heavy Imprecation upon himſelf, If ever he read a Word of Law or Statutes, before he was a Priſoner in the Tower. So that if this Ralegh was the Author of that Poem before mentioned, and of the Middle-Temple in that Year it was written, which we ſhall preſently arrive at, we muſt yet take Care to keep the Lawyer clear from the Templar.

For we are expreſly told by Hooker, That after Ralegh had laid a good Ground to build his Actions on at the Univerſity, he travell'd into France; and this is confirm'd by Camden, according to whoſe Account of the Time, Ralegh could not be, at his Departure, above ſeventeen Years of Age; and by the Occaſion of his firſt going over, it will appear that a military Courſe of Life firſt fledg'd his Fame. For as it has been rightly obſerv'd, Ralegh [14] had the Advantage of a ſtirring Age to encourage and exerciſe his active Genius, throughout the whole Series of his firſt Engagements. France was now embroil'd in Civil Wars; England ſoon after, to divert a menaced Danger from the encroaching Power of Spain, lent Aſſiſtance to the then diſtreſs'd and humble States of Holland; Spain, by a political Repriſal, raiſed ſtubborn Inſurrections in Ireland; and the Pope, to make the Rebellion more permanent, and more plauſible, religiouſly pretended that Kingdom was a Perquiſite of St. Peter

But firſt of France; and here we need not recur to the Original of thoſe Commotions there; need not trace the Hugonots to their Fountain-head; apologiſe for their Oppoſitions againſt the Guiſards, labour to reconcile Queen Elizabeth's Defence of another Prince's oppreſſed Subjects, to the Laws of Nations, when imminent Danger, by ſuch Oppreſſions, threatned her own; nor, laſtly, aggravate her Motives againſt France in particular, from their late Violation of Covenants, relating to the Rendition of Calais; theſe Topics being to be ſought where they have already been, and it is more proper they ſhould be directly diſcuſſed. Sufficient therefore it will be, to obſerve in this Place, out of Camden's Annals, that though the Queen had her Hand full of Diſorders at home, yet ſhe was not wanting either in Commiſeration or Relief to the perſecuted Proteſtants of France; and not only exhorted other Princes of the ſame Perſuaſion to lend their Hands to the common Cauſe, but ſupply'd the Queen of Navarre with Money and Men to ſupport it; permitting Henry Champernon, a Relation by Marriage of the Earl of Montgomery, to match with a ſelect Troop of a Hundred Gentlemen Volunteers, well mounted and accoutred, into [15] France; who bore in their Standard this Motto: FINEM DET MIHI VIRTUS: Let Valour decide the Cauſe. In the Liſt of theſe Volunteers, was Philip Butſhed, with Francis Barcley, Men afterwards of Note in their Time; and this Walter Ralegh, the moſt noted of all, then a very young Man, and firſt beginning to puſh his Fortune in the World; admodum adoleſcens, jam primum ſatis monſtratus, ſays our above-cited Annaliſt.

The greateſt Hiſtorian in France of thoſe Times, tells us, this ſelect Troop of Horſe arrived in the French Camp, on the 5th of October 1569, and that they were very honourably received by the Queen of Navarre and the Princes. But what Services diſtinctly they performed in France, or how long they continued there, neither the Writers of that Country, nor of our own, have, I think, given full Satisfaction. This Conſequence we draw from ſome Circumſtances in the latter Part of Ralegh's Life, that he eſtabliſhed himſelf a conſiderable Reputation while he was in that Kingdom; and from Hooker, That he ſpent good Part of his Youth in Wars and martial Services there: Agreeable to which, is that Paſſage in another Author, who alſo ſeems to have known him; where, ſpeaking of his Education, he adds, It was not Part, but wholly Gentleman, wholly Soldier.

Some French Hiſtorians tell us, that what with the Supplies of Queen Elizabeth, who ſent the French Proteſtants a hundred thouſand Angels, beſides ſome Pieces of Cannon and Ammunition; and what with the Aids of their other Allies, the Proteſtant Army, which took the Field under Admiral Coligny and the Prince of Conde, and encamped about Limoſin, this Year of Ralegh's going over, being in the Beginning of their third civil War, amounted to no leſs than 25000 fighting Men; [16] when the King's Army under his Brother the Duke of Anjou, being encamped at Rochlabeille, amounted to above 30,000. But others reckon the Proteſtant Army of equal Number; and obſerve, tho' their Men and Horſe died at Limoſin in great Numbers for Want of Food and Forage; and though a great Reward was offered for the Admiral, dead or alive, that it only added Fuel to the Fire: For what Terror could it ſtrike, ſays my Author, into Perſons, who headed an Army of 30,000 Men, and ventured their Lives with the utmoſt Bravery on all Occaſions? As for the inſincere League or Union of France and England, by the pretended Marriage, which appears to have been negotiated two Years after between the two Crowns; it ſeems not to have withdrawn theſe Engliſh Auxiliaries, at leaſt not him along with them; becauſe Ralegh's Continuance in France would then fall ſhort of Hooker's Implication aforeſaid. But as we ſhall diſcover him to have been in that Kingdom beyond the Death of King Charles IX. which from Ralegh's Entrance thither is about five Years; and that in this Compaſs of Time near 30 Battles, Sieges, Overthrows, Treaties and Capitulations on one Side or other may be enumerated; it is manifeſt that our young Volunteer was hazardouſly engaged in ſome, if not ſeveral of them. He had afterwards Occaſion to mention, upon his obſerving here, the ill Conſequence of having Commanders in equal Power, whom it is almoſt impoſſible to chuſe of equal Courage and Diſcretion. In another Place Ralegh ſpeaks of a Stratagem which he and his Company uſed with Succeſs at Languedoc, where the Enemy had fortified themſelves in certain Caves which had but one narrow Entrance cut in the Mid-way of the high Rocks, and which, ſays he, we knew not how to enter by any Ladder or Engine; [17] 'till at laſt, by certain Bundles of lighted Straw let down by an Iron Chain with a weighty Stone in the midſt, thoſe that defended it were ſo ſmothered, that they ſurrendered themſelves, with their Plate, Money, and other Goods, therein hidden; or they muſt have died like Bees that are ſmoaked out of their Hives." And in another Place he gratefully takes Notice of a Deliverance he had in theſe Wars. 'Tis where, reaſoning upon the Manner and Opportunities of Retreats in Battle, he firſt gives an Example of its being leſs Diſhonour to retire in the Dark, than to be ruined in the Light, in the Sentiment of M. de la Noue, upon the Retreat made juſt before the Battle of Moncountour. For, ſays that Frenchman, ſtaying upon our Reputation in Shew, not to diſlodge by Night; we loſt our Reputation indeed, in diſlodging by Day; whereby we were forced to fight upon our Diſadvantage, and to our Ruin: Yet (ſays Ralegh) did that worthy Gentleman Count Lodowick of Naſſau, Brother to the late famous Prince of Orange, make the Retreat at Moncountour with ſo great Reſolution, as he ſaved one half of the Proteſtant Army, then broken and diſbanded, of which myſelf was an Eye-witneſs, and was one of them who had Cauſe to thank him for it. But by what Means Ralegh eſcaped that comprehenſive Deſtruction which broke out in the third Year of this turbulent Period, unleſs with young Sidney (afterwards a Knight of great Renown for his own Accompliſhments, and the Patronage of other Men's, then upon his Travels in France) he took Sanctuary in the Ambaſſador Walſingham's Houſe, *we deſpair, at this Diſtance, of learning: For then the cruel and inſidious young King aforeſaid, inflamed by the Queen-Mother, and her Firebrands of Religion, [18] perpetrated that horrible Maſſacre of all the Proteſtants in the capital City, and other Parts of his Realm; the Invitation to which was the Nuptials of his Siſter; the Signal to which was the Bell they rung to their pious Mattins; and in the Execution whereof, among many thouſands, fell the great Admiral aforeſaid, by the Procurement of his implacable Enemy the Duke of Guiſe. *And though the Comet, which ſoon after glared out of the Face of Heaven upon theſe bloody Actors for many Months together, ſeems to have wrought little [19] Remorſe or Contrition in them during Life; yet is their untimely and violent End, with the Extirpation of the very Line of Valois, ſomewhat remarkable; eſpecially that of this King himſelf, whoſe early Delight in hunting of wild Beaſts, thus improved to the Slaughter of his Fellow Creatures; 'till in leſs than two Years after that inhuman Maſſacre, his inſatiable Thirſt of his People's Blood, was quenched by an irreſiſtible Extravaſation of his own.

Now that Ralegh was, 'till the Death of that King, and even longer, in France, we may be fully convinced, from the further Light I have fortunately [20] met with, in an eminent Author of his own Time. For Mr. Richard Hackluyt, in his moſt excellent Collection of Voyages, dedicating his Tranſlation of a French Adventure therein to Sir Walter Ralegh, tells him, That calling to Mind you had ſpent more Years in France than I, and underſtand the French better than myſelf; I perceived you approve my Endeavour, not for any private Eaſe, but for the ſpecial Care you had of thoſe to be employed in your own like Enterpriſe. And how long Hakluyt had been in France, appears in his Dedication to Sir Francis Walſingham of his firſt Edition of thoſe Voyages; where he takes the Occaſion to tell his Patrons, that himſelf had been five Years in that Kingdom: So that Raleigh muſt have been at leaſt ſix Years there.

And this will lead us near the Time we are to look for him in London, if we take for our Guide in the Chronology of Ralegh's Life, that Copy of Verſes before-mentioned which Anthony Wood took for his, in Relation to Ralegh's Profeſſion. Theſe Verſes I have found to be a commendatory Poem of three Stanza's, by Walter Rawely of the Middle-Temple, as he is there written; and printed among others, before a Satire called The Steel Glaſs, publiſhed in 1576, by a learned and ingenious Poet of Repute in thoſe Days, named George Gaſcoigne, Eſq;

Now, though I have had the Opportunity of ſeeing ſome original Manuſcripts of Sir Walter Ralegh's Writing, and his Name written ſeveral Times by his own Hand, I ſhall not cavil at the Pſeudography thereof before the ſaid printed Copy of Verſes; becauſe I could inſtance greater Errors of the like Nature, which yet have not excluded Authors from the Reputation of their Compoſitions; [21] but more eſpecially, becauſe there are ſome glimmering Circumſtances which render the Writing of that Piece by this our Author probable to me; as namely, a Kind of familiar Dependency which that Gaſcoigne had upon the Lord Gray of Wilton; as in the Dedication of this, and ſome other of his Works, is evident; under which Nobleman Ralegh will ſoon after appear to have ſerved in the Wars of Ireland. Again, Gaſcoigne had led a Life ſomewhat like Ralegh in foreign Travel and military Services: Then 'tis to be noted Gaſcoigne uſed the very Motto, under his Picture prefixed to that Satyr before-mentioned; which after his Death is ſo well known to have been aſſumed by, or appropriated to, Ralegh himſelf; Tam Martii, quam Mercurio. All which ſeem to ſhadow out the Links, if not the perfect Chain, of ſome Acquaintance between them. But the Poem itſelf, to me, diſcovers, in the very firſt Line of it, a great Air of that ſolid axiomatical Vein, which is obſervable in other Productions of Ralegh's Muſe:

Sweet were the Sauce would pleaſe each Kind of Taſte.

And the whole middle of Hexaſtic, is ſuch an Indication of his own Fortune or Fate; ſuch a Caution againſt that Envy of ſuperior Merit which he himſelf ever ſtruggled with; that it could proceed from no Hand more properly than his own.

Though ſundry Minds in ſundry Sort do deem;
Yet worthieſt Wights yield Praiſe to every Pain:
But envious Brains do nought, or Light eſteem,
Such ſtately Steps as they cannot attain:
For whoſo reaps Renown above the Reſt,
With Heaps of Hate ſhall ſurely be oppreſs'd.

[22] Laſtly, As to the Particular of his Being at this Time of the Middle-Temple, all we can conclude of it is, ſince he has ſo publickly and ſolemnly proteſted he never ſtudied the Law there; that it might be as cuſtomary in the Inns of Court then, as it is now, for a young Gentleman to be with a Friend, or have the Uſe of his Chambers while he is out of Town, or even have Chambers of his own, rather than be confined to the Singularities of a Family in Lodgings, and never read a Word of the Law; much leſs have any Purpoſe to practiſe it.

His next Stage of Action was in the Netherlands, according to one of the Writers of his Life; who tells us he ſerved under the Prince of Orange, as a Volunteer againſt the Spaniards; making himſelf, in the Low-Countries, Maſter of the Art Military; and confirming, through the Succeſs of his firſt Campaigns, his Reſolution to advance himſelf by Arms, as the nobler and readier Way to Glory. Sir Robert Naunton alſo intimates, that before he was in Ireland under the Lord Grey, he was engaged in the Law Countries, and alſo in a Voyage at Sea. Another Author likewiſe agrees in this Low Countries Service, and Voyage at Sea, before Ralegh was known at Court. But whereas the firſt of theſe two Writers mentions an earlier Expedition of Ralegh's in Ireland, before this of the Low Countries, as his firſt Expoſure to a military Life, being ignorant of all the Time he paſſed in the French Wars; and whereas the laſt fixes him in that firſt Iriſh Expedition, under General Norris; I apprehend them to be herein both miſtaken; the former, in that Ralegh appears not to have been twice againſt the Rebels in Ireland, nor once at his firſt Engagement in War; and the latter, in that this Norris appears not to be in Ireland, when the Courſe of Ralegh's Employments will allow him to [23] have been in that Kingdom: But now that there is Room for Ralegh's being in the Netherlands, we find General Norris to be there.

For the Emperor Charles natural Son Don John of Auſtria, a briſk, forward young Man, fluſh'd with the late victorious Battle of Lepanto againſt the Turks, and high in the Pope's Favour; being ſent by his Brother the King of Spain in the Year 1577 Governor of the Low-Countries, to divert his Mind from higher Reaches at home; and having incurr'd the general Odium of the States for his Tyranny over them, no leſs than the Jealouſy of the Engliſh, for his Treachery to this Nation; Queen Elizabeth thought the Dutch now more immediately needful of her Notice; and more particularly from a Diſcovery that had been made to her, ſome ſay, by the Prince of Orange, of a vain Project the ſaid Don John had form'd of reſcuing the Queen of Scots out of Priſon; and by Marriage with her, or the Force of Arms, to dethrone the Queen of England, and make himſelf Maſter of her Crown; ſor Don John's haughty Conceit of himſelf, ſays Ralegh, overcame the greateſt Difficulties, tho' his Judgment was over-weak to manage the leaſt. Wherefore the Queen not only receded from that Peace with the Spaniards, and Neutrality then in Agitation; but ſent the States both Men and Money, as they had requeſted, to carry on the War more powerfully againſt them. Among the Forces, both Engliſh and Scots, which now poured over, under Sir John Norris, Sir Robert Stewart, Colonel John North, Henry Cavendiſh, and others, not to forget Colonel Thomas Morgan, whoſe veteran Troops were the firſt perfect Harquebuſiers of our Nation, and the firſt who taught us to like the Muſket; there is here, and here only, I think, a Vacancy in the Story of Ralegh, that will admit of him under the firſt of thoſe [24] Commanders; ſo might he probably ſhare in the Danger and Honour of that memorable Lammas Day, Anno 1578, which buried the Reputation of Don John; which this Governor did not two Months ſurvive; and which has raiſed the Emulation of Pencils, as well as Pens, to commemorate. For the States having thus gather'd a powerful Army, and planted themſelves near the Village of Rimenant, about a League from Mecklin; Don John, at the Head of, ſome ſay thirty thouſand Men, being aſſiſted by the Prince of Parma, Mondragon, and other the beſt Commanders of Spain, now reſolved to give them Battle. He made a furious Onſet; but in the End, by a notable Stratagem, was deluded to a great Overthrow. For perceiving, as he thought, the whole Confederate Army encamped before the ſaid Village, in an open and inviting Plain; Don John precipitouſly detach'd a ſtronger Force to encounter them; which ſo ſucceeded on both Sides, that the States Army, after a convenient Reſiſtance, feigning a Flight, quitted this their Counterfeit Camp; the Spaniards eagerly purſuing, in a ſcattered and diſorderly Manner, to compleat their ſuppoſed Victory; till, amaz'd, they found themſelves in the Midſt of the Fugitives true Camp, environ'd with nineteen thouſand Horſe and Foot; a Number conſiderably greater than the Aſſailants. To extricate themſelves was impoſſible; there was a River on one Side; when they attempted the Thicket on the other, it was lined with an armed Ambuſcade of Engliſh and Scots; and when they aſſaulted the Trenches, they could not ſuſtain the Fury of the Artillery. Yet was the Battle vigorouſly maintained from Morning till Night; tho' the Engliſh and Scots, harraſs'd by a long and weariſome March, came but a Day, ſome ſay but [25] an Hour, to the Field, before the Encounter began; and yet partly thro' Bravery, partly thro' the ſultry Warmth of the Weather; or, as one Author has it, more ſenſible of a little Heat of the Sun, than any cold Fears of Death, they made themſelves further remarkable, by ſtripping off Armour and Cloaths, and fighting in their Shirts; till at laſt, thoſe who had purſued the States Army in a pretended Flight, were themſelves driven, with great Slaughter, to a real one.

Soon after his Brother Sir Humphry Gilbert, having now newly obtain'd a Patent of the Queen to plant and inhabit ſome Northern Parts of America, unpoſſeſs'd by any Prince with whom ſhe was in Alliance, ſoon engaged Ralegh, upon his Return into England, who was always ready to graſp at every Occaſion, that might reputably advance his Fortune or his Knowledge, to embark in this Adventure. For tho' the Coaſts from the Cape of Florida Northward to the Iſles now called the Newfoundlands, had been before diſcovered by John Cabot the Father, with Sebaſtian and Sancius his Sons, both Engliſhmen born, through the Authority and Expence of King Henry VII. yet there wanted not only more inland Reſearches and the Eſtabliſhment of Chriſtianity, but the very Trade and Commerce with Newfoundland was very ſlothfully neglected, even ſince the Reign of King Edward VI; *for our Merchants and Adventurers in his Time enrich'd this Nation conſiderably from [26] their Fiſhery in thoſe Parts, as appears by that Act, wherein Care is taken to prevent the Exaction of any Doles or Taxes from them by the Officers of the Admiralty, that they might not be diſcourag'd from the Merchandize of Fiſh, but tranſport it more plentifully into the Realm, and at more reaſonable Rates. Now Gilbert having, as I ſaid, procured an ample Commiſſion to repoſſeſs theſe Advantages with Improvement, many Gentlemen of good Account reſorted to him, among whom was his Brother Ralegh; ſo that from theſe Preparations was expected a potent Fleet. Nevertheleſs, among ſuch Variety of Volunteers, Diſpoſitions were various; which in the End bred Diviſion, and even Confuſion of the Attempt; for, after the Shipping was by Degrees prepared, and the Men ready to go aboard; ſome diſagreeing in Opinion, ſome ſhrinking at Obedience, and others failing of their Promiſes and Engagements; the greater Number were diſperſed, leaving the General, with a few only of his aſſured Friends. However, with theſe he ventur'd to Sea; where, having taſted of no leſs Misfortune, he was ſhortly after driven to retire home with the Loſs of a tall Ship; and more to his Grief, of a valiant Gentleman named Miles Morgan. Now this Misfortune at Sea, and Loſs of a Ship with that valiant Gentleman, I have not only Reaſon to believe was by a ſharp Encounter they had with the Spaniards, however tenderly touch'd at that Time, perhaps to avoid their Triumph; but that Ralegh was in this very Engagement, and his Life in great Danger thereby. For there is another Author, who, in his Addreſs to him before mention'd, tells him, that after his Return from his Land-ſervices, having gained ſufficient Knowledge and Experience therein; to the End that you might be every Way able to ſerve your Prince and Commonwealth [27] (ſays he) you were deſirous to be acquainted with maritimal Affairs; then you, together with your Brother Sir Humphrey Gilbert, travelled the Seas for the Search of ſuch Countries as, if they had then been diſcover'd, infinite Commodities in ſundry Reſpects would have enſued; and whereof there was no Doubt, if the Fleet then accompanying you had, according to Appointment followed you; or your ſelf had eſcaped the dangerous Sea-fight, when many of your Company was ſlain, and your Ships therewith alſo ſore batter'd and diſabled.

This ill Succeſs kept not theſe Adventures long abroad; and now new Diſturbances broke out, which called for Men of Experience in War at home. For the firſt Dart of any Conſequence which was thrown from Spain or Rome upon Ireland, being in 1580, we ſhall then find Ralegh among that Body of his Countrymen which effectually broke its Force, and ſhielded off the Miſchief wherewith it would otherwiſe have gall'd that Kingdom. For as to the Invaſion of Thomas Stucley, two Years before, it blew over into Africa; where that Meteor of Oſtentation, and Tool of ambitious Princes, fell in the Plains of Alcazar, and with Royal Company expir'd. But now that James Fitz-Morris of the Geraldine Family was come over, and not long after San Joſepho, under the Pope's Banner, with Spaniſh and Italian Forces, to aſſiſt the Deſmonds in the Munſter Rebellion, and had landed in three Ships at Smerwick in Kerry; where having built a Fort which they call'd Fort del Ore, and refortify'd it with the Benedictions of Allen an Iriſh, and Sanders an Engliſh Jeſuit; the Iriſh Rebels under Sir James and Sir John, Brothers to the late Earl of Deſmond, ſoon reſorted thither to join, as the Engliſh Forces alſo did to diſperſe them. Their Ships were ſoon taken by Thomas Courtenay, a [28] Devonſhire Gentleman; and Fitz-Morris himſelf, for a Prey he had made of ſome Garons and other Cattle, was by Sir William Burk and his Sons ſoon [...]lain, and his Quarters expos'd at Kilmallock. The next, whoſe Fate drew on, was Sir James Deſmond, who, on the Fourth of Auguſt in the above mentioned Year, having made an Inroad upon Muſkerry, and taken a great Booty from Sir Cormac Mac Teige, Sheriff of Cork; the ſaid Sheriff making Head againſt him, recover'd the Booty, wounded Sir James mortally, and took him Priſoner. In that Condition he was kept, till by Letters from the Lord Juſtice named Sir William Pelham, and the Council, he was deliver'd to Sir Warham Sentleger, then Provoſt marſhal of Munſter, and to Captain Ralegh; and according to the Commiſſion directed to them, he was examin'd, indicted, arraign'd; and then, upon Judgment; drawn, hang'd, and quarter'd; and his Head and Limbs impal'd upon the City-gates of Cork, ſor a Terror to his Aſſociates, and a Prey for the Fowls of the Air. And this is the firſt Appearance we meet with of Ralegh in Ireland, enough to ſhake the Report of thoſe who ſay he was a Militia there, and had his firſt Commiſſion from Arthur Lord Grey, Baron of Wilton.

But the chief Commander in theſe parts at this Time was the Earl of Ormond, ſoon after Governor of Munſter, a Man of ſuch Loyalty, as to have reduc'd his rebellious Brothers to Allegiance; and of ſuch Courage, as conſtantly partaking in every Danger with his own Soldiers, made him much beloved by all his Adherents; while his apparent Contempt thereby of that Danger, gain'd him no leſs Fear from all his Adverſaries. He, on the other Side, bending his Courſe againſt the foreign Enemy, encamped his Army at Tralegh, within [29] Kén of the Spaniſh Fort aforeſaid: Hereupon many of thoſe Invaders diſlodged, whom the Earl valiantly engag'd, ſlaying ſome, and taking others Priſoners; the reſt flew to the Coverts of Glaningell. The Priſoners he took, confeſs'd their Force was not above ſeven hundred ſtrong; but that they had brought Arms and Ammunition for five thouſand Natives, beſides a Maſs of Money for the Deſmonds and Dr. Sanders, and daily expected farther Supplies from Rome; for it was abſolutely determined by the Pope and King Philip to make a compleat Conqueſt of Ireland, and England beſides; nay, ſo confident they ſeemed of Succeſs, if we can credit the Aſſertion of an Author who was this Year in Spain, that his Holineſs had provided a Chalice to drink the Queen of England's precious Blood, ſays he, as ſoon as ſhe ſhould be made a Sacrifice. Now after the aforeſaid Defeat, about 300 of the Enemy having made their Way back to the Fort, the Earl followed them cloſe, and encamped at Dingle; but wanting Ammunition for a Battery, was forced to retire. And, finding himſelf of unequal Force to withſtand another Salley the Spaniards made, returned to join the Deputy at Rakele; who having now about eight hundred Horſe and Foot with him, under the Conduct of Captain Ralegh, Zouch, Denny, Mackworth, and others, decamped and marched up towards the Fort. But Ralegh, who had obſerved it to be the Cuſtom of the Iriſh Kerns, upon any Diſlodgement of the Engliſh Camp, to flock in Parties thither, and glean away whatever they ſaw left behind; linger'd, and lay in Ambuſh to receive them. They came accordingly with their wonted Conſtancy and Greedineſs; but in the Midſt of their Proling, Ralegh fell upon them ſo advantageouſly, that he enclos'd them all with his Men, and took [30] every Rebel upon the Spot, who was not ſlain in Reſiſtance. Among them there was one laden with Withies, who being demanded, What he intended to have done with them? Boldly anſwer'd, To have hung up the Engliſh Churls. Well, ſaid Ralegh; but they ſhall now ſerve for an Iriſh Kern; ſo commanded him to be immediately tuck'd up in one of his own Neckbands; and dealt with the reſt of theſe Robbers and Murderers according to their Deſerts. We read of another Iriſh Rebel, but of greater Rank, named Brian O Rourk; who being afterwards to ſuffer at the Gallows, ſhew'd great Concern that it was to be by the common Halter; and earneſtly petition'd, not for Pardon or Preſervation of his Life, but that they would change the Inſtrument of his Death; and inſtead of a Rope, to let him take his Swing in a Withy; but being aſk'd, Why he inſiſted upon ſuch an inſignificant Diſtinction? he anſwer'd, 'Twas a Diſtinction had been paid to his Countrymen before him.

While the Lord Deputy lay before the Fort, there arriv'd in the Bay of Smerwick, Vice-admiral Bingham, and ſoon after Sir William Winter, Admiral of the Fleet, with freſh Supplies: Hereupon the Lord Deputy reſolved to beſiege the Fort by Land, while the Admiral ſhould batter it by Sea. But firſt the Spaniards were ſummon'd to ſurrender at Diſcretion; they anſwered, They were ſent, ſome from the Holy Father, who had given that Realm to King Philip; and ſome from that King, who was to recover this Land to the Church of Rome, which by her Majeſty's Means was become ſchiſmatical and excommunicate; therefore, in ſhort, were obliged to retain what they had, and recover what they could. Nor did they omit the Advantage they thought this Parley would produce of finding the Engliſh unguarded, to make a Sally upon them; but they [31] were ſo diſappointed, through the Vigilance and Valour of Ralegh's Company, and that of Captain Denny, that ſuch as were not left dead behind, were forced to retreat with more Haſte than good Speed. The Culverins and other Pieces of Ordnance being now landed, and a large mountainous Bank laboriouſly cut through, for the Carriages to paſs to the Place convenient for planting them; the Deputy is ſaid to have given the Enemy another Summons by Cannon-ſhot to ſurrender, and receive Mercy. But they anſwer'd as before; thereupon the Artillery was order'd to attack the Fort both by Land and Water. Ralegh commanded the firſt three Days after the Opening of the Trenches; and aſſaulted the Fort ſo roughly from his Battery, that he forced the Spaniards to ſeveral Excurſions; but they ſkirmiſh'd ſo warily, and hived again ſo nimbly, that there was no cloſing with them effectually. The fourth Day was commanded by Zouch, under whom John Cheke, the Son of a Knight well known among the learned for his Writings, venturing ſo near the Fort as to look over the Parapet, being obſerved by a Spaniard, who levell'd his Piece, and brought him to the Ground. But now the Trenches for the full Battery were drawn ſo near the Spaniards, and the Engliſh play'd their Cannon ſo furiouſly and inceſſantly upon them from every Side; and finding no Succours arrive, they beat a Parley, and hung out the white Flag, crying out Miſericordia, Miſericordia; but the Lord Deputy would not liſten to any Treaty with the Confederates of Traitors and Rebels; no, not ſo much as to their Departure with Bag and Baggage, or free Paſſage to any one particular Perſon; nothing but an abſolute Surrender. And as for Mercy, which Hooker before intimates to have been offer'd on proviſo of their timely Submiſſion, we find by [32] Edmund Spenſer, who was then Secretary to the Lord Deputy, and upon the very Spot, that his Lordſhip never gave the Spaniards any Hopes of it.

For after the Lord Deputy had diſcovered that they had yielded, and ſurrendered the Fort, on the Ninth of November, Ralegh and Mackworth, who had the Ward of that Day, firſt entered the Caſtle, and, with their Companies, made a great Slaughter; ſo that except one Iriſh Nobleman, who was reprieved, another Iriſhman, and an Engliſhman, who were ſent to publick Execution, except alſo San Joſepho the Spaniſh Commander, and his Camp maſter, with a few Spaniſh Officers, who were ſent Priſoners into England, and reſerved for Ranſom; all the Invaders, between four and five hundred, were, according to the Deputy's poſitive Command, put to the Sword; and the Country was thus weeded of theſe noxious Foreigners. As for Ralegh, he never was taxed, that I can learn, with any Cruelty upon this Account, more than Mackworth, or the reſt of the Officers.

Ralegh was quartered this Winter at Cork, where he obſerved the ſeditious Practices of David Lord Barry, Patrick Condon, and other Ringleaders of the Rebellion in thoſe Parts, to diſtreſs ſo intolerably thoſe Subjects who were peacefully inclined, and foment the diſaffected to an Inſurrection; that he was forced to take a Journey in Perſon to the Lord Deputy at Dublin; where he remonſtrated the dangerous Conſequences he foreſaw, ſo urgently, that, the Caſe being taken into Conſideration by his Lordſhip and the Council, they return'd him with a full Commiſſion to enter upon the Caſtle called Barry-Court, with all other Lands of the ſaid Barry, and to reduce him to Peace and Subjection, by ſuch Means as he judg'd moſt feaſible; appointing him for his farther Enablement a Party [33] of Horſe. In the Interim, ſuch Meaſures were uſed with thoſe in Authority at Cork, that the Commiſſion proved of little Effect; but though the ſaid Eſtate of Barry-More, was made over to the Mother of David Barry, and only rented to the Son; and though it was his principal Seat; yet partly in Fear of that Commiſſion, partly through Spite and Indignation, he burnt the Caſtle himſelf to the Ground, and waſted the Country about it with greater Outrage and Deſtruction, than his Enemies, had they taken it, would have done. Moreover, as Ralegh was on his Journey back to his Quarters, an old Rebel of Barry's Faction, named Fitz-Edmonds, and his Crew ſallied from their Ambuſcade, and croſs'd him, to oppoſe his Paſſage, whom Ralegh manfully encountered and defeated, or at leaſt broke thro' them, ſo that he got clear over the River; but one of his Company, Mr. Henry Mole, following, his Horſe foundering, threw him down in the Middle of it; where, between Fear of drowning and being taken by the Enemies, he called out to Ralegh for Help; who, tho' he had eſcaped both Dangers, yet incurred them again to ſave his Companion's Life; but Moyle, in Haſte and Confuſion remounting, overleap'd his Horſe, and fell down on the other Side into a deep Mire, where he might have been ſtifled, had not Ralegh recovered him a ſecond Time, and brought him ſafe to Land; but his Horſe run over to the Rebels. Ralegh waited on the oppoſite Bank, with his Staff in one Hand, and a Piſtol in the other, for the reſt of his Company who were [34] yet to croſs the River; among whom was his Servant Jenkin, who had two hundred Pounds of his Money in Charge; a Sum in thoſe Days enough to make a Soldier of Fortune in theſe Circumſtances look about him; eſpecially now Fitz Edmonds had got a Recruit of twelve Men, and was in all above twenty ſtrong againſt him. Yet this Hero, as his Party called him, when he beheld Ralegh ſtand his Ground, and the reſt of his Company advance, whom he poſſibly thought might be of greater Number than they were, only exchanged a few rough Words with him, and thought it beſt to offer no further Moleſtation.

Soon after the Earl of Ormond departed from his long and weariſome Services here to England, about the Spring of the Year 1581. His Government of Munſter was given to Captain Ralegh, in Commiſſion with Sir William Morgan and Captain Piers. Ralegh lay for the moſt Part at Liſmore; and, in the Country and Woods thereabouts, ſpent all this Summer in continual Action againſt the Rebels.

Then Ralegh removed with his little Band of fourſcore Foot and eight Horſe, to his old Quarters at Cork; but receiving Intelligence by the Way, that the Arch-traitor Barry was at Clove, with ſeveral hundred Men, he reſolved to paſs through that Town, and offer him the Combat. Accordingly at the Town's End he met Barry and his Forces, whom Ralegh charged with great Bravery, and put him to Flight. As he purſued his Journey, he overtook another Company of the Enemy in a Plain, by a Wood-ſide; upon whom, having only ſix Horſemen with him, expecting probably his Company would ſoon join him, he gave the Onſet; but the Rebels, who were in much greater Number, being cut off from the Wood, and [35] having no other Relief, faced about, and fought very deſperately, killing five of the Horſes belonging to Ralegh's Company, whereof his own was one, and he himſelf very near being over-borne by the Numbers upon him, had not his truſty Servant Nicholas Wright, a Yorkſhire Man, interpos'd; who perceiving his Maſter's Horſe ſo mortally wounded with Darts, and plunging paſt all Recovery, encounter'd ſix of the Enemy at once, and killed one of them; while another of his Fellowſervants, named Patrick Fagaw, reſcued Ralegh; which had been ſo unſucceſsfully attempted by James Fitz-Richard and his Kern, both of Ralegh's Company, that the Man was ſlain, and the Maſter very near the ſame Fate; whereupon Ralegh would not ſuffer Wright to fight by him any longer, but ordered him to charge above hand, and ſave the Gentleman: At which Command he ruſh'd into the Throng of the Enemy, diſpatch'd the Antagoniſt who preſs'd foreſt upon Mr. Fitz-Richard, and reſcued him. In this ſharp Skirmiſh, there were many of the Rebels ſlain, and two taken Priſoners, whom Ralegh carried with him to Cork; and while he lay here, he performed ſeveral other notable Services, which deſerve to be for ever regiſter'd.

Among the reſt, his excellent Conduct in the Seizure of the Lord Roch is more particularly remember'd and applauded. This Nobleman, being much ſuſpected to hold Confederacy with ſome of the chief Rebels, Ralegh undertook to bring, with his Family, before the Earl of Ormond at Cork. But the Deſign of this hazardous Surpriſe took Air among the Enemy, and a Party of 800 Men, under Fitz-Edmonds and Barry, were gather'd to way-lay the Engliſh either going or coming. However Ralegh, knowing the Lord Roch to be a [36] powerful and popular Man among the Iriſh, ſo ſuddenly commanded all his Company to be in Readineſs by Eleven a-Clock that Night, and they were ſo punctual to the Hour, that he directly marched away to Bally in Harſh, which was Roch's Seat, about twenty Miles from Cork, and eſcaped the Ambuſcade. He arrived there by Break of Day; but the Townſmen were ſo alarmed, that they ſoon gathered 500 ſtrong. Ralegh drew up, and in ſuch Manner beſtowed his Men in the Town it ſelf, that he ſoon quell'd and reſtrain'd the People there; then ſelecting half a Dozen out of his Company; and having appointed another little Party to follow him, he marched up to the Caſtle. He was met by three or four of Roch's Gentlemen, of whom he deſir'd to ſpeak with their Lord; which was agreed to, on Condition he would diſmiſs three or four of his own Attendants; to which, with apparent Readineſs, he comply'd; but ſo contrived, that none of them were locked out. Then he gave them Directions which Way the reſt alſo, without the Gates, might be admitted, whilſt he ſhould hold the Lord Roch in Diſcourſe; which ſucceeded ſo happily, that by Degrees his whole Compliment were got within the Court-yard, ſome guarding the Gates, others watching in the Hall, each having his Piece loaden with a Brace of Balls. The Lord Roch was amaz'd and terrify'd at ſo ſilent and inſenſible a Seizure; but, diſſembling his Uneaſineſs, he would needs have Ralegh, and the Gentlemen with him, participate of his plentiful Table; yet the Policy of his Hoſpitality did not defeat that of their Enterpriſe; for, as ſoon as the Dinner was over, Ralegh ingenuouſly laid open the Occaſion of his Viſit. Lord Roch made many Excuſes, and in the End abſolutely refuſed to go along with him. But when the Commiſſion was [37] produced, and he found Ralegh inflexible, he choſe to do that by Conſent, which he found he muſt do by Compulſion. Then Ralegh urged him to oblige his Townſmen likewiſe, who had ſo faithfully riſen for his Defence in his Neighbourhood, to eſcort and defend him in his Journey; to which Lord Roch alſo conſented, profeſſing he doubted not but to clear himſelf of whatever Allegations ſhould be laid to his Charge. When his Lordſhip, with his Lady and Attendants, had made themſelves ready, Ralegh was for another nocturnal Progreſs; but though the Night fell out ſo very dark and tempeſtuous, and the Ways were ſo full of Hills and Dales, Rocks and Precipices, that many of his Soldiers were much bruiſed by Falls, and one of them ſo mortify'd, that he loſt his Life in the March; yet the Veil wherewith the reſt were ſhelter'd, by that Obſcurity, from the more dangerous Ambuſcades of their Enemy, who had every where beſtrew'd the Paſſages to intercept them, made ſuch ſufficient Compenſation for thoſe Diſaſters, that by the next Morning early he ſafely preſented his Priſoners to the General, not without raiſing an univerſal Aſtoniſhment at his dexterous Evaſion of ſo many Perils. But the Lord Roch, upon Examination being honourably acquitted, he approved himſelf a faithful Subject ever after, and three of his Sons laid down their Lives in her Majeſty's Service.

In the Month of Auguſt, the ſame Year, the Lord Deputy made the aforeſaid Captain John Zouch Governor of Munſter, with whom Ralegh and Dowdal made ſeveral Journeys to ſettle and compoſe the Country; but the certain Place of their Reſidence was at Cork. And when Zouch, with Dowdal, made that ſecret Expedition, in which he lopp'd off the third Branch of this venomous [38] Hydra, Sir John Deſmond; whoſe Body was hung by the Heels on a Gibbet, then fixed on the Gates of that City, and his Head ſent to London; he left the Government of Cork to Ralegh, who appears no longer, after this Reduction, in the Wars of Ireland: But how well his Services were received by the Queen, and how nobly ſhe rewarded him for them after the Earl of Deſmond himſelf was ſlain, we ſhall hear when we arrive at the Time that his large Poſſeſſions came to be divided among thoſe who had aſſiſted in quenching the Flames of his Rebellion.

Ralegh was not long in England, before his Relation in ſome Degree to the Court began to appear. Tradition has induſtriouſly abſcrib'd his firſt Introduction thither to a Piece of Gallantry, wherewith he ſurpris'd the Queen accidentally in one of her Walks. Her Majeſty meeting (ſays my Author) with a plaſhy Place, made ſome Scruple to go on; when Ralegh (dreſs'd in the gay and genteel Habit of thoſe Times) preſently caſt off and ſpread his new Pluſh-cloak on the Ground, whereon the Queen trod gently over, rewarding him afterwards with many Suits for his ſo free and ſeaſonable Tender of ſo fair a Foot-cloth: Thus an advantageous Admiſſion into the Notice of a Prince, is more than half a Degree to Preferment. After this, Ralegh coming to Court, and finding ſome Hopes of the Queen's Favour reflecting upon him, he wrote in a Glaſs Window, obvious to her Eye,

Fain would I climb, yet fear I to fall.

Under which her Majeſty ſoon after wrote,

If thy Heart fail thee, climb not at all.

[39] But though he always made a very elegant Appearance, as well in the Splendor of Attire, as the Politeneſs of Addreſs; having a good Preſence, in a handſome and well compacted Perſon; a ſtrong natural Wit, and a better Judgment; with a bold and plauſible Tongue, whereby he could ſet out his Parts to the beſt Advantage: All very engaging Advocates for Royal Favour, eſpecially in a female Sovereign: But be that as it may, we find him, upon his Return into England, employed in an Expedition or two, by Authority belike from the Court; they being upon Occaſions of State. And though it imports not much whether it was now, or before he was in Ireland, that he accompanied the French Ambaſſador, Monſieur Simier, among thoſe Gentlemen who were appointed for his ſafe Convoy to France; yet if that Ambaſſador returned home, when his Maſter the Duke of Anjou came laſt over in November, the Year before-named, this is the Place for it to be mentioned in.

But after the Duke of Anjou himſelf had been three Months in England, he alſo departed to take upon him the Government of the Netherlands. This Departure was in February following; and though the Queen ſeems to have declined the Marriage with him, principally becauſe ſhe found her Miniſtry ſo averſe to it; yet there was an Author, and his Printer, who, for having publiſhed a little Treatiſe againſt it about two Years before, *had their Hands cut off but a few Days after the Duke came to London. And ſhe ſhewed him many [40] other Marks of Favour and Diſtinction; particularly, when he left the Kingdom, ſhe bore him Company in Perſon to Dover, and having appointed a moſt ſplendid Retinue of Nobles and Gentlemen to wait upon him to his new Government; I find that Ralegh was alſo among this grand Aſſembly. They attended the Duke to Antwerp, where, making a moſt magnificent Proceſſion, he was created Duke of Brabant, &c. and inveſted with his Charge. Ralegh ſeems not only to have ſtaid there ſome Time after the Lord Admiral Howard, Leiceſter, young Sidney, and the reſt were return'd; but, through the Opportunity of being perſonally known to the Prince of Orange, honoured with ſome ſpecial Acknowledgments from him to the Queen of England. And Ralegh mentions thus much himſelf, in a Diſcourſe he wrote many Years afterwards; wherein, fpeaking of the Hollanders flouriſhing State, he lays down, as the firſt Cauſe thereof, the Favour and Aſſiſtance granted them by this Crown; which, ſays he, the late worthy and famous Prince of Orange did always acknowledge; and in the Year 1582, when I took my Leave of him at Antwerp, after the Return of the Earl of Leiceſter into England, and Monſieur's Arrival there; when he delivered me his Letters to her Majeſty, he prayed me to ſay to the Queen from him, Sub umbra alarum tuarum protegimur: For certainly (ſays he) they had wither'd in the Bud, and ſunk in the Beginning of their Navigation, had not her Majeſty aſſiſted them.

Towards the End of Auguſt, this laſt mentioned Year, the Lord Grey reſign'd the Sword of Ireland, after he had been two Years Deputy in that Kingdom; and this muſt be the Time, that Diſpute [41] between him and Ralegh was brought to a Hearing, of which Authors have ſo blindly written. Sir Robert Naunton is confident, that among the ſecond Cauſes of Ralegh's Growth (not denying, or rather acquieſcing in his Actions and Accompliſhments to have been the firſt) that Variance between him and the Lord Grey, in his Deſcent into Ireland, was a Principal; for it drew them both over (ſays he) to the Council-table, there to plead their Cauſe; where (what Advantage he had in the Cauſe, my ſaid Author knew not, but ſays) he had much the better in telling of his Tale; and ſo much, that the Queen and the Lords took no ſlight Mark of the Man and his Parts; for from thence he came to be known, and to have Acceſs to the Queen and the Lords. Now if this Author is ſo defective, as not to have known the Cauſe or Subject of their Quarrel; or, that Ralegh, leaving Ireland long before the Lord Grey, was not likely to be drawn over together with him to the Council table; how much more muſt thoſe Writers following him be ſo, who have confuſed this Matter with ſeveral other Particulars; though they ſeem to have had no other Authority? One of them ſays, Ralegh had in Deed, but not in Truth, the better by the Tongue; and inſinuates (with great Caution and Delicacy he thought, no Doubt) that the Queen had been told ſomething ſo engaging of Ralegh, beſides his Advantage in Pleading, that it was not to be mentioned; as if any of her Courtiers dared to ſay any Thing to the Queen's Face, which this anonymous Writer, near fifty Years after her Death, would be either aſham'd or afraid to repeat. A later Writer makes ſuch Diſtinctions of Ralegh's extraordinary Behaviour in this Diſpute, as if he had been at the Counciltable, and ſeen as well as heard him. And another, after them all, has found out the Cauſe of [42] this Difference between them to be Captain Zouch's Preferment. *But paſſing theſe over, our Author Naunton goes on; and tho' he does not determine whether the Lord Leiceſter had then caſt in a good Word for Ralegh to the Queen; yet ſays, it is true, that he had gotten the Queen's Ear at a Trice, and ſhe began to be taken with his Elocution, and loved to hear his reaſons to her Demands; and the Truth is, ſhe took him for a Kind of Oracle, which nettled them all; yea, thoſe he relied on, began to take this his ſudden Favour for an Alarm; to be ſenſible of their own Supplantation, and to project his; which made him ſhortly after ſing, Fortune my Foe, &c.

It is hinted to us ſomewhat more expreſly, by another Court-writer of thoſe Times, that the Earl of Leiceſter befriended Ralegh (perhaps through his Friendſhip with young Sidney, that Earl's worthily beloved Nephew) in his firſt Advancement at Court; and that being willing, for his own Eaſe, to beſtow handſomely upon another ſome Part of the Pains, and perhaps of the Envy, to which a long indulgent Fortune is obnoxious, either brought or let him into that promiſing Sphere of Preferment; where the Earl ſoon found him ſuch an Apprentice, as knew well enough how to ſet up for himſelf. So that if the Earl of Suſſex, who was [43] Leiceſter's Antagoniſt, had any Hand in Ralegh's Riſe, as ſome later Writers of leſs Authority have ſuggeſted, it ſeems to have been afterwards, when Ralegh's courtly Splendor was ſomewhat obſtructed; and Leiceſter meant to allay it, by interpoſing the young Earl of Eſſex; for Ralegh continued, during that Storm, in ſome Luſtre of a favoured Man, like Billows which ſink but by Degrees, even when the Wind is down that firſt ſtirr'd them. But this we ſhall obſerve as we go on, that in all the different Aſpects or Conjunctions of Intereſt, thro' the Acceſs or Change of new Favourites in this long Reign, none were leſs immerg'd by the Smiles of the Court, in the Luxuries and Vanities of it, nor more animated by its Frowns to the enterpriſing of publick and ſuperior Difficulties for the Honour and Aggrandiſement of his Country. Not that he ſet out to Sea, but when he had deſpaired of raiſing himſelf on Shore; for theſe publick Enterprizes were rooted ſo early in Ralegh's aſpiring Mind, that we perceive, even now, before Factions at Court could drive him from the Land, or Preferments and Grants from the Crown enable him for the Sea; that he had built at his own Expence, to proſecute them, a ſtrong handſome Ship, which was named Bark Ralegh, of two hundred Ton Burden.

And now that the ſix Years Period of Sir Humphrey Gilbert's Patent grew ſhort, four of them being elaps'd, he thought it high Time to make a new Attempt in Perſon (ſince his Aſſignments had proved of little Conſequence) at thoſe Diſcoveries he had before fail'd in, that he might confirm by Experience what he had ſo excellently advanced in Theory. Accordingly, having fitted out a Fleet of four Ships, Ralegh alſo victuall'd, and mann'd out his before-mentioned, which was the largeſt [44] among them; and, in the Quality of Vice-admiral, ſet out to bear his Brother Gilbert Company, in this his laſt Expedition to Newfoundland. The Fleet departed from Plymouth on the 11th of June 1583. My Author, who was in this Voyage, tells us, no Coſt was ſpared by Ralegh in Proviſions and Neceſſaries for the happy Accompliſhment of it; yet that in two or three Days following he returned greatly diſtreſs'd to Plymouth, by Reaſon his whole Ship's Company was infected with a contagious Sickneſs. But lucky to him, perhaps, was this Viſitation; ſince the Voyage proved ſo fatal to thoſe who went through it, particularly Sir Humphrey himſelf; who, tho' he arrived in Newfoundland in the Beginning of Auguſt following; took Poſſeſſion of the Country in Right of the Crown of England, by digging up a Turf, and receiving it with a Haſel Wand, delivered to him according to our Law and Cuſtom; alſo had aſſign'd Lands to every Man in his Company, and was got three hundred Leagues in his Way home again, with full Hopes of the Queen's Aſſiſtance to fit out a Fleet not only for the North, but one alſo for the South next Year; yet over-hardily venturing in a little Frigat of but ten Ton Burden, called the Squirrel; he was on the Ninth of September following at Midnight, in a high Sea, ſwallowed up. * Another [45] of the Veſſels, called the Delight, but few Days before alſo ſuffered the ſame Fate; and even the reſt returned not without great Hazard, Hardſhip, and Loſs; teaching (ſays Camden) that it is a more difficult Manner to carry over Colonies to remote [46] Countries upon private Men's Purſes, than he and others had perſuaded themſelves, to their own Loſs and Detriment; but neither theſe unfortunate Attempts by Sea hitherto, nor the Ruin of Sir Humphrey Gilbert's Eſtate, nor the Loſs of his Life, nor the Hardſhips of all his Company beſides, could teach Ralegh that Leſſon: Theſe Examples and this Experience were ſo far from ſatiating, that they did but ſharpen his Appetite to ſuch honourable Dangers.

And as we are aſſured from Family Tradition, by a late Author of his own Name and Lineage, that the Diſcoveries of the great Columbus, the Conqueſts of Fernando Cortez, the famous Francis Pizarro, and other Leaders of the Spaniards, who under the Emperor Charles and his Son Philip II. had made the greateſt and moſt ſurpriſing Additions to their Empire that ever Prince received, or Subjects wrought, were the favourite Hiſtories that took up Ralegh's early Reading and Converſation while he was but a young Man; we may preſume they ſo poſſeſſed his noble Genius (with perhaps alſo ſome late domeſtic and living Examples) that no little perſonal Oppoſitions at Home, or particular Miſadventures Abroad, could ever diſcourage him from the Purſuit of theſe grand and national Undertakings. But when, by his own Obſervation, he found the Spaniards had only ſettled upon the middle and ſouthern Parts of America, and that there were certain vaſt Territories yet unknown to the North of thoſe Lands, which the Spaniards already enjoyed, as fit perhaps for Settlement, and as eaſy to conquer, as any they did enjoy: And when, by his Enquiries, among the moſt obſervant Pilots and Mariners who had ſailed in the Spaniſh Ship to the Gulph of Mexico, many of whom he had Opportunity to meet and diſcourſe with in [47] Holland and Flanders, he had learnt that the Spaniards always went into the Gulph of Mexico by St. Domingo and the Iſland of Hiſpaniola, where the Currents with the Trade-winds always ran together, and ſet into the Bay; that they always diſembogu'd, as they called it, or came out by the Havana and the Channels of Bahama, which they now call the Gulph of Florida; and that, as they returned by this Gulph, they found a continued Coaſt on the Weſt Side trending away North, which they generally loſt Sight of by ſtanding away to the Eaſt, to make for the Coaſt of Spain; Ralegh fully determined that there was a vaſt Extent of Land North of that Gulph, or Weſt from the Coaſt of Spain, which might be well worth diſcovering; and, after mature Deliberation, fully reſolved upon the Diſcovery. As ſoon as he had digeſted his Propoſal, and diſplayed the Manner of proſecuting it in proper Schemes, he laid them before the Queen and Council, to whom it appearing a rational, practical, and generous Undertaking, her Majeſty was pleaſed in the Beginning of the Year 1584, to grant him full Power to enjoy ſuch Countries as he propoſed to diſcover, by her Letters Patents.

Immediately upon the Grant of this Patent, Ralegh gave his Inſtructions for an American Voyage *to Captain Philip Amadas and Captain Arthur Barlow, two experienced Commanders, and had got a Couple of Barks well furniſhed with Men and Proviviſions at his own Expence, in ſuch Readineſs, that on the 27th Day of April following they departed [48] from the Weſt of England. The 10th of May they arrived at the Canaries, and a Month after fell upon the Iſles of the Weſt-Indies, which, with the Reſt adjoining (ſays my Author, one of thoſe Captains) are ſo well known to yourſelf (directing the Account of this Voyage to his Proprietor) and to many others, that I will not trouble you with the Remembrance of them. In the Beginning of July they were ſaluted with a moſt fragrant Gale from the Land they were ſeeking, and ſoon after arrived upon the Coaſt; but ſailed along ſome ſix-ſcore Miles before they could find an Entrance by any River iſſuing into the Sea. At laſt, diſcovering one, they manned out their Boats to view the Land adjoining, where they ſaw Vines laden with Grapes in vaſt Abundance, climbing up the tall Cedars, and ſpreading ſo luxuriantly along the ſandy Shore, that the Sea often over-flowed them. On the 13th of July they took Poſſeſſion in Right of the Queen, and afterwards delivered the Country over to Ralegh's Uſe. They thought this Land had at firſt been the Continent, but found it afterwards only an Iſland 20 Miles long, called Wocoken; plentifully ſtocked with Animals, Groves of ſweet-ſmelling Trees, Pulſe, Grain, and eſculent Roots. They obſerved along the Coaſt, a Tract of Iſlands 2 or 300 Miles long; and paſſing between them, ſaw another great Sea, 20, 40, and in ſome Places 50 Miles over, before they could reach the Continent; and in this incloſed Sea above 100 Iſlands of various Size, whereof one is 16 Miles long, called Roanoak, and about ſeven Leagues diſtant, up the River Occam, from the Harbour they firſt entered; at which they chiefly ſettled while they ſtaid, finding it ſo pleaſant and fruitful as to yield three Harveſts in five Months. But they remained upon the Borders of Wocoken two Days before they beheld a human Creature; on [49] the third, they ſaw a Boat rowing towards them with three of the Natives; one of them landed, and walked up the Shore near their Ship, for they were then on Board; then the two Captains, with ſome others, took their Boat and rowed to Land, and by their courteous Carriage, ſoon prevailed on the Native to return with them on Board, where they cloathed him, and gave him Victuals, Wine, and ſeveral little Toys or Utenſils, which won the ſimple Creature's Heart. Soon after his Departure he returned again with a Boat full of Fiſh, to be divided between the Ship and the Pinnace, and then he left them. The next Day came the King's Brother Granganimeo, with a great many Attendants; for the King himſelf, who was named Wingina, and his large Territories Wingandacoa, lay ill of the Wounds he had lately received in War. His Brother was highly pleaſed with his Entertainment, and having received ſeveral Preſents, ſoon after ſent the Savages to traffick with the Engliſh; alſo came again himſelf, and exchanged 20 Skins, worth as many Nobles, for a Tin Diſh, which he hung as a Gorget about his Neck, to defend him from the Arrows of his Enemies: Then alſo he brought his Wife and Children, with her Attendants 40 or 50 in Number. She was well-favour'd, but baſhful, clad in a Mantle of Deer-ſkin, lined with Fur, and a Kind of Apron of the ſame, her Hair hung down long on each Side, with a Band of white Coral about her Forehead, and long Bracelets of Pearl down to her Middle, as big as Peaſe in her Ears, a Bracelet whereof, we delivered to your worſhip, ſays my Author to Ralegh. Her Huſband's Apparel was much like hers, only about his Head he wore a broad Plate of Gold or Copper, and his Hair was long but on one Side. After this Interview, familiar Commerce paſſed between [50] the Natives and the Engliſh, who, when they went to Roanoak, were much careſs'd and treated by the Lady aforeſaid. And when ſhe could not prevail with them to ſtay, being but few in Company, though the Natives had no Edge-tools of Iron or Steel, and had proffered a great Box of Pearl for ſome Armour and a Sword, ſhe ſent her Women to watch them all Night in their Ships on the Bankſide. And indeed all the People, who ſaw them, admired much at their Ships, their Fire-arms, their Cloaths, and above all, their Complexions; for, except a Veſſel which was caſt away with ſome chriſtian Adventurers about 26 Years before near Secotan, the ſouthermoſt Town in Wingandacoa, never any People in Apparel, or of fair Colour were ſeen or heard of among them; which made them wonder ſo much at the Whiteneſs of their Skins, and ſo fond of ſeeing and touching them. Under theſe favourable Recommendations, and the Diſtreſs which the Natives were in for ſome powerful Friends to defend them from the Invaſions of their Neighbours, the Promiſes of viſiting them again, wherewith the Engliſh left them, after having learnt as much of the Situation, State and Product of the Country, as was at this Time convenient, were very acceptable. So bringing over a Couple of the Indians with them, named Manteo and Wancheſe, to ſhew them our fine Country, they arrived ſafely in the Weſt of England about the Middle of September following.

When Ralegh had laid before her Majeſty theſe and all other Reports moſt worthy of Notice, of this rich, beautiful and Virgin Country; and had acknowledged how much this hopeful Progreſs towards the Poſſeſſion of it was owing to the Auſpices of a Virgin Queen; ſhe was ſo well pleaſed with the Honour and Advantage it promiſed, and gave [51] him ſuch Encouragement to compleat the Diſcovery, which he forthwith prepared to do by another Expedition, that ſhe called it herſelf by the Name of Virginia.

About two Months after, he was elected a Knight of the Shire for the County of Devon, Sir William Courtenay being the other Repreſentative. There was then a Clerk of the Parliament ſo very indolent, or otherwiſe indiſpoſed, that the Tranſactions of the Houſe of Commons at this Time were very imperfectly recorded. Yet we find Ralegh mentioned to have been choſen of the Committees upon ſome Bills that were then read. On the 14th of December following, the Bill, in Confirmation of his Patent aforeſaid for the Diſcovery of Foreign Countries, was read the firſt Time. In the Afternoon it was read the ſecond Time, and committed to the Vice-chamberlain Hatton, Secretary Walſingham, Sir Philip Sidney, Sir Francis Drake, Sir Richard Greenfield (or Grenvill), Sir William Courtenay, Sir William Mohun, and others. Three Days after the ſaid Bill was, without any Alteration, ordered to be engroſſed. The next Day it was read the third Time, when it paſſed the Houſe. Between this Time and the 24th of February following he received the Honour of Knighthood; for being then in a Committee for conſidering after what Manner and Meaſure they ſhould ſupply her Majeſty by Subſidy: This is the earlieſt Time I meet with of his being ſtiled Sir Walter Ralegh; a Title which her Majeſty beſtowed, as all others of Honour, with Frugality and Choice. Therefore was it a more certain Cognizance of Virtue or Valour, than Titles of more pompous Denomination in the Reign of her Succeſſor, who ſuffered Lucre to corrupt the noble Fountain, to turn it into vulgar Channels, and drain it even to the [52] Dregs. *Nay, that this Honour was intended by that Queen as the moſt ſignificant Teſtimony of perſonal Deſert, may be inſtanced, according to an ingenious Obſerver of her Reign, in Sir Francis Vere, a Man nobly deſcended; and Sir Walter Ralegh, exactly qualified, ſays he, with many others, ſet apart in her Judgment for military Services; whoſe Titles ſhe never raiſed above Knighthood: ſaying, when importuned to make Vere a Baron, That in his proper Sphere, and her Eſtimation, he was above it already.

About the Time that her Majeſty granted Ralegh the Patent above-cited for the Diſcovery of remote Countries, ſhe ſeems alſo to have given him another to licenſe the Vending of Wines throughout the Kingdom, that he might be better able to ſuſtain the great Charges which the other brought upon him. There were no Reſtrictions belike in this Patent from increaſing the Number of Vintners in any Part of the Realm. And hence aroſe his Controverſy at this Time with one of the Univerſities. [53] For Ralegh having by Virtue of that general Patent given Licence to one John Keymer to ſell Wine in Cambridge, ſome of the hotter Heads, eſpecially the other Vintners there, among whom was Baxter, a 'Squire Beadle, licenſed to ſell Wine by that Univerſity, oppoſed this Keymer and his Wife with ſuch Violence, that ſhe was likely to have died. Complaint being made to Ralegh, he wrote a Letter to The worſhipful Dr. Howland, Vice-chancellor and the Reſt of the Maſters, to tell them how much he took this riotous Demeanor as a Contempt of the Queen's Grant to him; preſuming, if he had given any unlawful Privilege, the Conference he had offered, by his Deputies, for a quiet Deciſion of the Matter by learned Council between them, would have been accepted. Further telling them, that if the Abuſe was not regulated, and the ſaid Keymer permitted to enjoy the Liberty granted him, he would take ſome other Courſe for Reformation therein; but reſting aſſured they would uſe ſuch means as might occaſion no further Trouble, he not deſiring to execute his Grant to its Extent among their Vintners, who were the only Diſturbers herein, reſpecting more their own Gain than quiet Government; he only craves their Anſwer, and that the riotous Perſons might not reſt unpuniſhed: So bids them heartily farewel; from his Lodgings at the Court the 9th of July 1584; and ſubſcribes himſelf Your very affectionate loving Friend. This producing no Anſwer in ſeven Months, and Ralegh having heard they continued to oppreſs Keymer; he wrote again; To his loving Friend the Vice-chancellor, &c. telling him, that being by Information perſwaded, himſelf, with the grave and well-diſpoſed of the Univerſity, were ſo grieved with the unſeemly Outrages lately committed by the young and unbridled Heads thereof, to [54] the Contempt of the Queen's Prerogative and his Diſcredit, as ſufficient Order had been taken for the Bearer's Quiet; which cauſed him to reſt from requiring Reformation therein at his good Lord-treaſurer's Hands; who as yet underſtood nothing from him of theſe Riots, through the Good-will he bore to their Univerſity: And that he meant ſo to deal with them for the other four Taverns, as ſhould ſufficiently have contented them. But his too favourable Dealing with them had given ſuch Encouragement, as, that, intending further to diſturb the Bearer, they had warned him to appear before them; with which he had perſuaded him to comply. Upon their ſending no Anſwer to this, and Ralegh hearing they had ſuddenly clapped up the Man in Priſon, he ſent 10 Days after the laſt, his third Letter from the Court, directed To the Vice-chancellor, and the reſt of the Maſters, &c. And herein tells them, he cannot a little marvel at their peremptory and proud Manner of Dealing. That he was content to uſe all Manner of Courteſy towards them in Reſpect of his honourable good Lord the Lord-treaſurer; but perceived his reaſonable, or rather too ſubmiſs Dealing, had bred in them a Proceeding unſufferable; having committed a poor Man to Priſon, for doing nothing but what was warranted by the great Seal of England; which, ſuppoſing they had a Charter, he knew not that any Man or Society would ſo much take upon them to do, before a Trial. As I reverence the Place, ſays he, of which you are the Governors, ſo I will not willingly take any Wrong or Diſgrace from you. But as he was aſſured the Lord-treaſurer would be indifferent in the Caſe, and as the Matter ſo much concerned the Validity of his Patent elſewhere, as well as in their Univerſity, he would try the utmoſt of his Right as well for this one, wherewith [55] he was content to have been ſatisfied, as for all the other four. So having thought they would have vouchſafed him an Anſwer to his laſt Letters, he ends, ſubſcribing himſelf Your Friend, as you ſhall gave Cauſe. This rous'd them to ſome Conſideration, and ſoon after, a handſome apologetical Letter was ſent from the Vice-chancellor to Sir W. Ralegh, ſetting forth, that the hard Opinion he had conceived of them for this Matter, made them doubt what Manner of Anſwer they might addreſs to him without Offence; and that their Silence was ſo ill taken, they knew not how their Endeavours to excuſe it might give him Satisfaction. That they had not neglected any reaſonable Means to procure his Favour for the quiet Enjoyment of that whereof they had the Fruition for above two hundred Years; nor omitted to become Petitioners to him in a very humble Manner. That his Counſel had not made any juſt Exception againſt their Charters; and thoſe who had the Hearing of the Caſe, thought them to have the better Warrant. Yet that he uſed ſuch hard Terms, as they little looked for at his Hands; being by Birth a Gentleman; by Education trained up to the Knowledge of good Letters; inſtructed with the liberal Diſpoſition of a Univerſity, the Fountain and Nurſery of all Humanity; and further, by God's good Bleſſing, advanc'd in Court, from whence the very Name of Courteſy is drawn. That the Prejudice he apprehended from their Example againſt his Patent, was unlikely to fall out; ſince other Places were not privileged as the Univerſities were. That her Majeſty's Grant, by her Prerogative, gave him his Title; and the like Prerogative was the Ground of their Charters. And as he would think it hard to have his Patent impeach'd by an After-grant, they hoped he would with like Equity meaſure them, who were warranted [56] to have the ſole Dealing with all Vintners in Cambridge Town, and the Precincts thereof. Touching the Impriſonment of the Party, whom he charged them with proceeding againſt before Trial; and who, according to Mr. Brown's Promiſe to the Lord-treaſurer, was to have given over at Michaelmas laſt; however the Courſe thereof had been otherwiſe reported to him, it was only at this Time to correct his Contempt in not appearing, being lawfully warned, and refuſing to anſwer before the ordinary Judge, or enter Bond for Appearance when Cauſe ſhould require. That for their own Part, it would be no Diſadvantage whether he or other, one or many, were Vintners there; but in Regard of the Youth committed to their Charge, Duty bound them to conſider who they admitted to keep Taverns, the Number whereof was alſo limited; which, if they exceeded, would endanger their Privileges; for the Preſervation whereof as they had all taken a ſpecial Oath, ſo they right humbly eftſoons beſeech'd him to have Regard of them for their Duties therein. Concluding thus; Whatever Kindneſs you ſhall any Ways ſhew to the Univerſity; as the Body thereof doth ſtill continue, ſo the Memory thereof cannot decay. There is not one of us, but you may readily command wherein it may pleaſe you to employ us; only we pray you, and that in the heartieſt Manner, to vouchſaſe us your Favour in Matter of our Privileges; That we may leave them in no worſe Eſtate to our Poſterity; than we did receive them of our Predeceſſors. Thus deſiring God ſo to direct you with his bleſſed Spirit, as may be moſt to his Glory, and your greateſt Comfort, we take our Leave; from Cambridge. This might probably pacify Ralegh at preſent, both for their Neglect in not anſwering his Letters, and their Forwardneſs in impriſoning [57] the Man; till the Difference was a few Months afterwards accommodated by the Lord-treaſurer, who was Chancellor of that Univerſity.

The Parliament being ſoon after, on the 29th of March 1585, prorogued, Ralegh appears ſeveral Ways engag'd in the laudable Improvements of Navigation. For his Brother Adrian Gilbert of Sandridge, afterwards knighted, in Purſuance of the Arguments laid down by his Brother Sir Humphrey, having been at great Charges in finding out the Northern Paſſage to China and the Moluccas; and in Conſideration thereof been granted a Patent by the Queen two Years before this Time, to purſue the Diſcovery by Partners, under the Title of The Colleagues of the Fellowſhip for the Diſcovery of the North-weſt Paſſage; Ralegh was now one of the Aſſociates in this Enterprize; and after having duly conſulted about the likelieſt Means to Succeſs, and liberally contributed towards the Expence, they choſe Captain John Davis, an experienced Navigator, to be Undertaker of the Exploit. He ſet firſt out upon it this Summer from Falmouth in [58] two Barks. When he came to Land ſixty-ſix Degrees forty Minutes Latitude, he anchor'd in a very fair Road, under a brave Mountain; which, for the ſplendid Appearance it made, the Cliffs thereof being as orient as Gold, they named Mount Ralegh, in Honour of their Proprietor; and ſoon after fell into the very Paſſage they ſought, ſince well known by the Name of Davis's Streights. The farther Search whereof, through the ſame Patronage and Support, Captain Davis made in two Voyages more, the two following Years, and in a Manner compleated the ſaid Diſcovery.

But about two Months before Davis begun his ſaid firſt Voyage for this Diſcovery, Ralegh ſent out his own Fleet for Virginia, which conſiſted of ſeven Sail, whereof ſome were his own Ships, and they departed from Plymouth on the 9th of April, the Year above ſpecified. He deputed his gallant Relation Sir Richard Greenville General of the Expedition, and Mr. Ralph Lane, who was afterwards knighted, to be Governor of the Colony, which they now tranſported. There went beſides, Mr. Thomas Candiſh, John Arundel, Raymond, Stucley, Bremige, Vincent, Mr. John Clark, and ſeveral others, whereof ſome were Captains, and others Aſſiſtants for Council and Direction in the Voyage. So they ſhaped their Courſe to the Canary Iſlands, from thence to Dominica, and to the Iſland of St. John de Puerto Rico, where they were ſadly ſtung with the Muſketoes, and near which they took two Spaniſh Frigats; one whereof was freighted with a rich Cargo, and divers Spaniards of Diſtinction, who afterwards were ranſom'd for good round Sums of Money. Then they made away to Hiſpaniola, ſoon after which the General, and ſome of his Company, were near being caſt away in catching of [59] Seals. From thence they ſailed to Florida, *and on the 26th of June anchor'd at Wocoken, where they ſent Word of their Arrival to King Wingina at Roanoak. They carried the Indians with them from England; and Manteo, on the 6th of July, led Mr. Arundel to the main Continent, where they found ſome of their Men, who had been conducted thither twenty Days before, by Captain Raymond. On the eleventh following, the General, accompanied by Arundel, Stuckley, Lane, Candiſh, Hariot, Amadas, Clark, and others, paſſed over the Water to the main Land, and victuall'd their Ships; in which Voyage they firſt diſcover'd the Towns of Pomeioc, Aquaſgococ, and Secotan; alſo the great Lake Paquipe, and many other Places; then return'd to their Fleet. They afterwards reviſited thoſe Parts, and were kindly entertained by the Savages. Coming at laſt to Anchor to Hatoraſk; Prince Grangino, or Granganimeo, before mentioned, came attended by Manteo to viſit them on board the Admiral, which was named the Tyger. The Particulars which paſſed between them about the Settlement are not mentioned in the ſhort Journal of this Voyage; but we may conclude it was agreed on to their mutual Satisfaction, ſince one hundred and ſeven Men, whoſe Names are printed at the End of the ſaid Journal, under the [60] Government of Mr. Lane, were left for a Year in the Country, without Diſturbance, to begin the Plantation. On the 25th of Auguſt the General weighed Anchor, and ſet Sail for England; about ſix Days after he took a Spaniſh Ship of three hundred Ton, richly laden; and on the 18th of October arrived with the Prize at Plymouth, where he was courteouſly received by his worſhipful Friend.

An End having been put to the Munſter Rebellion by Force of Arms, and the Country further laid deſolate by a raging Famine, which devour'd what the Sword had left, except a few who remained in Cities, fled to England, or could feed upon Weeds and Carrion, ſo as even to rob the Graves and the Gibbets of the Dead, to keep the dying alive; the Queen ſoon became deſirous of repeopling the Country, and to have Ways conſider'd on, how the late Earl of Deſmond's large Territories in Ireland might be diſpoſed of to the Advantage of her and her Subjects. After Commiſſioners were ſent over for this Purpoſe, and proper Methods taken to prevent frudulent Conveyances by the Rebels, there was at laſt a Scheme reſolv'd on for the Plantation of Munſter; and Secretary Fenton carried over the Inſtructions towards the latter End of this Year. The whole Forfeiture was above 574,000 Acres of Land; and after ſome Reſtitutions had been made, the Remainder was divided into Seigniories among certain Gentleman-undertakers, as they were called; but chiefly ſuch as had been inſtrumental in appeaſing the Iriſh Rebellion. One of the largeſt Diviſions, which was twelve thouſand Acres, ſituate in the Counties of Cork and Waterford, was given by her Majeſty to Sir Walter Ralegh and his Heirs, with certain Privileges and Immunities, upon thoſe Conditions of planting and improving the ſame, to which the [61] reſt were alſo obliged. And tho' many of the Undertakers did not people their Seigniories with wellaffected Engliſh, but ſold them to Engliſh Papiſts, or otherwiſe to their Profit; nor fortified according to their Covenants; nor forbore encroaching upon the Lands of the loyal and protected Iriſh (as the Crown on the other Side fail'd of maintaining certain Forces promis'd for their Security from freſh Invaſions;) yet I meet with none of thoſe Irregularities objected to Ralegh; on the contrary, that he peopled his Plantation unexceptionably; that he kept the ſaid Eſtate to the latter End of the Queen's Reign, and then ſold it to Richard Boyle, afterwards the famous Earl of Cork, as, in a Memorial of his own Life, the ſaid Earl has related. But as capacious as this Benefit ſeemed, it was rather expenſive perhaps at firſt, than profitable to him.

For Sir Richard Greenvil, who, at his Departure from Virginia, had promiſed the Colony he left behind to return punctually with Supplies by the following Eaſter at furtheſt, was not altogether ſo expeditious as they expected; probably through ſome Difficulties attending the Charge thereof, which Ralegh's new Undertaking of planting alſo that Seigniory might probably render more burdenſome. Greenvil brought over Letters from Governor Lane to a very worthy Encourager of all naval Adventurers; deſcribing the Commodities and Fertility of the Country they were about to cultivate and civilize; the ſaid Governor alſo drew up Notes while he was there, which he afterwards methodized into a Diſcourſe of two Parts, diſplaying the Particularities of the Country of Virginia, and the Reaſons which moved their Departure from thence into England. In this Diſcourſe we learn, that their Diſcovery for Sir Walter Ralogh had extended from Roanoak ſouthward, as far as Secotum, abovt eighty [62] Miles; Northward as far as the Cheſepians, being a hundred and thirty Miles more; and to the North weſt, as far as Chawanook, a hundred and thirty Miles; and further mentions many Towns about the Water-ſide, diſcovered by the Way. It alſo informs us of his Enquiries after a Fiſhery and Traffick for Pearl in thoſe Parts; beſides a Mine of ſtrange Metal like Copper, but paler and ſofter; moreover, of the taking Prince Skyco Priſoner; and after the Death of Granganimeo aforeſaid, how his Brother King Wingina changed his Name, and plotted an Inſurrection againſt the Engliſh; for which he loſt his Life; while another King called Okiſco, ſent to pay Homage and acknowledge Subjection to the grand Weroanza, or Queen of England; and after her, to Sir Walter Ralegh Laſtly, the Arrival of Sir Francis Drake about the 10th of June 1586; who, returning from his proſperous Conqueſt of St. Domingo, Cartagena, and St. Auguſtine, determined, in his Way homeward, to viſit his Friend's Colony in Virginia. They had deſpaired of Sir Richard Greenvil's Promiſe; and the rather, becauſe of the Preparations then making for Flanders, and other Parts of America. Their Corn was indeed within a Fortnight of inviting the Sickle; but they were in Need of many other Proviſions. Hereupon Drake readily proffer'd them all Manner of Supplies, by Victuals, Men, Ammunition, and Ships, to carry on and compleat their worthy Undertaking. The Governor deſired only a Ship, and ſo much Proviſion as about Auguſt would carry him and his Company to England, which Drake granted in full Sufficiency; beſides Pinnaces, Boats, and two experienced Maſters or Pilots, to abide with them, and apply themſelves earneſtly in the Action. All this was performed in two Days. On the next Day, [63] while ſome were writing Letters into England, and others relating their Adventures to each other, ſome at Sea, ſome on Shore, there aroſe a moſt violent Tempeſt, which laſted three Days; drove moſt of the Fleet from their Anchors away to Sea, and in them the Proviſions and Maſters aforeſaid, with the chief of the Engliſh Colony; who they ſaw no more till they met in England. Then Drake proffer'd them another Ship; but the reſt of the Colony, who were left behind, all begg'd to go for England; to which Drake conſenting, took them aboard on the 19th of July, and ſet Sail. Sir Walter Ralegh had in the mean Time provided a Ship of a hundred Ton, freighted with all Kind of Proviſions in a moſt plentiful Manner, for the Relief of this Colony; but not ſailing till after Eaſter, the ſaid Colony was newly departed before this freſh Supply arrived at Virginia. After ſome Time ſpent upon the Country, in ſeeking the Colony and not finding it, they returned with all the Proviſion aforeſaid into England. About a Fortnight after, Sir Richard Greenvil arrived at Virginia with three Ships more, well ſtored for the ſame Company of Planters; but he, after much Search, miſſing alſo of them and of the aforeſaid Ship, left fifteen Men at Roanoak with Plenty of Supplies, and made for England; and not without ſome Conqueſts over the Spaniards at the Azores in his Return. And indeed Ralegh was alſo about this very Time victorious at the ſame Place; for, when he ſent the aforeſaid Ship to relieve the Colony, or ſoon after, he diſpatched two more, named the Serpent and Mary-Spark, both of them his own, to the Azores againſt the Spaniards, under the Conduct of Captain Jacob Whiddon, John Eveſham, and others. They departed from Plymouth on the 10th of June aforeſaid, and took more Spaniſh Prizes than they [64] could bring home. In one of them was the Governor of St. Michael's Iſland; in another, which they took near the Iſle of Gracioſa, was the famous Pedro de Sarmiento, Governor of the Streights of Magellan; who was the furtheſt and moſt experienced Navigator in all Spain. *They took alſo three other Veſſels, but turned two adrift, after having taken out of them what they wanted, becauſe they could not ſpare Hands to man them; and after a Fight for thirty-two Hours with two great Carracks, and the other Guard-ſhips of twenty Sail more, richly laden, they gave over for Want of Powder, and returned ſafe to Plymouth, where they were received with triumphant Joy; then proceeding to Southampton, they were met by their Owner Sir Walter Ralegh; who rewarded them with their Shares, out of the Merchandize, and other Commodities of Value, which in thoſe three Prizes were thus taken from the Enemy. Not long after this, there was another Voyage ſet out, the ſame Year, by the Earl of Cumberland to the South-Sea, but performed no further than the Latitude of forty-four Degrees to the South of the Equinoctial, in which as Sir Walter Ralegh was alſo an Adventurer, his fine Pinnace, named Dorothy, being engaged therein, and ſome ſmall [65] Prizes alſo being taken, he had, no Doubt, his Proportion in the Profits that aroſe from them.

But to return to the Virginian Colony; it arrived at Plymouth on the 27th of July following. Camden has remember'd, that by this Colony of Ralegh's, and in thoſe Ships of Drake's, the famous American Plant called TOBACCO was firſt brought into England, by or under Governor Lane, doubtleſs according to the Inſtructions they had received of their Proprietor; for the Introduction among us of that Commodity, is generally aſcribed to Ralegh himſelf. There are ſome pleaſant Stories of this Plant, with Relation to him, which have been as carefully preſerved as the Box he kept it in. But the Tradition of Ralegh's ſmoaking Tobacco at firſt privately in his Study, and of the Servant, who uſed to wait on him there, ſurpriſing him one Time with his Tankard of Ale and Nutmeg as he was intent upon his Book, before he had done his Pipe; and ſeeing the Smoke reeking out of his Mouth, threw all the Ale in his Face, then running down Stairs alarmed the Family with repeated Exclamations, that [66] his Maſter was on Fire, and before they could get up would be burnt to Aſhes. This I ſay, if true, has nothing in it of more ſurpriſing or unparallel'd Simplicity, than there was in that poor Norwegian, who upon the firſt Sight of Roſes could not be induced to touch, tho' he ſaw them grow, being ſo amazed to behold Trees budding with Fire: Or, to come cloſer by Way of Retaliation, than there was in thoſe Virginians themſelves, who, the firſt Time they ſeized upon a Quantity of Gunpowder which belonged to the Engliſh Colony, ſowed it for Grain, or the Seed of ſome ſtrange Vegetable in the Earth, with full Expectation of reaping a plentiful Crop of Combuſtion by the next Harveſt to ſcatter their Enemies.

But paſſing over theſe Tales; as Ralegh was the firſt, who brought this Herb in Requeſt among us, and laid the Foundation for that great Traffick therewith, which has been of ſuch conſiderable Benefit to his Country; there is no leſs Honour due to him than has been conferred on that Ambaſſador, who had before brought it out of Portugal into France; where, in mentioning the Herb, they pay grateful Acknowledgments to the Importer, by calling it Nicotiana, after his own Name: Nay, his politick Sovereign Catherine de Medicis, did ſo zealouſly encourage the Uſe of it, that it was alſo afterwards in Honour of her called the Queen's Herb. Nor was the Queen of England backward in liſtening to, and promoting the Advantages it was promiſed to produce. We may gather from ſome Authors, that ſhe was very curious to know its Virtues and Properties; and that once converſing with Ralegh upon this Subject, He aſſured her Majeſty he had ſo well experienced the Nature of it, that he could tell her of what Weight, even the Smoke would be in any Quantity propoſed to be conſumed. [67] Her Majeſty fixing her Thoughts upon the moſt impracticable Part of the Experiment, that of bounding the Smoke in a Ballance, ſuſpected that he put the Traveller upon her, and would needs lay him a Wager he could not ſolve the Doubt: So he procured a Quantity agreed upon to be thoroughly ſmoked; then went to weighing; but it was of the Aſhes; and in the Concluſion, what was wanting in the prime Weight of the Tobacco, her Majeſty did not deny to have been evaporated in Smoke; and further ſaid, that many Labourers in the Fire ſhe had heard of who turned their Gold into Smoke, but Ralegh, was the firſt who had turned Smoke into Gold. Whether thoſe two Queens did ever recommend the Uſe of this Herb by their own Example, we are not certain; but it is evident, it ſoon became of ſuch Vogue in Queen Elizabeth's Court, that ſome of the great Ladies, as well as Noblemen therein, would not ſcruple to take a Pipe ſometimes very ſociably; however, it was ſuch an Abomination to the refined Palate of her Scotch Succeſſor, that he not only refuſed the Uſe of it himſelf, but endeavoured to rob his Crown of what has ſince proved one of its greateſt Revenues, *by reſtraining his Subjects [68] alſo from it. Indeed it is not to be wonder'd that ſuch a Philoſopher, as could magnify the Power of Witches, after the Manner he has done in one of his learned Pamphlets, ſhould be ſuch a Politician as to diſcourage the taking of Tobacco in another. *But thoſe who have not admired [69] at his Prejudice in this Attempt to diſpel the Fumes of that Herb with greater of his own, if I may allude to the witty Title of his Performance without Imputation of Irreverence to his Memory, may yet applaud his Policy, in ſo far conducing to its Suppreſſion, as to exclude it from the Body of his Works, when this Royal Pamphleteer reſolved to become an Author in Folio. As for the Uſes and Virtues of this Plant; ſince ſo many learned Writers have given us whole Books upon them, I ſhall only here obſerve from the firſt Author among us, immediately upon his Return with the Colony aforeſaid from Virginia, where he had been employed by Ralegh to ſurvey the Country; that the Savages diſtinguiſhed it by ſowing apart from all other Vegetables, and held it of higheſt Eſtimation in all their Sacrifices by Fire, Water and Air, either for Thankſgiving to, or Pacification of their Gods. And as by ſucking it through it through Pipes of Clay, they purged all groſs Humours from the Head and Stomach, opened all the Pores and Paſſages of the Body, preſerving it from Obſtructions, or breaking them, whereby they notably preſerved Health, and knew not many grievous Diſeaſes wherewith we in England are often afflicted: So we ourſelves, ſays he, during the Time we were there, uſed to ſuck it after their Manner, as alſo ſince our Return, and have found many rare and wonderful Experiments of its Virtues, whereof the Relation would require a Volume by itſelf, the Uſe of which by ſo many Men and Women of great Calling, as well as others, and ſome learned Phyſicians alſo, is ſufficient Witneſs.

The learned Author of this Account, Mr. Thomas Hariot, having further confuted the Calumnies, which had been raiſed of this new diſcovered Country, by the idle, ignorant and avaritious Part of the [70] Colony lately returned from it, and given a faithful Relation of the merchantable Commodities, with thoſe fit for Food or Building, and an Account of the Natures of the People, in three Parts, expreſſes himſelf towards the Concluſion of the whole in this Manner. Seeing the Air there is ſo temperate and wholeſome; the Soil ſo fertile, and yielding ſuch Commodities, as I have beforementioned; the Voyage alſo to and fro ſufficiently experienced to be performed twice a Year with Eaſe, and at any Seaſon; and the Dealings of Sir Walter Ralegh ſo liberal in large giving and granting Lands there, as is already known, with many Helps and Furtherances elſe; the leaſt that he hath granted, having been 500 Acres to a Man only for the Adventure of his Perſon: I hope [...]re remains no Cauſe whereby the Action ſhould be miſliked.

I remember to have met with a ſcarce old Tract in the Lambeth Library, written by a learned and ingenious Author of thoſe Times; he adds: Yet you, more reſpecting the good Ends whereunto you levelled your Line for the Good of your Country, did not give over 'till you had recovered a Land, and had made a Plantation of the People of your own Engliſh Nation in Virginia, the firſt Engliſh Colony that was ever planted there; not a little to the Derogation of the Spaniards Glory and Impeachment to their Vaunts, who, becauſe, with all cruel Immanity, they ſubdued a naked and yielding People, whom they ſought for Gain, and not for Religion or the Plantation of a Common-wealth, over whom, to ſatisfy their inſatiable Covetouſneſs, they did moſt cruelly tyranniſe, and againſt the Courſe of all human Nature ſcorch and roaſt them to Death, as by their own Hiſtories doth appear. Theſe, I ſay, do brag and vaunt, that they only have drawn ſtrange Nations and unknown People to the Obedience of their Kings, to the Knowledge [71] of Chriſtianity, and to the enriching of their Country; and thereby claim the Honour to themſelves alone. But if theſe your Actions were well looked into and with due Conſideration, it ſhall be found much more honourable in ſundry Reſpects for the Advancement of the Name of God, the Honour of the Prince, and the Benefit of the Common-wealth. For what can be more pleaſant to God, than to gain and reduce, in all Chriſtian-like Manner, a loſt People to the Knowledge of the Goſpel and a true Chriſtian Religion, than which cannot be a more pleaſant and ſweet Sacrifice, and a more acceptable Service before God? And what can be more honourable to Princes, than to enlarge the Bounds of their Kingdoms, without Injury, Wrong and Bloodſhed, and to frame them from a ſavage Life to a civil Government, neither of which the Spaniards in their Conqueſts have performed? And what can be more beneficial to a Common-wealth, than to have a Nation and a Kingdom to transfer unto, the ſuperfluous Multitude of fruitleſs and idle People (here, at Home, daily increaſing) to travel, conquer, and manure another Land, which, by the due Intercourſes to be deviſed, may and will yield infinite Commodities? And how well you do deſerve every Way, in following ſo honourable a Courſe, not we ourſelves only can witneſs, but ſtrange Nations alſo do honour you for the ſame; as doth appear by the Epiſtle of Baſſimerus of France to the Hiſtory of Florida, and by Julius Caeſar a Citizen of Rome, in his Epiſtle to his Book, intitled Columbeados. To this we may here add the Teſtimony of Camden; who, ſpeaking of this Undertaking of Virginia, at the Return of the laſt Colony ſent thither by Sir Walter Ralegh, ſays, He was a Man never to be ſufficiently commended for the great Pains he took in diſcovering remote Countries, and advancing the Glory of the Engliſh Navigation.

[72] That Baffimerus was the learned Martine Baſſaniere of Paris, as I find elſewhere, with whom Richard Hakluyt, the worthy Collector of our naval Adventures, being acquainted, and having procured a very valuable Hiſtory in Manuſcript of the firſt Diſcovery of Florida about 20 Years before this Time, by Rene Laudonniere and three other French Captains, he ſent it over to that Monſieur Baſſaniere, who publiſhed it from the ſaid French Copy, this Year at Paris, and dedicated it as aforeſaid to Sir Walter Ralegh, who, as appears above, is therein celebrated, for I have not yet ſeen, though I have been promiſed, that original French Edition. But it was tranſlated into Engliſh the Year following by Richard Hakluyt himſelf, who alſo dedicates it anew to the ſame Patron: And indeed we find Ralegh from this Time a very conſiderable Patron of learned and ingenious Authors, not only in Hiſtory and Geography, but Antiquities, Chymiſtry, Poetry, and other polite Branches of Art and Science; for Admiral Coligny having ſent over with the aforeſaid Diſcoverers of Florida, a very ſkilful Artiſt from France, to take Draughts of whatever he found obſervable and worthy of Repreſentation in the ſaid Country: which he did, not only among the animal and vegetable Rarities thereof, but alſo, it ſeems, from the Cuſtoms of the Natives and hiſtorical Events among the Diſcoverers themſelves: This Painter living afterwards in London, at, or before the Publication of thoſe Diſcoveries; was ſupported by Ralegh in the great Expence of publiſhing alſo his Draughts and Deſcriptions. For Hakluyt, among other Reaſons for not particularizing the Commodities of thoſe Parts; the Accidents of the Frenchmens Government therein; the Cauſes of their good and bad Succeſs; with [73] the Surpriſes made by their Enemies, tells Ralegh he does not reckon them up again; the rather, becauſe the ſame, with divers other Things of chiefeſt Importance, are lively drawn in Colours at your no ſmall Charges, by the ſkilful Painter James Morgues ſometime living in Black-Friars, London, whom Monſieur Chaſtillion, then Admiral of France, ſent thither (to Florida) with Laudoniere for that Purpoſe, which (Painter) was an Eye-witneſs of the Goodneſs and Fertility of thoſe Regions, and hath put down in Writing many Singularities, which are not mentioned in this Treatiſe; and which he hath ſince publiſhed together with the Portraitures. Hereunto we may further add, that there was about this Time alſo another Book dedicated to Ralegh, in Praiſe of Muſick, wherein, beſides the Antiquity and Dignity thereof, is declared the ſober and lawful Uſe of the ſame in the Congregation and Church of God.

I apprehend, there was a greater Propriety in the Publiſher's Choice of this Patron to that Work, than is now commonly known; for I have ſomewhere met with Hints, that Sir Walter Ralegh was a great Proficient in Muſick, either vocal, inſtrumental, or both; whence we might be ſomewhat induced to conſtrue ſome Lines of Spenſer's concerning him, hereafter quoted, in the literal Senſe.

About this Time it was, her Majeſty conferred upon him ſome Preferments; but of Honour more than Profit perhaps to him: For Hooker in the Dedication of his Iriſh Hiſtory, dated the 12th of October this Year, ſuperſcribes it to the right worthy and honourable Gentleman, Sir Walter Ralegh, Knt. Seneſchal of the Dutchies of Cornwall and Exeter, and Lord-warden of the Stannaries in Devon [74] and Cornwall. * To theſe Dignities I preſume he was then but newly advanced, becauſe the ſaid Hiſtorian in the Body of the Dedication begs Leave to remember, How it hath pleaſed God to bring you, ſays he, into the Favour of your Prince and Sovereign; who, beſides her great Favour towards you many Ways, hath alſo laid upon you the Charge of a Government in your own Country; where you are to command many People by your honourable Office of the Stannary, and where you are both a Judge and a Chancellor to rule in Juſtice and to judge in Equity.

How Ralegh uſed this Favour, and what Uſage it alſo procured him, the ſame Dedication does ſomewhat further reveal in theſe Words. It is well known, that it had been no leſs eaſy for you, than for ſuch as have been advanced by Kings, to have builded great Houſes, purchaſed large Circuits, and to have uſed the Fruits of Princes Favours, as moſt Men in all former and preſent Ages have done; had you not preferred the general Honour and Commodity of your Prince and Country before all that is private; whereby you have been rather a Servant than a Commander to your own Fortune.

The Earl of Eſſex had now been near a Twelvemonth abroad, under his Father-in-law, Leiceſter, Governor of the Netherlands; was but nineteen Years of Age when he went over, being his firſt Engagement in any publick Action, yet no leſs than a General of the Horſe; and before that, as himſelf ſays, he had ſmall Grace, and few Friends at Court. So that it muſt be now after their Return, [75] that Leiceſter ſet him up a Competitor againſt Ralegh, as we are before informed out of Sir Henry Wotton. But Leiceſter, as great as his Power was, could no more bridle the licentious Reflections of the Populace than Ralegh; an Inſtance whereof we have from ſome antient Authority it ſeems, tho' in a modern Author, who ſpeaking of Tarleton, the beſt Comedian of theſe Times in England, tells us, that when a pleaſant Play he had made was acting before her Majeſty, he pointed at Sir Walter Ralegh, and ſaid, See the Knave commands the Queen; for which ſhe corrected him with a Frown; yet he had the Confidence to add, that he was of too much and too intolerable a Power; and going on with the ſame Liberty, he reflected on the over great Power and Riches of the Earl of Leiceſter; which was ſo univerſally applauded by all who were preſent, that ſhe thought fit at that Time to bear theſe Reflections with [76] a ſeeming Unconcernedneſs; but yet was ſo offended, that ſhe forbad Tarleton and all her Jeſters from coming near her Table, being inwardly diſpleaſed with this impudent and unreaſonable Liberty. Ralegh ſeems to have little regarded theſe Aſperſions, but conſtantly attended his publick Charge and Employments, whether in Town or Country as Occaſion called him. Accordingly we find him the latter End of this Year in Parliament, where, among other weighty Concerns, the Fate of Mary Queen of Scots was determined. There is nothing particular upon Record in the Journals of the Houſe of Commons of Ralegh's Opinion in this Matter, nor indeed any Debates upon the Sentence that had been pronounced againſt that Queen. For on the 12th of November, a Petition agreed upon in both Houſes was preſented to Queen Elizabeth, by the Speaker Puckering, the Privy-council, and a Body of the Commons, joined with the Lord Chancellor Bromley and twenty other temporal Lords, for the ſpeedy Execution of the ſaid Queen of Scots, in Conſideration of the treaſonable and rebellious Practices wherewith ſhe had been proved to endanger this Realm and its Ruler. The ſaid Petition was immediately printed, and that Queen in leſs than three Months after executed. He was appointed one of the Committee to confer upon the Amendment of ſome Things, whereunto the Clergy were required to be ſworn, and that ſome good Courſe might be taken to have a learned Miniſtry; for the Queen had in her Speech at the Cloſe of the laſt Seſſions told the Biſhops of ſome Faults and Negligences, which if you, my Lords of the Clergy, ſaid ſhe, do not amend, I mean to depoſe you.

Now Ralegh, reſolving to perſevere in planting his Country of Virginia, prepared a new Colony of one hundred and fifty Men to be ſent thither, under [77] the Charge of Mr. John White, whom he appointed Governor, and with him twelve Aſſiſtants, to whom he gave a Charter, and incorporated them by the Name of the Governor and Aſſiſtants of the City of Ralegh in Virginia. Their Fleet, conſiſting of three Sail, departed from Portſmouth on the 26th of April, 1587, and in leſs than three Months following arrived ſafe at Hatoraſk, from whence they went to the Iſle of Roanoak to look for the fifteen Men left there by Sir Richard Greenvil the Year before, meaning from thence to paſs to the Bay of Cheſepiock, where they intended to make their Seat and Fort, according to the Charge given them by Sir Walter Ralegh. But when they came to the North part of the Iſland where Governor Lane had bu lt his Fort, they found it razed, and the Groundrooms of the Dwelling-houſes, which had been alſo erected about it, inhabited by Deer, and overgrown with Melons, or ſuch like Sort of Fruit, which thoſe Animals broozed upon. At Croatoan they were very well received and entertained by the Natives, thro' the Means of Manteo their Countryman. Of theſe they learnt, that the Engliſhmen they were ſeeking, had been treacherouſly ſet upon by a Party of the Savages, who wounded ſome of them, and drove the reſt to ſome remote and obſcure Parts of the Country. On the 13th of Auguſt, their Friend Manteo was, according to the Commands of Sir Walter Ralegh, chriſtned in Roanoak, and called Lord thereof, and of Daſamonguepeuk, in Reward of his faithful Services. Three Days after, the Governor's Daughter Eleanor, Wife of Ananias Dare, one of the Aſſiſtants, was delivered of a Daughter in Roanoak; and the Infant was chriſtned there the Sunday following, who, becauſe ſhe was the firſt Creolian or Chriſtian born in that Country, was baptized by the Name [78] of Virginia. Now having re-eſtabliſhed their Intereſt and Alliance with the Natives, as far as this ſhort Interview would permit, and delivered their Ships of the Proviſions for the Colony, the Planters began to conſider, they ſhould be in Want of freſh Supplies; therefore upon ſome Difference about chooſing a Factor to return for that Purpoſe into England, they unanimouſly petitioned the Governor to return himſelf, to which he at laſt conſented, and the Ships with ſome few of the Company arrived in England, not without Storms, Sickneſs, and the Death of ſeveral of them by other like Caſualties, about the latter End of the ſame Year.

It was but five Days after the going forth of this ſecond Colony, that Mr. Richard Hakluyt dedicated his Tranſlation of the Voyages to Florida, before mentioned, to the Right Honourable Sir Walter Ralegh, as he ſtiles him, Captain of her Majeſty's Guard, Lord-warden of the Stannaries, and her Highneſs's Lieutenant-general of the County of Cornwall. In this Dedication it will ſomewhat appear, that neither the Returns, which might have been made by any merchantable Products in Virginia, nor the Profits ariſing to him from any Spaniſh Prizes, which had been taken at Sea, were equivalent to the great Expences he had been at, in ſettling this Plantation; and further, that he had received no particular or private Aſſiſtance in this Enterprize from the Queen, becauſe his Hopes therein, and her Majeſty's Regard thereof, are ſo handſomely excited by the ſaid Author.

[79] But the Ships, in which this ſecond Colony was tranſported, had not been many Days returned into England, before we find Ralegh's Thoughts diverted, for a while, from planting in a foreign Country, and engaged upon Schemes of diſplanting rather thoſe powerful Enemies who were preparing to root themſelves in his own. For the Rumour grew ſtronger every Day of ſuch a mighty Fleet threatning us, as if all Spain and Rome were to land upon our little Iſland, and over-run the whole Kingdom. The Queen and her Privy-council therefore no longer delayed all proper Means for the Defence of the Realm; but out of all her Commanders by Land and Sea appointed thoſe of moſt approved Abilities in naval and military Affairs, as well as of the greateſt Authority in their reſpective Counties, to hold Conſultations for the Security of her Perſon, her People, and their Poſſeſſions. And as there were ſuch Conſultations diſtinctly held by the moſt ancient and experienced Commanders at Sea; ſo we find by the like Appointment a Council of War alſo held on the 27th of November this Year, by others of higheſt Repute for their Knowledge, how to put the Forces of the Realm in the beſt Order, to withſtand any Invaſion by Land. For this Purpoſe were choſen the Lord Grey, Sir Francis Knolles, Sir Thomas Leighton, [80] Sir, Walter Ralegh, Sir John Norris, Sir Richard Greenvil, Sir Richard Bingham, Sir Roger Williams, and Ralph Lane, Eſq; Of their Determinations in this important Council I have a Manuſcript drawn up perhaps by Sir Walter Ralegh himſelf; the ſaid Draught being annexed to another Manuſcript now before me, which was apparently of his compoſing.

Beſides this grand Scheme for the Safeguard of the Kingdom in general, Ralegh ſeems to have had ſome ſpecial Regard to ſeveral particular Places. For there has been found among the Lord Burghley's Papers, a Remembrance for the Lord-treaſurer, touching the Requeſt of Sir W. R. dated it ſeems this Year; which makes Requeſt for five Pieces of Braſs Cannon lying at Woolwich; alſo for Letters to the Marquis of Wincheſter, Lieutenant of Dorſetſhire, for a hundred Men and Arms to defend the Caſtle and Iſland of Portland, with a Supply of Powder, there being but one laſt. Further, for Removal of the unſerviceable Ordnance there to London; and that the Lord Marquis would give Order for his ſaid hundred Men, by his Commiſſion directed to the Lieutenant of Portland; and he will undertake to collect Men of Sufficiency, not of the trained Number. Laſtly, for his Lordſhip's good Remembrance for the Towns of Weymouth and Melcomb-Regis. From whence my Author is not only inclined to believe this Paper was ſent by Sir Walter Ralegh, but that he was now Governor of Portland Caſtle, and had thoſe Towns under his Care. We may indeed hence believe this Paper was written by him; and that he not only took thoſe Places, but ſeveral others, under his Conſideration, that they might be put in the beſt State of Defence; but that he was now Governor of Portland Caſtle, or limited to the Defence [81] of that Place at the Time of the Invaſion, as might be imply'd from my Author, ſeems not very conſiſtent with his Lieutenancy in the Weſt.

But as much engaged as Ralegh ſeems at this Time to have been for the Safety of the Kingdom, he found ſome Interval to conſider alſo upon Means for the Relief of his Colony; for after Governor White returned, and had delivered him his Letters, with other Advertiſements concerning his late Voyage, and the State of the Planters in Virginia, Ralegh immediately appointed a Pinnace to be ſent thither, with all ſuch Proviſions as he apprehended they might want; and alſo wrote Letters to them, promiſing that he would prepare a good Supply of Shipping and Men, with all other Neceſſaries, to be with them the Summer following. This Pinnace and Fleet he accordingly prepared at Biddeford in the Weſt of England, under the Command of Sir Richard Greenvil; and all Things being now ready, they waited only for a fair Wind. In the mean Time, the Alarm ſo increas'd throughout all England, of that vaſt and formidable Armament made by the King of Spain, under the Sanction of the Pope's Cruſado, for the Invaſion and Conqueſt of the whole Iſland; that moſt of the Ships of War then in any Readineſs, received Orders from the State to attend in their Harbours for the Defence of their own Country; and Sir Richard Greenvil was perſonally commanded not to depart out of Cornwall. Governor White nevertheleſs labour'd ſo earneſtly for the Relief of the Colony, that he obtain'd two ſmall Pinnaces, called the Brave and the Roe, wherein fifteen Planters, and all convenient Proviſions for thoſe who winter'd in the Country, were tranſported; but the Names of the Captains who commanded thoſe Veſſels are not remember'd. On the 22d of April 1588, they put [82] over the Bar at Biddeford, and the ſame Night came to Anchor at the Iſle of Lundy; but the Company, minding more to make a gainful Voyage than a ſafe one, run in Chaſe of Prizes; 'till at laſt one of them was met with by a Couple of ſtrong Men of War of Rochelle, about 50 Leagues to the North-Eaſt of Madera; where, after a bloody Fight, the Engliſh were beaten, boarded and rifled. But it is obſervable, the French Men were ſo immoderate in poſſeſſing themſelves of their Spoil, that, by overloading the Boats with the Freight of the Engliſh Ships, they ſunk what they were too eager to ſhare. In this maimed, ranſacked and ragged Condition, the ſaid Ship returned to England in a Month's Time; and about three Weeks after returned the other, having perhaps taſted of the ſame Fare; at leaſt without performing the intended Voyage; to the Diſtreſs of the Planters abroad, and Diſpleaſure of their Patron at home.

In the mean Time the King of France ſent Queen Elizabeth a Meſſage, aſſuring her, that the Tempeſt, which had been gathering in Spain for three Years, would certainly break very ſpeedily upon her Kingdom; therefore adviſed her to make the beſt Preparation ſhe could for its Defence. Nor did the King of Spain keep it now any longer a Secret, having this Year, publiſhed at Liſbon an ample and oſtentatious Account of this Invincible Armada, as the Spaniards themſelves had called it; wherein it appears the whole Fleet conſiſted of 130, or, according to Sir Walter Ralegh and Hugo Grotius, 140 Sail; ſome few Tenders, or others, joining them by the Way, not being perhaps in the Spaniſh Liſt reckoned: Carrying, by the Generality of Accounts, above 2600 Pieces of Braſs and Iron Ordnance; near 19000 Soldiers; between 8 and 9000 Sailors, beſides Officers, Prieſts, Galley-ſlaves, [83] Servants, and other Attendants; amounting in all to about 30,000 Perſons; or, according to the Confeſſion of Don Diego Piementelli, one of their own Commanders, who was driven into Zealand, the whole Fleet, Army, &c. were no leſs than 32000 Men; and coſt the King of Spain 30,000 Ducats every Day. The General of this mighty Navy was the Duke of Medina Sidonia, Knight of the golden Fleece; and John Martines de Ricalde was chief Admiral. In Flanders the Prince of Parma was alſo making great Preparations to join this Armada; had gathered up an Army conſiſting of more than 100, ſome ſay 200 Companies of Foot, and 4000 Horſe; and was very buſy in making Rafts, Ferry-boats, floating Bridges, Portcullices, Gabions, and what not? Nor were they idle in England; for how well the Directions of the Council of War aforeſaid were put in Execution, and how far Ralegh may be preſumed to have been engaged among the moſt indefatigable in this Service, is to be inferr'd from the Words of that Author, who ſays, In a very ſhort Time the whole Kingdom and every Corner were ſpeedily furniſhed with armed People on Horſeback and on Foot; and thoſe continually trained, exerciſed, and put into Bands in ſuch warlike Manner, as in no Age ever was before in this Realm. And a little further, That all concurred in one Mind, to be in Readineſs to ſerve for the Realm; and ſome one Country was able to make a ſufficient Army of 20,000 Men fit to fight, and 15000 of them well armed and weaponed: And in ſome Countries the Number of 40,000 able Men: That the maritime Countries from Cornwal all along ſouthward to Kent, and from thence Eaſtward to Lincolnſhire, were ſo furniſhed with Soldiers, both of themſelves, and with Reſort from their next Shires, as there was no Place to be doubted for landing of any [84] foreign Forces, but there were within 48 Hours to come to the Place above 20,000 fighting Men on Horſeback and on Foot, with all Manner of Ammunition, Proviſion, and Carriages, under the principal Nobles of the Countries, and Captains of the greateſt Knowledge. Beſides theſe Armies for the maritime Countries, the City of London exerciſed before the Queen 10,000 Men, and had ſeveral Thouſands more in Readineſs; that there was alſo two great Armies raiſed, whereof one were encamped at Tilbury in Eſſex, between the City and the Mouth of the Thames, conſiſting of 22000 Foot and 1000 Horſe, under the Command of the Earl of Leiceſter.

The Queen review'd this Camp ſeveral Times, din'd, made Orations in it, and lodged in the Borders of it. The other Army, conſiſting of 34000 Foot and 2000 Horſe, commanded by the Lord Hunſdon, was planted about the Queen's own Perſon. *And it encreas'd daily by the ſeveral Bands and Troops, which were led from the inland Countries by ſuch Noblemen, Knights, and Gentlemen, as had no ſpecial Charge or Government in their reſpective Counties; while the young Earl of Eſſex, and others among them, entertain'd her Majeſty with Tiltings and Tourneys, Barriers, Mockfights, and ſuch-like Arts, as in publick are wont to render Men popular. But the Lieutenants of [85] the maritime Counties were otherwiſe employ'd. And as the Earl of Pembroke had been aſſiduous in levying the Forces of Wilts and Somerſetſhire, and the Earl of Bath thoſe of Devonſhire; ſo Ralegh ſeems to have been no leſs forward and induſtrious in raiſing and reducing thoſe of Cornwal to the beſt Order and Diſcipline for the Service of his Country, againſt the common Enemy; notwithſtanding what he might have done, as has been ſaid before, at Portland: And, like the reſt of the Lords-Lieutenant, to have ſent up conſtantly his Certificates to the Queen of the Numbers that were aſſembled; the Poſture they were in; the Proviſions they were ſupply'd with; or thoſe whereof they ſtood in need.

But notwithſtanding all theſe Land-Preparations, which moved ſome ſpeculative Warriors at Court to think a Sea-force unneceſſary, as if the Engliſh were ſufficient to cut the Spaniards to Pieces in landing, or when they were aſhore, and run away with their Ships at the ſame Time; Sir Walter Ralegh knew better what another Kingdom might do, even againſt England, by the Advantage of a Fleet, if we have none; no Man having ſo ſolidly reſolv'd as himſelf that weighty Queſtion, whether England, without the Help of a Fleet, is able to debar an Enemy from landing? He knew that Ships, without putting themſelves out of Breath, will eaſily out-run the Soldiers that coaſt them: He [86] knew that a Fleet after Sun-ſet may be ſeen at the Lizard, and by the next Morning at Portland, which an Army ſhould be ſix Days in marching; and conſequently, that the Sailor may chuſe his Landing-place, where there are no Soldiers that can oppoſe him: And even ſuppoſing an Invader ſhould offer to land near where our greateſt Army was ready to receive him, Ralegh doubted, when the Choice of all our Train'd-Bands and of Officers were drawn together, as at Tilbury, to attend the Perſon of the Queen, and to defend the City of London, whether thoſe that ſhould remain to guard the Coaſt could be of any ſuch Force as to encounter an Army like that which the Prince of Parma ſhould have landed in England.

By Sea therefore all poſſible Defence was likewife made, and the chief Command was very properly conferr'd on the Lord-admiral Howard who, hearing the Invincible Armada was upon the Point of hoiſting Sail, ſent Sir Francis Drake, his Vice-admiral, with fifty-ſix Ships well appointed, to the Weſtern-parts, and himſelf arrived there on the 23d of May with others, which made up the Fleet about a hundred Sail; while the Lord Henry Seymer was ſent to lie with forty Engliſh and Dutch Snips (according to Camden) between Dover and Calais to intercept the Prince of Parma. *The [87] Invincible Armada looſed Anchor from Liſbon four Days before; but met with ſuch Storms, Sickneſs, and other Diſaſters, that the Lord-admiral put forth towards Spain, in Hopes of ſurpriſing them in their Diſtreſs; till more maturely conſidering they might paſs by undiſcover'd, he return'd to Plymouth, and ſuffer'd his Men to relieve themſelves on Shore. The Queen had received ſuch Aſſurance they were ſo diſabled from coming this Year by that Storm, that ſhe made Secretary Walſingham ſend for four of her firſt-rate Ships to be brought home to Chatham. But their Return was prevented by the Intelligence which Captain Thomas Fleming brought into the Harbour on the 19th of July, that he had diſcovered the Enemy approaching from the Lizard-Point in Cornwal. The Captains and Commanders were then it ſeems at Bowls upon the Hoe at Plymouth; and the Tradition goes, that Drake would needs ſee the Game up, but was ſoon prevailed on to go and play out the Rubbers with the Spaniards. All Hands were now at Work to warp out the Ships, which, with the admirable Induſtry of the Seamen, was very ſpeedily perform'd, the Wind blowing ſtiffly into the Haven from the South-weſt. The Lord-admiral, with the few he could then get ready, lay all Night in the Road. Next Day about fifty or threeſcore more join'd him, and at Noon they ken'd the Spaniſh Fleet; ſome with lofty Turrets and Decks rear'd one above another; and others rowed along with two or three hundred Oars apiece; all advancing with their Spaniſh Gravity, the [88] Wind being abated, in a ſemicircular Order; and extended ſeven Miles from End to End. The Engliſh ſuffered them all to paſs by, ſo got the Advantage of the Wind, when they began to chaſe them in the Rear; nor did the Spaniards offer to land at Plymouth, their Commiſſion being to join the Prince of Parma, and ſail directly to London. The next Day, which was the 21ſt of July, the Lord-admiral ſent out a Pinnace call'd the Defiance, and begun the Fight. This, I take it, was near the Eddiſtone; for there we have Account of the firſt Conflict, and of the firſt Spaniſh Ship that was taken or ſunk. Then the Lord-admiral in the Ark-Royal, Drake in the Revenge, with Hawkins, Frobiſher, and others, having thunder'd thick upon the Enemy for two Hours together, withdrew, 40 of their Ships not being yet come up. In this Engagement the Spaniards, by endeavouring to circle in and ſhelter one of their diſabled Galleons, ſhe had her Foremaſt broken, and was left behind, which Drake took the next Day, with Don Pedro de Valdez and other Nobles in her, beſides 55000 Ducats, which were ſhared among his Sailors. Immediately after, another of their greateſt Ships was ſet on Fire, with all the People in her, and yet the Powder eſcaped. But how the Lord-Admiral, all the firſt Night, followed the Spaniſh Lanthern, inſtead of Drake's into their Fleet, while Drake at the ſame Time was making another miſtaken Purſuit; and how the Ark Royal followed the Spaniſh Fleet alſo the ſecond Night, ſo far, almoſt alone, that it was the Afternoon following before the Engliſh Fleet overtook her, with other Particulars; I leave to the more ample Accounts of this Engagement, that I may attend the Motions of Sir Walter Ralegh; who, from being at firſt the neareſt, now growing impatient at being the moſt remote from [89] the Enemy, appears to have committed his Charge by Land to proper Officers, or detached Part thereof to march up nearer the Spaniards, and with a gallant Company of Nobles and Gentlemen, in ſeveral Ships to have join'd the Engliſh Fleet; that is to ſay, on the 23d of July, when the Spaniſh Fleet was advanced over againſt Portland; where, this whole Day being one continued Engagement from Morning till Night, it proved the moſt general and bloody Fight of any between them in the Britiſh Channel; and here, after the taking of a great Venetian Ship, and others of leſſer Bulk, the Spaniards were driven from all Intention of aſſaulting the Engliſh, till they had joined the Prince of Parma; for during this Fight the Engliſh Navy increas'd; whereunto, out of all Havens of the Realm reſorted Ships and Men; for they all with one Accord came flocking thither (to Portland) as unto a ſet Field where immortal Fame and Glory was to be attained, and faithful Service to be performed unto their Prince and Country. In which Number having mentioned the Earls of Oxford, Northumberland and Cumberland, he alſo names Sir Walter Ralegh, among the foremoſt of near 20 other Knights and Gentlemen, whereby the Engliſh Ships were augmented to 100 Sail; and doubtleſs by ſome of thoſe Camden mention'd to have been left behind in Plymouth-Sound, with which Ralegh very probably advanced. *Theſe, ever aſunder, and always in Motion, were on every ſide uſeful to annoy the Enemy; now preſenting a broad-ſide, and ſheering [90] off; then tacking about and diſcharging the other; in ſuch fort, that Sir Henry Wotton call'd it a Morrice-dance upon the *Waters, while the ſluggiſh and unweildy Caſtles of the Enemy cluſter'd and hamper'd together, could only offer Offence from one diſabled ſide; and that, when they had done, flew over the Engliſh Men's Heads. Camden tells us, that in this Day's Engagement, the Lord-admiral was adviſed by ſome of his Officers, with more Heat than Diſcretion, to grapple with and board the Enemy. Now Ralegh, having made ſome excellent Animadverſions upon this very Circumſtance, goes nigh to prove out of his own Words, that he was not only in this Day's Engagement; but that the Counſel he might thence appear to have given, did greatly contribute to the Succeſs of it. He has ſhewn how well he knew, that in ſuch Caſe the advantage of Weapons would be likelieſt to carry it, whereof the Enemy was provided with far the greateſt Number; alſo, that in ſuch cloſe Fight, how liable the leſſer Ships were to be cruſh'd by the greater; that theſe by their very Height muſt have further Advantage over thoſe that endeavour'd to board them from below; and laſtly, in theſe of more bulk and breadth being alſo more firm and more ſteady, thoſe who could beſt keep their Feet would probably be beſt able to uſe their Hands.

Next Day the Spaniards were glad to lie by, and the Engliſh no leſs pleaſed with the Ceſſation, that they might take the Opportunity of ſending to Shore for a Recruit of Ammunition; and this, being a Circumſtance taken Notice of alſo by Ralegh himſelf, further confirms his having been now [91] among them. The 25th of July, the Engliſh had another ſharp Battel with the Spaniſh Admiral, and the three great Galleaſſes at the Iſle of Wight, in which Cambden mentions the taking of a Portugueſe Galleon, and that from this Time the Galleaſſes durſt not venture upon any new Engagement, but cloſing themſelves up again in a Rundel as they called it, made the beſt of their Way to tell the Prince of Parma how they had been ſerved. The Engliſh Fleet followed and kept playing upon their Rear all the next Day, having determined to forbear any cloſer Engagement 'till they came to the Britiſh Frith, or Streights of Calais, where the Lord Seymer expected their Arrival. But ſo far was this Invincible Armada from alarming the Seacoaſts, ſays Camden, that the Engliſh Gentry of the younger Sort entered themſelves Volunteers, and, leaving their Friends and Families, did with incredible Cheerfulneſs hire Ships at their own Charge, and in pure Love to their Country joined the grand Fleet in vaſt Numbers. And here Camden names thoſe Nobles and ſome of thoſe Gentlemen, with Ralegh among them, which compoſed the Squadron before-mention'd, as if it entered but now from Dover, or ſome of thoſe Ports; not that he confines their Entrance to this Day, otherwiſe than naming them under it, or any other Way ſuggeſts, they did not join the grand Fleet three Days before; but ſeems, by remembering them in this Place, to have believed, they were moſt conſpicuous or in greateſt Number at this Time, unleſs he poſtponed the Mention of them to a Day, that was leaſt throng'd with Circumſtances of Action. Indeed, that this noble Squadron of Volunteers was united to the Queen's Navy, when ſuch valiant Services were performed againſt the Spaniards in the great Fight before Calais, another Writer alſo, greatly to their Commendation [92] agrees; but neither is he ſo expreſſive as to ſatisfy us it was the firſt Appearance they made, and that they were not before at Portland. For, having mentioned the Earls of Cumberland, Northumberland, and other Gentlemen of Diſtinction, who without any Charge or Knowledge of the Queen, joined the Fleet before Calais, and ventured their Lives in the ſaid Engagement; he goes on to obſerve, how earneſt all Ranks and Degrees were; by inſtancing alſo, that the Earl of Oxford, one of the moſt ancient Nobles in this Land, went to Sea, and ſerved the Queen among them, as did Robert Cecil, Lord Dudley and Sir Walter Ralegh, a Gentleman of the Queen's Privy Chamber, ſays he, and in his Company a great Number of young Gentlemen, among whom were William Cecil, Edward Darcie, and Arthur Gorge, the ſame Perſons mentioned with others by Camden, and alſo in larger Number by the Dutch Hiſtorian above quoted, three Days before. With the Recital of whom, I only ſhew you (continues my laſt Author, the Letterwriter) how far we have been deceived to think, that we ſhould have had a Party here for us, when, as you behold, both by Land and Sea, all Sorts of Men were ſo ready, at their own Charges, without either Commandment or Entertainment, to adventure alſo their Lives in Defence of the Queen and the Realm. From hence it appears, this Squadron muſt have alſo been at the final Overthrow of the Spaniſh Armada, which on the 27th of July in the Evening anchored before Calais, intending to hold on for Dunkirk, in Expectation of the Prince of Parma, who was always preparing but never ready, and, the Engliſh following, anchor'd alſo within Culvering Shot of them. Here the Lord Seymer join'd the Engliſh; and then the Lord-Admiral's Fleet was increaſed to a hundred and forty Sail, ſays [93] Camden; wherein he both exactly agrees with the Augmentation thereof at Portland by theſe Voluntiers, as we have it from the Dutch Hiſtorian there quoted; and alſo excludes all intermediate Addition, of Ships at leaſt, by the Number himſelf has before given us of the Lord Seymer's Squadron. Next Day the Engliſh reſolv'd, according to the Queen's Directions, upon the Stratagem of the Fireſhips to burn or diſperſe the Spaniſh Navy; and the ſame was put in Practice at or ſoon after Midnight, ſo ſucceſsfully, that the Enemy, cutting their Cables with the utmoſt Horror and Precipitancy, were, ſome ſcatter'd by the Wind, ſome fell foul of each other, and others ſtruck upon the Sands; the Engliſh chaſing and thundering upon them from all Quarters; then was a great Galleaſs taken by Captain Preſton, its Commander Moncada ſlain, and a Booty of near as much Gold fell to the Conquerors as was taken in another before-mentioned. *On the 29th of July the Spaniards ranged themſelves into the beſt Order they could within Sight of Graveling; hither the Engliſh Fleet alſo purſued them, [94] and here the Spaniards received their laſt fatal Adieu, by inceſſant and numberleſs Damages from the Engliſh Cannon the greateſt Part of the Day, till their Galleons, Galleaſſes, Gallies, Urcas, and Zabras were ſo miſerably ſhatter'd, having their Hulls pierced through and through, their Oars and Rudders cut away, their Tackling all rent, and their Maſts broken, that ſome were deſerted as unſerviceable, ſome ſunk with the Crew that was in them, and others retiring upon the neighbouring Coaſts were ſeized and plundered by the Inhabitants: While thoſe, that had the Ability left them, moſt prudently employ'd it in running away. The Engliſh ſtill followed them into the Northern Seas, even beyond the Latitude of 57 Degrees, and, leaving them paſt all Thoughts of the Prince of Parma, return'd on the 4th of Auguſt; when the violent Storms that aroſe reſumed their Cauſe, and compleated their Victory; for, by the Tempeſts, Shipwrecks, Sickneſs and Famine in their dangerous Paſſage homewards, they ſuſtained greater Loſſes than even all they had met with throughout the narrow Seas. For the Particulars of thoſe Loſſes we ſhall refer to the diſtinct and more copious Narratives of this Invaſion, * and cloſe this Account [95] with the Summary thereof, which was ſoon after publiſhed to the World by Sir Walter Ralegh himſelf, where giving the Honour of the Victory to the Courage and Conduct of the Lord-Admiral Howard, he ſays, that notwithſtanding the Victories they pretended to have obtained, it was ſoon manifeſted to all Nations, how the Navy, which they had termed invincible, conſiſting of 140 Sail, was by 30 of the Queen's Ships of War, and a few Merchantmen, beaten and ſhuffled together, even from the Li [...]ard Point in Cornwal to Portland, where they ſhamefully left Don Pedro de Valdez with his mighty Ship; from Portland to Calais, where they loſt Hugo de Moncada, with the Gallies of which he was Captain; and from Calais, driven with Squibs from their Anchors, were chaſed out of the Sight of England round about Scotland and Ireland; where, for the Sympathy of their barbarous Religion, hoping to find Succour and Aſſiſtance, a great Part of them were cruſh'd againſt the Rocks; and thoſe other who landed (being very many in Number) were notwithſtanding broken, ſlain, and taken; and ſo ſent from Village to Village, coupled in Halters, to be ſhipped into England; where her Majeſty, of her princely and invincible Diſpoſition, diſdaining to put them to Death, and ſcorning either to retain or entertain them, they were all ſent back again to their own Country, to witneſs and recount the worthy Atchievements of their invincible Navy.

The Services of Sir Walter Ralegh againſt this Invaſion, his Diligence in regulating the Forces of [96] the Land, and his Intereſt in ſtrengthning thoſe of the Sea; the Charges he was at, and the Dangers he voluntarily incurr'd, however undiſtinguiſh'd more than is above expreſs'd by our common Hiſtorians, and thoſe few inaccurate Accounts thereof, which are deſcended to us; were yet received with ſuch Approbation by the Queen, that ſhe ſeems, as ſome Recompence for them, to have this Year made a conſiderable Augmentation to his Patent of Wines; as if he had, beſides the Grant beforementioned, another now alſo beſtowed upon him for Tonnage and Poundage upon thoſe Liquors, except it is the ſame Patent with the former, only renewed this Year, or wrong dated in the Author who mentions it. Be it as it ſhould, this Patent ſeems to have been one of the moſt beneficial Favours which Ralegh ever received of the Queen, and might perhaps exceed in Profit the Penſion which ſhe ſettled on the Lord-Admiral himſelf for his Conduct and Courage in the ſaid Overthrow. This Benefit Ralegh enjoy'd as long as ſhe liv'd; though, towards the Cloſe of her Reign, the Number of ſuch-like Grants to others being very much encreaſed, they were inveighed againſt in Parliament as grievous and burdenſome Monopolies, by thoſe eſpecially, who had not the Merit or Intereſt to procure any for themſelves. Sir Robert Naunton tells us, in his Concluſion of Ralegh's Character, with relation to the Grants he thus obtain'd; That though he gained much at the Court, yet he took it not out of the Exchequer, or merely out of the Queen's Purſe, but by his Wit, and the Help of the Prerogative; for the Queen was never profuſe in delivering out her Treaſures; but paid many, and moſt of her Servants, part in Money and the reſt with Grace. We meet with another Office, which Ralegh himſelf erected, no leſs praiſe-worthy than [97] this was profitable to him. For one Writer, in the ſhort Account he gives of him, having ſpoken of the Diviſion he made of his Time, in allowing five Hours to ſleep, four to Reading, two for Diſcourſe, and the reſt to Buſineſs and other Neceſſaries, and having hinted at the Diverſity of his Correſpondencies, Intelligence and the like, ſays, that in the Capacity of an Agency for all Sorts of Perſons, he ſet up a kind of Office of Addreſs. And further, that conſidering the Diſpatch of ſuch Variety of Engagements in the former Part of his Life, one muſt be much to ſeek how a Man of ſo many Actions ſhould write any Thing, and one of ſo many Writings ſhould do any Thing. By another little Hint, that has been elſewhere preſerved, we may conceive this Office did chiefly reſpect a more liberal Intercourſe, a nobler Mutuality of Advertiſement, than would perhaps admit of all Sorts of Perſons; and ſuch as advanced rather to the Improvement of Men themſelves, than their Means. But this Suggeſtion is drawn only from comparing it with the general Tendency of thoſe other Schemes, among which I once ſaw it mentioned, in a Letter written by an ingenious Perſon of great Note for his Writings to a Nobleman, who had the greateſt Correſpondence with ſuch Perſons of any in his Time; recommending, that long dried Fountain of Communication, which Montaigne firſt propos'd, Sir Walter Ralegh put in Practice, and Mr. Hartlib endeavour'd to revive. *

[98] Don Antonio, King of Portugal, who had been expell'd from his Dominions by King Philip, and was now in London, ſoon after the Signal Overthrow of the Armada aforeſaid, took this Opportunity to renew his Motion to Queeen Elizabeth for her Aſſiſtance towards his Reſtoration, which he propounded to the Lord-Treaſurer in a Letter full of liberal Offers, written in the Portugueſe Language, all with his own Hand. The Queen not only conſented to the Enterpriſe, as thinking it more convenient to return the late Viſit of the Spaniards in their own Country, than ſuffer them to repeat it here, but lent ſix of her Men of War, [99] and diſburſed 60,000 Pounds towards defraying the Charges thereof. This Encouragement, and the late Provocation, ſo ſpirited up the warlike Men of the Kingdom, and Ralegh among the reſt to become Volunteers therein, that they augmented the Number of the ſaid Ships with a hundred and twenty Sail more, and mann'd them with fourteen or fifteen thouſand Soldiers and Sailors at their own further Expence, committing the Charge by Sea to Sir Francis Drake, and that by Land to Sir John Norris, who were probably the moſt conſiderable Contributors thereto.

But firſt Ralegh took Care for the Relief of his Plantation in Virginia, which that he might more effectually ſecure than could be expected from his own ſingle Aſſiſtance, eſpecially after the many heavy Diſburſments he had made, and the great Diſappointment the Colony muſt doubtleſs have received by miſſing of the laſt Supplies he ſent them, through the Loſſes, which his Agents too raſhly brought thereon; he made an Aſſignment to divers Gentlemen and Merchants of London, for continuing the Plantation of this new diſcover'd Country with Engliſh Men. And this was now no leſs adviſedly done with regard to himſelf, than affectionately with reſpect to the People employ'd therein: Whom, though he generouſly aſſiſted with his Advice and Intereſt in ſome future Proſecutions of this Undertakings; yet theſe proving improſperous, through the oblique Courſes they took at firſt ſetting out upon this new Foundation, like that in which they lately fail'd, it was twenty Years from this Time, before even a whole Company could make a more ſucceſsful and advanced P ogreſs in this Settlement, than Sir Walter Ralegh of himſelf alone had done; it having coſt him no leſs than 40000l.

[100] As for the Expedition before mentioned, which was ſet out under Drake and Norris, about five Weeks after the ſaid Aſſignment, that is on the 14th of April, 1589, in which Don Antonio was by Ralegh, among the reſt, accompanied to Portugal, we need not here be circumſtantial thereon; eſpecially as to the Action at the Groine, the Overthrow of the Spaniard at Puente de Burgus, the taking of Peniche, with the Caſtle of Caſcais, the Aſſault of Liſbon, and the burning of Vigo; ſeeing our Hiſtorians have not diſtinguiſhed what Part Ralegh had therein: In which perhaps they ſeem not ſo grateful to him as he was to his Aſſociates; but particularly in not mentioning him at the taking of that great Number of eaſterling Hulks and other Ships laden with Spaniſh Goods, Proviſions and Ammunition, for a new Invaſion of England, which from the 2d of June ſome or other of the Adventurers (none are named) continued to bring into the Engliſh Fleet, then lying in the Road of Caſcais, for ſix Days together. This Fleet of ours was but thinly mann'd at firſt, and having loſt ſome thouſands by Sickneſs and Intemperance with the new Wines of thoſe Countries; Hands could not be ſpared to bring home much above a quarter of thoſe Veſſels and their Lading, that were thus taken: For Sir Roger Williams, who was a Colonel in the Land-Service of this Expedition, has ſaid in a Letter of his, ſtill extant, It is well known, we had above two hundred Sail of all Sorts, of which we could not carry with us above threeſcore for the Want of Men. Hence aroſe at their Return into England, a little Contention between Williams and Ralegh; for Ralegh having taken ſome of theſe Prizes, Williams placed in one of them his Lieutenant with ſome of his Soldiers, without which, ſays Williams, it could not have been carried into England: [101] Wherefore he would have laid Claim, it ſeems, both to the Ship and its Cargo; this Voyage, as he goes on, having coſt him a Thouſand Pounds, as it did ſeveral other of the Adventurers no doubt. But his Claim not being thought reaſonable, the Earl of Bath, Lieutenant of Devonſhire, diſcharged his Men from that Veſſel at Dartmouth. Williams, at this, growing very turbulent, and his Clamours reaching the Queen's Ear, procured her Diſpleaſure againſt him, which occaſion'd his ſaid Letter to three of the Privy-Council; whence this Intelligence is extracted. From this Letter we farther collect, the Atchievements of the Engliſh in this Voyage ſo well ſatisfy'd the Queen, in the Diſablement of the Enemy, eſpecially as to their naval Powers, that ſhe honoured the Commanders or chief Adventurers therein, and Sir Walter Ralegh among the reſt, with a golden Chain; for Sir Roger preſum'd, the Earl of Eſſex (his great Friend, as appears in the Hiſtories of this Expedition) with the reſt who were in the Action, would teſtify, That I deſerve a Chain as well as my Fellows, ſay he. As for the coarſe Expreſſion which follows, of Ralegh's belying his Hulk, as he had done the Ark of Noah, the beſt Ship that ever was, tho' it may betray ſome Impoliteneſs of Manners and Impetuoſity of Diſpoſition in Sir Roger's Civil Capacity; yet in the Field, and againſt an Enemy, thoſe rougher Qualities might invigorate his Courage and Experience, and illuſtrate the miliary Character of the Man.

In the latter End of June this Year, and ſome Weeks before this Diſpute, the Engliſh Fleet return'd home; but Ralegh appears firſt to have touch'd upon the Coaſt of Ireland, probably to make a ſhort Viſit to his Seigniory there, and ſee ſome of his Acquaintance among the new Settlements [102] in the Province of Munſter. We may be pretty well convinc'd that Ralegh was in Ireland this Year, from his own Writings; *and that it was upon his Return from a long Voyage, out of ſome Verſes hereafter following in Spenſer the Poet. For here we may obſerve, that while Ralegh was a Commander in the Iriſh Wars, under the Lord Grey, as we have before related, this Edmund Spenſer, then famous for thoſe Paſtorals he had newly publiſhed, going over Secretary to that Nobleman, had frequent Opportunities, by his ingenious Converſation, ſo to make his Learning and other Accompliſhments known, as engag'd the Friendſhip of our WORTHY ſo ſubſtantially towards him, that none of the great Men in Queen Elizabeth's Court, after the Death of Sir Philip Sidney, was ſo great a Patron to that extraordinary Genius as Sir Walter Ralegh. Indeed the Queen herſelf, in Regard that Spenſer employ'd his Time ſo commendably in Ireland, as afterwards more publickly appear'd, in the excellent Political View he made of that Kingdom, gave him a conſiderable Tract of Land out of Earl Deſmond's capacious Forfeitures, amounting, at the loweſt Computation that has been made, to 3000 [103] Acres of Ground, lying in the County of Cork; the Preſervation and Improvement whereof engaged Spenſer to ſettle there; and a pleaſant Seat he had, at Kilcolman near the River Mulla, which ran through his Grounds, and which he has ſo beautifully deſcrib'd in ſome of his Poems. Here it was in this Retirement that Ralegh now paid him a Viſit, the Circumſtances whereof Spenſer himſelf has moſt agreeably celebrated in that Poem, which, about two Years after this Time, he dedicated To the Right Worthy and Noble Knight Sir Walter Ralegh, &c. In this Dedication he has theſe Words; I make you Preſent of this ſimple Paſtoral, unworthy of your higher Conceipt for the Meanneſs of the Style, but agreeable with the Truth, in Circumſtance and Matter: the which I humbly beſeech you to accept in Part of Payment of the infinite Debt in which I acknowledge myſelf bounden unto you for your ſingular Favours and ſundry good Turns ſhewed me at my laſt being in England; and with your good Countenance, protect againſt the Malice of evil Mouths, which are always wide open to carp at, and miſconſtrue my ſimple Meaning. In the Paſtoral itſelf, the Poet gives us this Deſcription of Ralegh's firſt accoſting him in the ſaid rural Retirement.

One Day, quoth he, I ſat, as was my Trade,
Under the Foot of Mole, that Mountain hore,
Keeping my Sheep amongst the cooly Shade
Of the green Alders by the Mulla's Shore;
There a ſtrange Shepherd chanc'd to find me out,
Whether allured with my Pipe's Delight,
Whoſe pleaſing Sound yſhrilled far about,
Or thither led by Chance, I knew not right,
[104] Whom when I aſked from what Place he came,
And how he hight? himſelf he did ycleep
The Shepherd of the Ocean by Name,
And ſaid, he came far from the Main-ſea deep.
He ſitting me beſide in that ſame Shade,
Provoked me to play ſome pleaſant Fit;
And when he heard the Muſick that I made,
He found himſelf full greatly pleas'd at it:
Yet aemuling my Pipe, he took in Hond
My Pipe, before that aemuled of many,
And play'd thereon, for well that Skill he con'd;
Himſelf as ſkilful in that Art as any.

It further appears, they now entertain'd each other with ſome of their poetical Compoſitions; Spenſer rehearſed a pretty Tale he had made of the Amours between ſome of his neighbouring Rivers; but Ralegh's Muſe ran upon a more melancholy Strain, which, by the tranſient View it gives of ſome little Cloud he had lately, but undeſervedly, been under at Court, lets us into a Piece of his ſecret Hiſtory; where the Poet tells us,

His Song was all a lamentable Lay,
Of great Unkindneſs and of Uſage hard,
Of Cynthia the Lady of the Sea,
Which from her Preſence, faultleſs, him debarr'd:
And ever and anon with Singults rife,
He cried out to make his underſong,
Ah my Love's Queen, and Goddeſs of my Life!
Who ſhall me pity, when thou doſt me Wrong?

But it immediately appears to have been ſoon blown over by ſome pathetical Addreſs of Ralegh's to the Queen, whereby he was, at this Time, reſtored [105] to her Favour, as we may fully conclude from theſe Words:

—Right well be ſure did' plain,
That could great Cynthia's ſore Diſpleaſure break,
And move to take him to her Grace again.

And this is confirmed a little further, where, through Ralegh's Affection for his Welfare, and his Regret to behold ſo rare a Genius baniſhed to a Deſart, and buried in ſuch a State of Obſcurity, he perſuades Spenſer to go along with him into England, and proffers to introduce him to the Queen. The Poet, knowing his Intereſt, embraced his Offer. Then having given a Deſcription of the Sea, with Ralegh's great Ship, ſuitable to the Simplicity of the Character he aſſumes; and having repreſented Ralegh's Deſcription of the Flocks and Herds of that Royal Shepherdeſs, which were kept upon thoſe watry Hills, under the Charge of Triton and Proteus, he makes him further ſay:

And I among the reſt, of many leaſt,
Have in the Ocean Charge to me aſſign'd;
Where I will live or die at her Beheaſt,
And ſerve and honour her with faithful Mind.

He then proceeds to the Progreſs of their Voyage, how they paſſed by the Iſle of Lundy, and landed at St. Michael's Mount in Cornwall; ſo took their Journey to the Court, where the Poet having expatiated on the dazling Preſence of the Queen, agreeable to the Admiration of a Spectator, in his paſtoral Character, we have this further Acknowledgment.

The Shepherd of the Ocean, quoth he,
Unto the Goddeſs's Grace me firſt enhanced:
[106] And to my oaten Pipe inclined her Ear,
That ſhe thenceforth therein 'gan take Delight,
And it deſired, at timely Hours to hear;
All were my Notes but rude and roughly dight.

This Honour the Poet further magnifies, as the more wond'rous Condeſcenſion in her Majeſty, in that ſhe had ſo many more learned Shepherds about her to glorify her Name. Here he takes an Opportunity to give a Character of the ſeveral Poets and Wits then ſhining in her Court: Among the reſt,

And there that Shepherd of the Ocean is,
That ſpends his Wit in Love's conſuming Smart:
Full ſweetly temper'd is that Muſe of his,
That can impierce a Prince's mighty Heart.

As to Ralegh's poetical Talents, we ſhall hear more of them very ſpeedily. In this Place, we muſt purſue his farther Deſign of bringing Spenſer over into England, which was to make him oblige the Publick with what he had hitherto finiſhed of his capital Work, called the Fairy Queen. For, though Spencer had begun this grand Poem through the Encouragement of Sir Philip Sidney, before he went over into Ireland; yet it was there he ſeems to have writ moſt of what we have in Print; and now, by the Encouragement of Sir Walter Ralegh, that he was brought to publiſh the three firſt Books which he had compleated thereof: 'Tis certain he took his Advice in the Publication of them, and particularly in drawing up a Plan to explain or diſcover the general Intention and Meaning of that allegorical Poem. This he directed to his ſaid Patron, The right noble and valorous Sir Walter Ralegh, &c. in a letter dated the 23d of January this [107] Year 1589; concluding with An humble Requeſt for the Continuance of his honourable Favours, and Wiſhes for the eternal Eſtabliſhment of his Happineſs. This Letter is printed at the End of the ſaid firſt three Books of that Poem, which were publiſhed at London the enſuing Year. Among the commendatory Verſes thereto alſo ſubjoined, the firſt two Copies are both ſaid to be written by Sir Walter Raleigh, and not without great Probability, being ſubſcribed with the initial Letters of his Name. The firſt of theſe Copies, written in alternate Verſe, is highly poetical; for our Author, Correſpondent with the viſionary Manner of his Author, fancying himſelf in the Temple of the veſtal Virgins, where his Curioſity led him to the Tomb of Laura, which was guarded by Love and Virtue, he was ſuddenly attracted from thence, by the Appearance of the Fairy Queen, at whoſe Approach the Soul of Petrarch wept; ſeeing thoſe Graces deſert that Miſtreſs of his, to attend upon this royal Lady, and Oblivion ſupply their Place. The Compliment is ſurely fine, and perhaps the more judiciouſly expreſs'd, in not being bounded more periodically than it is, according to the Doctrine of our modern Criticks in the Structure of Verſification; for being the Recital of one ſolemn and ſurpriſing Thought, it may engage our Attention more cloſely to the End of the two or three Quadrains it is compris'd in, than if the Author had affected to divide or bound the Senſe with a full Period at the End of every four Lines. But every Reader may eaſily judge for himſelf, the Poem being in moſt Editions of Spenſer, and therefore needs not here be recited. His other Verſes upon this Poet are compoſed in a Meaſure more obſolete to the Manner of our Age; but what the Queen her ſelf imitated, in ſome Poetry ſtill to be ſeen of her [108] Writing, being in Lines of ſix and ſeven Feet long. It may be ſufficient therefore to obſerve, there is a diſtinguiſhed Conduct alſo in this Performance; for the Induction is writ with great Modeſty, in Regard to himſelf.

The Praiſe of meaner Wits, this Work like Profit brings;
As doth the Cuckow's Song, delight, when Philomela ſings.

And, having advertiſed the Poet that his Portraits are to be judged of or improved by the Originals of thoſe Virtues whereof he has compos'd his fictitious Queen, he very dexterouſly transfers or appropriates them to the real one then reigning: So concludes with a Compliment to him; which though of a very tranſcendent and abſolute Nature, yet in Regard to the little good Engliſh Poetry then in being, and the great Fame of that Poet ſtill ſurviving among us, is ſtill thought not more expreſſive of Sir Walter Ralegh's Affection, than his Judgment:

Of me no Lines are lov'd, nor Letters are of Price,
Of all that ſpeak the Engliſh Tongue, but thoſe of thy Device.

We further obſerve among the Copies of Verſes inſcribed by Spenſer himſelf, at the End of his ſaid Fairy Queen, to the ſeveral Miniſters of State and Noblemen in Queen Elizabeth's Court, one to the Noble and valorous Sir Walter Ralegh, &c. as he again ſtiles him: And this, becauſe it not only informs us what a favourite Ralegh was at this Time with the Queen; but alſo gives us Occaſion to dilate upon his own poetical Productions a little [109] more copiouſly than Opportunity has before offered,

To thee that are the Summer's Nightingale,
Thy ſovereign Goddeſſes moſt dear delight,
Why do I ſend this ruſtick Madrigal,
That may thy tuneful Ear unſeaſon quite?
Thou only fit this Argument to write;
In whoſe high Thoughts Pleaſure hath built her Bowre,
And dainty Love learned ſweetly to indite:
My Rhymes I know unſav'ry are and ſowre,
To taſte the Streams, which, like a golden Showre,
Flow from thy fruitful Head, of thy Love's Praiſe,
Fitter perhaps to thunder martial Stowre,
When ſo thee liſt thy lofty Muſe to raiſe:
Yet 'till that thou thy Poem wilt make known,
Let thy fair CYNTHIA's Praiſes be thus rudely ſhown.

Hence we learn Sir Walter Ralegh wrote a Poem, call'd CYNTHIA; that it was in Praiſe of the Queen, and that it was not now publiſh'd. Spenſer, in his Letter to Ralegh above-cited, alſo mentions again ſomething of this Poem, where he ſays, In that Fairy Queen, I mean Glory in my general Intention; but in my Particular, I conceive the moſt excellent and glorious Perſon of our Sovereign the Queen, and her Kingdom, in Fairy-land. And yet in ſome Places elſe, I do otherwiſe ſhadow her. For conſidering ſhe beareth two Perſons; the one, of a moſt Royal Queen or Empreſs; the other, of a moſt virtuous and beautiful Lady; this latter Part in ſome Places, I do expreſs in Belphoebe; faſhioning her Name according to your own excellent Conceit of CYNTHIA; Phoebe and Cynthia being both Names of [110] Diana. This is all I remember to have met with of that Poem.

But this very Year that Ralegh was in Ireland, there was a Book publiſhed by a learned and ingenious Gentleman; in which others of Ralegh's Poems, and perhaps that beforementioned, are quoted with great Commendation *; as if theſe few little Pieces had before this Time rendered him eminent, and advanced his Name among the prime Wits or leading Poets of the Age; not that we are ſure they were now in common Print, or vulgarly known to be his; for the ſaid Author, ſpeaking of the moſt conſiderable Writers in Engliſh Poetry, ſays; In her Majeſty's Time ſprung up another Company of courtly Poets, who have writ excellently well, if their Doings could be found out and made publick with the reſt; of which Number is Edward Earl of Oxford, Thomas Lord Buckhurſt, when young, Henry Lord Paget, Sir Philip Sidney, Sir Walter Ralegh, and many others; ſome of whom he further names.

Then proceeding to give his Judgment in ſhort Characters of them; and having diſtinguiſh'd the Earl of Oxford for Comedy, Buckhurſt for Tragedy, [111] Sir Philip Sidney, and the other Gentleman who wrote the late Shepherd's Calender, (meaning Spenſer) for Eclogue and Paſtoral, he adds; For Ditty and amorous Ode, I find Sir Walter Ralegh's Vein moſt lofty, inſolent, and paſſionate. But it is in the Chapter of Sententious or Rhetorical Figures, that this Critic illuſtrates his Obſervation, by ſome Examples out of Sir Walter Ralegh's Poems; which, becauſe rare to be met with, I ſhall here rehearſe. That Critic therefore, where he is ſpeaking of ſome elegant Tautologies in Poetry, and particularly the Excellencies of the Anaphora, or Figure of Report, as he tranſlates it, gives us the following Example, written by Sir Walter Ralegh; whether in his Cynthia, I cannot yet tell; but, to his greateſt Miſtreſs, in moſt excellent Verſes, ſays that Author.

In vain, my Eyes, in vain you waſte your Tears;
In vain, my Sighs, the Smokes of my Deſpairs:
In vain you ſearch the Earth and Heav'ns above,
In vain you ſeek, for Fortune keeps my Love.

Further ſpeaking of the Epizeuxis, which he engliſhes the Underlay or Cuckow-Spell, another Sort of Repetition, when in one Verſe we iterate one Word without Intermiſſion, he brings, as an Example, that of Sir Walter Ralegh; very ſweet, ſays he.

With Wiſdom's Eyes, had but blind Fortune ſeen,
Then had my Love, my Love for ever been.

And in another Place, to diſtinguiſh that Form of Repetition, called Ploche, or the Doubler, a ſpeedy Iteration of one Word, but with ſome little Intermiſſion, he exemplies the two cloſing Verſes of a moſt excellent Ditty, as he calls it, written by Sir [112] Walter Ralegh. Theſe two cloſing Verſes confirm the Genuineneſs of thoſe which precede them in a Tranſcript of this very Ditty I once ſaw in a Nobleman's Library, from the Copy of a celebrated Lady *, who probably had it out of the Family. 'Tis there entitled, The Excuſe, written by Sir Walter Ralegh, in his younger Years. And, becauſe by the foregoing Parts of this admir'd Ditty the Concluſion will be beſt underſtood, I ſhall here repeat the whole from the aforeſaid Tranſcript.

Calling to mind my Eyes went long about,
To cauſe my Heart for to forſake my Breaſt;
All in a Rage, I ſought to pull them out;
As who had been ſuch Traitors to my Reſt:
What could they ſay to win again my Gra ce?
Forſooth, that they had ſeen my Miſtreſs' Face.
Another Time, my Heart I call'd to mind;
Thinking that he this Woe on me had brought;
Becauſe that he, to Love, his Force reſign'd,
When of ſuch Wars my Fancy never thought:
[113] What cou'd he ſay when I wou'd him have ſlain:
That he was hers—and had forgone my Chain.
At laſt, when I perceiv'd both Eyes and Heart
Excuſe themſelves as guiltleſs of my Ill;
I found myſelf the Cauſe of all my Smart,
And told myſelf, that I myſelf would kill;
Yet when I ſaw myſelf to you was true;
I lov'd myſelf, becauſe my ſelf lov'd you.

There is one old Collection I never ſaw, printed about the Time we are now upon, with ſeveral of Sir Philip Sidney's Sonnets in it, and therefore I think under his Name; which poſſibly may contain ſome alſo of Sir Walter Ralegh's. But in that modern Collection there is alſo printed, not over correctly it ſeems, another Poem of his: This I have likewiſe ſeen in Manuſcript, where it is call'd the Silent Lover; and have heard ſeveral Lines in it applauded, eſpecially the Beginning. But the Part, which would be moſt agreeable in this Place to an Hiſtorical Reader, is that from which he might fancy he could make ſome further Gueſſes at the Object of Ralegh's Addreſs.

But ſeeing that I ſue to ſerve
A Saint of ſuch Perfection,
As all deſire, and none deſerve
A Place in her Affection;
I rather chuſe to want Relief,
Than venture the revealing;
Where Glory recommends the Grief,
Deſpair diſdains the healing.

And a little farther very perſuaſively:

[114]
Silence in Love betrays more woe
Than Words tho' never ſo witty;
A Beggar that is dumb, you know,
May challenge double Pity.

In ſhort he has ſaid ſuch handſome Things of Silence, that it were a Pity any Words even in its Commendation, but his own, ſhould break it. But it will perhaps hereafter be thought he could break it himſelf with as much Succeſs, as now he ſeems to have commanded the keeping it. All that I have ſeen more of his Juvenile Compoſitions in this Kind, is a Paſtoral Sonnet, which old Mr. Iſaac Walton reciting, tells us was written by Sir Walter Ralegh, in his younger Years, *in Anſwer to another, famous alſo in thoſe Days, compoſed by Chriſtopher Marlow.

There is another Poet beſides Spenſer, who writ ſomething of Ralegh relating to theſe Times, tho' near twenty Years after them; and as on a different Subject, ſo with a different Diſpoſition towards him. This Poet was Sir John Harrington, the Tranſlator of Orlando Furioſo; but that which he is here mention'd for, is a little Book in Proſe, yet not clear of Poetry, tho' it was intended for a Piece of Church-Hiſtory, and as a Supply to Dr. Francis Godwin's Catalogue of Biſhops. This, at the Time that Ralegh was under Royal Diſpleaſure in the next Reign, and in Confinement; but growing into Favour with the hopeful Prince of Wales, Sir John Harrington, then a Courtier, preſented to that [115] Prince; 'tis full of little Jeſts and Tales againſt the married Clergy, and againſt ſome of the Laity who had any Controverſies with them, the better to inſinuate with that young Prince, and engage his Attention; otherwiſe the Author would doubtleſs have written it with a Gravity ſuitable to the Subject; but he tells the Prince, he took ſome kind of Pleaſure with the Pains of writing it, ſuppoſing (ſays he) I was all the while telling a Story as it were in your Highneſs Preſence and hearing. Among the Stories he tells, there is one concerning Dr. Thomas Godwin, Biſhop of Bath and Wells, and Sir Walter Ralegh, it ſeems; the Relation of which, becauſe that Biſhop died about the latter End of 1590, we ſhall not longer defer. This Biſhop, he tells us, came to that See, among his other good Qualities, unreprovable for Simony, and in the Queen's good Opinion: If he had held on as clear as he enter'd, I ſhould have highly extoll'd him, ſays our Author; but, continues he, ſee his Misfortune, which firſt loſt him the Queen's Favour, and after forced him to another Miſchief. For being aged, diſeaſed, and lame of the Gout, he married, as ſome thought, for Opinion of Wealth, a London Widow, his ſecond Wife at leaſt: When a chief Favourite of that Time (whom he had named before in this Kind, and therefore thought by ſome, as perhaps it might be, Sir Walter Ralegh) had labour'd to get the Manor of Banwell from this Biſhoprick; but diſdaining the Repulſe, and hearing of this intempeſtive Marriage, he took Advantage thereof, caus'd it to be told the Queen (knowing how much ſhe miſliked ſuch Matches) and inſtantly purſued the Biſhop with Letters and Mandates for the Manor of Banwell for a hundred Years. The good Biſhop, to pacify his Perſecutors, and to ſave Banwell, was fain to part with Wilſcomb for 99 Years; [116] and ſo purchaſed his Peace. And, as he did not hold on ſo clear as he enter'd, it might be with Reference to the Simony before-mentioned; the Queen ſaw it not unreaſonable, but eſpouſed the Alienation; ſo that it was her Gift. And the Biſhop's own Son, Dr. Francis Godwin, when he was Biſhop alſo, and reviving his Catalogue of Biſhops, in the next Reign. before Ralegh was out of Priſon, makes no Complaint againſt him in the Account of his Father's Life; tho' he might ſafely, if he could juſtly, have done it, and Ralegh had been poſſeſs'd of that for which this Author's Father had not, according to the Cuſtom of thoſe Times, received Satisfaction. On the contrary, with much Modeſty, rather laments that his Father ſhould take upon him the Duties of Eccleſiaſtical Government, when his Infirmities had render'd him unable to diſcharge them.

If this Affair did any ways diſpleaſe the Hierarchy, there was another Occurrence fell out about this Time, in which Ralegh, by ſhewing a generous and charitable Inſtance of his Power and Intereſt, might give ſome further Umbrage for its Diſpleaſure. It was in the Caſe of Mr. John Udall, Miniſter of the Goſpel, a good Scholar, and a Man of good Parts; but very zealous for the Reformation, even under the epiſcopal Government; for which he was reckoned among the Nonconformiſts, or rather Puritans of thoſe Times. He had been bred at Cambridge; was ſeven Years Miniſter of Kingſton upon Thames; and, through the Favour of the Earl of Huntington, about a Twelvemonth at Newcaſtle upon Tine. Here he was ſilenced, ſent for to London by Letters from the Lord-chamberlain Hunſdon, in the Name of the Council, and examined about a Book he had newly publiſhed [117] againſt the Clergy * But becauſe, contrary to the Laws, he would not betray himſelf, he was committed cloſe Priſoner to the Gatehouſe; debarred of all Communication with his Family or others; thence conveyed to Croydon in July this preſent Year 1590; brought to the Bar in Fetters, and indicted for publiſhing a Libel againſt the Queen. No Evidence Viva Voce produced to atteſt it, but only Depoſitions taken in the high Commiſſion-Court, no Court of Record, and Hearſay Reports urged againſt him, his Witneſſes not being permitted to teſtify in his Behalf, becauſe the Court ſaid it was againſt the Queen: The Words of the Statute being wreſted, ſays my Author, by Baron Clark and Serjeant Puckering, as if the Treatiſe called, The Demonſtration of Diſcipline, for which Udall was now indicted, becauſe written againſt Biſhops who exerciſed their Government under the Queen, was therefore conſequently written againſt her royal Perſon. So the ſaid Judges directed the Jury to find Udall Author of the Book [118] without legal Proof, and to leave the Felony to them.

The Jury did as they were taught, being told it ſhould be no further Danger to the Author, but tend to his good; of which Verdict they afterwards repented. Then he was kept half a Year uncondemned in Durance; and at the Aſſizes in February following at Southwark, not relinquiſhing his Tenets, he had the Sentence of Death pronounced againſt him by Puckering. But it ſeems before Udall received this Sentence, he had procured a Friend to ſollicit Sir Walter Ralegh, that the violent and aggravated Conſtructions which had been made of his Doctrine and Principles, might not be his utter Deſtruction, 'till a more unprejudiced Judgment was made of them; and immediately after the Sentence was pronounced, the Sheriff brought him a Reprieve from the Queen. Then Dr. Bond, one of her Chaplains, came to him in Priſon with a Form of Submiſſion for him to ſubſcribe. After two Days Conference, they agreed upon another. But, ſays Udall, at the ſame Time that Dr. Bond was with me, I received a Letter from a Friend of mine that did ſollicit Sir Walter Ralegh for me. This Letter he then exhibits, and thereby it appears Ralegh had adviſed or encouraged Udall to explain himſelf to him concerning thoſe Imputations which had been infuſed into her Majeſty, which accuſed him with maintaining, the Church of England and its Sacraments were no Church and no Sacraments; that its Laws and her Government were againſt the Word of God; that all eccleſiaſtical Matters ought to be governed by a Preſbytery; and that ſhe ought to be ſubject to the Cenſures thereof; for (ſays that Correſpondent) If ye will write half a Dozen Lines to Sir Walter Ralegh concerning theſe Opinions, that he may ſhew it [119] to her Majeſty, he hopes to obtain your Life. I know it is very eaſy for you to anſwer all thoſe Things, therefore do it with ſpeed; and in your writing to Sir Walter take Knowledge, that he hath ſent you ſuch Word. Hereupon Udall wrote a Letter, which he alſo ſets forth, directed to the Right honourable Sir Walter Ralegh, Knt. Lord-warden of the Stannaries, wherein, after the Remembrance of his Duty and Thanks for his great and honourable Care over him, and for his Good, he moſt humbly beſeeches him to be a means to appeaſe her Majeſty's Diſpleaſure for the Accuſations untruly ſuggeſted againſt him.

After this he remained, according to his own Expreſſion, without great Hope of Liberty, yet without Fear of further Extremity. Whence it may be rightly obſerved by ſome Hiſtorians, that Sir Walter Ralegh, through his generous Interceſnon, did procure Udall's Reprieve, or ſave him from Execution. 'Till a few Months after, being further peſtered with ſtricter Forms of Submiſſion, by Dr. Andrews, he was forced to make further Applications, not only by the Earl of Eſſex, but Sir Walter Ralegh again, and Dean Nowell, againſt the Menaces of the approaching Aſſizes at Kingſton. About the ſame Time the King of Scots alſo wrote a Letter to the Queen in Behalf of the ſaid Mr. Udall, and other learned Nonconformiſts *. [120] But this wrought only ſo far, when Udall was brought to Kingſton, that he was immediately returned to Priſon before the firſt Day of the Trials, and thereupon the unlucky Diſturbance of Hacket the Enthuſiaſt enſuing, Udall was diſcouraged from making further Solicitation 'till the Lord-chancellor Hatton died. The Eaſter after which, he ſued for Liberty to go to Church, which was denied him, being a condemned Man: But, by the Lord-treaſurer's Means, getting a Copy of the Indictment, and a Pardon framed according to it, he was referr'd therewith to Archbiſhop Whitgift; Unto whom (ſays he) I both ſent divers Petitions, and dutiful Letters; and alſo got many of my Friends, both honourable Perſonages and others, to ſue to him; yet could not his Good-will be gotten. And when the Turkey Merchants applied to his Grace, that Udall might go over to Guinea, he would not conſent to that, unleſs they would be bound he ſhould not return 'till he had her Majeſty's Licenſe; but to this Udall would not conſent. And though Sir John Puckering, now Lord-Keeper, was at laſt moved to deal with the Archbiſhop, ſo that both promiſed to obtain Udall's Pardon of her Majeſty, and Liberty for the ſaid Voyage; yet Udall never enjoyed one or the other, for he died in Priſon before they were fully confirmed *.

Here we may give another Inſtance of Ralegh's friendly and generous Exerciſe of his Power and [121] Intereſt, for an old Officer in the Army, ſince there is no Date to it, that confines us to any particular Year. This Officer had a Sum of Money long owing him, it ſeems, from the Treaſury, and, knowing how well Ralegh was acquainted with the Juſtice of the Debt, no leſs than what Influence his Applications would be of for procuring it, prevailed on him to write to the Lord Treaſurer's Secretary, who was afterwards knighted, and well known by the Name of Sir Michael Hicks, that he might obtain his Lordſhip's Order for the Payment of the Money. Theſe are the Words of his Letter: I am moſt earneſtly to intreat you for this Gentleman, Captain Spring; that partly for Love, partly for honeſt Conſideration, you will further him with my Lord Treaſurer for a Debt of Three hundred Pounds, which her Majeſty owes him. It hath been long due; and he has got good Warrant for it; beſides, he has ſerved her Majeſty very long, and hath received many Wounds in her Service. Theſe Reaſons delivered by a Man of your Utterance, and having his good Argel at your Elbow to inſtruct you, I doubt not, but it will take good and ſpeedy Effect. (Concluding) I never wrote unto you for any Man, or in any Matter, wherein you ſhall more bind me unto you, than for this Bearer; and ſo not doubting of your aſſured Friendlineſs, I leave you to God; and remain your moſt aſſured loving Friend. In a Poſtſcript he ſays, Always remember you muſt deal conſcionably for my Sake, and I will requite you. Examples of this kind ſhew Men worthy of the Power they enjoy, and ſhine brighter in their Characters than many Actions of a more publick and magnificent Nature; Power being ſo often corrupted with Pride and other Paſſions, as frequently render the Poſſeſſors of it miſchievous, rather than beneficial to their Fellow-Creatures. But Ralegh, in theſe and [122] many other Inſtances, was ſo far from miſuſing, that, above the narrow Apprehenſions of Repulſe, or laying himſelf under Obligations, he appears to have exerted it in the moſt ſtrenuous and generous Manner, either for preventing or relieving the Diſtreſs of others, which moved the greater Compaſſion when his own Misfortunes brought him to Need, and yet to fail of the like liberal and ſucceſsful Mediation for himſelf. The Truth is, Ralegh was ſo famous in theſe Days, for ſuch like good Offices, that the Queen ſeems to have diſtinguiſhed him by a Title more honourable, in the proper Senſe it is to be here taken, than any other ſhe conferred upon him: for one Day, having told her he had a Favour to beg of her, When, Sir Walter, ſaid ſhe, will you ceaſe to be a Beggar? To which he anſwered, When your gracious Majeſty ceaſes to be a Benefactor. With great Juſtice therefore ſeems, a certain noted Author of theſe Times, to have adapted his Work to a Patron, when he dedicated a Diſcourſe upon Friendſhip, which he publiſhed not long before this Time, to Sir Walter Ralegh.

But Friendſhip made ſuch a rare and laſting Impreſſion on him, that it may be ſaid to have extended beyond the Life of the Object; and he well deſerves to be remembered in his Grave, who could leave us ſuch noble Patterns in memory of the Dead. But this Place requires only our notice of the Memorial he wrote, to clear from ſome Spaniſh Aſperſions, the F [...]me and Conduct of the valiant and renowned Sir Richard Greenville, in that bloody Expedition, where he made ſuch a glorious though untimely End. This brave Commander was Vice Admiral in the Lord Thomas Howard's Expedition, to intercept the Spaniſh Plate Fleet at the Iſles of Azores in its Return from America. The Engliſh [123] Squadron conſiſted of ſix of the Queen's Ships, ſix Victuallers of London, with two or three Pinnaces. They ſet out early 1591, and waited ſix Months at Flores, one of thoſe Iſlands, in Expectation of the ſaid Fleet. As there was, beſides the Engliſh Ships before numbered, one alſo of Sir Walter's in this Expedition, named Bark Ralegh, commanded by Captain Thynne; and as he employed ſome Time in the latter End of this Year to deſcribe that memorable Engagement they had with the Spaniards; the brief Abſtract I ſhall give thereof from his own Words, cannot be arraigned of Prolixity, nor perhaps of Digreſſion; ſince, beſides his Gratitude for the paſt Services of his heroick Kinſman, it ſo well diſplays his Sentiments at this Time of the religious Hypocriſies and Cruelties of their common Enemy. The King of Spain therefore, having had Intelligence of their waiting thus for his Indian Fleet, ſent an Armada to the Azores of fifty-three Sail to convoy it home, under the Command of Don Alphonſo Baçan. This Fleet was juſt in ſight of the Engliſh by then they had any warning of it; and they were ſo unprepared for its Reception, that many of their Crew were on Shore, providing Ballaſt, Water, and other Neceſſaries; and thoſe who were on board, were half of them, through Sickneſs, unfit for Service. The Spaniards were now ſo near at hand, that the Engliſh had ſcarce Time to weigh Anchor; and Greenville, in the Revenge, was the laſt upon the Place, being deſirous of receiving all his Crew aboard from the Iſland, whereof he had no leſs than ninety who were ſick and diſeaſed. So that, unable to recover the Wind, and having but one hundred ſound Men, he was perſuaded to cut his main Sail, caſt about, and truſt to the ſailing of the Ship; for the Squadron of Seville was on his Weather-bow: [124] But he, through the Greatneſs of his Spirit, utterly refuſed to turn from the Enemy; proteſting, he would rather die than be guilty of ſuch Diſhonour to himſelf, his Country, and her Majeſty's Ship; aſſuring his Company he would paſs through the two Squadrons in ſpite of them, and force thoſe of Seville to give him Way; which he performed upon divers of the foremoſt, who, as the Mariners term it, ſprung their Loof, and fell under the Lee of the Revenge: But while he had regard to thoſe who were neareſt, the huge San Philip, being in the Wind of him, and approaching, becalmed his Sails in ſuch a manner, that the Ship could neither make way, nor feel the Helm; ſo large and high charged was the Spaniſh Galleon, being of fifteen hundred Ton, carrying three Tire, of eleven pieces in each on a Side, and diſcharging eight foreright from her Chaſe, beſides thoſe of her Stern-ports. After the Revenge was thus entangled with this Philip, four others loofing up alſo, boarded her, two on the Larboard, and two on the Starboard. The Fight thus beginning at Three a Clock in the Afternoon, on the laſt of Auguſt the Year aforeſaid, continued very terrible all that Evening. But San Philip having received the lower Tire of the Revenge, charged with croſs-bar Shot, ſhifted with all Expedition, utterly miſliking her firſt greeting. Some ſaid ſhe founder'd hereupon; but this is uncertain. The Spaniſh Ships were filled with Soldiers; ſome having two hundred, beſides Mariners; ſome five, others eight hundred Men; in the Engliſh Ship there were only Mariners, with the Commanders Servants, and ſome Gentlemen Voluntiers. After many Exchanges of great and ſmall Shot, the Spaniards many times attempted to board the Revenge, but were as often beaten back into their own Ships, or into the Sea; and when a [125] London Victualler, who was under the Lee of the Revenge, offered to undertake any Service for her Aſſiſtance, Greenville bid him "Save himſelf, and leave him to his Fortune. The Fight thus continuing while the Day laſted, and ſome Hours of the Night, many of the Engliſh were ſlain; ſome of the Spaniſh Ships ſunk; and in many others there was great Slaughter: Greenville, though wounded in the beginning of the cloſe Fight, was never ſo diſabled as to forſake the upper Deck for eight Hours together; and then being ſhot into the Body with a Muſket, as the Wound was dreſſing, he was again ſhot into the Head, and his Surgeon at the ſame time wounded to Death. Still the Fight continued, and as faſt as the Spaniards were beaten off by the Revenge, others came in their Places; ſo that by Morning ſhe had ſuſtained, for fifteen Hours together, the Vollies, Boardings, and Entries of fifteen ſeveral Ships of War, and repulſed them all; beſides the reſt which battered her looſe and at a diſtance. But with the Light, increaſed the Diſcovery of her diſmal Condition; and the more irkſome was the one, in that it would not let her conceal the other from her ſurrounding Enemies *. Now was to be [126] ſeen nothing but the naked Hull of a Ship, and that almoſt a Skeleton, having received 800 Shot of great Artillery, and ſome under Water; her Deck covered with the Limbs and Carcaſſes of forty valiant Men, the reſt all wounded, and weltering in, or covered with their own Blood; her Maſts all beaten over-board, all her Tackle cut aſunder, her upper Works razed, and all in effect levelled with the Water; incapable of any further Management or Motion, but what the Billows gave her. Greenville, now finding their Diſtreſs irreparable, commanded the Ship to be ſunk, that the Spaniards might not carry a Splinter home as a Trophy of their dear-bought Victory; dear-bought indeed! The Admiral of the Spaniſh Hulks, and another great Galleon, called the Aſcenſion of Seville, being both ſunk by the ſide of the Revenge; another alſo in the Road of St. Michael; and a fourth run herſelf a-ground to ſave her Company. There were beſides ſlain and drowned in this Fight two eminent Spaniſh Commanders, and near a thouſand of their Men, as one of their own Officers, who was ſevered from the Fight by the enſuing Storm, and taken by a London Veſſel, confeſſed. Sir Richard exhorted the Remainder of his [127] Company to truſt in God's Mercy, and to none elſe; and, as they had thus long and reſolutely repulſed ſo many Enemies, that they would not now leſſen the Honour of their Country, by any Overtures to lengthen for a few Hours or Days their own Lives. Several joined in Opinion with him; but the Majority prevailed, who urged, the Spaniard would be as ready to entertain a Compoſition, as they to offer it; and that there were divers valiant Men yet living, who might do their Prince acceptable Service, and revenge this Action upon the Enemy; that the Ship could be of no Uſe either to the one or the other, for upon the firſt working of the Sea ſhe muſt needs ſink, being ſo cruſhed, rived, and leaky, having ſix Foot Water in the Hold, that ſhe could never remove out of the Place.

Accordingly the Spaniſh General Don Alphonſo Baçan yielded that all their Lives ſhould be ſaved, the Company ſent into England, and the better Sort only to pay a reaſonable Ranſom, free from all Gallies or Impriſonment. Though the Maſtergunner would have ſlain himſelf when he found their Reſolution thus by Reaſon over-borne; but that he was by Force with-held. Then the General ſent many Boats aboard the Revenge, and divers of the Engliſh ſuſpecting Sir Richard's deſperate Diſpoſition to blow up or ſink the Ship, ſtole away to the Spaniards. But the General prevailed upon him to remove out of the Revenge, being very unſavory, filled as it was, like a Slaughter-houſe, with the Bodies and Blood of the dead and wounded. Sir Richard told them, they might do with his Body what they pleaſed, for it was now of no Uſe to him; and, as he was carried out of the Ship he ſwooned, but revived again, and deſired the Company to pray for him. The General left nothing [128] unattempted for his Recovery; highly reſpecting the unconquerable Reſolution in ſo rare a Spectacle of conſummate and approved Intrepidity, who could make ſuch Reſiſtance for ſo long Time, and ſuch Havock upon ſuch an Armada, with a ſingle Ship and ſo few Men. Sir Richard lingered two or three Days, and then died aboard the General, who greatly bewailed his Loſs *; but the Revenge, with 200 Spaniards in her, being overtaken by the Storms aforeſaid, was ſunk with the others abovementioned at St. Michael's Iſland. In this Manner did they honour the Burial of that renowned Ship; and thus did ſhe to the laſt make good her Name upon them.

Ralegh had formed an Enterpriſe upon Panama, with a Deſign alſo of meeting the Spaniſh Plate-Fleet. The Scheme he laid down appeared ſo feaſible to her Majeſty, having provided no leſs than 13 Ships of his own and his Aſſociates, all well [129] manned, and plentifully furniſhed with Arms, Proviſions, and all other Neceſſaries, that ſhe added to them two of her own Men of War, named the Garland and Foreſight; and gave him a Commiſſion, conſtituting him General of the Fleet. The Honour of Lieutenant-general was given to Sir John Burgh, a Gentleman altogether worthy of the Command. And indeed all his Conſorts, Officers, Soldiers and Sailors, were ſuch as had given ſufficient Proof of their Valour in divers Services. With theſe Ships thus equipped, Ralegh departed in February, the Year aforeſaid, to the Weſt of England, there to ſtore himſelf with ſuch further Conveniences as he ſhould need; but the weſterly Winds blowing for a long Time contrary, bound him to keep Harbour ſo many Weeks, that the fitteſt Seaſon for his Purpoſe was expired, and much of his Proviſions conſumed. The Queen, underſtanding how unluckily he was detained, it being the 6th of May 1592, before Raleigh could put to Sea, ſhe ſent Sir Martin Forbiſher after him, who overtook him the next Day, with Letters of Revocation. But Ralegh finding his Honour ſo far engaged in the Undertaking of this Voyage, interpreting the Queen's Letters, as if her Commands had been propounded in Terms of Latitude, either to advance or retire at his own Diſcretion, would by no Means conſent to leave the Fleet, now under Sail. So he continued his Courſe upon the Seas, 'till he met with a ſhip belonging to Monſ. Gourdon, Governor of Calais, in which was one Mr. Nevel Davies, who was returned from a twelve Years Captivity in Spain; and who aſſured him, there was little Hopes of any Succeſs this Year in the Weſt-Indies; for the King of Spain had ſent expreſs Orders to all the Ports, both of the Iſlands and Terra Firma, that no Ships ſhould ſtir that Year, [130] nor any Treaſure be laid aboard for Spain. But neither this diſagreeable News, nor the other Diſcouragements, could deter him from proceeding; 'till on the 11th of May, when he was off Cape Finiſter, a moſt raging Tempeſt ariſing, ſo ſcattered the greater Part of the Fleet, and ſunk his Boats and Pinnaces, that, as the Reſt were driven and divided, Ralegh himſelf, in the Garland, was in great Danger of being ſwallowed up in the Sea. Hereupon, conſidering the Seaſon was too far gone for his Enterpriſe upon Panama, and his Victuals too much conſumed; that the ſame Conſumption might further diſable him from lying upon the Spaniſh Coaſt, or at the Iſlands, to meet with the Indian Fleet, for which he had received ſuch little Encouragement to wait, Ralegh made a Diviſion of his Fleet into two Squadrons, committing one under the Charge of Sir John Burgh, and the other to Sir Martin Forbiſher; and gave his Inſtructions for Sir Martin, in the Garland, with Capt. Gifford, Capt. Thinne, Capt. Greenvill, and others, to lie off the ſouth Cape to terrify and keep the Spaniards on their own Coaſt; while Sir John Burgh, with Capt. Croſs, Thomſon, and others, ſhould lie at the Azores for the Carracks from India. The Succeſs of theſe Directions was anſwerable to the excellent Judgment that contrived them. For the Spaniſh Admiral, receiving Intelligence that the Engliſh Fleet was cruiſing upon their Coaſt, gathered all his naval Power to watch Forbiſher, and defend the ſouthern Parts of Spain; while the Carracks, unguarded, were left a Prey to Sir John Burgh. Before the Fleet ſeparated, they met on the Spaniſh Coaſt with a great Biſcayan, called Sancta Clara, a Snip of 600 Ton; which, after a Fight for ſome Time, they maſtered, and found freighted with all Sorts of little Iron-work, valued by the Engliſh at [131] 6 or 7 thouſand Pounds; but of treble the value to the Spaniards. This, having cleared, they ſent to England. Then Sir John Burgh, in a Ship of Sir Walter Ralegh's, named the Roebuck, coaſting along towards the South Cape of St. Vincent; and, by the way ſpying a Sail, gave her chaſe; which being a Flyboat and good Sailor, drew him far ſouthward, before he could fetch her; at laſt ſhe came under his Lee, and ſtruck ſail. The Maſter confeſs'd a great Fleet was prepared at St. Lucar and Cadiz; for the Rumour of Ralegh's putting out ſtrong for the Weſt-Indies had ſo alarmed the King of Spain, that he raiſed this Fleet to oppoſe and encounter him; though looking for the Arrival of his Eaſt-India Carracks, he firſt ordered thoſe Ships to convoy them from the Azores; but perſuading himſelf if Ralegh's Fleet did make for the Weſt-Indies, that then the Iſlands would be infeſted only by ſome ſmall Men of War, which the Carracks of themſelves would be able to cope with, his Order was to Don Alphonſo de Baçan to purſue Ralegh's Fleet, and engage him, what Courſe ſoever he held: and the Engliſh ſoon found this Information true. For Sir John Burgh, as he returned to his Company, deſcried the Spaniſh Fleet to ſea-ward of him; which having likewiſe diſcovered him, made full Account to bring him into the Spaniſh Harbour; but he dexterouſly eſcaped them, and ſhaped his Courſe to the Azores, according to Ralegh's Directions. Here he took ſeveral ſmall Caravels; but learnt little Intelligence from them. Arriving at Flores on the 21ſt of June, and making to the Shore of Santa Cruz, he found them all in Arms; but, ſhewing a White Flag, he was accommodated by the Inhabitants with whatever he wanted. Here he learnt News of the Eaſt Indian Carracks, one whereof had [132] lately paſſed by for Liſbon, and that four more were behind. He made after, and ſoon diſcovered the [...]oremoſt, named the Santa Cruz; which was preſſed ſo cloſe upon by the Engliſh, that ſhe fired her ſelf; but they took, beſides ſome Spoil, certain Priſoners out of her, who confeſs'd, that within fifteen Days three other great Carracks would arrive at the ſame Iſland. Sir John, having taken Co [...]el with his Officers, departed ſix or ſeven Leagues to the Weſt of Flores, cauſing the Ships in his Company to ſpread themſelves North and South two Leagues diſtant from each other, by which Extenſion they could diſcover two whole Degrees. Thus they lay till the 3d of Auguſt, when Captain Thompſon firſt ſaw that prodigious great Carrack, called the Madre de Dios, or Mother of God, one of the greateſt Burden belonging to the Crown of Portugal. Captain Thompſon firſt attacked her, but with the loſs of ſeveral Men; then Sir John Burgh, in the Roebuck aforeſaid, intangled her; and Sir Robert Croſs faſtened himſelf to her at the ſame Inſtant: But Sir John was forced to diſengage a-while, for Fear of ſinking, being ſhot under Water. At laſt Croſs fell athwart her all alone, prevented her running aſhore to fire herſelf, as the other had done, and gave the Reſt Time to come up to his Succour; which, after he had fought with her three Hours, he received by the Lord Cumberland's Ships: And then having made a great Slaughter of the Spaniards, they boarded and poſſeſſed themſelves of her with little Difficulty.

This Prize was reckoned the greateſt and richeſt that ever had been brought into England; and when the News of her being taken arrived, Ralegh, after Con [...]ultation with Sir John Hawkins, wrote a Letter to the Lord-admiral, in theſe Words; Our [133] very good Lord, we have conferred together about the Eaſt-Indian Ship to be brought to Plymouth by Sir John Burgh; and, in our Opinions, ſhe can be no leſs worth than 500,000 l. being a Ship of ſo great Burden, and laden with ſo rich Commodities as appeareth ſhe is: Wherefore we have conſidered, that the Spaniſh Men of War, lying upon the Coaſt of Bretagne, hearing of ſo great a Prize taken from the King, or the Merchants of the Country; and, envying that ſuch a Benefit ſhould grow to us, to their Hindrance and Diſhonour, will endeavour by all poſſible means, being diſtant but a Day or Night's Sailing, either to recover the Ship again, or to burn her and all her Lading, rather than ſhe ſhall be deliver'd here; ſeeing that the Places of Defence where the Ship may remain, are not able to reſiſt their Power: In our Opinion therefore we think fit, and do pray your Lordſhip, that the three Ships of her Majeſty's which are appointed to keep the narrow Seas, may, by your Lordſhip's Letter and Directions, be appointed to go Weſtward, and there to guard the Indian Ship for a Time, until the Garland and ſome of the ſame Fleet be return'd, whoſe Arrival cannot be any long Time expected; or till ſome Order may be taken for the unlading or keeping of her otherwiſe; which we pray your Lordſhip may be done with ſome Expedition. And ſo we humbly take our Leave, this 27th of Auguſt 1592. Your Lordſhip's humbly at Commandment, W. Ralegh (and underneath) John Hawkins. By this Means this mighty Ship * was [134] brought ſafe into Dartmouth on the 7th of September following, where it daily drew vaſt Numbers of Spectators from all Parts to admire at the Hugeneſs of it, being far beyond the Model of the biggeſt Shipping then known among us either for War or Burden.

But as to the Lading, tho' Sir John Burgh did prudently ſeize upon the whole to her Majeſty's Uſe, to prevent all licentious Spoil; whereby the Treaſure brought home was ſufficient to recompenſe the Adventurers Coſt, and the Sailors Peril, however, the Dividends are not known, more than that her Majeſty had the largeſt Share; and though, through the Varieties thereof, our Nation was let into the Diſcovery of thoſe Merchandiſes, whereof we had before but an im [...]erfect Knowledge; yet the whole Cargo, when it came to belanded and valued in England, fell ſhort above two Thirds of the Computation which had been made by Ralegh and Hawkins, as above *. For a large Quantity of Jewels were never brought to Light; and ſo much of her other Goods was alſo purloin'd by the Sailors, Soldiers, and Officers, that at her Arrival in England, ſhe drew five Foot leſs Water than ſhe did when ſhe was firſt freighted at Cochin in the Eaſt-Indies. And indeed the Sailors boldly confeſs'd, [135] They had rather truſt their Souls to a merciful God by Perjury, than their Fortunes to the Hands of unmerciful Men.

The latter end of this Year, and Beginning of next, we meet with Sir Walter Ralegh in the Parliament-Houſe, whether return'd for a County or a Borough, and for which, does not at preſent particularly occur. A late Author of his Life obſerves, that his Speeches were full of Reaſon and Eloquence, no Man in his Days being more a Maſter of Language than himſelf; and Matter too, he might have added; none more ſatisfactorily confirming his Arguments with Facts and Experience than he did, even in his unpremeditated Speeches, no leſs than in the more deliberate Compoſitions of his Pen; ſo full of Obſervation he was upon all Times and Countries, and ſo readily he could apply it upon all Occaſions; which now won him great Regard, as a Speaker in the Houſe, and afterwards as an Author, to the whole World. Soon after the opening of the Seſſion, we find him upon the Committee for the Liberties and Privileges of the Members, to examine and make Report of all Caſes touching the Elections and Returns during the ſaid Seſſion of Parliament: Alſo in another againſt Popiſh Recuſants. And when the Bill for certain Subſidies to be granted her Majeſty was in Debate, and ſome Members were for having it expreſly diſtinguiſh'd in the Bill, that the ſaid Subſidies ſhould be for maintaining a War impulſive and defenſive againſt the Spaniard, that the Conqueſts we made over them might be legal and waarrantable; Sir Walter Ralegh ſeconded thoſe Speeches, and ſaid, He knew many, who held it not lawful in Conſcience, as the Time was, to take Prizes from the Spaniard; and he knew, that if it might be lawful and open War, there would be more voluntary Hands [136] to fight againſt the Spaniard than the Queen ſhould ſtand in need of to ſend to Sea. Accordingly he was appointed of the Committee for drawing the Articles and Preamble of the ſaid Bill. Further, when the Neceſſity of the ſaid Subſidy came to be enforc'd, Ralegh ſpake for it, not only (as he proteſted) to pleaſe the Queen, to whom he was infinitely bound above his Deſerts; but for the Neeeſſity be both ſaw and knew. He very well diſcover'd the great Strength of the King of Spain; and, to ſhew his Mightineſs, he told how he poſſeſs'd all the World; as alſo that his Malice and ill Purpoſe was evident to this Realm, he ſhewed how on every Side he had beleaguer'd us. That in Denmark, the King being young, had corrupted the Council and Nobility; ſo as it was very likely he would ſpeed himſelf of Shipping from thence. In the marine Towns of the Low-Countries, and in Norway, he laid in great Store of Shipping. In France, he had the Parliament Towns at his Command; in Britany, he had all the beſt Havens; and in Scotland, had ſo corrupted the Nobility, that he had promis'd them Forces to aſſiſt the Papiſts; that they were ready to join with any foreign Forces that would make them ſtrong, to be by themſelves and reſiſt others; for, as he thought, there were not ſix Gentlemen of that Country of one Religion. In his own Counry, there is all poſſible preparing; and he is coming with ſixty Gallies, beſides other Shipping, with Purpoſe to annoy us. We muſt then have no Ships, if he invade us riding at Anchor; all will be little enough to withſtand him. At his coming, he fully reſolveth to get Plymouth, or at leaſt to poſſeſs ſome of the Havens this Summer within our Land; and Plymouth is a Place of moſt Danger, for no Ordnance can be carried thither to remove him, the Paſſages will not give leave. Now the Way to defeat him, is to ſend a Royal Army to ſupplant him [137] in Britany, and to poſſeſs ourſelves there; and to ſend a ſtrong Navy to Sea, and to lie upon the Cape, and at Lambuck; to which Places come all his Ships with Riches from all Parts, and then they may ſet upon all that come. This we are able to do, and undoubtedly with fortunate Succeſs, if we undertake it. But ſome Diviſion ariſing upon the Queſtion how they ſhould make the Motion for this Supply to the Lords, Ralegh made ſo judicious a Diſtinction of the Cauſe thereof, and ſo clearly demonſtrated the erroneous Manner in which it had been propounded, that it appears plainly, the ſucceſsful Turn which follow'd thereupon was owing to him alone. After this Conference, ſeveral Forms of Proviſion were propos'd by way of treble Subſidies, and like proportionable Fifteenths and Tenths, with other Kinds of Benevolence: Sir Thomas Cecil was for three Subſidies to be paid in four Years, and to be charged upon Men of ten Pounds and upwards, to ſpare thoſe who were under. Sir Henry Knivet alledged the Poverty of our Country againſt the Reaſons uſed, and imputed that Poverty to the bringing in more foreign Wares, than we vented Commodities, whereby our Money was carried out of our Country, which was thus become like a Pond that was fed with a Spring, but having a Breach, through which more paſſed away than came in: Thereupon moved for a Survey to be taken of all Men's Lands and Goods in England, and ſo much to be yearly levied as might maintain the Queens Wars, the Proportion being ſet 100,000 Pounds yearly; or, if that was miſliked, every Man on his Word ſhould deliver in, to his Power, the Profits of his Lands and Goods; ſo a Proportion to be ceſs'd accordingly. To him who argued of the Poverty of the Land, from the Multitude of Beggars, Ralegh gave theſe Reaſons: That the broken [138] Companies in Normandy and the Low-Countries, who returned maimed higher, never went back again to the Towns from whence they came: For a Multitude of Clothiers, taking their Looms into their Hands, ſpun their Wool themſelves; and except we would work for them cheaper than they can make themſelves, they will ſet none to work. This engroſſing of ſo many Trades into their own Hands, beggars ſo many as uſually lived by the Trade. As for the ſurveying of ſo many Men's Eſtates, he thought it inconvenient. For many, being eſteemed richer than they are, would be found Beggars, and increaſe the Opinion of their Number, by loſing their Credit, which is now their Wealth. He further reported of his own Knowledge, that the Weſt-Country, ſince the Parliament begun, had taken from them the Worth of 440,000 Pounds; and that thoſe of Newcaſtle lay ſtill for fear, becauſe the Bourdeaux Fleet was taken this Year by the Enemy. For the Enemy approaching us, and being become our Neighbour, our Trades will decay every Day, and ſo our Poverty increaſes. Thus it is moſt certain; the longer we defer Aid, the leſs able we ſhall be to yield it; yet in the End, the greater Aid will be required; ſo ſparing them now, we ſhall charge them when they ſhall be leſs able to bear it: For it is moſt true, 100000 Pounds would have done the laſt Year, that which three will not now do; and three will do this Year, that which ſix will not do hereafter. In the Concluſion, he agreed to three Subſidies; in them, the Three-pound Men to be ſpared; the Sum which came from them, to be lev [...] upon thoſe of ten Pound and upwards; and the Payment to be ſpeedy. Mr. Francis Bacon aſſented to three Subſidies; but not to the Payments under ſix Years: But to his Reaſons of Difficulty and Danger in a ſpeedier Levy, which might hazard a double Peril, by making it four Shillings in the Pound, a [139] double Payment; Ralegh anſwer'd, I ſee no Reaſon that the Suſpicion of Diſcontentment ſhould croſs the Proviſion for the preſent Danger. The Time is now more dangerous than it was in Eighty-eight; for then the Spaniard coming from Spain, was to paſs dangerous Seas, and had no Place of Retreat or Relief if he fail'd: But now he has in Britany great Store of Shipping; a Landing place in Scotland; and Men and Horſes there as good as any we have. But for the Difficulty in getting this Subſidy, I think it ſeems more difficult by ſpeaking, than it would be in gathering. In the End, it was carried agreeable to his Propoſitions.

Soon after there was a Bill read in the Houſe againſt counterfeiting the Hands of Counſellors or principal Officers; and upon the ſecond reading, it was committed to Sir John Woolley and Sir Walter Ralegh, with others. But after a Meeting in the Middle Temple Hall, Sir John made Report to the Houſe, that himſelf, and the Reſidue of the Committee, upon the End of their Examination, did think it a very dangerous Bill; and not fit to paſs the Houſe. But the Bill againſt Aliens ſelling foreign Wares among us by Retail, produced ſeveral weighty Arguments and Speeches in the Houſe, which have been tranſmitted to us. Theſe Foreigners were Dutchmen, who had neſtled themſelves in St. Martins, antiently allow'd for a Sanctuary, and therefore ſtill had this Privilege: Here they practis'd Spinning and Weaving, to the great Detriment and Complaint of Merchants and regular Dealers in our own City; inſomuch that threeſcore Engliſh Retailers had been ruin'd by them ſince the laſt Parliament, to the Diminution, beſides their own private Subſtance, of the Queen's Subſidy and the publick Treaſure; 20000l. a Year at leaſt having been carried out of the Realm by them. They [140] had indeed ſome learned Council who pleaded for them at the Bar, and ſome of the Members ſpoke in their Behalf. Other Arguments were uſed; but againſt theſe, Ralegh concur'd with thoſe who thought that Denization ought not to circumvent Birth right; and that to behave ourſelves like Citizens to Foreigners, was but making ourſelves Strangers to our Neighbours. Whereas it is pretended (ſays he) that for Strangers, it is againſt Charity, againſt Honour, againſt Profit, to expel them; in my Opinion, it is no Matter of Charity to relieve them. For firſt, ſuch as fly hither have forſaken their own King; and Religion is no Pretext for them, for we have no Dutchmen here, but ſuch as come from thoſe Princes where the Goſpel is preach'd; yet here they live, diſliking our Church. For Honour: It is Honour to uſe Strangers as we be uſed among Strangers; and it is a Lightneſs in a Commonwealth, yea, a Baſeneſs in a Nation, to give a Liberty to another Nation which we cannot receive again. In Antwerp, where our Intercourſe was moſt, we were never ſuffer'd to have a Taylor or a Shoe-maker to dwell. Nay, at Milan, where there are Three hundred Pound Engliſhmen, they cannot ſo much as have a Barber among them. And for Profit; they are all of the Houſe of Almoigne, who pay nothing; yea, eat out our Profits, and ſupplant our own Nation. Cuſtom indeed they pay; paying Fifteen-Pence where we pay Twelve-Pence; but they are diſcharged of Subſidies. The Nature of the Dutchman is to fly to no Man but for his Profit; and they will obey no Man long; now under Spain; now under Mountfort; now under the Prince of Orange; but under no Governor long. The Dutchman, by his Policy, hath gotten Trading with all the World into his Hands; yea, he is now entring into the Trade of Scarborough-Fiſhing, and the Fiſhing of the Newfoundlands, [141] which is the Stay of the Weſt-Countries. They are the People that maintain the King of Spain in his Greatneſs; were it not for them, he were never able to make out ſuch Armies and Navies by Sea; it coſt her Majeſty 16000 l. a Year the maintaining of theſe Countries; and for all this, they arm her Enemies againſt her. Therefore, I ſee no Reaſon that ſuch Reſpect ſhould be given to them: And, to conclude; in the whole, no Matter of Honour, no Matter of Charity, no Profit in relieving them.

This Speech we may meet with in ſome modern Writings, quoted in Sir Walter Ralegh's Praiſe, both for his Knowledge in the Intereſt of his Country, and his unbiaſs'd Affection in exerting it. As for the Bill, he was one to whom it was committed, and who, after the Travels of the ſaid Committee upon it, offered it again to the Houſe with the addition of a Proviſo. On the 27th of March following, that is to ſay, in the Year 1593, it was read the third time; and, after many long Speeches, which are not ſpecify'd, paſſed upon the Queſtion, by the Diviſion of the Houſe, with the difference of fourſcore Voices; the Yeas being 162, the Noes 82. About a Week afterwards there was a Bill, for explaining a Branch in an Act to retain the Queen's Subjects in due Obedience, read; and many Speeches paſs'd in the Houſe before it was committed, through the many Imperfections in the Preamble and Body of the ſaid Bill. For it pretended a Puniſhment only of the Browniſts and other Sectaries; but, alledging nothing againſt them in particular, contained ſome enſnaring Clauſes that might comprehend more innocent Perſons. As the Speeches before Sir Walter Ralegh's, on this Occaſion, are not rehearſed, we can only gueſs at them, by what is preſerved of his; who ſaid, In my Conceit, the Browniſts are [142] worthy to be rooted out of a Commonwealth *; but what [143] Danger may grow to ourſelves if this Law paſs, were fit to be conſidered. For it is to be feared that Men not guilty will be included in it; and that Law is hard, that taketh Life, and ſendeth into Baniſhment; where Mens Intentions ſhall be judged by a Jury; and they ſhall be Judges what another means. But that Law, which is againſt a Fact, is but juſt; and puniſh the Fact as ſeverely as you will. If 2 or 3000 Browniſts m [...]et at the Sea, at whoſe Charge ſhall they be tranſported, or whither will you ſend them? I am ſorry for it, but I am afraid there are near 20000 of them in England; and when they are gone, who ſhall maintain their Wives and Children. A Committee was therefore appointed to reviſe and correct this Bill, among whom Ralegh is the foremoſt named: And being read the third Time, it paſſed upon the Queſtion.

This Year we met with a notable Libel in print, ſet forth by a Lover of his Country, as he calls himſelf, to expoſe certain Miniſters and Counſellors of State, who had been inſtrumental in framing that ſearching Proclamation againſt the Seminaries which was publiſhed about two Years before. For the King of Spain having lately founded an Engliſh Cloyſter at Valladolid, as a Nurſery to ſupply us with Treaſon and Rebellion; ſo many hopeful Stocks of that Species were ſoon tranſplanted into England, as occaſioned the ſaid Proclamation to extirpate them. Now this Anſwer was publiſhed to calumniate the ſuppoſed Authors of it; and as Ralegh appears, among other very good Company, to have his Share of the Slander therein; ſo he might probably have had a Hand in thoſe wholeſome Articles for the Safety of the Realm, which occaſioned it. For after this Libel has reviled the greateſt and wiſeſt Miniſters of the Nation, it ſeems to have reſerved the Quinteſſence for him, who had the Ability ſo many Ways to [144] cruſh the pernicious Purpoſes which were daily hatching by the viperous Brood which brought it forth. For Ralegh had given ſuch Proofs of his ſound and ſincere Affection to Religion, that his Sentiments were made uſe of to reform or regulate even the Profeſſors of it; yet now his Head muſt be turn'd ſo exceſſively to its Detriment, as to provoke this Libeller's pious Spleen againſt nothing leſs than Sir Walter Ralegh's School of Atheiſm; compendiouſly inſinuating, as if truly he was not ſatisfied with being a Diſciple, but ſet up for a Doctor in his Faculty, and won young Gentlemen into his ſaid School; wherein the Old and New Teſtament were jeſted at, and Scholars taught to ſpell God backwards. Then he complains, what a miſerable Thing it is, that her Majeſty ſhould make Laws and Proclamations according to theſe Mens Senſes and Opinions. But there may need little Pains to blunt the Point of this Dart, when we ſhall further conſider that it came out of a Jeſuitical Quiver; for by whom ſhould it be levelled againſt him but Robert Parſons, the notorious Traitor and Incendiary! However deeply he diſguis'd himſelf into a Lover of his Country. Nevertheleſs, ſome ten Years after, when Ralegh was trampled down by the Court, and there was a Turn of State to ſerve, this might be a good ſerviceable Obloquy enough to upbraid him with, and depreciate him in the Eye of the Populace. But theſe prejudiced Repreſentations will probably be thought of ſo little Authority, that the Reaſons and Matter of Fact which have been produc'd in a poetical Performance, may be ſufficien to make thoſe Stains even befriend his Reputation and brighten it in clearing them away. *

[144]
[...]

[145] Indeed there is a traditional Author who ac [...]unts for the Grounds of this Aſperſion, in the llowing Words: Sir Walter Ralegh was the firſt [...]s I have heard) who ventured to tack about, and il aloof from the beaten Tract of the Schools; and ho, upon the diſcovery of ſo apparent an Error as Torrid Zone, intended to proceed in an Inquiſition [146] after more ſolid Truths: till the Mediation of ſome, whoſe Livelihood lay in hammering Shrines for this ſuperannuated Study, poſſeſſed Queen Elizabeth that ſuch Doctrine was againſt God, no leſs than her Father's Honour; whoſe Faith (if he owned any) was grounded upon School-Divinity: whereupon ſhe chid him; who was (by his own Confeſſion) ever after branded with the Title of an Atheiſt, though a known Aſſertor of God and Providence. That he was ſuch Aſſertor, ſeems to be affirmed by an Author of his Acquaintance, who introduces the Apparition of Sir Walter, ſpeaking to him in this Manner. Thou well knoweſt that the World hath, at ſundry Times, caſt a foul and moſt unjuſt Aſperſion upon me for my preſumed denial of a Deity; from which abominable and horrible Crime I was ever moſt free; and not any Man now living better knows the ſame than thyſelf; in whoſe Preſence I was often accuſtomed highly to praiſe and eſteem the Book of Leſſius, written in Proof of the Being of a Deity. So requeſts, that he would tranſlate the ſame into Engliſh, which I myſelf, ſays the Ghoſt, had done, if cruel Fate had not untimely cut off the Thread of my Mortality; and let the Title bear my Name; that ſo the Readers may acknowledge it was done by my Sollicitation. Then the ſaid Tranſlator of that Book ſays in his own Perſon to the Reader It is well known that Sir Walter was a Man of great natural Parts; and yet was ſuſpected of the moſt foul and execrable Crime of Atheiſm; how truly God and himſelf only knows; yet I have reaſon to think it a falſe Aſperſion. If thus much is ſaid of Ralegh by an Author who knew him; what Credit ſhall we pay to another who wrote many Years later? Never knew him, produces no Authority for the Principles he charges upon him; yet pretends to give us the Tutor's Name from whom he [147] imbibed them; and that, a Man of no leſs Learning and Merit than the famous Mr. Thomas Hariot? This was that Engliſh Philoſopher, from whoſe illuſtrious Diſcoveries, he, who was the Glory of the French Philoſophers, is not denied to have borrowed much of the Light wherewith he ſhone *: This was that excellent Mathematician, who, ſays our Author Wood aforeſaid, coming to the Knowledge of this heroick Knight Sir Walter Ralegh, was entertained by him in his Family, who allowed him a yearly Penſion, and was inſtructed by him at leiſure Hours in that Science. This was that virtuous and religious Man, who, being ſent over by Sir Walter Ralegh with his firſt Colony to Virginia, but did not bear him Company, as the ſaid Author miſtakes, to ſurvey the Bounds of the Engliſh Diſcoveries, with the Commodities and Cuſtoms of the Country, did firſt communicate the Goſpel to thoſe heathen Inhabitants; and, in every Town where he came, explained to them the Contents of the Bible; declaring, that therein was ſet forth the true and only God, and his mighty Works; that therein was contained the true Doctrine of Salvation through Chriſt; with many Particulars of Miracles and chief Points of Religion, as I was able then to utter (continues he) and thought fit for the Time. And though I told them the Book, materially [148] and of itſelf, was not of ſuch Virtue as I thought they did conceive, but only the Doctrine therein contained; yet would many be glad to touch it, to embrace it, to kiſs it, to hold it to their Breaſts and Heads, and ſtroke over all their Bodies with it, to ſhew their hungry deſire of that Knowledge which was ſpoken of. Yet this is the Man whom the above-cited Anthony Wood charges with having had ſtrange Thoughts of the Scripture; with undervaluing the old Story of the Creation; with never believing that trite Poſition Ex nihilo nihil fit; with making a philoſophical Theology, wherein he caſt off the Old Teſtament; ſo that conſequently the New would have no Foundation. Further, with being a Deiſt, and imparting his Doctrine to the Earl of Northumberland, into whoſe Service Ralegh had recommended him, and of whom he alſo received a yearly Penſion of 120 l. Laſtly, with infuſing thoſe Principles likewiſe into Sir Walter Ralegh himſelf, when he was compiling his Hiſtory of the World. This laſt Inſinuation, and probably all the reſt, is ſurely a manifeſt Slander, as Wood himſelf muſt have owned, if he had ſufficiently read that Hiſtory of the World; where Sir Walter Ralegh has, in many Places, given ſtronger Evidences of his Chriſtian Faith, than any of his Detractors ever did of theirs.

As for Ralegh, what might not a little ſharpen theſe Detractions againſt him, was perhaps a Grant about this Time made him from the Crown of ſome Church Lands; a Courſe of Reward uſual with Queen Elizabeth towards ſuch as had performed any conſiderable Services for the State. The Story, as we are forced to gather it from thoſe Authors, by whom it has not been over-favourably told, is, That about the Year 1594, the Biſhop of Salisbury, Dr. John Coldwell, who had been bred [149] a Phyſician, gave his See a ſtrong Purge, by alienating the Mannor of Sherborne to Sir Walter Ralegh. Sir John Harrington, ſpeaks of an ominous Preſage, to make his Tale as affecting as he can to Prince Henry, and inſinuate the Diſpleaſure even of Heaven againſt Sir Walter Ralegh; where he obſerves, That Sir Walter, uſing often to ride Poſt in theſe Days, upon no ſmall Employments, between Plymouth and the Court, when Sherborne Caſtle being right in the Way, he caſt ſuch an Eye upon it, as Ahab did upon Naboth's Vineyard; and once above the reſt being talking of it; of the Commodiouſneſs of the Place; of the Strength of the Seat; and how eaſily it might be got from the Biſhoprick; ſuddenly, over and over came his Horſe; that his very Face, which was then thought a very good Face, ploughed up the Earth where he fell. This Fall was ominous, I make no queſtion, (ſays he) as the like was obſerved in the Lord Haſtings, &c. but his Brother Adrian would needs have him interpret that, not as a Courtier, but as a Conqueror, it preſaged the quiet Poſſeſſion thereof. And this, through the Queen's Favour, came to paſs: For after Dr. John Piers was tranſlated to York, this Dr. Coldwell was elected to ſucceed him in the See of Saliſbury; but it lay vacant three Years: in which dangerous Juncture for denial, all the Doctor's Church-Preferments being diſpoſed of, yet before his Election was confirmed, Sir Walter Ralegh importuned him to paſs Sherborne to the Crown, and effected it; ſo ſhot the good old Man (as one of them phraſes it) between Wind and Water; though indeed (confeſſed) a good round Rent was reſerved to the Biſhoprick. Then Sir Walter begged the ſame of the Queen, and obtained it; much after the ſame Method that Sir William Killigrew got the Mannor of Crediton from the Church of Exeter, by the [150] Conſent of Biſhop Babington. Ralegh embelliſhed his Sovereign's Bounty with great Magnificence and Commendation; not that he was in danger thereby of falling under the Remark he has made on common Builders of ſumptuous Seats, That Men are rather known by their Houſes, than their Houſes by them. Yet his elegant Taſte in Building is ſufficiently atteſted by an Author who ſurveyed the Improvements he made upon this Eſtate when they were freſh and in their Splendour, and who tells us, That the Queen having granted the Fee-farm of Sherborne to Sir Walter Ralegh, he began to build the Caſtle very fairly; but altering his Purpoſe, he built in the Park adjoining a most fine Houſe, which he beautified with Orchards, Gardens, and Groves of much Variety and great Delight; ſo that, whether you conſider the Pleaſantneſs of the Seat, the Goodneſs of the Soil, or other Delicacies belonging to it, it reſts (ſays he) unparallele [...] by any in theſe Parts. How he came afterwards to be juggled out of it, may alſo ſufficiently appear when we arrive at the latter Part of his Life. But here we may take an Opportunity of remembring a Plantation of his, which is ſomewhat obſervable. A late Author mentions it with reſpect to him, but in a diſtant Manner; where, telling us, That Beddington, near Croydon in Surrey, is a neat curious Seat, built by Sir Francis Carew; he further adds, The Orchards and Gardens are very pleaſant, and eſpecially famous for the Orange Trees, which have now grown there above theſe hundred Years; being planted in the open Ground, under a moveable Court, during the Winter Months: they were the firſt that were brought into England, by a Knight of that noble Family; who deſerves no leſs Commendation, than Lucullus met with for bringing Cherry and Filbert-Trees out of Pontus into Italy; [151] for which he is celebrated by Pliny and others *. Now it has been a conſtant Tradition at Beddington, that this Knight of that noble Family was Sir Walter Ralegh, who was allied thereto, if not otherwiſe, by the laſt of that Sirname's adopting his near Kinſman, a Throgmorton, to be his Heir, on Condition that he would aſſume the Name and Arms of Carew; and how Ralegh became related to the Throgmortons, will in a little Space appear. But that we might not here want ſuch further Confirmation, of the firſt Planter of that famous Orangery, I have been obliged with the Gentleman's Anſwer to the Enquiry, who now dwells at [152] the Seat; and his Words are, 'Tis the common Opinion of this Family, that Sir Walter Ralegh, who was related to it, brought over and planted the old Orange Trees here. But in the Houſe they preſerved a fine Cabbin Bed which was his, having Furniture of green Silk, and Legs carved like Dolphins, gilt with Gold. In ſhort, the Seat was now ſo frequented, that not only Raleigh and other Courtiers, but the Queen received here many agreeable Entertainments *; for ſome of which ſhe could not eſcape the Cenſure of her jeſuited Enemies.

As to the Seat at West Horſeley in Surrey, there is good Authority that it was in the Poſſeſſion of his Son, if not his own; and in the Hall of that Houſe, there are in ſeveral Places of the Walls and Cieling the Arms of Ralegh ſtill viſible. But there is a Houſe no farther from London than Iſlington, about a Bow's Shot on this Side the Church, which, though I think it has no ſuch Evidences remaining upon its Walls, Cielings, or Windows, that will prove him to have been its Owner, the Arms that are ſeen there, above a hundred Years old, being of a ſucceeding Inhabitant; is yet popularly reported to have been a villa of his. For the preſent Tenant affirms, His Landlord was poſſeſſed [153] of ſome old Account Books, by which it appears beyond all doubt this Houſe and fourteen Acres of Land, now let at about ſeventy Pounds per Annum, did belong to Sir Walter Ralegh; and that the oldeſt Man in the Pariſh would often declare his Father bad told him, Sir Walter purpoſed to wall in that Ground, with intention to keep ſome of his Horſes therein; further, that ſome Huſbandmen ploughing up the ſame a few Years ſince, found ſeveral Pieces of Queen Elizabeth's Money, whereof they brought, whatever they might reſerve to themſelves, about fourſcore Shillings to their Maſter, the ſaid Tenant, in whoſe Hands I have ſeen of the ſaid Coin. As for the Houſe, it is, and has been for many Years, an Inn; ſo that what it was, is not clearly to be judged from its preſent outward Appearance, it being much impaired, or very coarſely repaired, and diminiſhed perhaps from what it might be when Perſons of Diſtinction lived in it. However, there are within fide ſome ſpacious Rooms; the Parlour was painted round the uppermoſt Part of the Wainſcot in about a dozen Pannels with Scripture Hiſtories; but now ſo old and decayed, as to be ſcarcely diſtinguiſhable. There is alſo a noble Dining-Room, the Cieling whereof is all over wrought in plaſtick or fret Work, with Repreſentations of the Five Senſes; and the Chimney-piece, with the Three principal Chriſtian Virtues. But the Arms in the Window, as well as in that of the Hall, are by the preſent Inhabitants erroneouſly called Sir Walter Ralegh's; there being a Date under one of the Coats, which ſhews it was aneal'd ſix Years after his Death. So that we are not ſure the Decorations aforeſaid were done by his Direction, or that others more rich and elegant were not in their ſtead before them. As for his Dwellings in London, we have read before that he had Apartments in the [154] Court at Somerſet Houſe, and ſhall read hereafter of ſome Acquaintance reſorting to him at Durham Houſe in the Strand; that he had a Houſe by the Thames Side, which might be the ſame; and another at St. James's, or Apartments alſo in the Court there.

The Truth is, Sir Walter Ralegh did not live ſo long at Court, and ſo much about the dazzling Beauties in it, without having the Wings of his Glory, at laſt, ſomewhat ſing'd in the Flames thereof; yet Love, which in ſome great Courtiers of thoſe Times, was the grand Buſineſs of their Life, ſeemed only an Interlude in his. There was among the Queen's Maids of Honour a beautiful young Lady (as her Picture repreſents her) named Elizabeth, Daughter of Sir Nicholas Throgmorton, an able Stateſman and Ambaſſador, whoſe Negociations and Characters are recorded both by the French and Scotch, as well as Engliſh Hiſtorians of thoſe Times. With this Lady, Ralegh had, it ſeems, an Amour; and, as he was a Man of nervous Addreſs, won her Heart even to the laſt Favour incluſive. This Intimacy came at laſt to the Queen's Knowledge; whether enviouſly betrayed by any female Confident, as ſome might apprehend, from a Character Ralegh would beſtow upon the Ladies of the Privy-Chamber and Bed-Chamber; being wont to ſay, They were like Witches who could do hurt, but could do no good; or whether the Intrigue could not be long concealed for the Fruits of it, as ſome, who manifeſtly ſlander Ralegh in other Particulars, have not ſcrupled to ſuggeſt, the Reader has it in his Choice to believe. But in ſuch Colours this Matter of devirginating a Maid of Honour was heightened, that Ralegh was out of Favour again; alſo in Confinement for ſeveral Months; and when enlarged, forbidden the Court; whence the Lady alſo was diſmiſſed [155] from her Attendance. Yet, as heinous as this Miſdemeanour was in Ralegh, her Majeſty did not puniſh it in Leiceſter, Eſſex, and other Courtiers, noted in their Days for ſuch Intrigues; eſpecially the former, who turned off Douglas Sheffield, by whom he had a Son, to marry the Earl of Eſſex's Mother. But Ralegh very readily made the moſt honourable Reparation he could, by marrying the Object of his Affection. It appears they lived together ever after in the moſt exemplary Degree of conjugal Harmony; and when he was in his greateſt Troubles, there are Teſtimonies from one, who was otherwiſe none of his greateſt Friends, of her extraordinary Diligence and Fidelity in making Intereſt and Applications to aſſuage them. What his Thoughts were of a married Life, in compariſon with a ſingle one, may ſomewhat appear in that Obſervation he made upon a certain Nobleman's growing plump after Matrimony, who was meagre before; for another Perſon in Company remarking thereupon, that it fared with him contrary to what it did with other married Men, who uſually at firſt became lean after it; Ralegh very pleaſantly obviated the Rarity, by ſaying, Why, there is no Beaſt, that, if you take him from the Common, and put him into the Several, but he will grow fat. Many Years afterwards, when Ralegh wrote his Inſtructions to his Son, he ſufficiently explained this Sentiment in the grave and paternal Manner he is then writing, for his Conduct in the Choice of a Wife; which Topick he concludes, with adviſing him to beſtow his Youth ſo, that he may have comfort to remember it when it has forſaken him. And, That his Son would evermore care to be beloved by his Wife, than be beſotted on her. That if he cannot forbear to Love, yet forbear to Link. However, approves of a mature and ſettled [156] Choice at laſt, even while he is upon the Stage of his Virility. For, believe it, the young Wife betrayeth the old Huſband; and ſhe that had thee not in thy Flower, will deſpiſe thee in thy Fall. But not to marry for Beauty only; left thou bind thyſelf for Life, to that which perchance will never laſt or pleaſe one Year. Nor yet an uncomely Woman; as much regard being due at leaſt to our own Iſſue as to any other Race of Creatures; and Comelineſs in Children is Riches, if nothing elſe be left them. He remains pretty ſafe in this Opinion from many Cenſures by the hard-favoured Part of the Sex, becauſe he knew that few Ladies would be poſitive upon this Head in their Right to reprove him; nor will Widows believe he has treated them with Rigour, while they remain in that State, ſince he has ſaid, Leave not thy Wife to be a Shame unto thee after thou art dead; but that ſhe may live according to thy Eſtate; eſpecially if thou haſt few Children, and thoſe provided for. Though he does alſo further ſay, Leave her no more than of Neceſſity thou muſt, but only during her Widowhood; for if ſhe Love again, let not her enjoy her ſecond Love in the ſame Bed wherein ſhe loved thee; nor fly to future Pleaſures with thoſe Feathers which Death hath pulled from thy Wings. Not that he was averſe to ſecond Marriages, for he adviſed his own Wife to marry again, when he was in Expectation of being ſuddenly divided from her for ever. Many other weighty Admonitions may be found relating to that Sex among his Writings, ſome of which we meet with, quoted by our moſt accompliſhed Humaniſts and Criticks in the Manners and Paſſions of Life, as from an Author who had read their Hearts thro' all their Veils and Diſguiſes: But one of thoſe Writers, tho' he allows him all the advantageous Views of Life through ſuch a Variety of Scenes; as having [157] lived in Courts and Camps; travelled through many Countries; ſeen many Men under ſeveral Climates, and of as various Complexions; yet thinks (in which every Body will not agree) he ſpeaks of our Impotence to reſiſt the Wiles of Women, in very ſevere Terms; where Ralegh has upon the ſolid Ground of the greateſt Examples admoniſhed us, to what fatal Inconveniences Mankind is allured by their reſtleſs Curioſity of knowing what is unfit for their Knowledge, and the prevailing Expedients to gratify it of diſſimulate Sorrow and Unquietneſs.

While Ralegh was under the Diſpleaſure aforeſaid, and in Retirement, he projected a further Removal from the Court; the better by that Diſtance, and ſome memorable Exploit, to allay the Malice of his Enemies, and recover his Soveraign's Love. Some thought this an impolitick Courſe; as if his foreign Actions could not work ſo effectually to his Advantage, as the Applications of his Adverſaries to his Diſparagement. And hereupon Sir Robert Naunton ſays, That finding his Favour declining, and falling into a Receſs, he undertook a new Peregrination to leave that Terra infirma of the Court, for that of the Wars, and by declining himſelf, and by abſence to expel his and the Paſſion of his Enemies; which in Court (ſays he) was a ſtrange Device of Recovery; but that he knew there was ſome ill Office done him, that he durſt not attempt to mind any other Ways than by going aſide, thereby to teach Envy a new Way of Forgetfulneſs, and not ſo much as to think of him: Howſoever, he had it always in Mind never to forget himſelf; and his Device took ſo well, that at his return he came in, as Rams do by going backwards, with the greater Strength; and ſo continued to the laſt great in her Grace. Thus alſo ſays another Author, His Enemies of greater Rank kept him under; ſometimes in, ſometimes out; and then he would wiſely [158] decline himſelf out of the Court-road: And then you found him not but by Fame; in Voyages to the Weſt-Indies, Guiana, New Plantations, Virginia, or in ſome Expeditions againſt the Spaniards. And thus writes a third to the ſame Purpoſe: 'Tis obſervable, that Sir Walter Ralegh was in and out at Court ſo often, that he was commonly called the Tennis Ball of Fortune which ſhe delighted to ſport with. His Enemies perpetually brought him into Diſgrace with his Miſtreſs, and his Merit in a little Time reſtored him again to her Favour: And as ſhe always grew cold to the Earl of Eſſex after Abſence; ſo ſhe ever received Ralegh with greater Marks of her Eſteem; and he was too hard for his Rivals by the very Means which they intended for his Deſtruction. Certainly he deſerved ſuch good Fortune, beyond all others, of a Reſtitution to royal Favour, who coul [...] ſo much more hazardouſly and heroically than any of them aſpire to earn it; as now he abundantly manifeſted, in that grand and gallant Undertaking to diſcover and conquer the large, rich, and beautiful Empire of Guiana; an Enterprize which had baffled the repeated Efforts of ſome of the ableſt and moſt renowned Captains and Cavaliers in Spain for near 100 Years paſt: for, in one of their own Authors; we may read the Names of many brave Commanders, and their Commendations for the Miſeries they endured, who within that Space had trod this Maze, and loſt themſelves, with ſome, 500, ſome 1000 Men apiece, in finding out this Country. And yet none of all their own Authors have more nobly and liberally celebrated theſe, and other ſuch like Adventurers of the Spaniſh Nation, than Ralegh himſelf has done.

For Ralegh, induſtrious in diving into the Cauſes of ſo many Failures, having informed himſelf what ambient Courſes the preceding Adventurers had [159] taken to arrive at the Heart of the Country they ſought, and which was the ſhorteſt Way to make a ſucceſsful Diſcovery, found that moſt of the Spaniſh Attempts in theſe Parts had failed, through the Mutinies and Diſcords which they had fomented among themſelves; as moſt of their Conqueſts in others, were much owing to the like Factions among the Americans: And if there was not an expert Soldier or Seaman but he conſulted (as one Author obſerves upon his Character in general) nor a printed or manuſcript Diſcourſe but he peruſed; whereby it came to paſs, there were not exacter Rules or Principles for both Services then he drew: Much more may we believe he now particularly made Uſe of theſe Helps and Lights to draw thoſe Rules and Directions by which this Year (laſt mentioned, 1594) he gave to an old Officer, Capt. Whiddon, whoſe Experience he had before tried, for a Voyage to the Country aforeſaid: And this ſame Year that Captain alſo returned from thence, with ſeveral inducing Confirmations of the Grandeur and Opulency of Guiana, having learnt the ſame from ſome of the grand Caſiques, or principal Rulers, upon the Borders thereof; but not without Complaints of ſome barbarous Treachery from the Spaniſh Governor, who had then got ſome Footing there; and, after promiſes of ſuffering the Engliſhmen to furniſh themſeves with what Supplies they wanted, decoyed ſeveral of them to their Deſtruction. Ralegh had thus more Spurs than one, inciting him to viſit theſe Regions in Perſon. And now this golden Country made ſuch Invitations, he chearfully determined, in Queſt thereof, though through an Ocean of Difficulties, to waſh away the Malice of his Adverſaries at Court, and render his Character more impenetrable againſt the little Cenſures which ſwarm in that Theatre of Circumvention [160] to ſting and feſter ſuperiour Merit: With ſuch like Views Ralegh very ſpeedily fitted *out a Fleet at a great Expence; though the Lord Admiral Howard and Sir Robert Cecyl were at the further Charge of augmenting it.

We may diſtinguiſh five Ships under him, beſides Barges, Wherries, and other neceſſary Tenders, in his own excellent Narrative of this Voyage. Whence we underſtand, the Ship himſelf went in was his own, which he does not name; but the Lion's Whelp, which was the Lord Admiral's, was commanded by Captain George Gifford; Captain Keymis had the Command of a Galego, beſides a Bark, which was committed to Captain Croſs, and another to Captain Calfield. The whole Number of Men in this Fleet is not mention'd; but the ſelect Company of Officers, Gentlemen and Soldiers, he us'd in his Diſcoveries, exceeded not 100. Thus prepar'd, he departed from Plymouth on the Sixth of February following, and made to the Grand Canaries, [161] and ſo to Tenerif, where he waited a-while for the Lion's Whelp, and for Captain Amais Preſton. But this Captain diſappointed him, and went upon another Adventure, which proved ſome Diſadvantage in the Proſecution of his Diſcoveries. After ſeven or eight Days, not ſeeing them, he proceeded for Trinidad with his own Ship and Captain Croſs's only (for the Galego which ſet out with them linger'd behind on the Coaſt of Spain) They reach'd that Iſle on the 22d of March, and caſt Anchor at Point Curiapan, which the Spaniards call'd Punta de Gallo, ſituate in eight Degrees or thereabouts. In the four or five Days he continued here, he came not to the Speech of any Indian or Spaniard. On the Coaſt he ſaw a Fire, but for fear of the Spaniards none of the Indians dared to approach him. Then Ralegh, in his Barge, coaſted cloſe along the Shore, and landed in every Cove, the better to know the Iſland, while his Ships kept the Channel. From hence he remov'd in a few Days up North-Eaſt, to recover that Place the Spaniards call Puerto de los Eſpannoles, but the Inhabitants Conquerabia; and as before (revictualling his Barge) he left the Ships, and kept by the Shore, that he might better ſpeak with the Inhabitants, and obſerve the Rivers, Watering-Places, and Ports in the Iſland; of all which he took Draughts as he paſſed along, which he reduced at laſt to one general Map. At Parico he found a Freſh-water River, and at Terra de Brea, another Port, call'd by the Natives Piche, great Quantities of very good Oyſters growing upon the Branches of certain Trees, here ſo numerous, that he travell'd for a dozen Miles together under them; which enabled him afterwards to rectify the antient Accounts of this Tree, and the fond Conceits of [162] ſome Moderns, that it was the Tree of Knowledge. *In ſhort, he coaſted three Parts of the Iſle of Trinidad, in the Month he ſtaid there for Captain Preſton, the more exactly to make his Draught thereof aforeſaid. At Puerto de los Eſpannoles he met with his Ships, and found a Company of Spaniards keeping Guard at the Deſcent, who, in doubt of their own Strength, offer'd Signs of Peace. He ſent Captain Whiddon to parley with them, whom he afterwards left buried in the Iſland to his great Grief, being a Man, ſays Ralegh, moſt honeſt and valiant. From ſome of the Spaniſh Soldiers, whom he found Means to make free of their Tongue by the Help of Wine; and from one of the Indian Rulers, named Cantyman, he gather'd what Strength the Spaniards were of, and how far it was to the City they had built under their Governor Don Antonio de Berreo. Here he found Occaſion of ſtaying a-while; both to have ſome Reckoning with Berreo for his treacherous Dealings with the Engliſh under Whiddon; and to learn alſo the Strength, Riches, and Paſſages to ſeveral other Parts of the Country. But when Ralegh was credidibly inform'd that the Spaniſh Governor had ſent for a Recruit of Soldiers, and how lamentably the Natives ſuffer'd under his Cruelties; that the very Lords of the Country were made his Slaves; that he had put one of them, named Morequito, to Death; that ſeveral others were then lying in Chains, and languiſhing under the moſt exquiſite Tortures, he found ſufficient Occaſion not only to revenge the Loſs of his Countrymen, but a good Opportunity to gain the Hearts of the Indians, by attempting [163] to reſcue them from this Yoke of Tyranny: Therefore he boldly ſet upon the Corps du Garde in the Duſk of the Evening; and having put them to the Sword, advanced with a hundred Men, and by Break of Day took their new City call'd San Joſeph, which, at the Entreaty of the Indians, he ſet on Fire. Then were the Natives in Confinement, ſet at Liberty. Among them were five Caſiques, or petty Kings in thoſe Parts. Theſe, all bound together in one Chain, almoſt dead with Famine, and waſted with Torments; having had their naked Bodies baſted or dropp'd over with burning Bacon; Ralegh alſo, to his great Reputation, deliver'd from their Captivity; and ſeveral Years after, when this, with Ralegh's other noble Acts among theſe Indians, was mention'd by ſome of our Engliſh Adventurers to Guiana, it was freſhly retain'd and gratefully acknowledg'd by them to his Honour; when alſo one of their braveſt Princes, who had been in England, and chriſten'd Ragapo, came above a hundred Miles to viſit them, for the great Love he bore to Ralegh; manifeſtly ſhewing, how durably he had engag'd their Affection and Deſires for his Return to be their Ruler and Protector. But for the Governor, who had impriſon'd ſo many of them, he was now become a Priſoner himſelf; and Ralegh, by his courteous Treatment of him, reaped the Fruit of that Knowledge and Experience he had gather'd in the many Years he had conſum'd, with great Sums of Money, upon the Diſcovery of Guiana. The ſame Day that Ralegh made this Conqueſt, arrived Captain Gifford and Captain Keymis, and in their Ships divers Gentlemen and others, which to his little Army was a great Succour and Solace. Then proceeding upon his Diſcovery, Ralegh firſt call'd all the Chiefs of the Iſland together, who were Enemies to the Spaniards; [164] for ſome of them Berreo had brought out of other Countries, and planted there, to eat out and waſte the Natives; then by his Indian Interpreter, whom he carried out of England, he made them underſtand, he was the Servant of a Queen, who was the greateſt Caſique of the North, and a Virgin, who had more Caſiqui under her than there were Trees in that Iſland: That ſhe was an Enemy to the Caſtellani, in Regard of their Tyranny and O [...]reſſion; and having freed all the Coaſts of the Northern World from their Servitude, had ſent him to free them alſo; and withal to defend the Country of Guiana from their Invaſion and Conqueſt. Then he ſhew'd them her Majeſty's Picture, which they ſo admir'd and honour'd, that it had been eaſy for him to have made them idolatrous thereof. The like and larger Speeches he made in ſolemn Manner to the reſt of the Nations, both in his Paſſage to Guiana and to thoſe of the Borders: So as in that Part of the World the Queen of England's Fame was diffus'd with great Admiration. This done, Ralegh return'd to Curiapan, and tho' he had learn'd of Berreo, that Guiana was ſome hundred Miles further than the Accounts he receiv'd of Captain Whiddon had repreſented it, he kept the Knowledge thereof from his Company, whom he fear'd would have been diſcourag'd thereby from proſecuting the Diſcovery. When Ralegh had further gather'd from Berreo the Proceedings of the paſt Adventurers and his own, of all which he gives us a ſuccinct and curious Hiſtory, he told him he was come upon the ſame Deſign, and was reſolved to ſee Guiana. Berreo uſed many Arguments to diſſuade him; as that he muſt venture in very light and ſmall Boats to paſs ſo many dangerous Shallows, and could not carry Victuals enough above half the Way; that none of the Country would [165] ſpeak with him; and, if he followed them, would burn their Towns; beſides, the Way was long, the Winter at hand, and the Rivers beginning to ſwell; but above all, that the Kings and Lords, who bordered upon Guiana, had decreed, that none of them ſhould trade with any Chriſtians for Gold, becauſe the ſame would be their own Overthrow. Ralegh, reſolving however to make Trial, directed his Vice-Admiral, Captain Gifford, and Captain Calfield, to turn Eaſtward againſt the Mouth of the River Capuri, and gave them Inſtructions to anchor at the Edge of the Shoal, and upon the beſt of the Flood to thruſt over; but they labour'd in vain: Nor did the Flood continue ſo long, but the Water fell before they could have paſſed the Sands. Then Ralegh ſent one King, Maſter of the Lion's Whelp, to try another Branch, called the Amana, if either of the ſmall Ships would enter; but when he came to the Mouth, he found it as the reſt. After him went John Dowglaſs, who diſcover'd four goodly Entrances; but all ſhoal'd and ſhallow in the Bays leading to them. In the mean Time Ralegh, fearing the worſt, cauſed his Carpenters to cut down an old Galego Boat, to fit her with Banks for Oars, and ſo as ſhe might draw but five Foot; in this went Ralegh, with Gentlemen and Officers to the Number of threeſcore. In the Lion's Whelp Boat and Wherry they carried twenty; Captain Calfield, in his Wherry, carried ten; and a Barge of Ralegh's ten more. This was all the Means they had, having left their Ships at Curiapan, to carry a hundred Men, with Weapons and Proviſions for a Month, expoſed to all the Extremes of the Weather, all the Hazards of the Water; to lie open to the Air, and upon hard Boards by Night; in Storms of Rain, or under the burning Sun by Day; to ſwell [166] the wet Cloaths of ſo many crowded together; the Dreſſing of their Food, and that moſtly ſtale Fiſh, in the ſame Place; to be in ſuch a Labyrinth of Rivers, in ſuch a remote and unknown Region; what Priſon could be more loathſome and unhealthy? what Proſpect more fearful and deſolate? At firſt ſetting out, they had twenty Miles of a high Sea to croſs in theſe ſcanty Boats; ſo that they were driven before the Wind into the Bottom of the Bay of Guanipa, inhabited by inhuman Cannibals, who ſhot poiſon'd Arrows: And from thence to enter one of the Rivers of which Dowglaſs had brought Tidings. After four Days, they were paſt ebbing and flowing, and might have wander'd a whole Year about, and never been able to extricate themſelves, in ſuch a general Confluence or Rendezvous of Streams were they now bewilder'd; and ſo reſembling one another, as not to be diſtinguiſh'd; but imperceptibly circulating and driving them about into the ſame Places where they had been before; paſſing between many Iſlands and Streights, whoſe Borders were ſo thickly arched and over-ſhadowed with Trees, as bounded their Sight to the Breadth of the River and Length of the Avenue, while the Gloomineſs of the Proſpect added Horror to the Loneſomeneſs of the Place. At length, on the 22d of May 1595, they fell into a River; which, becauſe it had no Name, they call'd the Red-croſs River, theſe being the firſt Chriſtians who ever enter'd the ſame. When they drew into the Creek, which led to a Town upon this River, their Indian Pilot, named Ferdinando, landing, was ſet upon by his Countrymen, who hunted him with Dogs; whereupon Ralegh ſeiz'd an old Man paſſing that Way, and threaten'd to cut off his Head if he would not procure his Pilot's Liberty: But he, by his Agility, ſoon [167] eſcaped them, and ſwam to Raleghs Barge: However, they kept the old Man, and uſed him kindly, aſſuring themſelves of uſeful Information from a Native ſo long converſant in thoſe Parts. And indeed, but for this Accident, they had never found their Way forward to the Country they ſought, nor back to that where their Ships lay; the old Man himſelf being often in the utmoſt Perplexity which River to take, ſo numerous and intricate they were. Thoſe People who dwell in the flooded Lands of this inſular and broken World, or in all the Tracts towards Guiana, which the eight Branches of the Orenoque faſhion into Iſlands, are generally called Tivitivas, but diſtinguiſhed into two Tribes, a hardy and valiant Generation; who, though they inhabited Houſes on the Ground in Summer, yet in Winter were forced to reſide in the Trees, where they built themſelves artificial Towns, and whoſe Families were to be ſeen lodg'd in an Arm or Branch of thoſe aireal or vegetable Tenements; for between May and September thoſe Iſlands are overflow'd in ſome Places twenty Foot high by the ſaid grand River of Orenoque.

Departing from this Quarter of the Tivitivas, which was under the Diviſion or Tribe call'd Ciawana, he kept paſſing up the River with the Flood, and anchoring in the Ebb; yet the third Day of his entering the River aforeſaid his Galley run a-ground, and ſtuck ſo faſt, they all thought their Diſcovery was at an End, and that the greateſt Number of them muſt live like Rooks, and build their Neſts in the Boughs; but, after emptying her Ballaſt, and much Labour, they got her a float at the End of the fourth Day, and ſtruck into another River call'd the Great Amana, ſpacious and without winding, being one of the faireſt Branches of the grand Orenoque: But here the [168] Flood of the Sea left them, and every Man, from the higheſt to the loweſt, was forced to tug by turns at the Oar for ſeveral Days, againſt a rapid Current, and in a moſt ſultry Clime; for they were now in five Degrees of the Line. Many goodly Rivulets they paſs'd on either Side, which Ralegh nam'd in his Map, and ſhewed their Riſe and Deſcent. When three Days more were paſſed over, his Company began as well to deſpair at the Length of the Way, as to languiſh through exceſſive Heat; and well might their Courage, now their Proviſion alſo began to fail; yet now had they moſt need of Strength and Vigour, when the Current of the River grew moſt boiſterous and violent againſt them. Here Ralegh had a great Taſk to keep up the Spirits of his diſconſolate Companions, which could not be done without being ever foremoſt to endure Labour, and the laſt who gratify'd himſelf with Refreſhment. He alſo ſtrictly commanded his Pilots to promiſe and End every next Day; which honeſt Deceit he uſed ſo often, they were forced to aſſure it would be at every Reach.

Thus while he was giving them Hopes of attaining the Land where their Patience ſhould be rewarded with Plenty. Providence ſeems to have rewarded his Truſt in her, by happily ſhifting the Scene, and preſenting the moſt beautiful Landſkip they had ever beheld. For here Mountains, crowned with Garlands of fruitful Trees, invited one Senſe; and verdant Plains of many Miles extent, enamelled with Groups of odorous Flowers, regaled another. Birds of ſuch Sorts and Colours as they had never ſeen, tempted them to ſupply themſelves by their Fowling Pieces; and Fiſhes of various Kinds, by their Nets; without which, having little or no Bread, and leſs Drink, only the thick and troubled Water of the River, they had [169] been in the greateſt Extremity. Now the old Ciawanian they had taken (as before-mention'd) perſuading them he would lead them to a Town up the Branch of a River on the right Hand, where they might be ſupplied with all Conveniencies, and return before Night; Ralegh leaving his Galley, took eight Muſketiers in his Barge, and with Gifford and Calfield in their Wherries, having eight Muſketiers more, enter'd the Mouth of that River; but rowed till Sun ſet, and ſaw no Sign of the Town even till they were forty Miles diſtant from the Galley, and the Rowers were ready to give up the Ghoſt. They had certainly hang'd this Pilot, but that their Neceſſities were his Security; for it was quite dark, and they knew not their Way back again; but as they proceeded, the River grew ſo narrow, and was ſo over-ſpread with Trees from Side to Side, that they were all forc'd with their Swords to cut a Way for their Oars. About One a-Clock after Midnight they diſcern'd a Light, and heard the Barking of Dogs; ſoon after they found the Village, and there they were ſtored with Proviſions, according to the Promiſes of the old Pilot. In the mean Time, the Company in the Galley mann'd out a Boat in Search of them; but next Day they return'd, and continu'd their Courſe, after they had made this hungry and hazardous Voyage for fourſcore Miles in that River; which, beſides other ſtrange Fiſhes of marvellous Bigneſs, abounded with thoſe ugly Serpents call'd Crocodiles; whence the People nam'd it the River of Lagartos. Ralegh had a young Negro attending upon him in his Galley, who, leaping out to ſwim in the Mouth of this River, was, in the Sight of them all, inſtantly devour'd by one of theſe amphibious Animals. Not long after, being again in Want of Victuals, they took two Canoes laden with excellent [170] Bread, being run aſhore by the Indians in them call'd Arwacas, who fled to hide themſelves in the Woods; fearing, through the Prepoſſeſſions of the Spaniards, that Ralegh and his Company were Canibals. Ralegh purſuing them, in Hopes of ſome Intelligence, found, as he was creeping thro' the Buſhes, a Refiner's Baſket, there being in it Quickſilver, Saltpetre, and divers other Materials, for the Trial of Metals; and alſo the Duſt of ſome Ore that had been refin'd: but in two other Canoes which eſcaped them, they heard of a good Quantity of Ore and Gold. Ralegh then landed more Men, and offered 500 l. to any of his Soldiers who ſhould take one of the Spaniards, whom they thought to have alſo landed in theſe laſt Canoes; but they eſcaped while he was purſuing the former: However, while he was in Search of the Spaniards, he found the Arwacas hidden in the Woods, who had been Pilots for the Spaniards; of which Ralegh kept the chief for his Pilot, and carried him to Guiana; by whom he underſtood in what Parts the Spaniards labour'd for Gold, which he divulged to few of his Company, knowing both the Seaſon of the Year and other Conveniencies would be wanting to work any Mine himſelf. Therefore he haſted away from this Place, his Purpoſe being at that Time rather to diſcover what he could of the Country, and win over the People to Subjection. Beſides this Reſtraint from all Greedineſs after their Gold, there was another Virtue he no leſs ſtrictly obſerv'd, which highly advanced him in the Eſteem of all thoſe Indians. For, whereas the Spaniards were wont to ſatisfy their Luſts without Controul upon their Wives and Daughters, Ralegh ſuffer'd not a Man of his ſo much as to touch any of their Women. I proteſt (ſays he) before the Majeſty of the living God, that [171] I neither knew, nor believe that any of our Company, one or other, by Violence or otherwiſe, ever knew any of their Women; and yet we ſaw many Hundreds, and had many in our Power, and of thoſe very young and excellently favour'd, which came among us without Deceit, ſtark naked. And becauſe he found it a very troubleſome Work to keep the meaner Sort from pilfering and Spoil, when they went to any of the Indians Houſes, Ralegh cauſed his Interpreter at every Place, when they departed, to enquire after the Loſſes or Wrongs that had been done; and if he found any Thing had been ſtolen or taken by Violence, either the ſame was reſtored, and the Party puniſh'd in their Sight, or elſe it was paid for to their utmoſt Demand.

After he was recruited with Bread and other Proviſions, which greatly encouraged his Men, who now cry'd out, Let us go on, we care not how far; Ralegh ſent back in one of the Canoes the old Ciawan, and Ferdinando, his firſt Pilot; giving them ſuch Things as they deſir'd for their Voyage, and wrote a Letter to his Ships, which they deliver'd, and then he went on under the Pilotage of one of thoſe Arwacas he had taken, whom the Spaniards had chriſten'd Martin. But the next or ſecond Day after, they run a-ground again with their Galley, and ſhe was very near being caſt away with their new Store of Victuals; they lay on the Sand one whole Night, and were in far greater Deſpair of diſengaging her than before, becauſe they had no Tide of Flood to help them. In the Midſt of their Fears, they bethought them of faſtening an Anchor upon the Land, and with main Strength drew her off. So the fifteenth Day (of their Abſence from their Ships) they diſcover'd at a Diſtance, to their great Joy, the Mountains of Guiana; and towards the Evening were brought by a northerly [172] Gale in Sight of the great Orenoque, which they ſoon after enter'd; a River of vaſt Extent and Magnitude, lying moſtly Eaſt and Weſt even from the Sea to Quito in Peru, thought to be 300 Miles wide at the Mouth, 1000 Miles navigable for Ships, 2000 for leſſer Veſſels, and diſcharging it ſelf by ſixteen Arms into the Sea, whereby many Parts of the Spaniſh Indies might moſt eaſily be invaded. From other Obſervations, it appears in many Places of the Channel to be twenty Fathom deep; and in few that are ſhoally, leſs than two and a half. It was called by the ſucceeding Voyagers to this Place, in Honour of Sir Walter, after his Name. One of them gives his Reaſon for it in theſe Words: Of the Worthineſs of this River becauſe I cannot ſay enough, I will ſpeak nothing; we have preſumed to call it by the Name of RALEANA, becauſe your ſelf was the firſt of our Nation who ever enter'd the ſame. Now when Ralegh had procur'd one of the bordering Princes, named Toparimaca, a ſkilful old Pilot, who was his Brother, and who perfectly knew this River, he ſailed up a Branch thereof, having on the left Hand a great Iſland which they call Aſſapana; and thence along the Banks of ſeveral other Iſlands, which they choſe rather to anchor at than by the main Land, becauſe of the Tortoiſes Eggs found there in Abundance, to their great Relief; and for the Convenience of caſting their Nets from the Rocks, of a blue metalline Colour, which look'd like Steel-ore. So keeping always weſtward up the River, there open'd after a while a Land on the right Side, which appear'd a ſpacious Champaign, and the Banks perfectly red. Ralegh ſent Captain Giffard, Thynn, Calfield, his Couſins Greenvil and Batſhead Gorges; alſo his Nephew John Gilbert and ſome others, with a Guard of Soldiers, to march over the Banks, and diſcover what Proſpect it afforded; [173] and finding it a Level of an unbounded Space, it proved, as their Pilot inform'd them, the Plains of Saima, reaching to Cumana and Caracas in the Weſt-Indies, which are a hundred and twenty Leagues to the North, and inhabited by four principal Nations, whereof one were the Aroras, as black as Negroes, but of ſmooth Hair; a deſperate People, uſing the ſtrongeſt and moſt deadly Poiſon of all others on their Arrows. Ralegh was moſt curious to know the Compoſition of this Poiſon, and what Remedies could be had againſt the dreadful Effects of it. For, beſides the Mortality of the Wound, the Patient is afflicted with moſt inſufferable Torment, and accompanied with ſuch irkſome Symptoms, that the Phyſician cannot abide the Cure. None of the Spaniards could ever extort this Secret either by Kindneſs or Cruelty; and indeed but few of the Indians, beſides their Prieſts and Soothſayers, knew it. * Ralegh was therefore more beholden to the Guianians than any Body; for Antonio de Berrio told him, that he could never attain to the Knowledge thereof. And yet they taught me (ſays Ralegh) the beſt Way of healing this, as well as all other Poiſons. Then he tells us thoſe Medicines which are vulgar, and ſerve for the ordinary Poiſon, are made of the Juice of a Root call'd Tupara, which alſo marvellouſly quenches the Heat of burning Fevers, and heals inward [174] Wounds; and that thoſe of common poiſon'd Arrows were wont to be heal'd by ſome of the Spaniards with the Juice of Garlic. But this he communicates as a general Rule for all Men that ſhall hereafter travel the Indies where poiſon'd Arrows are uſed, that they abſtain from Drink; for if they take any Liquor into their Body, whereunto they will be exceedingly provoked by Drought, and drink before the Wound is dreſs'd, or immediately upon it, there is no Relief but preſent Death.

After having paſſed the Mountain Aio, and a great Iſland, which he mentions, he reached on the fifth Day of his entering the great River aforeſaid, as high as the Province of Aromaia, and anchoring at the Port of Morequito, which is 300 Miles within the Land, upon the ſaid great River Orenoque, he ſent a Meſſenger to the old King of Aromaia, named Topiowary, who came the next Day before Noon on Foot from his Houſe, and returned the ſame Evening, being 28 Miles backwards and forwards, though himſelf was 110 Years of Age. He had many Attendants of both Sexes, who came alſo to wonder at the Engliſh, and brought them great Plenty of Fleſh, Fowl and Fiſh, with divers Sorts of Fruits, and among them abundance of Pinas, the moſt excellent of all Kinds *, eſpecially thoſe of Guiana; beſides Bread, [175] Wine, and a Sort of Parroquites no bigger than Wrens. And one of them preſented Ralegh with a little Beaſt, which the Spaniards call Armadilla, having his Body ſcaled or plated over like the Rhinoceros, with a white Horn growing in his hinder Parts as big as a hunting Horn. This Horn is recommended in Medicine, and the Fleſh for Food, ſince Ralegh ſoon after made a Feaſt of it.

When the old King had reſted himſelf a while in a Tent which Ralegh had cauſed to be pitched for him, they entered, by the Interpreter, into Diſcourſe about the Murder of Morequito, his Predeceſſor, and the other Violations of the Spaniards. Then Ralegh acquainted him with the Cauſe of his coming thither, whoſe Servant he was, and that it was his Queen's Pleaſure he ſhould undertake this Voyage to deliver them from the Tyranny of the Spaniards; dilating at large on her Majeſty's Power, Juſtice, and Clemency towards all oppreſſed Nations: all which, being with great Reverence and Attention received, he began to ſound the old Man touching Guiana; as what Sort of Commonwealth it was, how governed, of what Strength and Policy, of what Extent; with whom in Alliance or Enmity; laſtly, the Diſtance and Way to enter the Heart of the Country? The King gave ſuch ample and perfect Account of theſe Particulars, that Ralegh wondered to find a Man of ſuch Gravity, Judgment, and good Diſcourſe, without the Help of Learning or Breeding. After his Departure, Ralegh ſailed weſtward to view the famous River Caroli, both becauſe it was ſo wonderful in itſelf, and led to the ſtrongeſt Nations of all the Frontiers, who were Enemies to the Epuremei, ſubjects to the Inga, or Emperor of Guiana and Manoa. Even when he was ſhort of it, or lower down than the Port of Morequito, he heard the [176] roaring Falls of this River; but when he entered it with his Barge and Wherries, thinking to have gone up ſome 40 Miles to the Caſſipagotos, he was not able with a Barge of eight Oars to row one Stone's Throw in an Hour; and yet the River is as broad as the Thames at Woolwich. Therefore encamping on the Banks, he ſent off an Indian to acquaint the Nations upon the River of his Arrival, and his Purpoſe; and that he deſired to ſee the Lords of Canuria, who dwelt in that Province. Then one of the Princes came down, named Wanuretona, with many of his People, and brought great Store of Proviſions, as the reſt had done. By him Ralegh found, the Carolians were not only Enemies to the Spaniards, but moſt of all to the Epuremei, who abounded in Gold; and that there were three mighty Nations at the Head of that River, which would join him againſt them. He was further informed by one Capt. George, whom he had taken with Berreo, that near the Banks of this River there was a great Silver Mine; but the Rivers were all now ſo riſen, that it was not poſſible for the Strength of Man with any Boat to row againſt the Stream. Therefore he diſpatched a Party between 30 and 40 to coaſt the River by Land, while himſelf, with two or three Officers and half a dozen Shot, marched over-land to view the ſtrange and wonderful Overfalls of the ſaid River Caroli, which roared at ſuch a Diſtance, and the Plains adjoining, with the Reſt of the Province of Canuri. When they had got to the Top of the firſt Hills over-looking the River, they beheld that prodigious Breach of Waters which poured down Caroli, and how it ran in three Streams for 20 Miles together. No leſs than 10 or 12 of theſe ſteep Cataracts appeared in Sight, each as high above the other as a Church-tower; which ruſhed [177] down with ſuch Violence, that the very Rebound of the Waters made the Place ſeem as if it had been all over covered with a great Shower of Rain. And here Ralegh ſays, he never ſaw a more beautiful Country, nor more lively Proſpects; the Hills ſo raiſed up and down about the Valleys; the Waters winding into ſuch various Branches; the Plains ſo clear of Buſh and Stubble, and covered all with fair green Graſs; the Ground of hard Sand, and eaſy for the March either of Horſe or Foot; the Deer croſſing in every Path; the Birds, towards the Evening, ſinging on every Tree a thouſand ſeveral Tunes, with Cranes and Herons of white, crimſon and Carnation, pearched along the River Banks; the Air refreſhed with gentle eaſterly Breezes; and every Stone they ſtooped to take up, promiſing either Gold or Silver by its Complexion. His Company, at their return, brought ſeveral of theſe Stones home; which they rather found coloured outwardly like Gold, than any of that Metal fixed in them; for thoſe who had leaſt Judgment or Experience, kept only ſuch as glittered, and would not be perſuaded but they were rich, becauſe they ſhone, thereby bred an Opinion, that all the Reſt were no better. Yet ſome of theſe Stones Ralegh ſhewed afterwards to a Spaniard of the Caraccas, who told him it was El madre del oro, that is, the Mother of Gold; and that the Mine was further in the Ground.

Among the goodly Rivers beyond the Caroli, there is one name Caora. Upon this Branch, it was atteſted to Ralegh by the moſt intelligent and credible Chiefs of the adjacent Parts, there dwelt a Nation of People whoſe Heads appear not above their Shoulders; which, becauſe every Body in the Provinces of Aromaia and Canuri alſo affirmed, he was inclined to believe. They are called Ewaipanoma, [178] and reported to have their Eyes in their Shoulders, and Mouths in their Breaſts (or in a level with them). It was further avouched to him, they uſed Bows, Arrows, and Clubs thrice as big as any of the Guianians; and that one being taken Priſoner the Year before was brought into Aromata. When Ralegh doubted of ſuch a Race to the Prince, hereafter-mentioned, who came with him into England, he anſwered, it was no wonder among them; for they had lately ſlain many Hundreds of his Father's People. Ralegh obſerves, That Mandevill had before written of ſuch a Nation; and that, ſince the Eaſt-Indian Diſcoveries, we find his Relations true, which were before held incredible. Further, that when he afterwards arrived at Cumana, he ſpoke with a Spaniard eminent for his Travels, and withal for his Credit and Veracity; who, hearing that Ralegh had been as far in Guiana as Caroli, immediately aſked him if he had ſeen thoſe People, and declared he had ſeen many of them. Then Ralegh names ſome French Merchants of London, who were there preſent, and heard what this Spaniard had thus aſſerted. Whether it is true or no (ſays he) the Matter is not great, neither can there be any Profit in the Imagination; for my own Part, I ſaw them not; but an reſolved, that ſo many People did not all combine or fore think to make the Report. After all, whether the Obſervation of any Garment looſely riſing above the Shoulders of theſe People, or the crouching Poſture in which they were ſo much ſeen, by their conſtant Exerciſe of Archery, might not firſt give ſome Riſe to this Report, I leave for others more largely to explain *; [179] and how far the ſame Perſon ſhall here be condemn'd for an implicit Faith, who was, as we have read, cenſur'd for the Want of it. This Conſideration may be further offer'd for what Ralegh alſo repeats, not only from the Writers of all Nations, concerning the modern Amazons in theſe Parts, but from their very Neighbours. For having told us, that Orellana firſt diſcover'd Marannon, which is call'd the River of Amazons, and alſo after the ſaid Diſcoverers own Name, Ralegh was inquiſitive to know whether there were any of thoſe warlike Women, from whom this River ſhould be ſo call'd, in theſe American Parts, who are ſo fam'd in antient Hiſtories to have been in Aſia and Africa; and was aſſur'd by an antient Caſique, that there was ſuch a Nation of Women on the South of the ſaid River, in the Provinces of Topago, whoſe Manners and Cuſtoms, as they deſcrib'd to him, did ſomewhat conform with what is recorded of the antient Amazons: As, they cohabited with Men but one Month in the Year; ſent them the male Children, and kept only the Females; but that they cut off their Right Breaſt (ſays he) I do not find to be true. He was further told, they ſcrupled not to accompany with the Priſoners they took in War at any Time; but in the End conſtantly put them to Death: And that, as others of the bordering Nations, theſe Women wore certain Plates of Gold, which they had ſometimes exchang'd [180] with other Countries for Spleen-ſtones, which are of a green Colour; and whereof (ſays Ralegh) I ſaw divers in Guiana; for every King or Caſique commonly has one, which their Wives chiefly wear, and eſteem as great Jewels.

When Ralegh, with his Company, lay at Anchor on the Coaſt of Canuri, and had taken Knowledge of all the Nations upon the Head and Branches of the Caroli; and found out many Tribes who were Enemies to the Epuremei and the new Conquerors, having now wander'd for near a Month, diſtant from his Ships above 400 Miles; beſides the long Digreſſions up many Arms and Branches on every Side by the Way, they found the Winter Seaſon advance apace, *and the Orenoque threaten them with greater Fury every Day than other; the Time they ſpent at Trinidad, and the Company they there in vain waited for, being both wanted here to compleat their Enterpriſe. For the moſt violent Storms of Thunder and Lightning which now ſo frequently broke out, pour'd down ſuch Floods of Rain, as made all the Rivers riſe and rage moſt fearfully; ſo that if they waded them over Shoes in the Morning outward, homeward they could not come, even the ſame Day, without wading to their Necks, or ſwimming before they could reach their Boats. Beſides they all grew very uneaſy to themfelves and one another for want of Shifting, no Man having Room to beſtow any [181] other Apparel than what he wore on his Back; and that was waſh'd through to his Skin often ten Times a Day. Theſe Inconveniences, with thoſe of having no Inſtruments to try any Mines, or Men ſufficient to ſecure them againſt the guarded Nations nearer the Imperial City of Manoa, Captain Preſton having fail'd them, made Ralegh conclude there was now no advancing thither, or ſtaying longer here; but that he might well content himſelf for this Voyage with the various Diſcoveries of the Situation, Products and Riches of the Country, which he had thus far made; with the Intereſt and Friendſhip he had thus ſpaciouſly procur'd; and which no Adventurer to thoſe Regions ever had in a much larger Space of Time, with much greater Aids and Proviſions, the Diligence and Dexterity to equal.

As he return'd to the Eaſt, he ſpent ſome Time in diſcovering the River towards the Sea which he had not ſurvey'd. In a Day's Time he arriv'd again at the Port of Morequito; for, gliding down the Stream, he went without Labour, tho' againſt the Wind, little leſs than a hundred Miles a Day. When he came to Anchor, he was very deſirous of ſome further Conference with old Topiowari, who ſoon, upon Notice, came, with a Multitude of his People, flocking down to Ralegh's Tent upon the Shore, every one loaded with Preſents. When the old King was refreſh'd, and the Crown retir'd, Ralegh, by his Interpreter, enter'd into a long Conference with him; telling him that as both the Epuremei and the Spaniards were his Enemies; the one having conquer'd Guiana already, and the other endeavour'd to get it from both, he deſir'd to be inſtructed both in the beſt Ways to the golden Parts of Guiana, and the civiliz'd Towns, or apparell'd People of Inga. The King anſwer'd, [182] he could not perceive Ralegh meant to proceed to the great City of Manoa, becauſe neither the Seaſon of the Year nor the Strength of his Company would enable him; for he remember'd that in the Plains of Maqureguarai, the firſt civil Town of Guiana, where all the Gold Plates were made which were ſcatter'd over the neighbouring Nations, and about four Days Journey from his own, 300 Spaniards were deſtroy'd, who had no Friends among the Borderers; therefore adviſed Ralegh never to invade the ſtrong Parts of Guiana, without the Help of all thoſe Nations which were their Enemies. Ralegh aſk'd, if he thought the Company he had with him were ſufficient to take that Town: The King thought they were, and proffer'd to aſſiſt him with all his Borderers, if he would leave him a Guard of fifty Men upon his Departure; but Ralegh knowing if they ſhould eſcape the Guanians, the Spaniards expecting Supplies, would repay upon them this Treatment at Trinidad, very plauſibly excus'd himſelf. Hereupon the King deſir'd he would forbear him and his Country at this Time; for if the Epuremei ſhould know he had given Ralegh any Aid or Intelligence, he ſhould ſoon be over-run by them; nor could he avoid the Spaniards, if they ſhould return, who had before led him 17 Days in a Chain like a Dog, till he paid 100 Plates of Gold and ſeveral Chains of Spleen-ſtones for his Ranſom; but if Ralegh would return in due Seaſon next Year, he would engage all the Borderers in the Enterpriſe; for that he could not more deſire to make himſelf Maſter of Guiana, than they to aſſiſt him; having been plunder'd by the Epuremei of their Women, whom to recover they would willingly renew the War, without Hopes of further Profit; for the old King complain'd of it as a Matter of grievous Reſtraint, [183] that now they were confin'd to three or four Wives a piece, who were wont to enjoy ten or a dozen; while the Lords of their Enemies had no leſs than 50 or 100. But they ſeem to have had a political Reaſon for this Recovery, to ſtrengthen their Alliance and encreaſe their Forces, theſe Frontiers having been much depopulated between the Subjects of Inga and the Spaniards. Ralegh, finding it abſolutely improper either to leave any of his Company, or attempt War upon the Epuremei till the next Year, apply'd himſelf now only to learn how theſe People wrought thoſe Plates of Gold which were diſpers'd about, and how they divided it from the Stone. The King told him, that moſt of their Plates and Images were not ſever'd from the Stone; but that on the Lake of Manoa, and many other Rivers thereabouts, they gather'd the perfect Grains of Gold, and mingling a Proportion of Copper, the better to work it, put it in a great earthen Pot, under which they encreas'd the Fire by the Breath of Men, through long Canes faſten'd to the Holes round the ſaid Pot, till the Metal diſſolv'd, which then they caſt into Moulds of Stone and Clay, and ſo made thoſe Plates and Images; whereof Ralegh brought two Sorts into England, more to ſhew the Manner of them than their Value: For he gave more Pieces of Gold of the twenty Shilling Coin, with the Queen's Effigies upon them, among theſe People, to wear in Honour of her Majeſty, and to engage them in her Service, than he receiv'd; ſo little did he make his Deſire of Gold known to them. He alſo brought over ſome Gold Ore of their Mines, whereof I know ſome is as rich (ſays he) as any the Earth yields, and of which I know there is ſufficient, if nothing elſe were to be hop'd for; but they wanted Time, Hands and Inſtruments to break the Ground, without which there could be [184] no working of Mines. We ſaw (adds he) all the Hills with Stones of the Colour of Gold and Silver, and we try'd them to be no Marqueſite; and therefore ſuch as the Spaniards call El madre del oro, or, the Mother of Gold, which is an undoubted Aſſurance of the general Abundance thereof; and myſelf ſaw the outſide of many Mines of the Sparre, which I know to be the ſame that all covet in this World; and of thoſe, more than I will ſpeak of. Now Ralegh, beſides having learn'd the Riches of the Country, having alſo won the Affections of the People, and receiv'd a faithful Promiſe of the Chiefs in thoſe Provinces of Aromaia and Canuri to become Servants to her Majeſty, took his Leave of old Topiowari, and receiv'd his Son Prince Cayworaco as a Pledge betwixt them, whom he brought into England, where he was chriſten'd Gualtero with great Solemnity, leaving with the old King two of his own People in Exchange; the one named Francis Sparrow, who being a good Draughtſman, and could deſcribe a Country with his Pen, deſir'd to be left for that Purpoſe, whom Ralegh inſtructed to travel as far as he could to Manoa with ſuch Merchandiſe as he committed to his Care; the other was a Boy, who waited upon him, named Hugh Goodwin, for whom he left Orders to be taught the Language of the Country. This done, he weigh'd Anchor, and coaſted the River on Guiana-ſide, becauſe he came towards it on the North-ſide by the Lawns of Saima.

There was a powerful Caſique named Putijma, who accompanied Ralegh and his Men from Aromaia, with Promiſes to lead them to a Mountain call'd Iconuri, which contain'd a Mine of Gold; and which (ſays Ralegh) he perform'd. Ralegh travell'd a great Way towards it himſelf along the River Mana, till, through Wearineſs, he was [185] forced with ſome of his Attendants to reſt on the Banks of a Lake in the delightful Valley of Oiana; where one of his Guides kindling a Fire with two Sticks, *they ſtay'd a while to dry their Shirts; ſending Captain Keymis the while with a Party under that Caſique to take Cognizance of the ſaid Mine, and promis'd to meet him at the River Cumaca, in his Way to Emeria, the Province of Carapara, one of the greateſt Lords of the Orenoqueponi, with whom he ſought to eſtabliſh a League. And as Ralegh return'd by the River Mana towards the ſaid Province, he ſaw himſelf many Rocks like Gold Ore, and on the Left Hand a round Mountain of Mineral Stone. From hence returning down the Stream, he coaſted the Province of Parino; but the Branches of the Rivers he here paſſed, with Aio and other Mountains, he reſerv'd to the Repreſentation in his Map; which, for the numerous and diſtant Rivers and Countries therein occaſionally refer'd to, appears to have been a very accurate and comprehenſive Performance.

In the River of Winciapora he ſaw what they call the Mountain of Cryſtal, which look'd at a Diſtance like a white Church-tower of exceeding Height, over the Top of which a mighty River ruſh'd down with prodigious Noiſe. Berreo told him, there were Diamonds and other Stones of great Value thereon, which blaz'd at a great Diſtance. Upon this River Ralegh reſted a while, and marched to a Town of the ſame Name, where he [186] found the Natives all as drunk as Beggars, it being the Time of their Feſtival. Here Ralegh refreſh'd himſelf with the Proviſions of the Place, and the delicate Wine of Pinas. But underſtanding that Carapana was retir'd from Emeria; and imagining, becauſe he was an old ſubtil Prince, it was to wait till he ſhould return next Year, then join him, if the Engliſh were ſtrong enough to tempt his Alliance; if not, that he might excuſe his Retirement to the Spaniards, as tho' it were in Fear of theſe new Viſitors; Ralegh ſpent no more Time in ſeeking after him; but making to the River Cumaca, he met with Keymis, and took his Leave of Putijma, who, of all others, moſt lamented his Departure; for the Orenoque was now ſwoln moſt dreadfully, ſo that it was impoſſible to return by the Way he entered, for the River of Amana could not be ſailed back by any Means, the Breeze and Current of the Sea were ſo outragious; therefore he follow'd the Branch of Capuri, which enter'd into the Sea Eaſtward of his Ships, that he might bear with them before the Wind; and great Need there was ſo to do, having by that Way as much to croſs of the main Sea, in their little Boats, after they came to the River's Mouth, as between Gravelin and Dover. But when they arrived at the Sea-ſide, and anchor'd in the Mouth of Capuri, there aroſe a mighty Storm, and the River's Mouth was at leaſt a League broad, ſo that they run before Night cloſe under the Land with their Boats, and brought the Galley as near as they could, which had much ado to live, and was often near ſinking with all her Men. Ralegh was in the utmoſt Doubt what Courſe to take; either to venture in the Galley through ſix Foot Water on the Sands for two Leagues together, and that in the Channel, when ſhe drew five; or truſt in ſuch a raging Wind and Sea to croſs over in his [187] Barge. At laſt, ſeeing the Tempeſt increaſe the longer he tarried, he took Gifford, Calfield, and Greenvil, in his Barge; and about Midnight thruſt into the Sea, leaving the Galley to come by Daylight. Thus faintly chearing one another in Shew of Courage (ſays Ralegh) it pleaſed God by Nine a-Clock the next Morning we diſcover'd the Iſle of Trinidad. So they kept along the Shore to Curiapan, where they found their Ships at Anchor; than which (ſays he) there never was to us a more joyful Sight; eſpecially when they found, upon meeting together, they had loſt but one Man (before mention'd) through ſo many Extremes of Wet, Heat, Hunger, Want of Reſt, Sleep, Lodging, and ſuch like violent Hardſhips in this toilſome and dangerous Adventure, as drove them to many unuſual and unhealthy Shifts, eſpecially in their Diet; ſuch as feeding upon many ſtrange and corrupted Fruits upon freſh Fiſh without ſeaſoning; Crocodiles, Sea-cows, * Antas, and armed Hogs; upon all Sorts, of the Land or Water; good and bad; without Order or Meaſure: and yet no Calenture befel them, or other peſtilent Diſeaſes which are wont to infect all Regions ſo near the Line; ſo wholeſome was the Country, or ſo happily ſuited to their Conſtitutions.

In his Return homewards he touch'd at Cumana, to ſtore and refreſh himſelf with ſuch Proviſions as he wanted, but the Spaniards refuſed to ſupply him, at which he threatned the Town; and upon their refuſing alſo to ſave it by ſuch reaſonable [188] Ranſom as they had juſt before offer'd Captain Preſton, he ſet it on Fire; the like he did at St. Mary, and at Rio de la Hach, as we are informed by Camden and others; ſome of whom affirm, he got not only great Glory hereby, but Riches; the latter of which will be thought doubtful to thoſe who have read the Spaniards had removed their Effects to the Mountains, before they entered into a Capitulation with Preſton. On the 13th of July, when the ſaid Captain Preſton, with the reſt of his Company, were under Cape St. Anthony, the weſtermoſt Part of the Iſle of Cuba, we met (ſays the Writer of his Voyage) with the honourable Knight Sir Walter Ralegh, returning from his painful and happy Diſcovery of Guiana, and his Surpriſe of the Iſle of Trinidad; ſo with glad Hearts we kept him and his Fleet of three Ships Company (for he mentions no more) till the twentieth Day at Night, at which Time we loſt them.

When Ralegh was arrived in England, he ſoon applied himſelf to digeſt the Obſervations he had made in his Diſcoveries, and they were, not many Months after, committed to the Preſs. Several Authors have beſtowed Characters in Praiſe of this Diſcourſe, which manifeſts ſuch a wonderful Genius in compaſſing the Knowledge of ſo many Places, Productions, and People, with ſo ſmall a Power, and in ſo ſhort a Time.

But Ralegh with all his Zeal and Aſſiduity for the Honour and Advantage of his Country, could never induce the State to proceed in the Plantation of Guiana; not ſo much through any real Incredulity of the Emoluments that would accrue from it; as through that malignant Jealouſy which ſo eternally biaſs'd the domeſtic Competitors for Royal Favour, to curb the foreign Services of enterpriſing Men, leſt the Atchievments of the one [189] ſhould outſhine the Adminiſtrations of the other; whence we may here obſerve, that he, whoſe engaging Qualities had gain'd him ſuch Influence, ſuch an Aſcendency over the moſt ſavage and unciviliz'd Nations, found no Diſpoſitions ſo barbarous and intractable among thoſe Strangers, as he did in his own Country; like Hercules himſelf, who having, by his glorious Labours, ſhewed his Power of ſubduing and taming all other Monſters, found Envy and Detraction invincible at laſt. That Ralegh's Labours were attended with the ſame Fate, himſelf has ſufficiently diſcover'd in that Dedication, which, with ſo much Eloquence, Modeſty, and Generoſity, he made of his Diſcourſe upon Guiana aforeſaid, to the Lord-admiral Howard and Sir Robert Cecyl. For notwithſtanding the Difficulties and Dangers of the Voyage, it appears (ſays Ralegh therein) that I made no other Bravado of going to Sea than was meant, and that I was never hidden in Cornwal or elſewhere, as was ſuppos'd. They have groſly belied me, that fore judged I would rather become a Servant to the Spaniſh King than return; and the reſt were much miſtaken, who would have perſuaded that I was too eaſeful and ſenſual to undertake a Journey of ſo great Travel; but (as he generouſly continues) if what I have done receive the gracious Conſtruction of a painful Pilgrimage, and purchaſe the leaſt Remiſſion, I ſhall think all too little, and that there were wanting to the reſt many Miſeries.

But Ralegh was in Hopes it would appear there was now a Way found out to anſwer every Man's longing; a richer Indies than any the King of Spain enjoyed, which if the Queen would patronize, he was willing to end the Remainder of his Days in reducing it to a total Subjection. Whatever he further advanced of this Kind, Diffidence and Detraction [190] were ſo predominant, that becauſe ſome of Ralegh's Company brought over Marcaſite for Gold, as he informs us a little further, there were ſome who woud not believe the real Gold-ore which he brought, and which he had helped to dig out of the Rocks with his own Dagger, was of greater Value. Nay, when many Trials had been made of this Ore, wherein ſome Quantities were proved by one Weſtwood, a Refiner in Wood-ſtreet, to hold after the Rate of twelve or thirteen thouſand Pounds a Ton. Other Parcels, by Mr. Bulman and Dimock, Aſſay-maſter, found alſo to hold after the Rate of twenty-three thouſand Pounds the Ton; and a third Sort tried by Mr. Palmer, Comptroller of the Mint, and Mr. Dimock in Goldſmith's Hall, holding after the Rate of twenty-ſix thouſand nine hundred Pounds the Ton; who tried alſo ſome Gold-duſt of the ſame Mine, which held eight Pound ſix Ounces weight of Gold in the Hundred, and an Image of Copper made in Guiana, which held a third Part of Gold; when all this was prov'd, there were thoſe who would not yet believe it Gold of Guiana; but that Ralegh purchas'd it upon the African Coaſt, and caried it over thither. Surely the Singularity of that Device (ſays Ralegh) I do not well comprehend: For my own Part, I am not ſo much in love with theſe long Voyages, as to deviſe thereby to couſen myſelf; to lie hard, to fare worſe, to be ſubject to Perils, to Diſeaſes, to ill Savours, to be parch'd and wither'd, and withal, to ſuſtain the Care and Labour of ſuch an Enterpriſe; except the ſame had more Comfort than the fetching of Marcaſite in Guiana, or buying of Gold-ore in Barbary. But I hope the better Sort will judge me by themſelves, and that the Way of Deceit is not the Way of Honour or good Opinion. I have herein conſumed much Time and many Crowns, and I had no other Reſpect or Deſire [191] than to ſerve her Majeſty and my Country thereby. If the Spaniſh Nation had been of the like Belief with theſe Detractors, we ſhould little have fear'd or doubted their Attempts wherewith we now are daily threaten'd.

But if we now conſider of the Actions both of Charles V. who had the Maidenhead of Peru, and the abundant Treaſures of Atabalipa, together with the Affairs of the Spaniſh King now living; what he has added to the Acts of his Predeceſſors; how many Kingdoms he has endangered; how many Armies, Garriſons and Navies he maintains; the great Loſſes he has repaired, as in Eighty-Eight, above 100 Sail of great Ships, with their Artillery; and that no Year is leſs unfortunate, but that many Veſſels, Treaſures and People are devoured; and yet that he begins again, like a Storm, to threaten Shipwreck to us all; we ſhall find that theſe Abilities ariſe not from the Trades of Sack and Seville-oranges, nor from ought elſe that either Spain, Portugal, or any of his other Provinces produce; it is his Indian Gold that endangers and diſturbs all the Nations of Europe; it creeps into Councils, purchaſes Intelligence, and ſets bound Loyalty at Liberty in the greateſt Monarchies thereof; if the Spaniſh King can keep us from foreign Enterprizes, and from the Impeachment of his Trades, either by Offer of Invaſion, or by beſieging us in Britain, Ireland, or elſewhere, he has then brought the Work of our Peril in great Forwardneſs; for thoſe Princes, who abound in Treaſure, have great Advantages over the reſt, if they once conſtrain them to a defenſive War, where they are driven, once a Year or oftener, to caſt Lots for their own Garments. For theſe and other ſubſtantial Reaſons which Ralegh produces, he declares, he has laboured all his Life in the Promotion of thoſe Attempts which promis'd either an Enlargement of our own national Intereſt, [192] or an Abatement of the encroaching Greatneſs of the Spaniard, who, in his Judgment, is not to be more eaſily reduc'd than by ſuch a War; from ſo many weak Nations are his Treaſures gather'd, and ſo far ſeparated from mutual Succour. But becauſe he thought ſuch Reſolution and Preparations were not to be hoped for in Haſte, he doubted not, if her Majeſty would embrace the Offer of thoſe Provinces, and that Empire now by him diſcovered, before they were engroſs'd by the Enemy; but it would yield greater Quantities of Treaſure than all the King of Spain poſſeſſes from the Indies, both Eaſt and Weſt; and he would be contented to loſe her good Opinion for ever, and his Life withal, if the Country ſhould not be found to exceed whatever had been promis'd in his Diſcourſe of it. Tho' he has therein written, he doubts not after the firſt or ſecond Year that the ſame ſhould be coloniz'd, but to ſee in London a Contractation-houſe of more Receipt for Guiana, than that in Seville for the Weſt-Indies. And is poſitive, That if there was but a ſmall Army a-foot in Guiana, marching towards Manoa, the chief City of Inga, he would yield to her Majeſty, by Compoſition, ſo many hundred thouſand Pounds yearly, as ſhould both defend us from all Enemies abroad, and defray all Expences at home; and that he would beſides pay a Garriſon of 3 or 4000 Soldiers very royally to defend him againſt other Nations; for he cannot but know how his Predeceſſors were beaten out by the Spaniards, and that they have ever ſince, with the greateſt Cruelties, ſought the Entry of his Country, wherefore he would doubtleſs be brought to Tribute; if not, having neither Shot nor Iron weapon in his Empire, he might eaſily be conquer'd. And in another Part of the ſaid Diſcourſe, he has theſe Words, If it be my Lot to proſecute the ſame, I will willingly ſpend my Life therein; and if [193] any elſe ſhall be enabled thereto, and conquer the ſame, I aſſure him thus much, he ſhall perform more than ever was done in Mexico by Cortez; or in Peru by Piſarro, whereof one conquer'd the Empire of Mutezuma, the other of Guaſcar and Atabalipa; and whatſoever Prince ſhall poſſeſs it, that Prince ſhall be Lord of more Gold, and of more beautiful Empire, and of more Cities and People, than either the King of Spain, or the Grand Turk. Concluding his whole Treatiſe of Guiana, with his Trust in him who is the King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, to put it into her Heart, who is the Lady of Ladies, to poſſeſs it; if not, I will judge thoſe Men worthy to be Kings thereof, ſays he, who by her Grace and Leave will undertake it of themſelves.

All this would not do to raiſe the ſaternine Genius of the State to purſue this Action; and upon this Occaſion we might obſerve, as Ralegh did afterwards upon another from a Poet of his own Time, That ſome great Men cloathing their private Envy in the fair Colours of the publick Good, curbed the moſt needful and noble Undertakings with Diſtrust, through a ſpecious Care for the Service of the State. Among theſe ſage and ſceptical Politicians, we may diſcern Sir Robert Cecyl to be one, who, in his Conferences with ſome of the ſpeculative Geographers of his Time, would ſhew how careful he was not to be overtaken with any partial Affection to the planting of Guiana, as we are told by one of them, whom he would conſult about the Matter: Nevertheleſs, Ralegh's Advice was not wholly diſregarded. For that part of it, propoſing to drive the Spaniards to a defenſive War, but upon their own proper Coaſts and Harbours, was approv'd of; and Ralegh himſelf choſen, with other Commanders, to put it in Execution. In the latter End of January following, he fitted out Capt. [194] Keymis with a Couple of Ships, the Darling and Diſcoverer; but provided, rather to continue the Correſpondence and peaceful Traffick with the Indians, than to ſtrengthen them in a warlike manner with Forces and Accoutrements, which was what they moſt deſired and expected. When Keymis arriv'd at Guiana, he found his Friends much diſperſed, but yet enquiring what was become of Sir Walter Ralegh, whom they had been prepar'd ſome Months to join; were mighty joyful to hear he was not ſlain at Cumana, as the Spaniards, now much encreas'd among them, had atteſted; but ſadly diſappointed that he had not ſent a larger Fleet to expel them, and conquer their neighbouring Enemies up to the Imperial City. Keymis further learnt, that Berreo, being left at Cumana, and lodged in the Houſe of one Faſhardo; the Governors of the Carraccas and Margarita, conſpiring together, had ſent into Spain to inform King Philip, that Berreo, being retired to ſpend the Remainder of his declining Days in Privacy and Eaſe, was utterly unable to purſue the Enterprize; yet of what Importance his Majeſty's Regard thereto was, ſince ſo eminent an Engliſh Cavalier, as Sir Walter Ralegh, had, by a vigorous Progreſs and moſt artful Addreſs, made ſuch Conqueſts and Diſcoveries in ſome Parts, and render'd himſelf ſo extenſively engaging in all wherever he came, that unleſs they had Power given them to undertake the Charge, all their paſt Endeavours and future Hopes in thoſe Parts would come to nothing. But Berreo's Camp-Maſter having been long before ſent into Spain, with Gold enough gotten out of Guiana, to levy and furniſh 500 Men, ſo effectually ſollicited Berreo's Cauſe, that preſent Order was given for the victualling and manning of ten Ships to be ſent to him; ſo well worth his Care [195] did the King of Spain think this Undertaking. And further, this Gold bore ſuch Weight, that the King commanded eighteen Ships more to ſtop at Trinidad, and not follow their other Directions, before they ſaw that Place ſecur'd from Enemies. But Berreo himſelf ſuſpecting that ſpeedy Diſpatch, return'd to Carapana's Port with fifteen Men, the ſcatter'd Remant that Ralegh had left him. Thoſe Governors follow'd him, and anticipating the Authority they promis'd themſelves from Spain, enter'd Guiana with their Men, and determin'd to murder Berreo, who fled towards Caroli, expecting his Son Antonio de Ximenes with Succours from the new Kingdom of Granada. And now Topiowary, who had fled to the Mountains, being dead, where the Engliſh Boy, Ralegh left, was devour'd by a Tyger, Sanjago, a Spaniard, in the Faction of the Governors aforeſaid, took Francis Sparrow Priſoner, who was alſo left by Ralegh; but having gather'd great Plenty of Gold, he ranſom'd his Life therewith, yet was kept in Captivity by the Spaniards ſome Years, as we may hereafter learn. After this, the Faction return'd to Trinidad, and begun to rebuild their Town, where, unhappily to theſe new lawleſs Rulers, the twenty-eight Sail of Ships arriv'd from Spain in February following, and took Sanjago Priſoner, whom Keymis found in Chains, expecting to be put to Death. The other Actors in this Interlude vaniſhing in Canoes, recover'd Margarita and Cumana again. When eighteen of thoſe Ships had left all things in good Order, they departed according to their Inſtructions, leaving the other ten to ſortify at Conquerabia, for the Reception of Sir Walter Ralegh's Fleet. Nor was it above four Months after the Arrival of thoſe Ships from Spain, that the King had prepared ſeveral others, it being in June 1596, to tranſport a new [196] Supply of whole Families, to the Number of 600 Perſons, for Guiana.

When Keymis was advanced to Topiowary's Port, he found the Spaniards under Berreo had planted a Village there, and that a rocky Iſland againſt the Mouth of Caroli was their Fort or Refuge; but now leaving both Town and Iſland, they gathered at the Mouth of that River, and had ſent for Cannon to defend the Paſſage to thoſe Mines, ſays Keymis to Ralegh, from whence your Ore and white Stones were taken the laſt Year: adding, We all, not without Grief, to ſee ourſelves thus defeated, and our hungry Hopes made void, were witneſſes of this their Remove. Then Keymis reſolved to ſeek out Putijma, who, with ſome Friends, was retired to the high Lands, not far from the Mountain Aio, intending, if the Indians ſhould think themſelves too weak with his Help to diſplant the Spaniards, to ſet ſome of them to work, for Hatchets and Knives, to return him Grains of Gold and white Stones from ſuch Places as they ſhould be directed to. But when he came to the Place of their Abode, they were fled, apprehending him and his Company perhaps to have been a Party of Spaniards. Here, as Keymis goes on, Gilbert my Pilot offered to bring us either to the Mine of white Stones near Winicapora, or elſe to a gold Mine which Putiima had ſhewed him, being but one Day's Journey over-land from the Place where we now ſtaid at Anchor. I ſaw far off the Mountains adjoining to this gold Mine; and, having meaſured their Paths near the ſame Place this laſt Year, could not judge it to be 15 Miles from us. I do well remember, how coming that Way with Putiima the Year before, he pointed to this ſame Mountain, making Signs to have me go with him thither. I underſtood his Signs, and marked the Place, but miſtook his Meaning, imagining that he would have ſhewed [197] me the Over-fall of the River Curwari from the Mountains. My Indian ſhewed me in what Sort, without digging, they gather the Gold in the Sand of a ſmall River named Macawini, which ſprings and falls from the Rocks where this Mine is. And further told me, that he was with Putiima when Morequito was to be executed by the Spaniards, and that then the chief of Morequito's Friends were in Conſultation to ſhew this Mine unto them, if it might redeem their Captain's Life; but upon better Advice, ſuppoſing them in this Caſe to be implacable, and that this might prove a Means to loſe not only their King, but their Country, they have to this Day concealed it from them, being of all others the richeſt and moſt plentiful. And a little further, among the Reaſons he gives for his not bringing Proofs away from this Mountain of his having known the Contents of it, this is one, Forethinking withal that there being no means but ourſelves to make known our Diſcovery, if we returned not; in our Misfortune, the Hope of following this Voyage would be buried. And further ſtill, he ſays, I could promiſe Hope of gold Mines, and certain Aſſurances of Pieces of made Gold; of Spleen ſtones, Kidney-ſtones, and others of better Eſtimate: But becauſe our Belief ſeems to be matted in theſe greater Matters, and a Certainty of ſmaller Profits is the readieſt Inducement to quicken our weak Hopes, I go not ſo far, ſays he, as my own Eyes might warrant me. Theſe Teſtimonies, and others which may be produced *, will both ſhew, that [198] Ralegh was not more Sanguine in his golden Hopes and Promiſes, than the Experience of other Men, as well as his own, would juſtify.

When Keymis was arrived at the Port of Carapana, this Caſique ſent ſome of his People in Canoes to aſſure him he would come down next Day and have a Conference with him; but not coming in five or ſix Days, he at laſt ſent one of his aged Attendants to excuſe the Fatigue of ſuch a Journey, ſo unfavourable were the Ways, and himſelf ſo diſabled with Years and Infirmities. This old Envoy then enlarged upon the Inconveniencies they felt in uſing the Spaniards Aſſiſtance againſt their Enemies, eſpecially when he compared their Conduct with that of the Queen of England's Subjects under her great Commander: For, ſaid he, the laſt Year, we doubted not but that he, being able, would have perſecuted us as the Supporters of your Adverſaries; would have taken our Towns, and have made us ranſome our Wives and Children: But we found it far otherwiſe; and that none of your well-governed Company durſt offer us any Wrong; no, not when undiſcovered they might have done it. We then believed to be true, what your grand Captain reported of his Princeſs; took this for a good Proof of her royal Authority and Wiſdom, that had framed her Subjects to ſuch Obedience; and of your Happineſs, who enjoyed the Benefit thereof: Wherefore Carapana, weighing the friendly Courſe of theſe Proceedings, doth humbly [...]rave of her Majeſty, for himſelf and his People, that with the Reſt of the Indians, who wholly depend on her princely Regard, he alſo may enjoy her favourable [199] Protection; not as a Man forſaken by the Spaniards, but one that, knowing their Injuſtice, hates their Cruelties, and takes it for the beſt Courſe utterly to diſclaim their Friendſhip. Here Keymis breaks off, to conſider it as a Matter worthy of Obſervation, how this Precedent of Ralegh's Moderation and good Order, which, among them, his Countrymen, who knew him, was but his cuſtomary Comportment, or ordinary Practice, therefore of ſmall Regard with them, had yet both alienated the Indians Hearts altogether from the Spaniard, and ſtirred up in them true Love and Admiration thereof. After this, he diſcloſes his further Knowledge of the Indian Wealth aforeſaid in theſe Words: This old Man ſhewed whence moſt of their Gold cometh, which is formed in ſo many Faſhions; whence their Spleen-ſtones, and others of all Sorts, are to be had in Plenty; where Gold is to be gathered in the Sands of their Rivers; from what Part the Spaniards, both by Trade and otherwiſe, have returned much Gold; and doubts not but all this was divulged with the Conſent of Carapana, as an Invitation to the further Aid and Protection he expected from the Engliſh.

Accordingly Keymis, finding it was in vain to hope for a Conference with that well-wiſhing, but wary Caſique, and, having ſent him a Preſent of Iron, gave Aſſurance to all the Indians who repaired to him of his ſpeedy Return with Succours; promiſing to make them all rich in Hatchets, Knives *, and Beads, if they would only reſerve [200] good Store of their Caſſavi (which they uſed for Bread) and ſome Plates of Gold, for Exchange. And having further ſpent ſome Time in the Diſcovery of above 50 ſeveral Rivers, Tribes or Nations of People, Towns and Caſiques in this Voyage, he directed his Courſe homewards, and arrived at Portland in the latter End of June aforeſaid; having ſpent five Months in going, ſtaying, and returning. As ſoon as he got Home, he found Ralegh had been gone upon a grand Expedition out of the Nation near a Month. Therefore he had Time to draw up his Account of this Voyage (whence the Paſſages which more immediately relate to our Subject are extracted) ready to preſent him with at his Return into England; which he did, and dedicated it To the approved, right valorous, and worthy Knight Sir Walter Ralegh, Lord-warden, &c.

When Keymis return'd into England, Ralegh was gone upon that Enterprize which proved the moſt renowned of any the Engliſh undertook in thoſe Days againſt the Spaniards. For the Queen having heard they had received Encouragement from Tir-Oen, the Iriſh Rebel, to threaten her with a new Invaſion; that becauſe ſhe had ſtrengthened their Enemies, they would take the ſhorteſt Courſe, and begin with England. Therefore had made great Naval Preparations, to which they might not be a little embolden'd both by the Death of her two brave old Commanders, Drake and Hawkins; and again by their late Succeſs, no further from her own Coaſts than Calais; which taking by Storm, under Cardinal Albert, Arch-Duke of Auſtria and Governor of the Netherlands, the Thunder of the Spaniſh Artillery alarmed her Majeſty's Ears in her Palace at Greenwich. This Poſture of Affairs made the Queen determine, to uſe the moſt effectual Means for preventing the [201] Miſchiefs of an Aſſault, by taking the Start of them, and ſending a Force ſufficient to deſtroy the Spaniſh Shipping in their own Harbours. Accordingly a powerful Fleet was fitted out to the Number of 150 Sail, according to Camden from Stow, and Speed from both. But in the old Manuſcript Liſt of this Fleet, which Camden followed as to the Number of Men, it appears there were no more than 96 Ships of the Engliſh Navy, which were afterwards join'd by 24 Sail of Hollanders, as I gather out of Grotius and their other Hiſtorians. This Engliſh Fleet contain'd about 14000 Men, wereof 100 were Voluntiers. Now if to this Number of Men, we add alſo that in the Dutch Ships, which according to their own Computation was near 2600 Men, there might be enough to leave the whole Fleet furniſh'd with ſufficient Hands to guard and work it, and allow of 10360 Men to land upon the Spaniſh Coaſt.

The Lord Admiral Howard and the Earl of Eſſex were joined in Commiſſion Generals of this Enterprize; but the Queen conſidering what there might be wanting to keep an old Head and a young one, a cool and a warm one in due Temper and Harmony, allotted them a Council of War in theſe Words. For the better and more orderly Execution of this your Commiſſion, and of thoſe former Articles compriſed in theſe our Inſtructions, we do ordain, that there ſhall be two Perſons ſerving for the Seas, and two that are appointed to ſerve for Land Service, to be as Counſellors to you in our Name, that is, the Lord Thomas Howard, and Sir Walter Ralegh; Sir Francis Vere and Sir Coniers Clifford; and to theſe four, we do add Sir George Carew, Lieutenant of our Ordnance, to make the Number of five; whom alſo we charge by theſe Preſents, that they will, as they will anſwer before God, give their Councils to [202] you both, without any private Reſpect to either of you, for Love or Fear, in all Actions to be put in Queſtion or taken in hand; and the ſame deliberately to debate, as the Weight of the Matter ſhall require, before any Reſolution be made, and before the putting of the Matter in Action. There is further to be underſtood by thoſe two Perſons ſerving for the Seas, that the Lord Thomas Howard and Sir Walter Ralegh were alſo conſtituted Admirals in this Expedition. Hence was the whole Engliſh Fleet divided into four Squadrons, and ſo it appears in the Liſt aforeſaid, wherein we find that which was commanded by Ralegh conſiſted of 22 Ships, 1352 Mariners, and 1875 Soldiers. The Dutch Squadron was commanded by the Admiral of Holland, named John Duvenvord, Lord of Warmondt. How Eſſex reliſh'd the Diviſion of Authority, may be ſomewhat gueſs'd at by the Queen's Anſwer to one of his Letters it ſeems, which ſhe thought very ſtrange. You mention, ſays ſhe, firſt a Danger to commit Authority to any other, becauſe you are referr'd to your Commiſſion and Inſtructions formerly ſent you, which hath no Power of Deputation; as who ſhould ſay, that if you did follow the Directions of our Hand, our great Seal in this Matter ſhould be brought to diſpute the Validity of your Warrant. A little further it appears, that he had been impatient to be gone for fear he ſhould be detain'd, for the Queen had perſuaded him to ſtay behind; but not prevailing, ſhe at length told him, Though we meant to drive it to the laſt Conſiderations and utmoſt Debates as much as could be, yet we compared Times ſo ſufficiently, as a Prince who knows what belongs to ſuch a Matter, that nothing ſhould be done to retard you (being ready) one Hour: For as we know Ralegh not to be arriv'd, ſo we know after it, ſome Time to embark ſuch an Army muſt be required. But [203] Ralegh joined the Fleet, and the whole Army was embark'd within ten Days after the Writing of this Letter, for on the 1ſt of June before mentioned the Fleet ſet Sail from Plymouth. When they came to the North Cape of Spain, they called a ſelect Council, by hanging out the Flag of Arms; and then had the Maſter and Captain of every Ship his ſealed Inſtructions given him, or Letters of Rendezvous, which were not to be open'd till they were paſt Cape St. Vincent, unleſs ſeparated by bad Weather; but to be thrown overboard in Caſe of Danger from the Enemy; and by which it appear'd the Voyage was determin'd for Cadiz. They had a fortunate Progreſs, both as to the Wind, and the taking of every Ship, which could give the Enemy Intelligence of their Approach. On the 20th of June the Fleet came to Anchor in the Bay of St. Sebaſtians, ſhort of Cadiz half a League. The Lord-Admiral, being careful of her Majeſty Ships, had reſolved, with the Earl of Eſſex, that the Town ſhould be firſt attempted, to the End that both the Spaniſh Galleons and Galleys, together with the Forts of Cadiz, might not all at once beat upon the Engliſh Navy. Ralegh was not preſent at this Reſolution, as himſelf has declar'd in that Account of this Action, which he diſpatched ſoon after it was over to a Miniſter of State in England; which being the cleareſt I have met with, and eaſieſt to be confirmed, not only by the more indifferent Pens of Foreigners, but the moſt partial ones of our own Country, thoſe of his Competitors themſelves for Honour in this Engagement, will here be our beſt Guide. Hence therefore we learn the Reaſon of Ralegh's Aoſence at that Reſolution of firſt landing the Army to have been, becauſe he was engaged the Day before outward on the Seas in ſtopping ſuch Spaniſh Ships as might paſs out from [204] St. Lucar or Cadiz along the Coaſt. When he return'd, two Hours after the reſt, he found the Earl of Eſſex diſembarking his Soldiers, having put many Companies into Boats, with Intention to make his Deſcent on the weſt-Side of Cadiz; but the Bilbows were ſo raging, that the Boats were ready to ſink at the Stern of the Earl, and divers were loſt with ſome armed Soldiers in them; but becauſe this Courſe had been reſolved on, and that doubting, now in the Danger, might look like dreading of it, the Earl continued his Purpoſe of landing; when Ralegh came aboard his Ship, and, in the Preſence of all the Colonels, proteſted againſt the Reſolution; giving him many Reaſons and apparent Demonſtrations, that, to the utter Overthrow of their Armies, themſelves, and her Majeſty's future Safety, he was running the Way of a general Ruin. The Earl excuſed himſelf, and laid it upon the Lord-Admiral, who would not conſent, he ſaid, to enter with the Fleet till the Town was firſt poſſeſſed. All the Commanders and Gentlemen preſent beſought Ralegh to diſſuade the Attempt, for they all perceived the Danger, and were convinced that the greateſt Part muſt periſh ere they could ſet Foot on Ground; and if any reached the Shore, yet would they ſurely have their Boats caſt on their Heads; and 20 Men, in ſuch a deſperate Deſcent, might defeat them all. The Earl hereupon prayed Ralegh to go and perſwade the Lord Admiral, who being alſo by him made ſenſible, that certain Deſtruction would be the Conſequence of purſuing the former Reſolution, conſented to enter the Port. When Ralegh brought Eſſex the News of this Agreement, and call'd out of his Boat Entramos, Entramos, as he return'd towards him, the Earl threw his Hat into the Sea for Joy, and prepared to weigh Anchor. The Day [205] was now far ſpent, and it required much Time to return the Boats of Soldiers to their own Ships. So as that Night they could not attempt the Fleet, Altho' many, ſeeming deſperately valiant, thought it a Fault of mine, ſays Ralegh, to delay it till Morning, though we had neither agreed in what Manner to fight, nor appointed who ſhould lead, and who ſecond; whether by boarding or otherwiſe; neither could our Fleet poſſibly recover all their Men in before Sun-ſet. But both the Generals being pleaſed to hear me, and many Times to be adviſed by ſo mean an Underſtanding, came again to Anchor, and in the very Mouth of the Harbour. So that Night, about 10 o'Clock, I wrote a Letter to the Lord Admiral, declaring therein my Opinion, how the Fight ſhould be order'd; perſuading him to appoint to each of the great Galleons of Spain, two great Fly-hoats to board them, after the Queen's Ships had batter'd them; for I knew that both St. Philip and the Reſt would burn, and not yield; and then to loſe ſo many of the Queen's Ships for Company, I thought too dear a Purchaſe, and what would be termed but a lamentable Victory.

This Method being agreed on, and both the Generals perſuaded to lead the Body of the Fleet, the Charge of the Van, for putting it in Execution, was, upon Ralegh's Requeſt, granted and aſſigned to him. The Ship himſelf was in, called the Warſpite, was one of the Queen's, and carried about 290 Mariners. The Reſt, appointed out of her Navy to ſecond him, were, the Mary-Roſe, commanded by Sir George Carew, the Lion by Sir Robert Southwell, the Rainbow by Sir Francis Vere, the Swiftſure by Capt. Croſs, the Dreadnought by Sir Coniers and Alex. Clifford, the Nonpareil by Mr. Robert Dudley; beſides 12 Londoners and certain Fly-Boats. Thus the Lord Thomas Howard, becauſe the Mer Honeur, which he commanded, [206] was one of the greateſt Ships, was alſo left behind with the Generals; but being impatient thereof, he preſſed them to have the Service committed to him, and to that End exchanged his Ship with Mr. Dudley. Hereupon Ralegh obſerves, For my own Part, as I was willing to give Honour to my Lord Thomas, having both Precedency in the Army, and being a Nobleman whom I much honoured; ſo I was yet reſolved to give, and not to take Example for this Service, holding my own Reputation deareſt. Therefore with the firſt Peep of Day he weighed Anchor, taking the Start of all others a good Diſtance, and bear with the Enemy, who was in the following Diſpoſition to receive him.

Under the Walls of Cadiz were ranged 17 Galleys, which lay with their Prows to flank his Entrance. There was alſo a Fort called Philip, which beat into and commanded the Harbour, beſides the Ordnance, which lay all along the Curtain upon the Wall towards the Sea, and divers other Pieces of Culverin which ſcoured the Channel. Notwithſtanding, as ſoon as the Enemy perceived an Engliſh Admiral under Sail approaching, ſeveral of their Galleons and other Ships of War, with 40 great Veſſels beſides bound for Mexico and other Parts, alſo ſet ſail. Of all which, the St. Philip, Matthew, Andrew and Thomas, being four of the capital Galleons of Spain, came again to anchor under the Fort of Puntal, in a Streight of the Harbour which leads over to Puerto Real. On the ſtarboard Side of them, they placed three Frigats of War; at their Back, two great Galleons of Liſbon, beſides two well furniſhed Argoſies; and the 17 Gallies by three and three, were to interlace them as Occaſion ſhould be offered. The Admiral, Vice-admiral, and Rear-Admiral of New Spain, with the Body of the Fleet, were ranged [207] behind them towards Puerto Real, hoping with this great Strength to defend the Entrance, the Place being no broader from point to point, than that their Line did in Effect ſtretch over the Streight as a Bridge, and had beſides the Fort of Puntal for their Guard.

Ralegh, as aforeſaid, advancing in the Van, was firſt ſaluted by Fort Philip *, next by the Cannon on the Curtain, and laſtly in good Order by the 17 Gallies which lay near the Town with all their Prows bent againſt him as he entered. Ralegh anſwered the firing of their Ordnance with a Flouriſh of his Trumpets, and ſtill kept driving forwards, that he might draw up a Sufficiency of the Engliſh Fleet into Play, and to engage thoſe he paſſed by, while he was in Action upon the Body of the Enemy. Accordingly the Ships that followed beat upon the Galleys ſo thick, that they ſoon betook them to their Oars, and got up to join with the Galleons in the Streight, as aforeſaid; then as they were driven to paſs near him, he beſtow'd his Benediction from ſeveral Broadſides among them; but ply'd St. Philip, the great and famous Admiral of Spain, moſt conſtantly, as being moſt worthy of his Fire; and being now reſolved to repay the Enemy's former Treatment of the Revenge, or to ſecond her Loſs with his own Life, he came to Anchor [208] by the great Galleons, whereof the Philip and the Andrew were the two which boarded that brave Engliſh Ship. Here he fell to battering of them very briſkly, expecting after awhile the Fly-Boats to come up, that he might board and take them. And now began the Engagement to be very deſperate. The Lord Thomas came to anchor on one ſide of him, though pretty much behind, with Sir Robert Southwell; Sir George Carew and the Cliffords on the other, and Sir Francis Vere was towards the ſide of Puntal. At laſt the Thunder of the Ordnance grew ſo great about Ten a-Clock in the Morning, that Eſſex, impatient to abide far off, thruſt up through the Fleet, heading all thoſe on the left Hand, and on that ſide anchor'd next to Ralegh; afterwards came in Captain Croſs as near as he could; but Ralegh, to his great Honour, held always ſingle in the head of all. Now after they had beat, as at two Buts, one upon another almoſt three Hours; ſo that the Volleys of Cannon and Culverin came as thick as if it had been a Skirmiſh of Muſketeers, till Ralegh's Ship was in Danger of ſinking in the Place, he made away to Eſſex in his Skiff, to deſire that he would inforce the promiſed Fly-Boats to come up, that he might board; for as he rid, he could not long endure ſo great a Battery.

Eſſex was then coming up himſelf; to whom Ralegh declared, That if the Flyboats came not, he would board in the Queen's Ship; for it was the ſame Loſs to burn or ſink, and one he muſt endure. Then the Earl promiſed him, That whatever he attempted, he would ſecond him in Perſon upon Honour. In the mean while, the Lord Admiral Howard, being alſo at firſt diſpoſed to advance, but the River was ſo choaked that he could not paſs in the Ark, came with the Lord Thomas in the Nonpareil; and [209] while Ralegh was ſpeaking to Eſſex, the Marſhal (Vere) who thought it ſome Touch, ſays Ralegh, to his great eſteemed Valour, to ride behind me ſo many Hours, got up a-head of my Ship; which Lord Thomas perceiving, headed him again, myſelf being but a Quarter of an Hour abſent. At my return, finding myſelf from being the firſt to be but the third, I preſently let ſlip Anchor, and thruſting in between the Lord Thomas and the Marſhal, went further a-head than all of them before, and thruſt myſelf athwart the Channel, ſo as I was ſure none ſhould outſtart me again for that Day. Eſſex thinking his Ship ſtronger than the reſt, thruſt Clifford's aſide, and ſtill got next to Ralegh, on the left Hand, a-head of all that Rank, but Lord Thomas; while Vere ſecretly faſtned a Rope on Ralegh's Ship-ſide towards him, and drew himſelf up equal with him; but ſome of his Company advertiſing him thereof, he cauſed it to be cut aſunder, ſo Vere fell back into his Place, whom Ralegh guarded all but his Prow from the Sight of the Enemy.

But now Ralegh having no Hopes of his Flyboats, and Eſſex with the Lord Thomas having promiſed to ſecond him, he laid out a Warp by the Side of the Philip to cloſe, the Wind hindering him otherwiſe to board her; and when the Admiral thereof, with the Commanders of the other three wooden Apoſtles, found that Eſſex and the Lord Thomas began to do the like, they all ſlipped Anchor, and ran aground; Heaps of Soldiers and Mariners tumbling into the Sea like Coals out of a Sack, ſays Ralegh, into many Ports at once; ſome drowning, ſome ſticking in the Mud. He alſo tells us, the Philip thereupon burnt herſelf; and another Author more particularly in theſe Words: As Ralegh thought to have boarded the great Galleon St. Philip, a Negro gave fire to the Powder, and [210] eſcaped by ſwimming; it gave ſo great a Crack, that the Maſt was blown up into the Air, as if it had been an Arrow. A Pinnace that lay near it was burnt, but the Men eſcaped in Boats. The other Galleon, called St. Thomas, was likewiſe blown up, but did no Harm to the Englſh. He alſo mentions two Eaſterlings which ran aſhore, and were burnt; but, ſays he, the St. Matthew and St. Andrew, of 10 or 1200 Ton a-piece, were ſaved from running aground, and carried away. However, he does not inform us particularly by whom; and others ſeem to have done Ralegh more wrong, in nominating other Perſons, and omitting him in the Performance; ſince it appears under his own Handwriting, that he took them both himſelf. And this agrees with the Manner his Letter of this Action in Print has expreſſed it, where he ſays, thoſe Galleons were recovered with our Boats e'er they could get out to fire them. Here he obſerves upon the Enemies running to the Shores, and thus firing their Ships, that the Spectacle was very lamentable on their Side; for many drowned themſelves; many half burnt, leaped into the Water; very many, hanging at the Ropesends by the Ship's Side under the Water, even to the Lips; many ſwimming with grievous Wounds, 'till ſtruck under Water, and put out of their Pain; and withal ſuch huge Fires, and ſuch tearing of the Ordnance, in the Great Philip and the reſt, when the Flames came to them, that Ralegh thought there was here to be ſeen the moſt lively Figure of Hell itſelf.

Thus the Victory was obtained by Sea, and the Bay reſigned by two, ſome ſay, by four o'Clock in the Afternoon; though no more of the Engliſh were conſtantly and cloſely engaged, than the Ships and Commanders before-mentioned, againſt the ſix great Galleons, 17 Gallies, with the Fleet of New [211] Spain, Argoſies, and Frigats, to the Number of 55, or 57, as Ralegh himſelf reckons them, beſides the Fort of Puntal playing upon them all the while. After the Victory, Ourſelves ſpared the Lives of all, ſays Ralegh; but the Flemings, who did little or nothing in the Fight, uſed mercileſs Slaughter; 'till they were by myſelf, and afterwards by my Lord-admiral beaten off.

Then did they haſten to land the Army, and attempt the Town *; in which there were of all Sorts above 5150 Soldiers in pay, and about 800 Horſe of the Gentry and Caviliers of Xeres gathered together upon the Diſcovery of the Engliſh Fleet two Days before, as they lay becalmed off Cape St. Mary. The Horſemen ſallied out to reſiſt their Landing, but were ſo vigorouſly aſſailed and overpowered by the Engliſh, that the greateſt Part made away to the Bridge which leads to the Main, called Puente de Suaço; the reſt retreated to the Town, and were ſo eagerly purſued, that they were driven to forſake their Horſes at the Gate, which the Inhabitants durſt not open to admit them; ſo that they were forced to leap down an old Wall into the Suburbs, which the Engliſh Vanguard, cloſe at their Heels, perceiving, with Eſſex at their Head, followed them; and ſo the Town was carried with [212] a ſudden Fury, in a ſhort Space of Time, and with very little Loſs. Ralegh, though he had received a grievous Wound in his Leg, being much torn and deformed with a Splinter-ſhot in the Fight; yet, willing to encourage the Army with his Preſence, and deſirous of ſeeing the Actions and Diſpoſitions of the Enemy, he was carried aſhore on the Shoulders of his Men, where the Lord-admiral, out of his Care and Regard, ſent him one of his Horſes; but his own being recovered in due Time, was made ready for him.

The Torment he endur'd, and the Fear he was continually in of being ſhoulder'd by the tumultuous Soldiers, abandon'd to Spoil and Rapine, without any Reſpect of Perſons, made him unable to abide above an Hour in the Town. *The ſame Night therefore he return'd, chiefly becauſe there was no Admiral on board to order the Fleet, or indeed few Mariners left in the Navy; all, to uſe his own Words, running headlong to the Sack; and alſo becauſe he was fit for nothing but Reſt and Retirement at that Time: Otherwiſe he might, like the reſt of the Commanders, have rewarded himſelf for his Services. But leaving them in ſafe Poſſeſſion at his Departure, they promiſed to preſerve for him his Share of the Booty, and to give him a good Quarter of the Town; of which, as [213] we have it under his own Hand, they defrauded him. He had deſired the Conſent of the Generals, that he might go and ſecure or deſtroy the Indian Fleet, which was ſaid to be worth twelve Millions, and lay in Puerto-Real Road; but they deſired to conſider on it till next Morning. At Break of Day, Ralegh ſent his Brother, Sir John Gilbert, and Sir Arthur Throgmorton, as alſo Sir Henry Leonard, to know their Reſolution; but the Generals ſent back to deſire he would come aſhore into the Town. Ralegh very favourable imputes theſe Evaſions to the great Confuſion, in which it was almoſt impoſſible for them to order many Things at once. In the Afternoon of the ſame Day, the Merchants of Cadiz and Seville offer'd the Generals, by the Committee of the Contractation-Houſe, with the Purveyor, Corrigidor, and other Officers, two Millions of Ducats to ſpare that Fleet; neither could this bring them to any Reſolution, ſo that Advantage was loſt. Ralegh might poſſibly inſiſt upon a larger Compoſition, by ſaying, They ought firſt to be Maſters of the Fleet, and ranſom it afterwards; for if they offer'd two Millions already, they would give four when it was taken. But it appears plain enough, that Eſſex was not for having the Fleet ſeiz'd upon, unleſs by Sir Chriſtopher Blunt, Sir Edward Conway, Sir Thomas Gerrard, and other Land Officers, which Ralegh would not conſent to for the Honour of the Sailors; as it does appear from Cambden, that the Lord-Admiral would not conſent to any Compoſition. For we came, ſaid he, to conſume them, and not compound with them. But they ſaved him the Trouble; for the next Morning, being the 23d of June, the Duke of Medina cauſed all that Fleet of Merchantmen to be ſet on Fire, becauſe he was convinced, from their being beſet ſo vigilantly by Ralegh, [214] who had the Charge of them, that they muſt needs fall into his Hands. Thus both Galleons, Frigats, Argoſies, with the Fleet of Nueva Eſpana, and all except the Gallies, which it ſeems eſcaped, were conſumed to Aſhes. Good Store of the Enemy's Ordnance was recover'd out of their Ships, and great Quantities of Merchandize, Plate, Jewels, and Money, out of the Town: Their whole Loſs being computed at twenty Millions of Ducats. *Many rich Priſoners were given to the Land Commanders, ſo as that Sort were very rich, ſays Ralegh; ſome had for their Priſoners ſixteen or twenty Thouſand, ſome ten thouſand Ducats, beſides great Houſes of Merchandize. What the Generals have gotten I know leaſt (concludes he;) they proteſt it is little: For my own Part, I have gotten a lame Leg, and a deformed; for the reſt, either I ſpoke too late, or it was otherwiſe reſolved. I have not been wanting in good Words, or exceeding kind and regardful Uſage; but have Poſſeſſion of nought but Poverty and Pain.

It was long diſputed, whether the Town ſhould be held or no, ſay Sir Francis Vere; who adds, that my Lord of Eſſex ſeemed to affect to remain there in Perſon; as, we may add, Vere did too; [215] becauſe, he ſays, he offer'd to defend it with 4000 Men, till her Majeſty's Pleaſure ſhould be known; when, in Truth, the Queen's Pleaſure, in this Particular, was known before they left England: For Eſſex himſelf informs us, he ſent Letters from Plymouth, before they ſet ſail, by his Secretary Edward Reignold, to the Council at Greenwich; wherein he purpoſed, to dwell in a Port of the Enemy's, and to make a continual Diverſion of the Wars; but, ſays he, My Letters were neither anſwer'd, nor liked of. And much leſs was the ſame Propoſal now reliſh'd in Cadiz, when ſo many wanted to guard and ſecure the Treaſures they had got; and it was computed, they would all ſoon grow in Want of Proviſions; nay, one of his own Knights advis'd him to maſter and deſtroy Ships rather than Towns, as what would make the Enemy more unable to moleſt them, and procure him Wealth and ſolid Honour, without Riot and Ruin of the Innocent; beſides, the Riches in Ships could not be ſo eaſily conceal'd and convey'd away, as in Towns; alſo they might be brought into England, and would be viſible Monuments to his Glory; but Towns, tho' ſoon won, could not be long enjoy'd.

For theſe and other Reaſons Eſſex was prevail'd upon to leave Cadiz; but they firſt of all cauſed the City to be raz'd, and, with the Caſtles and Fortifications, fired, all but the Churches and Religious Houſes; together with all the naval Tackle and Proviſion they could meet with, which they either needed not, or could not conveniently carry away. Their Courteſy however to the People, eſpecially of Diſtinction, and all who had made no Oppoſition, was ſuch, that, at their Departure, the Spaniards did the Engliſh the Juſtice to ſay, Tho' they were Hereticks as to Religion, yet as to the [216] reſt, they had behaved themſelves with generous Bravery.

On the 5th of July the Army embarked; and in Council, it was inſiſted on to lie out at Sea for intercepting the Weſt-Indian Fleet; but the Scarceneſs of our Victuals, ſays Vere, overthrew that Purpoſe. So Reſolution was taken to make for England, and viſit the Spaniſh Coaſts in the Way, to deſtroy their Shipping. The firſt Place they made to was Faro, a good large populous Town, but unfenc'd, and a Biſhop's See of Portugal. Here the Engliſh landing, and marching up to the Town, the Inhabitants deſerted it, and left them in full Poſſeſſion; who, after having reſted and refreſhed themſelves five or ſix Days, brought good Store of Proviſions to the Ships; alſo ſome Pieces of Artillery, and the valuable Library of the late famous Biſhop Oſorius. *There is another Author who [217] mentions the taking of this Town, and conſequently that Library, among Ralegh's Victories; deſcribing the Buildings to have been left ſo demoliſhed, as to yield no Covering for their Idols. But ſince that Library is obſerved by Camden to have been thought by right Eſſex's Prize, as if this Earl had ſome-how contended to engroſs it to himſelf; it may ſomewhat direct us, to whoſe greater Value for the Labours of the Learned, and more public Spirit in this particular, 'tis owing, that it was more commendably beſtowed; being brought into England, ſays Monſon, and made (it ſeems an exemplary Foundation of the publick Library which was begun by Sir Thomas Bodley the enſuing Year at Oxford. What Share Ralegh had in this Diſpoſal, towards the ſaid renowned Undertaking of that learned Knight, his Countryman and Acquaintance, Authorities are wanting, further than by Surmiſe from theſe Premiſes, to certify. But this we have expreſly enough tranſmitted to us of him by Bodley himſelf, even in the next Reign, about nine Years after this Time, when Ralegh was under great Miſfortunes; and therefore, when an Act of Munificence muſt ſhine with the greateſt Splendor, that he generouſly contributed towards the Improvement of that Library the Sum of 50 l. for which, ſays Sir Thomas Bodley, I will intreat the Vicechancellor to move the Univerſity for their Letters to him (and the other Benefactors mentioned with him) of publick Thanks.

When the Forces were got again on Board, they failed to the Groyne, and looked into the Bay; but [218] the Wind being unfavourable, they thought it dangerous to enter; therefore, and becauſe the Victuals daily grew more ſcarce, ſo that in ſome Ships there was already extreme Want, ſays Sir Francis Vere, it was reſolved to make Homewards: However, Sir William Monſon, in Favour of Eſſex's Impatience to go upon freſh Exploits, computes they had enough Proviſion to ſupply them ſeven Weeks. Monſon alſo imputes the general Declenſion of the Officers from any further Invaſion of the Spaniards at this Time, to the Covetouſneſs of thoſe who wanted to ſecure the Treaſures they had amaſſed. And indeed Vere diſcovers not any Concurrence now with Eſſex's new Schemes of Adventure, as might have been expected towards a Patron who had ſhewn him ſo much Favour and Countenance; but viſibly haſtens Home upon the Complaint of the Scarcity aforeſaid. And yet that which might be thought Vere's true Motive for returning, was never imputed to the Lord-admiral nor Sir Walter Ralegh, tho', both by Speech and Writing, they argued for it as much as any; for they had engroſſed no Booty that might be endangered by entering upon further Engagements abroad. Yet had they other Objections to theſe inconſiderate Projects, than the Want of Victuals or Sickneſs of Men; for after both theſe Inconveniencies in Ralegh's Ship were propoſed to be redreſs'd by Eſſex, as Monſon tells us, Ralegh was as reſolute againſt hazarding the Honour, as others the Riches that was got at Cadiz; and in this entirely agreed with the Lord-admiral, who perſuaded them to conſider how ſubject they might be to great Loſſes in little Enterprizes, which would not add much to their Praiſe, if they ſucceeded; but ſurely would to their Diſcredit if they failed. This being the Senſe of the greater or [219] the wiſer Part, moſt of the Fleet returned with the Lord-admiral to Plymouth on the 8th of Auguſt following; and the Reſt, with the Earl of Eſſex, two Days after; who thence took his Journey to Court, as Ralegh probably did at the ſame Time. On the 13th of the ſame Month, we find by a Letter from the Council of State to the Lord-admiral, then advanced with the Fleet to the Downs, that Ralegh as well as Eſſex had been with them, and probably with the Queen; from whom we hear of no Objections made to Ralegh's Conduct in the whole Action: Therefore probably he was among thoſe principal Actors therein, whom ſhe diſtinguiſhed with liberal Praiſes and Rewards. Yet that Letter does diſcover her Majeſty's Diſſatisfaction towards the Lord-admiral, that he did not lie in wait for the Carracks, or the Weſt-Indian Fleet, as Eſſex had intreated him to do. And whereas Sir Francis Vere ſays, that when Eſſex landed in the Weſt, and left Orders with him for diſſolving not only the Land-forces, but the Shipping, there aroſe much Strife between the ſaid Mariners and his Low-Country Troops at their Parting, the Sailors being determined to ſhare in the Cheſts and Packs wherewith the Soldiers had moſt unproportionably enriched themſelves in the late Spoil; at which Vere complained to the Lord-admiral for Redreſs, adding, that ſome other principal Officers of the Fleet took the Sailors Part; and, as if they thought them unreaſonably dealt with, who had made Way by the Sea-fight, for the Soldiers to get thoſe Riches by Land, asked him, whether the Mariners ſhould have nothing? To which he anſwered, their Hopes in the Indian Fleet were more to be deſired than that Troſh (as he calls it) which the Landmen had got in the Town; ſo as they had none to blame but their Officers, [220] and their bad Fortune: Which Anſwer, ſays he, was taken to Heart, and is not forgotten to this Hour, of which I feel the Smart: If Ralegh was one of thoſe principal Officers here pointed at, who thus ſtood the Sailors Advocate, as he might be, notwithſtanding his expeditious Progreſs to Court, the indifferent Manner wherewith Vere has treated him is very accountable to me. But Vere has further betrayed his Partiality, in not telling us the Conſequence of his ſaid Application to the Lord-Admiral, which appears in that Letter and others, from the Council aforeſaid, to have procured the Diſpoſal of the Spaniſh Plunder towards the Payment of the Engliſh Navy; and that Vere's Low-Country Regiments ſhould not return before they were ſearched both in Ships and Perſon. As for Eſſex, he wrote a Cenſure of the Omiſſions in this Voyage, which he imputes to the Diſſenſions of his Council and Colleague. Whence the common Hiſtorians have been led indiſcriminately to arraign the ſetting forth ſuch Expeditions under Commanders of equal Authority, and have ſo much neglected giving theſe their diſtinct Commendations for what they did, as to cavil at them for what they left undone; while others more gratefully obſerve, That never was ſo much Riches and Renown acquired with the like naval Succeſs; well juſtifying the Honours which were paid to Sir Walter Ralegh, both by the Authors who dedicated Books to him this Year, the Painters and Sculptors, who have appropriated this Sea-fight to his Portraits; and thoſe other Advancers of the like honorary Arts, who, in their Diſcourſes of Medals and Intagias, have thought him worthy, for this, among his many other Actions and Excellencies, of that metallic Commemoration, which is more [221] uſually among us confined to Princes and crowned Heads. *

About two Months after Ralegh's Return from the Conqueſt of Cadiz, we find him making a new Attempt to continue the Intereſt and Correſpondence he had ſo hopefully begun in Guiana. To this End, he mann'd out and ſtor'd, with all proper Conveniencies and Merchandize for Trade and Diſcovery in thoſe Parts, a handſome Pinnace which had been with him in the late Engagement, called after his own Name the Watt. therefore probably one of his own Ships. The Command of her he committed to Captain Leonard Berrie; but, thro' Contrariety of Winds, and other Accidents, they made it the latter End of December following before [222] they got out of Weymouth. In the Beginning of March they diſcover'd the Coaſt, and fell into the River Wiapouco, a River almoſt in four Degrees North of the Line, and about ſixteen Leagues in Length; but not being able to find the Head of its Falls, nor meeting with any of the Inhabitants to ſupply them with Proviſions, they return'd, and made towards the great Town called Aramatto, where they ſtored themſelves to their Deſire, After this, ſeveral of thoſe Natives came in Canoes, and traded with the Engliſh in their Ships. Then Captain Berrie hired ſome of them, with a Preſent of Knives, to go back unto the River Cawo, and invite the Ruler of that Place, named Ritimo, on board, who accordingly came to them in the River Chiana, where he and his Train were feaſted, and traffick'd with the Engliſh much to their Satisfaction: And thither alſo flock'd, from their ſeveral Towns, great Numbers of a civiliz'd Race of Carribes, who brought great Plenty of Victuals and Tobacco, which they exchanged for ſuch Commodities as the Engliſh were well inſtructed to carry thither. After they had declar'd their unanimous Deſire to have the Engliſh come and rout the Spaniards, take Command of the Orenoque, and dwell in the bordering Nations, they departed; and the Engliſh made away to the Careres, or Triangular Iſlands, and kept trading on with the People of the neighbouring Towns, who familiarly reſorted to them. Then they paſſed along through the River Marawin, to Quiparia and Macirra, for about 40 or 50 Leagues upward to the Falls of that River, and to the Sight of a rich Country above, where the People were of an extraordinary Stature, and carried Bows hafted with Gold; but were forced to return without compleating that Diſcovery, for Want of Proviſion; though my Author, [223] one of the Adventurers, thought the Palmito's, and other Trees in the Woods, would have ſupported them till they could have rewarded themſelves with what might have done us good, ſays he, as long as we had lived. On the 15th of April 1597, they returned from that River, and wandered through ſeveral others; till, about four Days after, they fell into the Coritine. In this River they met a Bark, called, the John of London, commanded by Captain Leigh (the ſame, I ſuppoſe, who afterwards made other Voyages to Guiana; and took further Poſſeſſion of the Country, not by Force, the Spaniards Title, but Conſent of the People; tho' for a Prince indeed, who deſerved no Right there which he had not the Spirit to maintain.) And falling down ſome five Leagues from the Mouth thereof, upon Intelligence that the Deſſekebe, with which that River meets, would lead them within a Day's Journey of the Lake Perima, whereon Manoa was ſuppſed to ſtand, they meant to diſcover a Paſſage to this rich City. But, having rowed in their Boats about fifty Leagues from the Mouth of the Coritine to the Falls of the ſaid River, where, having been credibly inform'd that five Days Journey further there was a Fall impaſſable; and, finding withal ſome of the Towns bordering thereon ſo importunate to engage them in Wars againſt their Enemies the Waccawaes, which would turn greatly to the Diſadvantage of the Engliſh, when Sir Walter Ralegh ſhould again return thither, becauſe he would have Occaſion to paſs that River, which was reported to have Gold in it; they therefore were conſtrained to return. So, clearing themſelves of this Coaſt, they took their Courſe to the Iſlands of the Weſt-Indies. Here my Author, who was a Gentleman of the Company, after having ſpoke in Praiſe of the Climate, how [224] temperate and wholſome it is, tho' within the Tropic, and ſo near the Equinoctial; as alſo how docible the Natives, and humane (eſpecially to Engliſhmen) tho' a ſavage and uncultivated People; he proceeds to ſpeak of their Riches in theſe Words. In the upper Countries they go apparel'd, being, as it ſeems, of moſt civil Diſpoſitions; having great Store of Gold, as we are certainly inform'd by the lower Indians, of whom we had ſome Gold, which they brought and bought in the high Country of Wiana; being able to buy no more, becauſe they wanted the Things which now we have left among them. *Then, having taken a little further Notice of their Manners, with the Plenty and Variety of their Proviſions, he ſhews what Courſe his Company took [225] homewards, and how they arriv'd ſafe at Plymouth on the 28th of June following.

Thus have we abſtracted all the Voyages Sir Walter Ralegh ſet forth for Diſcoveries, as well as the warlike Expeditions in which he was engag'd, as far as they have been preſerv'd in Hakluyt's Collections. Nor was it without juſt Reaſon, that his ſaid naval Enterprizes were thus carefully gather'd therein; ſince Ralegh's Encouragement was ſuch, of this extraordinary Undertaking, to raiſe a Grove of Laurels, in a Manner out of the Sea, that ſhould overſpread the Iſland with Glory, and might be ſtill made to ſhoot more ſpaciouſly afreſh, were the Author and his Work reviv'd in a Manner ſuitable to their Deſerts, that when even the firſt Edition of theſe Engliſh Voyages was publiſhed, and before they could receive any Luſtre from the Guianian Diſcoveries, the ſaid Author, in his Preface, ackcowledges Sir Walter Ralegh to have been one of thoſe Benefactors, from whom he had received his chief Light into the Weſtern Navigations. Nor did he only oblige Hakluyt with communicating divers maritime Adventures in which he himſelf and Countrymen were concern'd; but procured for him, at no ſmall Expence, ſome very ſcarce Voyages and Diſcoveries of Foreigners which were unprinted; and was moreover at the Charge of rewarding ſome Perſons of Learning and Leiſure to tranſlate them into Engliſh, for the further Enrichment of the ſaid Collections. One Inſtance of this Kind he ſlightly mentions himſelf. For in his learned Enquiries into the Name of the Red Sea, he ſpeaks of a Voyage made thither by the Portugal Viceroy of the Eaſt-Indies, named Stephen Gama, the Narrative whereof was written by Caſtro, one of his principal Commanders; which Diſcourſe, ſays he, I gave Mr. Richard Hakluyt to publiſh. [226] Further, we might expatiate upon this Care he had for the Preſervation of other Mens Fame; but here a gallant Exploit ſollicits our Regard, by which he much encreaſed his own.

For the Earl of Eſſex, grown diſcontented to ſee his Party of ſuch little Power at Court, and the Cecilians carry all before them; that he could not advance ſeveral of his Friends and Followers to certain Poſts in the Army, not even Sir Thomas Bodley to the Office of Secretary, whom he had perhaps prejudic'd with his prodigal Praiſes to the Queen, ſhe having prefer'd Sir Robert Cecyl to that Place, in his Abſence at Cadiz, whom he had as intemperately traduc'd, *reſolved to ſeek, by further Services abroad, to ſtrengthen that Intereſt at home, which he now found ſo weak and unſerviceable; [227] for the King of Spain, enrag'd at the late Overthrow and Deſtruction of Cadiz, had immediately thereupon muſter'd up the naval Powers from all his Ports at Lisbon, for a new Expedition upon England and Ireland; but his old Enemies the Winds and the Waves ſo ſpeedily diſabled and diſperſed them, that the Queen heard of their Fate before ſhe had any Advertiſement of their Deſign: and as ſhe then took Care to fortify ſuch Caſtles as lay moſt obvious to any ſuch Invaſion; ſo now that ſhe heard the Storm was gathering again, by the Repair of the ſaid ſhattered Fleet, and Recruits added to it, threatning a new Deſcent upon Ireland, ſhe reſolved alſo to recollect her Forces by Sea. At firſt indeed, before ſhe was well informed of the Enemy's Strength, ſhe had only armed and victualled ten of her beſt Ships, and cauſed the Low-Countries to provide the like Number under Admiral Duvenvard. But when the Lord Thomas Howard and Sir Walter Ralegh, who were pitched upon for the Command of this Fleet, declared their Hopes of doing any great Service with it to be weak and uncertain, and the News of the Adelantado's ſtronger Preparations at Feroll and the Groyne were daily confirmed, a new Council was call'd; in which it was reſolved, that this naval Force, which the Queen had appointed, was too great for a Diſcovery, and too little for an Attempt; as in the Earl of Eſſex's Apology is rightly obſerved. Therefore, paſſing over the Addition, ſo unaccountably deficient in the ſaid Apology, there were added to the firſt prepared Fleet about ten Ships more of the royal Navy; which, with the other Men of War, Victuallers, Tranſports, and many ſtout Veſſels belonging to the Nobles, Knights and Gentlemen, who were Adventurers in this Voyage, amounted to about [228] 120 Sail, as we are informed by Sir Arthur Gorges, an Officer in this Enterprize. Theſe Ships then being all ſufficiently manned with Sailors, received an Army of 5000 Soldiers, with ten Pieces of Artillery for the Field, and 500 Volunteers moſt georgeouſly equipped. The Proportion of Victuals was for four Months at large Allowance, and double Apparel both for the Soldiers and Mariners. The Lord-Admiral Howard being indiſpoſed, declined the Command; which therefore was granted in Chief to the Earl of Eſſex; but the Lord Thomas Howard was made Vice-Admiral, and Sir Walter Ralegh Rear-Admiral in the Expedition: and theſe three, with four others, made up the Council of War. The Purpoſe of this grand Preparation was to defeat and deſtroy the Spaniſh Fleet aforeſaid at Ferroll, as well as in other Ports of the Enemy; alſo to ſeize upon ſuch Indian Fleets of Treaſure as they ſhould meet with belonging to the King of Spain; but eſpecially to conquer, retain, and engarriſon moſt of the Iſles of the Azores; * [229] and above all the Tercera: wherefore this Enter prize was called the Iſland Voyage.

About the 9th of July following, the whole Fleet ſet ſail from Plymouth, and, for two Days, had a fair leading Wind; in which Time all the Ships received their Directions from the Council of War, with the Meeting-places from Time to Time in Caſe of Separation by Tempeſt, Fight, Chaſe, or any other Accident. But being now advanced about ſixty Leagues, there aroſe ſuch an exceeding high Storm full in their Teeth, and continued for four Days together, that all the Ships were driven, with great Detriment to ſeveral, back into Plymouth; and many died of the Sickneſs it had brought upon them. While they lay here Wind-bound for a Month, and their Proviſions much damaged and conſumed, Eſſex, in company, with Sir Walter Ralegh, rode poſt to Court. The Earl was very forward in his Propoſals to ſet out again with the Fleet as ſoon as it ſhould be repaired, or at leaſt one Half of it, being ſure the Enemy ſhould have felt the Weight and Charge of the Journey. But her Majeſty not accepting his Offer, it was more adviſedly reſolved, to proportion their Expedition to the Opportunities which remained; the Seaſon being ſo far elapſed, and their Proviſions ſo much exhauſted: therefore Eſſex had Orders from her Majeſty to diſcharge the Land Forces, all but the thouſand Low-Country Soldiers, then thought the beſt and moſt experienc'd of this army; whereby, though they were diſabled of diſembarking at Ferroll, and attacking the Enemy there by Land; yet Eſſex offered to ſend [230] certain Fire-ſhips into the Bay, and ſecond them with the two Spaniſh Galleons laſt Year taken, with ſome great Flyboats and Merchant-men, to deſtroy their Shipping; and leave the Queen's own Engliſh built Ships at the Mouth of the Harbour, with a principal Commander, to ſecure their Retreat; and this was allowed of, but with ſome Limitations, as Eſſex confeſſes in one Place, which in another, we find to be an abſolute Bar to hazard any other of the Ships, and as abſolute a Reſtraint of the Earl himſelf from going into the Harbour to put this Project in practiſe; but that it ſhould be done by that Principal Commander he would have left behind; whether through Care of his Perſon as a Nobleman, or to have it attempted by one of the greateſt Abilities and Experience for ſuch a naval Exploit, I cannot ſay; but Sir Walter Ralegh was prefer'd to the Execution of this Service, and, as Sir Francis Vere obſerves, the Charge of firing the Fleet was undertaken by him.

During this Abſence of Eſſex and Ralegh at Court, which was not above ſeven Days, there fell out ſuch exceeding tempeſtuous Weather as very much diſtreſſed the Fleet, both at Plymouth Road and Ca [...]water, inſomuch that one of Ralegh's own Ships, the Roebuck of 300 Tons Burthen, ran aground, and bulg'd herſelf, ſo became unſerviceable for that Voyage; though much Pains and Care were taken by all Hands, and eſpecially the Lord Thomas Howard himſelf in Perſon, to have preſerved her. On the 17th of Auguſt following they weighed Anchor, and, with much Labour, ſet ſail again, being becalm'd; but the weather growing afterwards ſomewhat favourable, they held their Courſe for the North-Cape. Six Days afterwards they fell acroſs the Bay of Alchaſer, or Biſcay; and at laſt bore full into it, much to the [231] Diſlike of Ralegh's Pilot, a ſkilful Mariner, named Broadb [...]nt, who thought it very perillous for ſo great a Fleet ſo wilfully to imbay there, and upon an Enemy's Coaſts; yet as it was the General's Courſe, they comply'd. The next Day they were here for ſeveral Hours beaten and ſcattered about by a prodigious Storm, wherein one of the late taken Prizes, named St. Matthew, falling into a Head-ſea, and having her Sprit, ſail out, broke her Bolt-ſprit and Fore-maſt overboard, cloſe to the Partners. The Fall of Maſts alſo broke two Anchors, and carried the third away; and her Main-maſt, with her rolling and tumbling, had ſo looſened itſelf, that it was in Danger of breaking in the Step, whereby ſhe would ſoon have been ſunk, had not her Captain, Sir George Carew, with great Reſolution and Hazard, carried her into England, and exchanged her for another. In the ſame Storm the other Spaniſh Prize, the St. Andrew, ſpent her Main-top-maſt, and loſt Company for ſome Days; but all the reſt of the Fleet kept labouring in the Bay, till firſt Ralegh, and ſome Ships of his Squadron which happened to carry the Low-Country Soldiers, clear'd out, and made the beſt of their Way to the next Rendezvous: and afterwards ſeveral of the Earl's loſing him, ſailed thither alſo in ſearch of him. This gave Riſe to a Miſrepreſentation by Ralegh's Adverſaries, that he had deſignedly withdrawn himſelf and that Part of the Fleet; while Eſſex himſelf incurred a moſt juſt Cenſure throughout the whole Fleet, by making the high Land of Portugal, and bearing in ſo cloſe to the Shore, that he alarmed all the Country to make Defence againſt him. Afterwards as the Fleet, being joined again, was paſſing towards the South, almoſt as far as the Iſles of Bayon, Ralegh's Ship, the Warſpite, being then in the Center of them, on the 27th [232] of Auguſt broke her Main-yard aſunder in the very midſt by the Parrel. Eſſex diſcovered in his Ship, a deſperate Leak, by which he had much-ado to eſcape drowning. Here it was agreed, that till Ralegh's Ship ſhould be repaired, he might keep cruiſing about the Height of the Rock, where they were to unite, and paſs the South Cape; yet the next Morning, before that Reparation could be made, Raleigh had a Meſſage to attend Eſſex with all Speed, that they might put in with the Land, which was impoſſible for Ralegh to do, being unable to work upon a Wind, as having but a Foreſail and Mizen, and the Wind almoſt off the Land; beſides, if he could have made the Land with that Sail, it was thought Madneſs to put upon the Enemies Coaſt in that Condition; when, if the Wind ſhould change to the Weſt, he muſt, in Want of his Main-ſail, have yielded or periſhed: ſo found himſelf neceſſitated to ply up and down for two Days, till the ſaid Fraction was mended. In this Diſtreſs there was no Direction given for any other of the Fleet to attend upon Ralegh; yet Sir William Brook in the Dreadnought, tarried with him; alſo Lord Thomas Howard very affectionately offered all the Aſſiſtance he could give; and ſeveral other of the Sea Captains voluntarily did the like: but Ralegh would admit of no more than three or four ſmall Men of War to accompany him, and ordered the reſt, even of his own Squadron, to repair to the Admiral: So far was he from projecting a Diviſion of the Fleet, by entreating any to forſake Eſſex and abide with him, as it was afterwards very falſely repreſented, to incenſe Eſſex againſt Ralegh, for contriving the Fruſtration of their firſt reſolved Attempt; and as Ralegh himſelf, when they met at the Azores, ſo ſatisfactorily made evident, that the ſaid Imputation turned only to the Shame of its Contrivers.

[233] When Ralegh had repaired the Damages of the Storm, he here in with the Coaſt, making all the Enquiry he could after Eſſex and the Fleet, but could hear no Tidings of them; he ſent into the Iſles of Bayon, and towards the South Cape, well knowing the Earl could not then put into Feroll or the Groyne, as was afterwards colourably pretended he would have done had they united, the Wind being flat againſt him; and the whole Fleet having over-ſhot that Coaſt near 20 Leagues before the Main-yard of Ralegh's Ship was broken; and beſides, that they could not recover it again, both thoſe Spaniſh Prizes were wanting which only were to have been ventured in the Service. Hereupon Ralegh ſhaped his Courſe to the Rock, which was appointed for the general Rendezvous; expecting, not only with good Reaſon, to meet Eſſex there, but with great Deſire; his own Force being ſo ſmall, and the Enemy, as he heard, out at Sea with a powerful Fleet. Yet thoſe who could ſuſpect Ralegh would prefer a Separation, dangerous and diſadvantageous as it was now, would needs have had it thought there was much more Reaſon for that Suſpicion, when there came to Ralegh at the Rock near 30 Sail more, moſt of them his own Victuallers and Tranſports; but the Truth is, that having loſt Eſſex during the Storm in the Bay, and miſſed him alſo at the North-Cape, they came hither according to their Inſtructions; where, caſually meeting with Ralegh, he held them together, and conducted them to Eſſex at the Iſlands: Otherwiſe they had all return'd home, after they had failed at the South Cape, which was the third and laſt Meeting-Place, of ſome Admiral to command them, and of whom they would have fail'd, ſince none of the Fleet went ſo far ſouthward.

Soon after he had determin'd, in Search of the [234] Fleet, to paſs on towards the South-Cape, he was travers'd by an Engliſh Bark, which aſſur'd him they had learn'd from an Engliſh Man of War which had lately taken an India-man, that the Adelantado was gone for the Iſlands to convoy the Indian Fleet ſafe home. This ſeeming very probable, and no one ſuſpecting that any of their Countrymen would traiterouſly delude her Majeſty's Fleet with any falſe Informations in a Purſuit of this Conſequence, Ralegh earneſtly beſought the Captain of the ſaid Bark to hunt after Eſſex, and appriſe him of this Intelligence: But he anſwer'd, in the hearing of the whole Company, that the Captain, who had taken that India man, had already ſent a Letter to Eſſex thereof. Ralegh, doubting it might have miſcarried, or that none was ſent, commanded one of the ſmall Men of War attending upon himſelf with all Diligence to ſeek out the Fleet, and make Report of what they had heard. This Ship, by good Chance, met with the Fleet next Day, and deliver'd the News. Two Days after, Ralegh received two Letters from Eſſex, which ſomewhat taxing his Abſence, and not writing, requir'd that he would preſently follow him to the Iſlands: Whereunto (the Earl ſaid) he was haſiening to find the Adelantado; not doubting but to give his Miſtreſs a better Account of that Service, than he ſhould yield his Maſter.

In paſſing to the Iſlands, Ralegh was ſo much in Danger of loſing his Main-maſt, that he was forced to ſend the Ships in his Company before, becauſe he thought Eſſex might be in Want of them, if he ſhould meet the Enemy; and, if they had joined the Fleet without Ralegh, who was princpially depended on, in Caſe of any Engagement, it would have ſtrengthened the Miſconſtructions that had been nouriſhed againſt him; but Ralegh ſo ſpeedily [235] and effectually repaired his crazy Maſt, and ſo briſkly ply'd his Sails, that he overtook his Conſorts next Day, and on the 8th of September they all made the Iſland of Tercera; yet here could they meet with no News of the Fleet, though they enquired of an Engliſh Merchant who had traded about theſe Iſlands above ſix Weeks, and though it had paſſed that Way but two Days before. By this Merchant Ralegh wrote into England, to acquaint the State in what Situation they were; then paſſed on to St. George's Iſland, where they found the Weather exceedingly hot, and were vexatiouſly becalm'd for a Day or two, before they could get forward to Gratioſa. Here, as they coaſted along, on the 10th of September about Midnight, they ſaw a large and perfect Rainbow by Moon-light, in the S [...]ape and Bigneſs of thoſe formed more commonly by the Sun, tho' in Colours not ſo various, but chiefly inclining to a pale or whitiſh Flame: This made the Generality of the Seamen expect ſome extraordinary tempeſtuous Weather; but it fell out, on the contrary, to be very calm and hot. *The ſame Night they alſo eſpied, by the Light of the Moon, then upon the Border of the Horiſon, ſome Sail of Ships gliding towards the Eaſt of Gratioſa; [236] at which Ralegh hung out two Lights for his Company to follow him in Chaſe of them; but they not taking his Courſe, and the Moon being ſoon after quite ſhadow'd and intercepted by the Earth, he was left in Darkneſs and Solitude, having loſt all Sight both of the new-diſcovered Ships, and thoſe of his own Company, till, in the Space of four Days more, a leiſurely Breeze of Wind brought him, after all theſe Impediments, to the reſt of the Fleet, then gathered at the Iſle of Flores.

As ſoon as Ralegh had deſcry'd the Fleet, he took his Barge, and, with Sir Arthar Gorges, as alſo ſome other of the Officers and Gentlemen in his Company, went aboard the Earl of Eſſex's Ship, with whom they all [...]n'd; and ‘"who ſeemed, ſays Gorges, to be the joyfulleſt Man living for our Arrival;"’ proteſting, that ‘"he never believed we would leave him, altho' divers perſuaded him to the contrary;" and acknowledg'd, that he was ſor [...] for a Letter which he had written, by Mr. Robert Knolles, into England againſt us; promiſing preſently to make a Diſpatch on Purpoſe, contrary to the Former."’ Further, when Eſſex had fully ſatisfied himſelf, that all the Tranſports and Victuallers which returned with Ralegh, had not been inveigled away by him; and how commendably he had thus drawn them to the Iſlands, againſt their Inclinations, being, moſt of them, in great Diſtreſs; he open'd himſelf to him in a very amicable and communicative Manner. He told him, how he had ſpent the Time of their Separation wholly in ranging the Seas to meet with the Adelantado; he acquainted him with the many Conjectures and Surmiſes that had been vented of his Abſence, and, withal, named to him ſome of thoſe Men who had taxed him ſecretly with ſtrange Reports, yet pretended to love him; which he [237] proteſted he never believ'd, but thereby the better obſerv'd their ſcandalous and canker'd Diſpoſitions. In this Manner did the Earl of Eſſex receive and welcome Sir Walter Ralegh with the greateſt Kindneſs and Familiarity, as well as all the Gentlemen of his Company; to the great Diſlike and Heart-burning of ſome, who much envied that Liking, which, of his own Diſpoſition, Eſſex bore to Ralegh: For tho' the Earl had many Doubts and Jealouſies buzz'd into his Ears againſt him; yet I have often obſerv'd (ſays Gorges) that both in his greateſt Actions of Service, and in the Times of his chiefeſt Recreations, he would ever accept of his Counſel and Company, before many others who thought themſelves more in his Favour. 'Tis true, the Earl, of his own unperverted Nature, was a Man, prone to gracious and generous Principles; but no leſs eaſily blown up to Prejudice and Indignation againſt his real Friends, by his pretended ones; whence we may conceive, as Sir Arthur Gorges has well obſerv'd, upon giving an Inſtance of his Moderation and Bounty to ſome of the Iſlanders, Tho' he was endowed with many good Gifts, how it came to paſs, that he at laſt fail'd in the Uſe of them.

Here, as they lay before the Iſle of Flores, they held a Council of War, to conquer and poſſeſs, or lay waſte ſome of theſe Iſlands; they being the chief Places of Retreat and Refreſhment for the King of Spain's Indian Fleets, by the Treaſures whereof his boundleſs Ambition ſo much diſturbed and ſo tyranniz'd over Europe. In this Council, the Admirals and Commanders had their Charge allotted, after the following Manner. Eſſex and Ralegh were to undertake the Iſland of Fayall; the Lord Thomas Howard and Sir Francis Vere were to ſecure Gratioſa; the Lord Mountjoy and Sir Chriſtopher Blunt were to attempt St. Michael's; and [238] the Netherland Squadron was quartered to Pike, where grew the greateſt Store of Wines, therefore preſumed no unwelcome Portion to them. And theſe Places were the firſt reſolved upon, that they might afterwards attack the Tercera itſelf; for Ralegh's Arrival, gave their Reſolution upon this ſtronger Iſland a ſecond Life; but it was firſt thought expedient to ſtrengthen and ſupply themſelves with whatſoever thoſe weaker ones would afford: And to this End the Fleet was divided into four Squadrons.

But Ralegh's Mariners having obtained Leave to go aſhore at Flores, to water and furniſh themſelves with ſuch other Neceſſaries as they wanted; while he himſelf, attended by ſeveral other of the Commanders and Gentlemen, walked a Mile or two into the Iſland to ſtretch their Legs and refreſh themſelves, where they all dined in a little Village, the bare-legged Governor having cauſed ſuch Fare to be brought them as the Country afforded, which they very honourably paid for, without offering them the leaſt Injury; becauſe the Earl had before given them an Indemnity, under his own Hand, from all Manner of Violence: When Eſſex, impatient to be in Action, all of a ſudden, and before the Sailors could get their Caſks of freſh Water aboard, ſent, on the 16th of September, Capt. Arthur Champernon to tell them, That the General was borne up for Fayall, meaning preſently to take it in; therefore required them to follow him inſtantly; and though they ſhould not overtake him, yet to find him there as ſoon as they could, and there they might ſupply their Wants. Hereupon they haſtened away, with all the Sail they could make, after him; but no General could they overtake. The next Morning they got Sight of Fayall, and miſs'd of Eſſex alſo there, to their great Diſſatisfaction, he being ſix Leagues [239] nearer that Iſland when he ſent for them, and ſet ſail thither ſix or eight Hours before them.

Being entered the Road, they beheld before them a very fine Town, pleaſantly ſeated along the Shore; from whence the People, upon Sight of their Ships, began to pack away both Bag and Baggage: Their Friars, Nuns, other Women and Children, they alſo ſent away in Carts and Carriages: ſo continued tranſporting all up into the Country for two Days together. There was beſides a ſtrong Fort at one End of the Town, and another on the Top of a very high Mountain near adjoining, by Nature very inacceſſible, and artificially fenced with Flankers, Rampier, and a Ditch; alſo ſix Pieces of Artillery, and 200 Spaniards in Garriſon; not reckoning others quartered about the Iſland. They fired upon Ralegh's Ships as he anchored in the Road, though without much Damage, and ſet a great red Standard up in Defiance before his Eyes. They ſent moreover ſix Companies with their Colours to entrench upon the Shore, in Order to oppoſe his Landing. However Ralegh, in his Barge, accompanied with Sir Arthur Gorges and Captain William Morgan, rowed cloſe along the Shore-ſide, and by the high Fort towards the Town, to acquaint himſelf with the moſt proper Place for making a Deſcent when Eſſex ſhould arrive; from whence they were ſaluted with divers Muſket-ſhot, which they very fortunately eſcaped, having with them neither Targets nor Armour for their Safeguard.

Upon theſe Provocations, and the Want they grew in of thoſe Neceſſaries, wherewith they were both lately hurried from accommodating themſelves, and promiſed they ſhould be ſupplied here; Ralegh called a Council of the Captains and Officers to conſult about taking of the Town, if Eſſex arrived not; thinking it a Shame to forbear ſo fair a Prize, ſo [240] near at Hand, 'till they had carried all off; eſpecially ſince the Enemy had begun the War upon them, and ſo proudly dared them to their own Defence. Further, theſe Bravadoes, with the Hopes of Wealth in this goodly Town and the Ranſom of Houſes and Priſoners, made all the Mariners and Soldiers not only ready to mutiny that they were ſo long reſtrained; but reflect on their Commanders, as if this Forbearance was the Effect only of their Fear. And what made them the more eager was, that they ſaw no Likelihood of other Benefit by this Voyage, than what was thus to be gotten aſhore. Notwithſtanding theſe Murmurs, and that they heard no News of Eſſex in two Days, the Council was divided; and ſome of the Captains, who were his moſt flattering and ſervile Dependants, as Sir Guilly Merrick, Sir Nicholas Parker, and others, were by no means for landing without his Knowledge; but Ralegh, with Sir W. Broek, Sir A. Gorges, Sir W. Harvey, and many other Commanders and Gentlemen of his own Squadron, were of a contrary Opinion; judging the General would repute them Idlers and Cowards to lie ſo long before ſo good a Town with ſo many Ships and Men, and do nothing, but let them convey away their Effects. This was the general Voice both of the Land and Sea-Forces; yet the violent Perſuaſions of Merrick did ſo prevail, that they agreed to delay the Enterprize one Day longer; when, if the Earl did not come, they all agreed to land together.

Now, the Wind tacking about, ſomewhat unfit for the Road they lay in, Ralegh, and divers of his Squadron, with many other of the Ships after him, weighed, and coaſted about the the Point to the North-weſt Side of the Iſland, ſome four Miles further from the Town than they were before, and there let fall their Anchors, being a better Road [241] than the firſt, as the Wind ſat. But Merrick, with ſome five or ſix Ships of his Conſorts, would not advance with them. They were now in the fourth Day of their Arrival before Fayall, and no General appear'd; but the Proſpect of a moſt inviting Country, full of little Villages and fruitful Fields, which ſharpen'd the general Deſire of landing, to ſupply their Want of Victuals, and eſpecially of Water, wherewith they had not been recruited ſince their firſt ſetting out from Plymouth; therefore, by Agreement, they mann'd out a Barge, a Long-Boat and Pinnace, with 60 Muſkets and 40 Pikes, rather to guard themſelves in watering, than in Expectation of any Encounter from the Town or Forts on the other Side of the Iſland. But they were no ſooner ready to put off from the Ships, than they diſcover'd ſix Enſigns of Foot, and ſome dozen Horſe-men, marching down ſpeedily from the Town and Forts to meet them; and made ſuch Haſte, that they ſoon poſſeſs'd the Trenches towards the Shore where the Engliſh lay, and where, with brandiſhing Swords; and waving Colours, they ſtood daring them to a Rencounter. Hereupon, Ralegh found it neceſſary to augment his Force, which Brook, Harvey, and other Sea-Officers, readily ſupply'd, to the Number of 160 Men more. Then ſaid Ralegh to them, Seeing theſe Spaniards and Portugueſe are ſo gollant to ſeek or follow, and keep us from watering, we will try our Fortunes with them, and either win our Landing, or gain a Beating. As Ralegh then rowed along by his Ships, he was greeted by Bret, Sidney, White, Berry, and other Captains of the Low-Country Soldiers, who call'd out and advis'd him, to take them and ſome of their Companies with him; for, if he ventured to make the Shore only with Mariners and his own Attendants, without their Land-Soldiers, [242] he might receive a diſcreditable Repulſe. But Ralegh excus'd himſelf, ſaying, he did not know for what Service the Earl might deſign them; and therefore was reſolv'd, with his own Company, to make the Deſcent, and then ſhould ſend for their Recruits; by which he would undertake to lodge them that Night in the Town, and the next in the Forts: Beſides, he was willing to make the Attempt with thoſe of his own Squadron, that neither the General nor his Train ſhould have Cauſe to be aſham'd of them for undertaking that in the Face of their Enemies, which they durſt not of themſelves follow and perform.

Then Ralegh, having thus a Party of 260 Men, not half the Number of the Enemy, made forward; and while ſome Ordnance, he had judiciouſly placed before him in Pinnaces, as cloſe along the Shore as they could lie, were beating upon their Trenches, he ruſhed through or under them as faſt as his Oars could ply to the Landing-place; which was guarded firſt with a mighty Ledge of Rocks 40 Paces long into the Sea, and afterwards trench'd and flank'd with Earth and Stone, having only a narrow Lane between two Walls for their Entrance. But now, as they approached ſtill nearer to the Shore, the Enemies Shot flew down ſo thick upon them, that not only ſeveral of the common Men, but of thoſe who would before have paſſed for very forward and valiant Leaders, were much diſmay'd; inſomuch that Ralegh, who moſt gloriouſly approv'd himſelf no leſs their Chief in Courage, than he was in Command, did not ſpare openly to rebuke them aloud with many reproachful Words. At laſt, when he ſaw them ſtill linger, through Conſternation, as much to their Danger as their Diſgrace, he commanded, with a loud Voice, his Watermen to row his own Barge full upon the Rocks, and bade as many as were not afraid, to follow [243] him. Hereat ſome Boats ran in with us (ſays my Author) and out of them were landed Mr. Garrett, then a Penſioner, afterwards Earl of Kildare, Sir W. Brook, Sir W. Harvey, Sir John Scott, Captain Henry Thynne, Captain White, Captain Arthur Radford, Captain W. Morgan, Mr. Duke Brook, Mr. Thomas Rudgeway, Mr. Walter Chute, Mr. Henry Allen, Mr. Charles Mackart, and divers other Gentlemen. So, clambering over the Rocks, and wading through the Water, he made his Way pell-mell, through all their Fire, with Shot, Pike and Sword, up to the narrow Entrance; where he ſo reſolutely purſued his Aſſault, that the Enemy, after a ſhort Reſiſtance, gave Ground; and, when they ſaw his Forces preſs faſter and thicker upon them, ſuddenly retiring, they caſt away their Weapons, and betook themſelves to the Hills and Woods. The like alſo did thoſe who were intrench'd higher: And thus did he win this difficult and dangerous Landing, together with the Trenches of the Enemy. A few of his Men indeed were drowned and ſlain, more hurt, and a couple of Long-boats ſunk; yet was not his Loſs ſo conſiderable as to detract from the Juſtice of thoſe Congratulations which were paid him by the Officers of the Low-Country Forces, when, with ſome of their Companies, they arrived upon the Iſland, and found the Footing he had won ſo ſtrongly fortified and guarded.

Ralegh, thus recrulted, being now near 500 ſtrong, thought beſt to go through with the Matter, and prepare the Town in Readineſs for Eſſex. Therefore he appointed Bret to the Office of Serjeant-Major, directed the other Captains to advance their Colours, marſhal the Companies, and ſo, in order, marched to the Town, about four Miles diſtant from the Landing-Place. In their Paſſage [244] divers of the Enemy, who had before braved them with the greateſt Inſolence, came with white Napkins at the End of Staves, and voluntarily abaſed themſelves to Offices of the greateſt Servility. There was indeed a Way, two Miles about, by which they might have paſſed to the Town, and avoided the high Fort where the Spaniards lay in Garriſon. But Ralegh, conſidering the Trouble of their March, the ſultry Heat of the Weather, the Hazards of Delay, and, above all, the Neceſſity they were under of immediate Supplies, took the ſhorteſt Courſe; reſolving to bring Fort and Town all into one Days Work. Thus, at the Head of about 40 Gentlemen of the beſt Rank, Ralegh led on the Companies in a gentle regular Manner, full in the Face of the Fort, having only his Leading-Staff in his Hand, and no other Armour on but his Collar, for which he was ſomewhat cenſur'd by his Friends; for, when they came within Reach of the Fort, they were ſhrewdly encounter'd with ſeveral fierce Storms of great and ſmall Shot, which came thundering down upon them from all Parts of it, wounding ſeveral, *killing ſome, and putting moſt of his Men into Diſorder: Inſomuch that Ralegh himſelf, with his [245] little Vanguard, was no ſooner paſſed, and enter'd under the Covert of their Trenches and Barricadoes at the Declivity of a little Hill, but the reſt, compoſing the main Body of his Forces, which, 'till now that they found themſelves under the Mercy of the Enemies Fire, advanced in good Order, begun to break their Ranks, and, from marching, fell to running on in a ſtraggling and confuſed Manner 'till they were under the Walls and Trenches almoſt as ſoon as their Leader, who came ſome twelve-ſcore Yards before them in a ſteady and deliberate March. Ralegh was ſomewhat moved to ſee this tumultuous and timorous Courſe; and more, to think that the Enemy ſaw themſelves were the Occaſion of it; therefore he cried out to Bret, Berry, and other Captains, demanding, If theſe were the Men that ſhould have done him ſuch Service in Landing, and ſaved him from Diſhonour? Or this the Manner of their Low-Country Troops, to ſhew ſuch baſe Cowardice at the firſt Sight of an Enemy, and at the Muſket-ſhot ſo far off from a Fort? The Captains, who were themſelves brave enough, knowing the Truth would be the beſt Apology, anſwered, That theſe Companies who had behaved themſelves with ſuch Irreſolution, were indeed Men taken out of Fluſhing and Brill, the cautionary Towns; ſo were raw Soldiers, who had ever lived in a ſafe Garriſon, and ſeldom or never ſeen an Enemy, or encountered with Shot in the Field.

Being thus got under Covert of the Trenches and Walls which the Spaniards had abandoned, and retired to their Fortifications on the Top of the Hill, Ralegh commanded Capt. Bret to appoint a Serjeant or two, with a few Shot, to go view and diſcover the Way to the Town, which, in many Places, lay open, as well to the high Fort here in the Way towards it, as to the other Fort at the End [246] thereof: And where the Ways were fenced, they were ſtill more dangerous; it being with low-piled Walls of looſe-ragged Stones, which Ralegh juſtly ſuſpected would increaſe, rather than obſtruct the Miſchiefs of their Enemies Artillery. Bret brought Word of a general Unwillingneſs in the Lieutenants and Serjeants to undertake this Diſcovery, ſo much under the Command of the Fort and Hill; and that the Troops were rather deſirous of ſlipping by, in the moſt haſty, diſperſed and unobſerved Manner they could; which Ralegh would by no Means ſuffer, through Conſideration of their Safety, without urging the Regard he had to their Credit in this Enterpriſe; for being by this Time wellinformed, the Iſland could raiſe 1000 armed Men, and, reaſonably believing they would gather their greateſt Strength for the Defence of their beſt Town, towards which he was now marching, he concluded they would have it more in their Power to defeat him, advancing in little diſorderly and ſcattered Parties, than in a regular united Body. Bret did make ſome Offer himſelf to go and ſurvey theſe Paſſages, if he ſhould be expreſly commanded; but indeed it was found he could not be wanted, or ſpared among his own raw and unexperienced Troops.

When Ralegh, therefore, ſaw all Men ſo ſcrupulous of this Undertaking, and eſpecially thoſe Garriſon-Soldiers, he told them, That he would not offer that to any Man which he would himſelf refuſe: That though it were not the Duty and Office of a chief Commander to undergo ſo ordinary a Service, but what duly appertained to the inferior Officers and Soldiers; and, notwithſtanding (ſaid he) that I could therefore enforce others to do it, they ſhall well perceive that I myſelf will do that which they dare not attempt; wherein I am aſhamed on their Behalf, that our General [247] and we are thus abuſed in our Opinion of theſe Low-Country Soldiers. Then he called for his Cuiraſs and his Caſk, and ſaid, he would both go view the Way for them, which they made ſo nice of, as alſo the Paſſages and Aſcents to the Hill-top; and, as well as he could, obſerve the Strength and Fortifications thereof, for their better Direction the next Morning. Hereupon, Capt. Berry was very ready to go, and earneſtly deſired me (ſays our Author) to divert our Rear-admiral from undertaking it; and I thereupon (continues he) did openly diſſuade him, who commanded in chief, from putting his own Perſon to theſe inferior Offices of Hazard, fitter for a Lieutenant or Serjeant, than himſelf, to perform; knowing that all the Direction, as well of thoſe Troops, as alſo of a whole Squadron of the Navy, did, at that Time, only reſt upon him, in the Abſence of the Admiral and Vice-admiral. Notwithſtanding he was obſtinate therein; as well in ſcorn of thoſe who had refuſed, as alſo indeed, out of a Deſire to be better informed of the Strength and Fortifications of the high Fort. When I ſaw him reſolved, I told him that I would, out of the Love of a Kinſman in particular, and alſo out of an honeſt Regard, take ſuch Part as he did, from whom I had received many kind Favours, and accompany him; but not out of any great Deſire I had to go about a Piece of Work, which conſiſted of much Danger, and little Honour in the Performance. He thanked me for my offer, but yet wiſhed me not to go, if it were againſt my Will: Notwithſtanding I accompanied him, and ſo did ſome eight or ten more of our Servants and Followers. But I ſay truly, and ſo afterwards it was much ſpoken of, that there was not any one more of Quality that did accompany him in that Buſineſs.

In this Manner, and with this Number, did Ralegh in Perſon go; the only one, it ſeems, who [248] deſpaired not of Succeſs, to diſcover the Aſcents to the Hill; the Cannon ſhot of the Enemy, and thereby the Stones of the battered Walls, flying on every Side thick about him all the while. He ſtill proceeded, with an undaunted Pace, to compaſs this Knowledge of the ſafeſt Way by which he was to lead the Reſt, though he perceived Wounds and Death dealt on either Hand, and his own Danger at every Step, more unavoidable. Some of his Company, in the March, were hurt, and two had their Heads taken from their Shoulders; Sir Arthur Gorges had his left Leg ſhot through with a Muſket-ball, who, without remembering any Pain it gave him, obſerves the Bullet burnt both his ſilk Stocking and Buſkin, as if they had been ſinged with a hot Iron. I was then hard by the Rear-admiral (continues he) who alſo was ſhot through the Breeches and Doublet-ſleeves in two or three Places. And ſtill they plied us ſo faſt with ſmall Shot, that, as I well remember, he wiſhed me to put off a large red Scarf, which I then wore; being, as he ſaid, a very fair Mark for them. But I, not willing to do the Spaniards ſo much Honour at that Time, though I could have wiſhed it had not been on, anſwered the Rear-admiral again, That his white Scarf was as eminent as my red; and therefore I would now follow his Example.

Having, by this Time, made a ſufficient Diſcovery, both of the Way for his Troops to paſs, as alſo of the Avenues to the high Fort on the Mountain, which he intended to attempt, after he had ſecured the Town; Capt. Berry, with Allen, and ſome others, advanced to him. Hereupon he ſent ſome Guides to Capt. Bret, with Orders for him alſo to march up with the Companies, that they might unite before they came to the Town, becauſe he there expected an Engagement; or, at leaſt, [249] ſome Salley out of the Fort at the End thereof, which they muſt needs paſs before they could get at the Town; and which ſeemed to threaten Reſiſtance, being a very fine Fortification, all of ſtone Work, with Curtain, Flankers, and Ditch, very artificially caſt. But immediately, upon Ralegh's Approach with the Body of his Men, the Spaniards, it ſeems, abandoned it; for when he entered it, he found they were newly departed. In like manner, as he marched on, he found the Inhabitants had alſo forſaken the Town, and left him in Poſſeſſion of it, with ſuch Wares and Stores as could not ſuddenly be removed. Thus, though with much Danger indeed, and ſome Loſs of about half a ſcore Men, with the Hurt of little above double that Number, Ralegh made himſelf Maſter, in effect, of the whole Iſland; which ſupplied him, from his own Experience, with an Example to confirm the Aſſertion, he afterwards took Occaſion to maintain, and which we have, in Part, touched upon before; alledging, That a Country cannot prevent an Enemy's Fleet from landing its Army, without as good a Fleet to oppoſe it. And this Example, in his own ſummary Account, we have here ſubjoined, as what may give the Reader a double Satisfaction, both in confirming the Veracity of that which has been here extracted thereof from Sir Arthur Gorges, and adding to the many other Inſtances of Ralegh's Modeſty and Reſtriction, who could, in the Recital of this Action, be ſo much leſs particular in the brave Steps he took to this Victory, with the Dangers and Difficulties he ſurmounted by Sea and Land, than that honourable Hiſtorian has been, who was a Witneſs of them.

This Town, of which Ralegh was thus poſſeſs'd, was called Villa Dorta, as I find in Linſcthoen; who alſo informs us, the People were moſtly of the [250] Dutch Offspring, yet uſing the Portugueſe Language. Others, who likewiſe deſcribe it, reckon that it contained, even ſome Years before this Time, at leaſt 500 Houſes, built all of Sone, with tiled Roofs, and diſpoſed into fine Streets; beſides a handſome Church, Nunnery, and Friery; interſperſed with many pleaſant Gardens of delicate Fruits, and Wells of freſh Water: inſomuch that, for Bigneſs, it has been compared to Plymouth or Yarmouth; but in Situation, to Dover; and might probably now have been of as good Advantage to Sir Walter Ralegh, as it was eight Years before, to the Earl of Cumberland, had he not, in compliment to the Earl of Eſſex, obliged himſelf to ſo diſadvantageous a Delay in the Conqueſt of it. However, becauſe the Town was unwall'd, and he was to expect, if he lay there open and careleſly refreſhing himſelf, while his Soldiers were ſcatter'd about in queſt of Proviſions, he might eaſily be ſurpriz'd, without ſome good Orders and Directions given before they fell to Reſt and Repaſt, he iſſued forth, at his Entrance, a Proclamation, that none ſhould ſtraggle twenty-ſcore Yards from the Town, without leave of an Officer, and then go upon their Guard, with fit Weapon and Company. He then made ſome ſtrong Barricadoes; planted a good Watch in proper Stations, and a ſtrong corps de garde in the Market-place, that others might, in Safety, bring together ſuch Booty as the Inhabitants had left behind.

Thus having refreſhed and repoſed themſelves all Night, the next Morning, being the 22d of September, even before break of Day, they diſcover'd, bearing with full Sail, towards the Road of Fayal, the Earl of Eſſex and his Fleet; he having been, all this while, making a kind of Wild-gooſe Chaſe after Indian Fleets, and the Adelantado, who, it [251] ſeems, never ſtirr'd out to Sea this Year, with other like uncertain Adventures. Now, Sir Guilly Merrick, Sir Chriſtopher Blount, Sir Anthony Shirley, and ſome other fatal Friends and Cheriſhers of the Earl's Infirmities, ſoon interrupted, by their aggravating and diſtorted Repreſentations, all Ralegh's further Intentions to ſecure the Iſland. They preſently poſſeſſed his Lordſhip's Head, that Ralegh had taken this Opportunity to play over his Parts, and ſhew the World how well he could act the Conqueror, only to ſteal Honour and Reputation from the General; they knew the Earl's Temper was as ready as Tinder, to catch Fire at the leaſt Suggeſtion: For, as no Man alive was a more paſſionate Courtier of Fame, or more deſirous to be reputed matchleſs for Magnanimity and Enterprize; ſo none was more jealous of Rivals than Eſſex, or could leſs endure that any Man ſhould obſcure his Glory, how highly ſoever he might otherwiſe be in his Favour. But in divers other diſagreeable Colours, this gallant Action was further disfigur'd to the Earl, as the Contempt and Violation of Authority; from whence they infus'd, that the Preſumption of landing ſuch Forces without his Lordſhip's Leave, was not to be paſſed over without ſevere Puniſhment; and that it was fit a Court Martial ſhould be call'd, to cenſure the Offence and Breach of Order and Diſcipline. In ſhort, the unpardonable Crime was, that Raleigh dared to render himſelf more conſpicuous than any Body elſe. And he had been leſs culpable, had he been leſs ſucceſsful; they ſeeming rather willing to have endured Blame for any ill Succeſs which might have occur'd to him by their Abſence and Reſtraint of Aid, than allow of any Praiſe for his being victorious without them. Nay, there were not wanting ſome, among Eſſex's Commanders, who would needs ſhew the Volence [252] of their Zeal for his Lordſhip in ſuch Extreams, as to throw out, that Ralegh was well worthy of loſing his Head for his Labour. All which might well inſpire thoſe ſolid and durable Expoſures which he has, in ſeveral Places, made of ſuch envious and inſolent Uſage.

Eſſex, thus exaſperated, ſpent all the Forenoon in reprehending, diſplacing and confining all the Land Captains and Officers who accompanied Ralegh; whilſt he, expecting rather Thanks, than ſuch a perverſe Interpretation of his Services, made ready his Barge to go on board the General and guide him to Land. But being entered his Ship, he found all Mens Countenances eſtranged as he paſſed through them; and when he came to his Cabin, the Earl, after a faint Welcome, began to accuſe him with the Breach of Orders and Articles. Ralegh anſwered, he knew not wherein he had been guilty of ſuch a Breach. Eſſex replied, there was an Article that none ſhould land any of the Troops without the General's Preſence, or his Order. Ralegh deſired leave to defend himſelf, by thoſe Laws which himſelf as well as others had made, and his Lordſhip, with the Council of War had authoriz'd; then he ſhould find that no Miſdemeanor had been committed. For, ſaid he, there is an Article indeed, that no Captain of any Ship, or of any Company, if he be ſeparated from the Fleet, ſhall land any where without Direction from the General, or ſome other principal Commander, upon Pain of Death. But I take my ſelf, ſaid Ralegh, to be a principal Commander under your Lordſhip, and therefore not ſubject to that Article, nor under the Power of the Martial Law; becauſe a ſucceſſive Commander of the whole Fleet, in her Majeſty's Letters Patents, your Lordſhip and my Lord Thomas Howard failing. Beſides, you agreed I ſhould land at this Iſland with you Lordſhip, [253] whom I have attended theſe four Days; and, finding that you came not, though your were half a Dozen Leagues before me in your Way thither, I weighed Anchor, and could not but conclude, both that you thought me ſtrong enough to take this Iſland, and were gone yourſelf to take in ſome others. Yet I refrained ſo long from landing, at Sir Guilly Merrick's Entreaty, that I heard my own Company, even at my Back, murmur, and ſay that I durſt not attempt it. And, to tell you the plain Truth, my Intent, at firſt, was only to water, till I ſaw them follow me in that braving Manner, which, with our Reputations, we could not then ſhun and give over, being already in our Boats for that Purpoſe: For, if I had intended the taking of the Town, I would never have removed ſo far from our firſt Road, which lay right before it. As for thoſe Officers and Gentlemen who had been committed, Ralegh deſired "they might receive no hard Meaſure in his Cauſe; whatſoever his Lordſhip conceived to be miſdone, he he muſt take it wholly on himſelf to anſwer, being, at that Time, Commander in chief.

With theſe and other Arguments Eſſex was ſo well pacified, that he went aſhore into the Town, and reſted himſelf in Ralegh's Lodging. There Ralegh invited him to ſupper, and offered, if he meant to call the Matter further in Queſtion, to claim no Privilege or Favour; but would anſwer for himſelf more amply in the Morning. Sir Chriſtopher Blount, taking the Earl's Anſwer from him, ſaid, he thought my Lord would not ſup at all. To which Ralegh reply'd, That, for his own appetite, he might, when he was invited, diſable it at his own Pleaſure; but if the Earl would ſtay, he ſhould be glad of his Company. In the mean Time, the Lord Thomas Howard, very nobly taking Care that no diſreſpectful Treatment ſhould [254] be offered to Ralegh, by the Practice of his Enemies, dealt with Eſſex to find how he ſtood reſolved; and, the next Morning, aſſured Ralegh, that his Lordſhip ſought only ſome Acknowledgment; becauſe the reſt would think him a weak and tame Commander, if he had not Satisfaction. Ralegh, conſidering he had done nothing unjuſtifiable, and very certain that he was ſucceſſively in the Commiſſion for the whole Command of the Fleet, therefore not ſubject to any corporal Danger, as alſo of the Lord Thomas Howard's ſincere and honourable Dealing, came again in the Morning to viſit Eſſex: Otherwiſe, remembring the little Truſt that Men ought to repoſe in ſuch Reconciliations, and the ſtrong Malice borne him by others in greateſt Favour with his Lordſhip, had deſigned to betake him to his own Squadron; and ſo to have defended himſelf, or forſaken the Earl. But the Lord Thomas, after having given his Honour with great Kindneſs and Reſolution, that he would make himſelf a Party if any Wrong or Violence were offered, contrary to his Lordſhip's Promiſe, perſuading him to go and ſatisfy the Earl, Ralegh took his Counſel; and all Things, after a little Debate, came to a calm and quiet Concluſion.

The Promoters of this Diſturbance, however thus diſappointed of their End, ſcrupled not to ſhare in the Benefits of this reproved Victory, by lodging and refreſhing themſelves not only that Night, but three or four Days after, in the goodly Town aforeſaid; yet were they juſtly puniſhed for their Envy and Ingratitude. For, had that Time which they ſpent in carping and cavilling at Ralegh's Conduct, throughout this brave Action, been employed, according to his Meaſures, in purſuing it; the Birds, which thereby they ſuffered to fly out [255] of their Cage, had well rewarded their Unanimity in taking them; and they would not have loſt, as now they had, the Ranſom of ſo many Spaniſh Priſoners out of the high Fort; nor the Spoil which they had conveyed out of the Town for Safety to that Place: So that inſtead of Aſſiſtance to advance the Profit of this Conqueſt, Eſſex's Arrival brought only Means, as far as in them lay, to deſtroy the Honour of it.

After the Army had plentifully regaled themſelves with the beſt Proviſions the Iſland would afford, and the diſgraced Captains were receiv'd again into Favour and Command, they hoiſted ſail; having firſt, in Honour of their loſt Men, made the Town itſelf their funeral Pile, and carried all the Artillery, and other Stores they found therein, or in their Forts, to their Ships. On the 26th of September, they caſt Anchor at Gracioſa, where the Chiefs of the Iſland coming on board the General, ſubmitted themſelves with very acceptable Humiliation, and willingly brought ſuch Proviſions as were required for their Compoſition. This Homage of thoſe People baniſhed all Thoughts in the Earl of further repairing, in that Place, the great Charges he principally had created by this Voyage: for, he ſeemed ſo charmed with Submiſſion, as to have diſregarded the Advantages it might have yielded; and fonder of having a Power over his Enemies, than of making any effectual Uſe of it. When they came to St. Michael's, they heard Tidings of the Indian Fleet; at which, moſt joyful Acclamations rung through all their Ships: within few Hours after, they encounter'd and took three Spaniſh Prizes, bound from the Havanna. The greateſt of them being about 400 Tons burden, was a very rich Ship, as well for the Lading, [256] as the Paſſengers in her; and this, if not the other two, was taken by Ralegh; who, being neareſt, gave Chace, cauſed her to ſtrike and to yield. Theſe three Ships, eſpecially the laſt, were laden with Cocheneal, and other profitable Merchandize, beſides the Silver, Gold, Pearl, Civit, Musk, Ambergreaſe, found among the Paſſengers, and acknowledged, by the Merchants in them, to be richly worth above 400000 Ducats. When Ralegh had enquired from the Gallery of his own Ship, of thoſe who had computed the Value of theſe Commodities, and been ſatisfy'd it would at leaſt amount to that Sum, he ſaid, Although we ſhall be little the better for theſe rich Prizes, yet I am heartily glad, for our General's Sake; becauſe they will, in great Meaſure, give Content to her Majeſty; ſo that there may be no repining againſt this poor Lord for the Expence of the Voyage. Theſe Ships made a Diſcovery of forty Sale of Spaniſh Indiamen, whereof ſome were freighted with the King of Spain's Treaſure; and it was reported, that while three or four of the Engliſh Fleet, which were fallen among them, were rifling one that foundered, the reſt eſcaped, and recovered the Tercera. Eſſex upon this Miſchance, called a Council of War; and ſome of the Colonels, with other Land Officers made liberal Profeſſions of the daring Feats they would attempt, if Boats, Pinnaces and Men were allowed, how vain and impracticable ſoever they ſeem'd to the Sea Commanders. For they offered, with 1500 Men, to take both that Iſland and the Forts; but theſe, knowing the Difficulty of landing them, with their Artillery, on ſo dangerous a Place in ſo bad a Seaſon; beſides the Strength of the Fortifications, ſo well furniſh'd by this new Arrival, could not, cordially and ſeriouſly, give their Conſent, but urged many Reaſons to the contrary; yet, when the Lord Thomas [257] Howard perceived this Incompliance would be uſed as a Handle at home for their loſing the Spaniſh Fleet and Treaſure, he told Eſſex, that if he was ſo forward to have it attempted, both himſelf and Sir Walter Ralegh were ready to venture as far as any of them; and that they would undertake to ſpare 3000 able Men out of the Fleet for the Service: but this ſecond Offer, thus abſolutely and ſolemnly made, though of double the Number, cool'd their Courage, upon a little Deliberation, who had made even the firſt; and ſo the Vapour was diſpelled.

Hence they returned again to St. Michael's Iſland, which they had left upon the Intelligence aforeſaid; and in this Road Eſſex, with a great Number of his Officers, coming on Board Ralegh's Ship, hung out the Flag of Council; wherein they conſidered about landing, and taking of the fair Town which lay ſo temptingly before their Eyes, being unwalled, and having but a ſlight Fort for its Defence by the Sea-ſide. Eſſex was for landing all the Companies immediately; but Ralegh deſired that himſelf might firſt go and ſurvey the Place; becauſe the Billows were here, in ſome Parts, no leſs dangerous than where he had made the Experiment at Fayal: The Earl, at firſt, conſented; but, as Ralegh was putting off, Eſſex ſtanding in his Gallery with Sir Chriſtopher Blount, called him back in great Haſte, and ſaid he would go himſelf. As he was deſcending into his Barge, Ralegh, ſeeing him altogether unarmed, except with his Collar and Sword, called aloud to him, and deſired him to take his Coſk and Target of Proof with him, if he deſigned to approach the Shore; ſeeing ſo many Muſkets (above 400) lying there on the Reſt to oppoſe him. But Eſſex anſwered, That he would have none, becauſe he diſdained to take any Advantage of the Watermen [258] who rowed him; for which our Author cenſures him *, as he had before done Sir Walter Ralegh. However, in viewing of thoſe landing-Places, Eſſex and his Officers kept cautiouſly enough beyond the Reach even of Culverin-ſhot; therefore, no ſuch Temerity in leaving the Armour behind. Thus, after many Offers and Surveys, made aloof (ſays Gorges) the Conveniencies of that Place for landing were excepted againſt.

This Deſcent being thus diſliked, it was reſolv'd, that Ralegh ſhould, with all the great Ships, lie as near before the Town of St. Michael as he could to keep them in continual Alarm; while Eſſex, in a Pinnace of Ralegh's, called the Guiana, with about 2000 Men in Boats, ſhould, by Night, convey themſelves about ſix Miles further than their firſt determined landing, to the Town called Villa Franca. Accordingly, they all landed the next Morning at this Town, without any Manner of Reſiſtance, while the Fleet kept the other in ſuch conſtant Dread and Confuſion, that they could not regard their Neighbours; to the End that the Engliſh Army, having ſecured thoſe, might the better fall on the Back of theſe. But in vain did the Fleet look over the Hills and Plains, in expectation of them; for that other pleaſant Town of Villa Franca, [259] had ſo enchanted the Army, being full of Fruits, Wines, and freſh Victuals, that the Commanders, as well as their Soldiers, were content there to take up their Quarters, without further Thoughts of St. Michael's Town; and, for ſix Days together, lay feaſting, and carrying on Board the Wheat, Salt, Woad, and other Merchandize, into certain private Mens Ships that followed the Fleet for ſuch Purpoſes. While Ralegh lay thus at Anchor, there came into the Road a Ship of Braſil laden with the Woods of that Name, and of Fernambuc, with Sugars as well as other Merchandize; and anchored full in the Midſt of the Engliſh Fleet. This Ship as Sir Francis Vere alſo informs us, was taken by Sir Walter Ralegh; and her Cargo, when brought into England, was very faithfully diſpoſed of by our Author, Gorges, to defray the Expences of all the Men in Ralegh's own Ship, to the Number of 400, reckoning Soldiers as well as Mariners. Soon after, a huge Carrack, of 1800 Ton Burthen, and infinite Wealth, ſays Gorges, being laden with the Riches of the Eaſt and Weſt, came bearing in with all her Sails, alſo among them; whom ſhe miſtook for the Spaniſh Armada; For the King of Spain's Men of War, when he made Fleets, were compounded of Shipping of divers Nations, and therefore more difficultly diſtinguiſhed from ours *, which at that [260] Time conſiſted of Engliſh and Holland Bottoms, beſides a great Galleon (before named) and other Spaniſh Veſſels they had taken. At Sight of this Carrack, Ralegh gave Orders throughout his Fleet to take in all their Flags; alſo that none ſhould weigh Anchor, fire a Gun, or put off a Boat without Leave. But, as ſhe was bearing in, one of the Holland Squadron, contrary to Direction and to an Diſcretion, ſuddenly weighed Anchor, hoiſted Top Sail, and, as ſhe approached, made two or three Shot at her; whereupon, perceiving her Miſtake, ſhe nimbly changed her Courſe; at which Inſtant, the Wind changing alſo, ſo that he could not eſcape outwards; "ſhe, with the Help thereof, and with the Fear of falling into our Hands, ſays Gorges, run herſelf a ground cloſe under the Town and Fort. Here, finding Ralegh follow her, and her Danger inevitable, ſhe diſcharged her Men in the Boats that flock'd about her, with ſome of her Wares, and was then inſtantly ſet on fire in many Places at once. Ralegh and his Men ſtill purſued to board her, and prevent her loſs; though not without great Danger in his Row-barge as he was, the Surge being very outragious; but by then he could get up to her, ſhe was all over Thunder and Lightning; her Ordnance diſcharging from every Port, and her whole Hulk, Maſts, Cordage and Furniture ſunk, over-run with ſuch a thorough, yet diſtinct and unconfus'd Blaze, as repreſented the Figure of a Ship more perfectly in Fire, than could be done by any Painter with all his Art and Colours: and, when ſhe was conſumed even to the Surface of the Water, ſhe exhaled as her laſt [261] Breath, ſuch Clouds from her ſpicy Entrails, as, for a great Way, and for many Hours, perfumed the Air and Coaſt around. Had the Army then been at St. Michael's Town, as was expected, it might have ſecured this Ship before ſhe could have diſembarked her Men, or, if it had terrified her back to Sea, ſhe muſt have been taken by the Fleet; and then the Treaſures ſhe contained, with thoſe in this Town, might probably have reimburſed the Charges of their Voyage; ſince our Author, laying this Loſs upon the ſaid Land-Forces, thought it ſo much to be lamented, that they were not to be excuſed.

Neither Eſſex nor his Army being heard of in all this Time, Ralegh was in a Conſultation about drawing up the Fleet towards him, when he perceived the Earl's Ship, by her Flag, turning out from the Point of Villa Franca. Then Ralegh, taking Capt. Morgan in his Barge, rowed to him, and, the ſame Night, ſent the Captain back with Directions, in the General's Name, to command all the Fleet to weigh and come to that Town. It much grieved the Mariners, to ſee the unprofitable Meaſures which were thus taken, and that they muſt relinquiſh the Advantages they might have made of the Town before which they lay. When the Fleet was got up to the Army at Villa Franca, a general Command was given that all the Companies ſhould repair to their reſpective Ships, for the Time of Year approached that the Winds and Waves began to riſe too high for them to ride on thoſe Coaſts any longer: So they left this Town alſo entire, upon what Conſiderations our Author knew not, but thought the Woad-mongers and Corn-Merchants might be moſt likely to reſolve the Queſtion.

[262] On the 9th of October they ſet ſail for England, and, after three or four Days, were violently toſs'd about and diſpers'd in a moſt tempeſtuous Sea. Ralegh's Ship was near being ſtemm'd by the Shock ſhe received from another that was driven againſt her, whereby ſhe became ſo leaky, that he had much ado to keep her above Water. He was further in ſuch great Diſtreſs for Want of Drink, that Sir Arthur Gorges proffer'd one of the Victuallers ſix Cheſts of Sugar for ſix Hogſheads of freſh Water, but could not obtain it: Inſomuch that they were forced to ſet their great Stills on Work to furniſh themſelves in the beſt Manner they could. During this Storm, 'tis alſo obſerved, many Sorts of Birds flew into his Ship; and the Dove, that came among them, was look'd upon to preſage the Calm that enſued two Days after. When they began to meet again, they deſcry'd at a great Diſtance, the Earl of Eſſex, accompanied with only two little Barks; who, about a Week before, was attended with 80 Sail of good Ships.

After hailing and ſaluting one another, they conſulted with their Maſters and Pilots about the beſt Courſe homewards, wherein they of Ralegh's Ship varied much from thoſe who guided the Earl's: And tho' Eſſex had the Directions of John Davis, a Navigator of much Experience and Repute, who could have carried them, without Error, to any diſtant Parts of the World; yet, in conducting the Ships home to their own Coaſt, did he ſtrangely fail in his Pilotage and Conjecture for the Sleeve. However, all follow'd the Admiral, and when he thought he was not far from the Entrance of the Channel, all Hands fell to ſounding for Ground; and, at laſt, found it; tho' indeed, I ſaw few the wiſer thereby, ſays our Author, or the [263] more aſſured of the Coaſt, * exeept the ſkilful Maſter of Ralegh's Ship, old Broadbent, who knew it to be the Banks of Scilly. But there was no convincing of Eſſex; ſo all followed his erroneous Light; yet Ralegh kept at ſome Diſtance behind all Night long. At Break of Day, tho' it was cloſe and foggy, he perceived how providentially he had eſcaped Deſtruction in the dark and dangerous Paſſage he had made cloſe by thoſe fatal Rocks call'd the Biſhop and his Clerks. Soon after he alſo diſcerned Eſſex, and many with him, about three Leagues before, bearing in with all their Sail North-Eaſt, inſtead of Eaſt and by North, full upon the Sands of the Welſh Coaſt; on which, in that gloomy Weather he had certainly ſtuck and periſh'd, had he held on a little longer; and had not Sir A. Gorges, [264] who was then upon the latter Watch (Ralegh being retired to reſt) forced the Maſter-gunner of his Ship to diſcharge a Warning-piece three or four Times, much againſt his Will, and that of the Maſter himſelf, who, contrary to all Duty and Humanity, ſaid they deſerv'd to taſte the Peril of their own Wilfulneſs, having brought themſelves and all the Fleet clearly out of their Way into ſuch Danger.

Upon this Admonition Eſſex, with all his Train, ſoon tack'd about, and, afterwards, confeſs'd his Error. With much ado, they beat up to double the Cape of Scilly, and enter'd the Sleeve. Ralegh, by this Time, was ſhot along the North-ſide of Cornwall; for his Ship was ſo crazy, and his Proviſions ſo ſcanty, he durſt not put again to Sea, but ſtood along the Coaſt; and that Night anchor'd before St. Ives, where he found the Corniſh People all in Alarm, ſeveral Spaniſh Caravals and Flyboats, which lay there, having made ſome Deſcents by Stealth, and put them into great Fright and Confuſion. For Eſſex, becauſe he met not with the Adelantado, had both believed and reported into England, that he never ſtirr'd out to Sea this Year; whereas, indeed, while the Strength of the Engliſh Navy lay before the Iſlands, he had ſet out with a puiſſant Fleet for the Invaſion of England; and theſe leſſer Veſſels, which were ſent before, did here attend his Coming. But that Storm, which ſo roughly ſcatter'd the Engliſh, diſperſed this Spaniſh Armada utterly diſabled for the intended Enterprize. Ralegh arriving at this Juncture, gave great Joy to this Part of the Kingdom; and, being landed, he immediately took ſuch Order for the Safeguard of the County, whereof he was her Majeſty's Lieutenant, as ſoon diſpell'd the Fears of its Inhabitants. Then, having ſupply'd his Ship [265] with proper Neceſſaries, he ſent her round to the Fleet, and ſhe was paid off at Briſtol, with the Profits that aroſe from one of the Prizes he had taken before-named, Had as good an Account been given of the other Prizes, this Expedition, for all the Caſualties and Overſights which happen'd in it, would have return'd her Majeſty double the Charge ſhe had been at in ſetting it ſourth.

Ralegh took his Journey to Plymouth, where a Commiſſion came down from the State to Lord Thomas Howard, Lord Mountjoy, himſelf, and Sir F. Vere, with Monies for repairing, victualling, and ſending about the Fleet to Chatham; and for maintaining 1000 Low-Country Soldiers, which were now quarter'd along the Coaſt of Cornwall, and afterwards ſent into Ireland. Eſſex, in the mean while, poſted away to London; but, whatever Advantage he might have in firſt ſhaping out the Story of their Adventures to the Queen, it little avail'd him; for Sir Francis ſoon after arriving alſo at Court, underſtood his Lordſhip was retir'd to his Houſe at Wanſted in great Diſcontentment: For the Queen was ſo incens'd againſt the Earl, that ſhe laid the whole Blame of their evil Succeſs on his Lordſhip, both for not burning and ſpoiling the Spaniſh Fleet at Feroll, and miſſing that which came from India. Vere ſays, he juſtify'd his Lordſhip, and laid the Blame upon thoſe who deſerv'd it, with ſuch Earneſtneſs, that the Standers-by (her Majeſty then walking in the Garden at Whitehall) might hear him: Inſomuch, that he quieted the Queen, as he tells us; who then diſcourſed with him of the Earl's Humours and Ambition, and, at laſt, conſtrued all ſo graciouſly, that ſhe fell into Commendation of him; ſo that he ſoon after came to Court. But he ſtaid not long there, nor with any Eaſe or Content; ſo inſupportable [266] was it to find Cecil made Maſter of the Wards, the Lord-Admiral Howard created Earl of Nottingham, for his Services againſt the Spaniſh Invaſion, and at Cadiz; and now Ralegh's Actions at the Iſlands, eſteem'd alſo more conſiderable than his own; tho' indeed by the fewer Number; for the Populace were eaſily led to believe the late Diſappointment of Eſſex's great Expectations, was owing to Ralegh's Regard of his own Glory more than that of his Country; whereby Ralegh loſt their Opinion, even tho' victorious againſt their Enemies, while Eſſex was ſure to return with Triumph, however he miſcarried in his Attempts; and was always received by them with ſuch Joy, as if his great Fleets and Armies came laden with ſufficient Spoil and Conqueſt, if they only brought him ſafe home again. Still both enjoy'd a liberal Share in the Queen's Favour, but it only ratify'd the Veneration of the Multitude to one, and their Diſaffection to the other; yet was their Eſteem more fatal to Eſſex, at leaſt more ſpeedily ſo, than their Prejudice to Ralegh. However, the Queen was little influenc'd with their Partiality to either; till Eſſex too zealouſly cultivated that which ſo unreaſonably increas'd in his Favour; for ſhe loved her People without Jealouſy, nor was offended at his being the Darling of their Eyes, till ſhe found him inclin'd to be the Darling of their Hearts. And, as for the Blame which Camden ſays they now laid on each other of the late Miſadventures, and which, he informs us grew to a more open Rupture, it ſeems to have fallen moſt upon Eſſex, and that Ralegh's Conduct was approv'd; becauſe Eſſex was never after truſted with the Command of any naval Expedition, but Ralegh was. Yet whatever Miſconduct in others Ralegh might be now driven to object, in his own Defence; his Generoſity to Eſſex, [267] and ſome of his Followers, whom he might have laid it upon, many Years after their Death, when there was little Fear of being controverted, is ſo much above moſt of theirs to him while they were alive, that, having then Occaſion to mention this Voyage, he does not drop the leaſt inuendo againſt any of them; but aſcribes their Diſappointments in it to the moſt unblameable Cauſe.

Before Ralegh could well arrive, I think, at London, to give an Account of this Expedition, the Parliament was met at Weſtminſter; for we read, that the Queen went thither in an open Chariot, all cover'd over-head Canopy-wiſe with Silver Tiſſue, and begun the Seſſions on the 24th of October this Year. Ralegh, making but a ſhort Stay in Town, went to his Seat at Sherbourn; of which he muſt have had but little Enjoyment for two or three Years paſt. Towards the latter End of November following, we find Mr. Adrian Gilbert, now a Burgeſs for Bridport in Dorſetſhire, obtain'd Licenſe of the Speaker that he might retire to his Brother Sir Walter Ralegh, in that County, for the Benefit of his Health. About a Month afterwards, that is, on the 20th of December, we meet with Ralegh in the Houſe; for what Place return'd, I find not; and that Day the Parliament was adjourn'd till the 11th of January. When they met again, Ralegh appears frequently in Committees, upon ſeveral Bills of the greateſt Conſequences that were then read; as that againſt lewd and wandering Perſons pretending to be Soldiers or Mariners; another for an Act to encreaſe People for the Service and Strength of the Realm; one to explain an Act for the Maintenance of the Navy; one for paying the Queen's Debts; one for erecting Houſes of Correction, and Puniſhment of Rogues, Vagabonds, and ſturdy Beggars; beſides [268] many others; whoſe Titles are more proper to be ſought in the Parliamentary Journals of this Reign, than here barely to be recited: For the Clerk of this Houſe, ſeeming to have melted down moſt of the Speeches in this Seſſion, for Brevity, into a Narrative of its Proceedings, little or nothing of Sir Walter Ralegh's Arguments is to be particularly extracted.

The Parliament being diſſolv'd on the 9th of February, Ralegh ſeems not to have reſided long in Town; for, ſoon after, ſome Regulations being made for the publick Good of thoſe People over whom he preſided, by his Offices of Power, in the Weſt of England, we find him celebrated, for his Exerciſe thereof among them, as a very worthy Patriot in ſeveral Inſtances. The Lord Burghley is mention'd in one of them, who died about ſix Months after the ſaid Parliament broke up, that is to ſay, in Auguſt 1598; therefore we muſt here relate it, as occuring before this Time. It concern'd the Reſtoration of certain Manors to their antient Tenure in Cornwall; for there are 17 appertaining to that Dutchy, which took or renew'd their Holdings, as they call it, every ſeven Years of certain Commiſſioners, for near three Centuries paſt; whereby the Tenants reckon'd a kind of inheritable Eſtate, accruing to them. But, notwithſtanding this long Preſcription, a bold and buſy Perſon in theſe Times, getting an Exchequer-Leaſe of one or two ſuch Tenements, called the whole Right in Queſtion; but, failing of Succeſs, another, ſoon after, reſumed the broken Title, and proſecuted it even to a Niſi prius. Hereupon, the Tenants deputed certain Gentlemen, among whom was the Author of this Paſſage, Richard Carew of Anthony, Eſq; one of the Deputy-Lieutenants of the County, to repair to London with a Petition to the ſaid Lord-Treaſurer [269] Burghley; who, calling to him the Chancellor and Barons of the Exchequer, found (beſides this long Continuance, and the Importance thereof, as touching the Ruin of above 1000 Inhabitants) that her Majeſty poſſeſſed no Lands which yielded her ſo fair a Benefit as theſe, in Rents, Fines, Heriots, and other Perquiſites. Theſe Reaſons found favourable Allowance, but did not procure an effectual Remedy, till the ſaid Gentlemen became Supplicants to her Majeſty in Perſon; who then, having been prepared, it ſeems, by Ralegh's Applications and Intereſt, teſtify'd her Diſlike of the Attempter; and expreſly order'd the Ceſſation of his Attempt. For, ſays this Author, herein we were beholden to Sir Walter Ralegh's earneſt Writing, who was then in the Country; alſo to the Advice of Sir Henry, and the Sollicitations of Mr. W. Killegrew. Another Example of his zealous Affection for the Eaſe and Advantage of theſe People under his Juriſdiction, appears in his lightning them of a certain burdenſome Tax, which carried many other Inconveniences with it. For, as the Products and Commodities in thoſe Weſtern Parts had been antiently very much oppreſs'd with Tributes to the Earls of Cornwall, whereby the Condition of a Corniſh Inhabitant and a French Peaſant differ'd very little; ſo latterly, while Ralegh was Lieutenant of that County, there wanted not ſome, who, through Favour at Court, and plauſible Repreſentations to her Majeſty, did, in Part, revive the ſame; and, under Pretext of reſtoring a Rent decay'd ever ſince the Ninth of King Henry II. to the pretended Detriment of the Crown, procured Letters patent, that none ſhould ſalt, dry, or pack any Fiſh in Devonſhire or Cornwall, without their Licenſe or Warrant; the ill Conſequences whereof grew ſo apparent, as being what would have made [270] that Patentee an abſolute Diſpoſer of all the Weſtern Shipping and Traffick, with their Sea and Land-Dependants, that the Corniſh Juſtices, whereof Mr. Carew aforeſaid was one, made Suit to the Privy-Council for Redreſs; and, through the never failing Forwardneſs and Backing of Sir Walter Ralegh, obtain'd a Revocation thereof. Here we may alſo add Ralegh's good Offices, the two following Years, for freeing the Inhabitants of theſe Parts from thoſe heavy Impoſitions, with which the Trade and Manufacture alſo of their Tin-works were very much embarraſs'd. Theſe Impoſitions were occaſion'd by the Merchants and Uſurers who advanced Money to the Tinners, upon whom their Encroachments were now grown ſo exorbitant, that Ralegh was importun'd to revive the Privilege of Pre-Emption, founded on that Clauſe in the Charter of King Edward I. allowing them to vend their Tin to their beſt behoof, niſi nos ipſi emere voluerimus. It had been attempted by others before him, who alledg'd many Reaſons how it might prove advantageous, not only to her Majeſty, but the Country, and prejudicial to none but thoſe Extortioners, who practis'd a far worſe kind of Pre-Emption. *But tho' this Means of Redreſs was [271] by thoſe Perſons hotly begun, and a reaſonable Price offer'd, it ſoon cool'd again, till it receiv'd a new Life in Michaelmas Term, 1599; for then the Corniſh Men, being in London, were call'd before the principal Lords of her Majeſty's Council, and the Matter was there debated by Sir Walter Ralegh in Behalf of the Country, againſt thoſe Advocates deputed for the Merchants who had promoted this Suit; and he brought it to ſuch a Concluſion that Articles were ſign'd. Indeed it did not immediately take Effect: Yet, it ſeems, the Privilege was afterwards inveſted in Ralegh, and that he put his Power in Execution. In November, the Year following, he held a Court at Loſtwithiel, the uſual Place for Stannary Cauſes; where having ſignified her Majeſty's Pleaſure for a new Tax of ſix Pounds on every Thouſand Weight of Tin that ſhould be tranſported, beſides 2 l. 16 s. already payable, he told them alſo, that her Majeſty had been prevail'd on ſo far to diſengage them from dealing with the Merchants and Uſurers, that ſhe would diſburſe 4000 l. in Loan to the Tinners for a Year's Space, and was contented to be repaid in Tin: And laſtly what appears totally to have excluded thoſe Merchants from the Exerciſe of their Impoſitions is, that, by the Time of the enſuing Parliament, Ralegh appears to have had the Power of Pre-Emption granted him; becauſe, in [272] a Speech of his, having juſtly maintain'd his Title thereto, from the Charter before-mention'd, he yet no leſs generouſly offers to reſign it, as indeed he not long after voluntarily did, if thoſe, who had Privileges of far leſs antient Eſtabliſhment, would follow his Example.

But, to return a little into the more open and publick Current of Action, we muſt here obſerve, that King Henry IV. of France having, about the End of the laſt Parliament, informed the Queen of England, by an Ambaſſador, that he had held ſome Conferences with the Spaniſh Miniſters about a Peace, but would come to no Concluſion without her Conſent, and that of the United States; her Majeſty ſent ſome Commiſſioners over: And, while they were negotiating this Buſineſs in France, ſhe had the Argument very cloſely debated in her Council at home. Here Eſſex was one of thoſe, who would by no means liſten to any Manner of Accommodation; and, while the Matter was upon the Carpet, was ſo expeditious as to produce a formal Apology, in Writing, for his Reaſons; it being dated in 1598, and written before the King of Spain's Death in the Beginning of September the ſame Year. Yet, upon this Topic, there enſued a warm Diſpute, ſays Camden, between the Queen and Eſſex; as alſo upon her chuſing ſome able Miniſter to ſuperintend the Affairs in Ireland. She look'd upon the Earl's Uncle, Sir William Knolles, as a proper Perſon for that Charge. Eſſex preferr'd Sir George Carew, perhaps on Purpoſe, ſays Camden, to get rid of him: And, when the Queen would not be perſwaded to approve his Choice, he, quite forgetting all Duty, turn'd his Back upon her in a contemptuous Manner. The Queen, unable to bear his Inſolence, diſmiſs'd him her Preſence with a Box on the Ear. The Fury this threw [273] the Earl into, is better conceiv'd than expreſs'd; but having, with his Hand on his Sword, told the Queen, He would not have taken ſuch a Blow from her Father, he retired from Court. The Lord-Keeper Egerton ſent him a prudent and pacifying Letter; in which, among other wholſome Motives to Submiſſion and Complacency, he ſays, In this Courſe you hold, if you have any Enemies, you do that for them which they could never do for themſelves; while your Friends you leave to Scorn and Contempt. The Earl return'd a long and paſſionate Anſwer, as Camden calls it, in which it appears, he had alſo ſuffer'd ſome Impriſonment; and wherein he makes this Reply to thoſe Objections. In this Courſe do I any thing for my Enemies? When I was preſent, I found them abſolute; and therefore I had rather they ſhould triumph alone, than have me attendant upon their Chariots. Or do I leave my Friends? When I was a Courtier, I could ſell them no Fruit of my Love; and now I am a Hermit, they ſhall bear no Envy for their Love to me. But the Lord-Keeper ſoon brought him out of his Hermitage; and he was, in a little Time, re-admitted into the Queen's Favour. However, his Friends, according to Camden, were apt to date his Ruin from this unlucky Circumſtance: And indeed, it hence appears, he had no Enemies ſo great, or who ſo much conſpired to his Fall, as his own Paſſions, his unreaſonable Expectations of an abſolute Conformity to his own Will, and Impatience to behold any Body aſpire to Diſtinction, who did it not through his Patronage and Protection. Of this he gave a moſt notorious Example about this Time; in which he made Ralegh a publick Object of his Oppoſition, tho' it ended in his own Diſgrace, and his Relapſe into the Queen's Diſpleaſure; which he might have prevented, had he kept his Word [274] to the Lord-keeper, and ſuffered Ralegh to have triumphed alone: for, during this Reconciliation, or laſt Blaze Eſſex made with any Credit at Court, this memorable Conteſt ſeems to have been promoted by him, at the martial Exerciſes performed on the Queen's Birth-day, which was the 17th of November.

Theſe martial Exerciſes were the Juſts or Turnaments wherewith the moſt active Nobles and Cavaliers of thoſe Times celebrated the Queen's Birthday every Year, in the Tilt yard, near her Palace at Whitehall. Here her Majeſty was commonly herſelf a Spectator of them, with her Attendants of both Sexes; as likewiſe all the foreign Ambaſſadors, and a numerous Concourſe beſides both of the Court and City. Hiſtory has not been very particular of Ralegh's Appearance at thoſe Aſſemblies; as by what Colour or Impreſſes he diſtinguiſhed himſelf, with what Succeſs he ran the Carreers, or what Favours he bore away: But, as upon all other publick Occaſions, he made a moſt rich and ſplendid Figure; ſo we find, upon theſe Days of Triumph, none ſurpaſſed him in military Bravery. I have ſomewhere read of his curious fine Armory; and, as I remember, that Part of it is, or was preſerved in the Tower of Lodon; but it is more apparent that, probably for ſome of theſe grand Entertainments, he either made himſelf, or was preſented by his royal Miſtreſs with, a Suit of Armour all of ſolid Silver: For there are ſtill in being, not only ancient Paintings, repreſenting him about this Part of her Reign in that glittering and warlike Habiliment; but mention is alſo made in ſome Writings of his being thus armed at all Points, and ſhining in thoſe poliſhed Plates of Silver. Yet who were his Competitors, and what his Succeſs in theſe robuſt Exerciſes, there is little, I fear, remaining to ſatisfy us, [275] more than thoſe dark and diſperſed Hints of that extraordinary Oppoſition or Contention which Eſſex raiſed againſt him about this Time, as was obſerved: And this being the Original or Copy of a like Contrivance, practiſed not long before or after it in France (by Marſhal Biron, as I remember to have read) may, from thence, and the correſponding Teſtimony of an Author, whoſe Credit and Intelligence are not to be doubted, be preſumed to have happened in the following manner.

About the Time that Eſſex, by other like Inſtances of his incurable Humour to monopolize the Multitude, fell into, or confirmed, the Queen's Diſpleaſure, he had by ſome of his Followers learnt, that Sir Walter Ralegh, with a very gallant Train, gorgeouſly accoutred, was to make his Appearance the next Tilting day in Orange colour Plumes. Hereupon Eſſex provided a much more numerous Cavalcade, and decked them out exactly in Ralegh's Colours: Then the Earl himſelf appearing at the Head of all, armed cap a-pee in a compleat Suit of Orange-colour, not only paſſed for the ſole Knight or Champion of that Diſtinction, by drowning all Diſtinction in Sir Walter Ralegh, but thereby incorporated him and his Train only as ſo many more of his own Eſquires, Pages, and other Retinue or Servants, who made up the Parade upon theſe Ocſions. The Earl of Clarendon certainly points at this malignant Stratagem, where, ſpeaking of thoſe dangerous Indiſcretions which were the Harbingers of Eſſex's Ruin, he mentions among them His glorious feather-triumph; when he cauſed 2000 orange-tawney Feathers, in Deſpite of Sir Walter Ralegh, to be worne in the Tilt yard, even before her Majeſty's own Face. But it muſt have been ſomewhat ſurpriſing to ſee them enter the Liſts, and orange-tawney running againſt itſelf. Yet the Earl's Succeſs, [276] which is alſo come to Light, ſeems not to have been much regretted, being ſo agreeable to the Merit of Uſurpers; inſomuch that it proved Ralegh's Feather triumph in the Concluſion. For, though the Lord Bacon might have Reaſon not to mention the Earl's Name, where he tells us a Gentleman, who came to the Tilt all in Orange-tawney, and ran very ill, came again the next Day all in green, and ran worſe; yet another Author, inſtead of this Gentleman, names Eſſex; and goes on, as the Lord Bacon does, with obſerving, that One of the Spectators hereupon aſking, Why this Tilter (who ſeemed to be known in both Habits) changed his Colours; another anſwered, Surely becauſe it may be reported, that there was one in green who ran worſe than he in Orange-colour.

Such like Diſturbances and ill Blood as theſe Conteſts muſt have bred, might well make the Queen weary of having Eſſex any longer about the Court, and deſirous of removing him to ſome Employment where he might more commendably exerciſe his martial Qualities. A good Occaſion offered itſelf in Ireland, where Tir Oen's Rebellion had now overſpread almoſt the whole Kingdom. A Conſultation was therefore held for ſending over the fitteſt Perſon to ſuppreſs it. The Lord Mountjoy was firſt propoſed: But Eſſex himſelf made Exceptions againſt his Want of Experience and Activity; alledging, Ireland required a Perſon of the firſt Rank, who was an old General, and conſiderable for Honour, Intereſt and Eſtate, to gain him Reſpect and Influence there; by which Camden thinks he would have recommended himſelf, and adds, that when the Queen therefore reſolved on Eſſex, he ſlightly refuſed it, adviſing her to ſome abler Perſon; tho', continues that Hiſtorian, he had an Objection ready againſt any Perſon ſhe ſhould have [277] have named. Notwithſtanding this Authority, and that Eſſex's ſmooth tongued Adverſaries were for lending Spurs to the Ambition that wanted a Bridle, he ſeems to me, by a Letter of his own genuine Stile, in Proſe and Verſe, to the Queen, at his going over in the End of March 1599, to have looked upon the Government of that Kingdom as the moſt irkſome Kind of Baniſhment, and to have entered upon it with the utmoſt Averſion *. His Conduct in it was anſwerable to the Expectations of judicious Men; and one of his own Servants, who attended him thither, ſays, it was his blackeſt Employment, that Ireland was ordained to be the Sepulchre of his Father, and the Gulph of his own Fortunes.

[278] About four Months after Eſſex was thus diſpoſed of, there were great Apprehenſions in England of an Invaſion; but from what Quarter is not well diſtinguiſhed: 6000 Soldiers were ſuddenly raiſed to guard the City and Queen's Perſon. Chains were drawn acroſs the Streets of London, Watches ſet, and Lights hung out at every Man's Door for above a Fortnight. By Sea 16 or 18 Ships of the Royal Navy were fitted out with wonderful Speed, under the Command of the Lord Thomas Howard, as Admiral, in the Elizabeth Jonas, and Sir Walter, Vice admiral, in the Ark-Royal. Whether occaſioned by any Miſtruſt the Engliſh and Spaniards had of one another, or a Policy held on both Sides to make Peace with Sword in Hand, my Author does not reſolve; but is ſure the Preparation on both Sides was very great, as if one expected an Invaſion from the other: And yet it was generally conceived not to be intended by either, but that our Fleet had only Relation to the Earl of Eſſex, then in Ireland, as if he had ſome deſperate Deſign to try his Friends in England, and to be revenged of thoſe he thought his Enemies. However it was, the Care and Coſt was not ſo great as neceſſary; for it was known, that the Ade [...]antado had drawn, both his Ships and Galleys, to the Groyne; which was not uſual, but upon ſome Action intended for England or Ireland: And, ſeeing we were not to be ſurpriſed, he diverted them afterwards to a different Uſe. Another Benefit that aroſe to the Nation, by putting it into this ſudden Poſture of Defence, was the great Dexterity and Expedition wherewith it was taught to ſpring into Arms: For the incredible Speed and Order of the Commanders, in raiſing ſuch a Land Army, and fitting out ſuch a Royal Navy, was ſo admired, both by Spain, France and Holland, that all Foreigners [279] confeſſed, Her Majeſty's Deeds in War were not heretofore more dreadful to her Enemies, than now only her Preparations for it. Inſomuch that, it is ſaid, an Envoy was ſent by the Archduke from Bruſſels with Overtures of Peace, tho' they did not then ſucceed. Whether a deſigned Invaſion from Spain was hereby blown over, or her Majeſty was better ſatisfied about the Earl of Eſſex, we find not; but ſhe commanded her Fleet Home, after it had been about a Month at Sea.

Near a Month after this, Eſſex returned privately out of Ireland, with ſome of his choice Friends; one whereof, named Sir Chriſtopher St. Lawrence, offered to murder the Lord Gray, whom they met upon the Road, and to diſpatch Secretary Cecyll when they came to Court; but Eſſex would not encourage ſo baſe an Act. The Queen was now at Nonſuch; hither Eſſex haſtened to preſent himſelf on his Knees before her, in her Privy-Chamber early in the Morning, and when her Majeſty leaſt dreamt of him, ſays Camden; who adds, that ſhe entertained him with ſome Marks of her Grace and Favour, though not with that Freedom he uſed to find. The Queen indeed ordered Eſſex to his Apartment, and there to continue, as Camden goes on; for the Earl had not only diſoblig'd her before, but now given freſh Provocation by leaving Ireland without her Permiſſion, and for ſhuffling up a Truce there, which might be broke at a Fortnight's Warning; whereas he might have made an effectual Compoſition with the Rebels, and was impower'd to give them a general Act of Indemnity. The Excuſes he offered before the Council, were ſo unſatisfactory, and his Behaviour ſo contemptuous, that the Queen thought proper to commit him to Cuſtody; but appointed it to be in the Lord Keeper's Houſe rather than a common [280] Priſon, chiefly to obſtruct the Infuſions of his pernicious Adherents, to whom he was ſo infatuated, that he could not relinquiſh them, though one of the Objections, which would be raiſed againſt him, was by his own Hand pre-ſuppoſed to be, the leaving of that Kingdom in ſuch an unſettled Poſture, and returning into this, with ſuch a Pack of Swordſmen at his Heels.

While Eſſex was thus in Reſtraint, Commiſſioners were ſent over to Bulloigne to negotiate the Peace with Spain. This was in May 1600. And about the ſame Time we find Sir Walter Ralegh was alſo ſent, with the Lord Cobham, upon an Embaſſy concerning the ſame, into Flanders. Their Buſineſs was kept very ſecret; yet, Albert Archduke of Auſtria, and Governor of the Netherlands, having charged the Queen of England, it ſeems, with relieving the Hollanders, and being likely to take ſome Umbrage at ſo many Perſons of conſiderable Rank going over Volunteers to Prince Maurice, as the Lord of Northumberland, Lord Rutland, and others; Secretary Cecyll wrote to the ſaid Commiſſioners at Bolloigne, that if the Archduke ſhould object in the like Manner to Cobham and Ralegh, they were to return Anſwer, That theſe had no Charge, nor carried either Horſe or Men, except ſome half Dozen of their own Attendants; and finding the Queen ſo reſolved to have a Peace (if good Conditions could be had) they obtained leave, with importunity, to ſee that one Action (then expected) before they might deſpair of ſeeing any more of the like Kind in her Majeſty's Time. Thus much of this Matter we have in a Letter of Secretary Cecyll's to thoſe Commiſſioners. In another written by Sir Henry Neville, who was one of thoſe Commiſſioners, to Mr. Winwood, he mentions it as a Report, that Cobham and Ralegh were [281] gone over upon Pretext to ſee the Camp and Siege of Fort Iſabella near Oſtend, before which Prince Maurice lay; but thinks they had ſome other End; and that in England there was ſome Alarm taken at theſe Matters, although he was not worthy to know it. The ſaid Sir Henry in another Letter to Mr. Winwood, ſays, that the Journey of Cobham and Ralegh was not upon Curioſity only; but that they carried ſome Meſſage (to Prince Maurice it ſeems) which did no Harm, and that he would reveal the Particulars when he was better informed of them. Theſe three Letters were written in July this Year, and in the firſt of them we perceive Ralegh was returned into England by the fourteenth Day of the ſaid Month.

When he arrived at Court, the Government of Jerſey was, it ſeems, vacant by the Death of Sir Anthony, Son of Sir Amias Paulet. The Queen had many Addreſſors for this Preferment; but ſhe thought none ſo worthy of it as Sir Walter Ralegh. About ſix Weeks after, that is, in the latter End of Auguſt, his Patent was paſſed, with Grant of the Manor or Lordſhip of St. Germain in the ſaid Iſland, and all the Lands and Tenements therein. There is a learned Inhabitant of this Iſland, who in his curious and exact Hiſtory of it, giving us a Succeſſion of the Governors, ſays, Sir Walter Ralegh came in after the Paulets, the Year only before his Royal Miſtreſs Queen Elizabeth died; and was attainted the firſt Year of King James: ſo that we were ſoon bereaved of the Happineſs we promiſed ourſelves under ſo excellent a Perſon. His bare Name in the Liſt of our Governors does Honour to the Iſland. Yet, as the ſame Author further obſerves out of the ſaid Patent, When Sir Walter Raleigh himſelf had this Government given him by Queen Elizabeth, ſhe ſtruck off 300 l. a Year from it, which [282] ſhe took into her own diſpoſal; and made that great Man, ſo renowned for his eminent Services to her and to the whole Nation, be contented with the Remainder.

Eſſex had now been called before the Council at the Lord-keeper's, where, for the Matters laid to his Charge, he was ſuſpended from ſome of his Offices. But the Courſe of Penitence and Reſignation, which he held for a while, gave great Hopes, after he had obtain'd his Liberty, that he would recover himſelf alſo at Court; till his Creatures blew him up again with their poiſonous Counſels, and led him to expect not only a Reſtoration to Favour, but with unreaſonable Intereſt; inſomuch, that he neglected the Queen's Pardon, becauſe it came not accompanied with a new Grant of his Leaſe for the farming of ſweet Wines, as a noble Author obſerves, who adds, if ever that uncouth Speech fell from him of the Queen, which is delivered to us by one who was then much converſant in the ſecrets of the Court, that ſhe was as crooked in her Diſpoſition, as in her Carcaſe; all my Wonder at his Deſtruction is taken from me. After this Speech, the Queen did as good as deny him the Wine Licenſes aforeſaid, as Camden relates. Then Eſſex threw himſelf open to all ill Impreſſions, renewing the Project he had begun in Ireland of removing by Force his Enemies at Court. He curried Favour with King James in Scotland, by ſeveral reſpectful Letters; wherein he laboured to prejudice the King againſt thoſe who had any Influence in the Engliſh Court, and was very particular in acquainting him with the Intereſt of his Adverſaries; as one of whom he failed not to ſet forth Sir Walter Ralegh, with the formidable Power he had in the Weſt of England, and now again in the Iſle of Jerſey; that Cobham was Warden of the Cinque Ports; Lord [283] Burghley, Preſident of the North, and Sir George Carew, Preſident of Munſter, in the South of Ireland: That thoſe were Places commodious for the Spaniards to land; and theſe, Perſons well affected to the King of Spain, and altogether, with the Lord Treaſurer, Admiral and Secretary, ſteer'd the Helm of Government. Then he practiſed with the ſaid King to ſend Ambaſſadors into England, to preſs a publick Declaration of his Title to the Succeſſion, prepares Inſtructions for that Purpoſe, ſtill inſtancing the exorbitant Power of his Enemies, their Diſaffection to the King of Scots, and great Veneration for the Infanta. Theſe Proceedings were outwardly varniſh'd over, all this while, with the gloſs of Conſcience and Religion; he won over the Puritans and their Preachers to his Party, commiſerated the afflicted Condition of the Papiſts, retained a Crew of Deſperado's to guard his Houſe, and left none uncountenanc'd, who had nothing to hope for, but Changes and Revolutions.

Thus theſe ill Humours kept gathering till Sunday the 8th of February following, and then broke out, as may be ſeen at large in our Hiſtories of theſe Times. At Court the Guard was doubled, being appris'd of this Eruption; and the Morning it happened, Sir Walter Ralegh ſent, out of particular Kindneſs, to Sir Ferdinando Gorges, one of Eſſex's Adherents and Governor of Plymouth Fort, to come in all Haſte to him at Durham-houſe to ſpeak with him, and as the more private Way, that he would come by Water. Gorges, in the Manuſcript he writ to vindicate himſelf from the Imputation of betraying Eſſex by this Meeting avers, that he advertis'd his Lordſhip of this Meſſage, and that upon Council the Earl was willing he ſhould go; but directing him to appoint [284] his Meeting with Ralegh upon the Thames, and not to land at Durham Houſe; alſo to take with him a Guard for ſecuring his Return. The Conference that paſſed between them, as Gorges relates it, was only this: When Sir Walter Ralegh's Boat came to me, he being all alone, and I having two Gentlemen, he told me that he had ſent for me to admoniſh me to make all Haſte out of the Town down to my Charge; there being a Warrant out for the ſending me to the Fleet. For his kind Advertiſement I gave him Thanks; but told him withal, becauſe I knew the preſent Occaſion would ſoon diſcover itſelf, that it came too late; for I had engaged myſelf in another Matter. He further inquiring of me, what it was? I told him, there were 2000 Gentlemen who had reſolved that Day to live or die Free Men. He proteſted unto me he heard not of it until that Morning, but did not ſee what they were able to do againſt the Queen's Authority. My Anſwer was, it was the Abuſe of that by him and others, which made ſo many honeſt Men reſolve to ſeek a Reformation thereof. His Reply was, that no Man is without a Colour for his Intent; and adviſed me to look to myſelf, and to remember my Duty and Allegiance. I anſwer'd, that I knew not any Man who did not more reſpect his Allegiance than his Life, as the End would make apparent; and thus we parted; he to the Court, and I to Eſſex houſe. In the Confeſſion made by this Gorges, eight Days after that of their Inſurrection above-named, before ſome of the Privy Council, it appears, Sir Chriſtopher Blount, had perſuaded him to murder or ſeize Sir Walter Ralegh at this Meeting upon the Water. For not doing either, Gorges apologizes in the Manuſcript aforeſaid after this Manner. If it be demanded of me why I did not then take Sir Walter Ralegh. Firſt, It was not a Matter I ever propoſed; though many perſuaded [285] me ſo to do. Secondly, I never held it an Act fitting among Men to betray any that repoſe Truſt in us; and he putting himſelf into my Hands, with what Honeſty could I have avowed ſo barbarous a Deed, unleſs he had given me the firſt Occaſion by violent Deeds or unkind Words; for either of which, I was both reſolved and prepared. And at my Return, I deliver'd unto my Lord what had paſſed between Sir Walter Ralegh and my ſelf, which he received with Applauſe, as may be teſtified by thoſe who were preſent, and yet alive. Laſtly, in another Part of the ſaid Manuſcript, Gorges ſays, The Reaſon why I acknowledge I had Means to have taken or killed Sir Walter Ralegh was, the better to make it appear, that there was neither malicious or butcherous Courſe intended to him or any; and alſo to give him Cauſe to acknowledge himſelf in that Reſpect beholden unto me; whereby to take from him Occaſion to exerciſe his Power (which I knew to be great at that Juncture) to my Ruin. For I did believe, he could not in Reaſon be ſo void of human Reſpect, as not to requite one Courteſy with another; and alſo it was no Matter of Treaſon againſt her Majeſty, but rather a Manifeſtation of the contrary, approving this Intent to be particular againſt Sir Walter Ralegh and others. This is the Conference which paſſed between them a few Hours before the Inſurrection, as Gorges has repreſented it.

After Eſſex, with his Party, had made ſeveral Excurſions, and ſome Perſons had been ſlain both on his Side and the Queen's. After he had been proclaimed a Traitor by the King of Arms in ſeveral Parts of the City; and was driven, by Water, to ſeek Garriſon in his own Houſe; we find Ralegh mentioned among the ſeveral Nobles and Knights who inveſted it; tho' he appears in no particular Action againſt the ſaid Earl or his Company. [286] But when the Earl ſoon after ſurrender'd himſelf, and was brought to Examination, he profeſs'd that he was to have been aſſaulted or aſſaſſinated by his private Enemies; of this we have the following Account publiſh'd by Authority. As in all former Diſcontentments, he had gone the beaten Path of Traitors, turning their Imputation upon Counſellors and Perſons of Credit with their Sovereign: ſo now he was forced to deſcend to the Pretext of a private Quarrel; giving out, how that Evening, when he ſhould have been called before the Lords of the Council, there was an Ambuſcade of Muſketeers placed upon the Water, by the Device of my Lord Cobham and Sir Walter Ralegh, to have murdered him in the Way as he paſs'd. A Matter of no Probability (continues my Author) thoſe Perſons having no ſuch deſperate Eſtates or Minds as to ruin themſelves and their Poſterity by committing ſo odious a Crime. On the contrary, it was certain, Sir Ferdinando Gorges accuſed Blount perſuading him to kill, or at leaſt apprehend Sir Walter Ralegh; and that Gorges rejecting this Advice, Blount ſent four Shot after him in a Boat, which Blount denied not; and asked Ralegh Forgiveneſs for it at the Time of his Death. But there were other Improbabilities to diſcredit this Slander (as we may ſafely call it, ſince the State call'd it by a groſſer Name) beſides that the Perſons ſo accuſed had Reputations and Eſtates better eſtabliſh'd, than to overthrow them by ſuch a deteſtable Deed; as Eſſex's declining to produce or name any Author of ſuch an Information: beſides his varying from himſelf (like the Judges, in the Story of Suſannah, from one another) in the Place; as one while he was to have been murdered in his Bed; and another, on the Water: alſo in the Time and Perſons; as that it was to have been done by Jeſuits, and ſome Days before: ſo that in the End, this Accuſation [287] by Eſſex was reſembled to the Action of Piſiſtratus, who proceeded ſo far in this Kind of Fiction and Diſſimulation, that he lanced his own Body, and came wounded before the People, as though he had been aſſaulted by his private Enemies; thus obtained a Guard about his Perſon, whereby he afterwards uſurped upon the State. Further, what may perfectly clear up the Innocence of Cobham and Ralegh from this unworthy Calumny, is the Acknowledgment which Blount made at his own Trial; when, being aſked by Secretary Cecyll, Whether he thought my Lord Cobham and Sir Walter Ralegh intended any ſuch Aſſaſſination of the Earl? he anſwered, that he did not believe they ever meant any ſuch Thing, nor that the Earl himſelf feared it; only, it was a Word caſt out to colour other Matters. And laſtly, what may tend to prove, that Ralegh did rather compaſſionate and incline to befriend the Earl, than harbour any Enmity that was implacable againſt him, is, that one of the Earl's own Faction, Capt. Thomas Lee, ſhould have ſuch Hopes, that Ralegh might be perſuaded into the Danger of diſobliging the Queen by Importunity, or other violent Means, for retrieving both Eſſex and Southampton from the Jaws of Death, as, by Way of Propoſition, to tell Sir Robert Croſs, who had been an old Officer under Ralegh in ſeveral Engagements at Sea, That Sir Walter Ralegh might get himſelf eternal Honour and Love, more than ever he can otherwiſe, if he would procure her Majeſty's Warrant to free the Lords; which he might compaſs, by undertaking her Perſon: for this does not only ſhew the Opinion that was held of Ralegh's Power with the Queen, but the Probability that he might be induced to exert it for the Reſcue of thoſe Noblemen. We find he did uſe his Intereſt for ſome who were drawn in unawares, and got a Pardon for Sir Edmund Bainham; [288] alſo for John Littleton, and Orell a brave old Soldier: the two former were Men of Fortune, and their Purſes might bleed, or be threatened upon this Occaſion. But, as Camden obſerves, few paid the Fines laid on them.

On the 19th of February, Eſſex was arraigned at Weſtminſter; and we find, in his Trial, that Sir Walter Ralegh, with 40 of the Queen's Guard, was, as Captain thereof, there preſent upon Duty. Ralegh was here examined about the Conference before-mentioned; and all he ſaid was, That Gorges told him on the Water, Eſſex had put himſelf into a ſtrong Guard at his Houſe; and this would be the bloodieſt Day's Work that ever was; wiſhing he would ſpeed to Court for the Prevention of it; and that he himſelf wiſhed Gorges to refuſe their Company, elſe he would be undone. This is all Ralegh ſaid of that Conference; which Gorges, here alſo in Court, confirmed. But Eſſex ſeems to charge Gorges with Prevarication, where he replies, Whatſoever Sir Walter Ralegh hath ſaid, differeth altogether from that which Sir Ferdinando told us at Eſſexhouſe, upon his Return from the Water. And indeed it is not likely he ſhould tell Eſſex he adviſed Ralegh to go to Court and prevent the Inſurrection. Six Days after, Eſſex was beheaded in the Court yard of London-Tower. Among the many Perſons of Diſtinction, there preſent was Sir Walter Ralegh, probably in his Charge again as Captain of the Guard. He ſtood near the Scaffold, according to his own Aſſertion; that he might better anſwer, if Eſſex ſhould be deſirous of ſpeaking to him. But his Enemies expounded his Preſence there in ſuch a barbarous Senſe, ſays Camden, as if he had preſſed near the Place of Execution, ouly to feaſt his Eyes with the Tragedy of the Earl's Sufferings; and the greateſt or moſt notorious of Ralegh's Enemies [289] [...] [290] [...] [291] [...] [288] [...] [289] (who is known to us) he who betrayed him to his untimely End, as will be obſerv'd, did after Ralegh's Death, when he could not anſwer for himſelf, inſinuate, that he not only inſulted upon Eſſex being dead, but even plotted his Downfal, as that he had called the Earl's Saintſhip in Queſtion, had writ in ſome Letters, that the great Boy died like a Calf, and like a Craven, and that, ſoon after the Execution, a Gentleman, returning from Spain, touched at Sherborne, who, being aſked by Ralegh, what they ſaid in Spain of Eſſex's Death, anſwered, They had not heard of it; but he was ſorry to bear, that in the Iſland Voyage the Earl had brought him to his Mercy; to which, that Ralegh anſwer'd, but I truſt I am now quit with him; and, as a more evident Demonſtration, ſays, that the Night before the Earl's Suffering, Ralegh gave Inſtructions to the Lieutenant of the Tower for the Execution of the Warrant: Which ſurely he did not do without Authority. But theſe Particulars, it muſt be obſerved, come from the Perſon ſtigmatiz'd with having enſnared Ralegh to his Deſtruction, and to the Perſon who deſtroy'd him, with Endeavour to Palliate the Conduct of both to the World. And as we find thoſe Obloquies gave not Satisfaction to their Author's Cotemporaries: So we have produced them, that they may not eſcape the Reception they deſerve of Poſterity. As for Ralegh's Comportment to Eſſex, we may gueſs what it was while the Earl was alive, ſince he made no Exceptions to it at his Death, when he had free Liberty of Speech; and when Ralegh came to the ſame End, it appears by his laſt Words, that he had relented more at the Earl's Fate, than any Thing were hear of in his pretended Friends; and that he retir'd from the Sight of the Earl at the Time of his Death, in Compliance with the Miſconſtruction [290] of the Populace, though he afterwards repented it; ſince the Earl had a Deſire to ſee and ſpeak with him before he took his Farewel of the World.

This Deſire was, in all Probability, to aſk Ralegh Forgiveneſs, for having ſo diſhonourably treated and traduced him, to countenance his own raſh Purpoſes. For juſt ſuch a Deſire had Sir Chriſtopher Blount, when his own Execution approached on the 18th of March following at Tower-Hill; where, underſtanding that Ralegh, as Captain of the Guard, was near the Scaffold, he ſaid, Sir Walter Ralegh, I thank God that you are preſent: I had an infinite Deſire to ſpeak with you, to aſk you Forgiveneſs e'er I died; both for the Wrong done you, and for my particular ill Intent towards you: I beſeech you forgive me. Ralegh anſwered, that he moſt willingly forgave him, and beſought God to forgive him, and to give him his divine Comfort; proteſting before the Lord, that whatever Sir Chriſtopher Blount meant towards him, for his Part, he never bore him any ill Intent: And further ſaid to him, I pray you, without Offence, let me put you in Mind, that you have been eſteemed not only a principal Provoker and Perſuader of the Earl of Eſſex in all his undutiful Courſes, but eſpecially an Adviſer in that which has been confeſs'd, of his Purpoſe to tranſport a great Part of her Majeſty's Army out of Ireland into England, to land at Milford, and thence to turn it againſt her ſacred Perſon: You will do well to tell the Truth herein, and to ſatisfy the World. Blount reply'd, When I was brought from Reban to Dublin, and lodg'd in the Caſtle; his Lordſhip and the Earl of Southampton came to viſit me; and he began thus plainly with me: That he intended to tranſport a choice Part of the Army of Ireland into England, and land them in Wales at Milford, or [291] thereabouts: And ſo ſecuring his Deſcent, would gather ſuch other Forces, as would enable him to march to London. I anſwer'd, I would that Night conſider of it. Next Day the Earls came again; I told them, Such an Enterprize, as it was moſt dangerous, would coſt much Blood; ſo as I could not like it. But I rather adviſed him to go over himſelf, with a good Train, and make ſure of the Court, than make his own Conditions; and tho' we never reſolved to hurt her Majeſty's Perſon, yet I know, and muſt confeſs, if we had failed of our Ends, we ſhould, rather than have been diſappointed, even have drawn Blood from herſelf. Then giving a few farther Hints of their Progreſs in general, he leaves the reſt to his Confeſſions made before the Privy-Counſellors, whom he names, and to whom he beſeeches Sir Walter Ralegh to commend him for their favourable and charitable Dealing. Laſtly, having alſo declared he died in the Catholick Faith, and bid farewel to the Lords Gray, Compton, and the reſt, he made a decent End. Thus have we connected all the Paſſages of Eſſex's Inſurrection, wherein we have found Ralegh any ways mention'd or concern'd; which, with ſeveral other remarkable Parts of his Story, thoſe Authors, who had read many of the Tracts, Letters, Records, and other Manuſcripts whence it is here drawn out, have viſibly curtail'd and ſuppreſs'd in their Annals and Chronicles of this Reign, which were publiſh'd in the next.

The following Summer, in the Year 1601, it appears, that Ralegh attended upon the Queen in her Progreſs; and, when the King of France came to Calais, on the Alarm of the Arch-Duke's beſieging of Oſtend, her Majeſty was at Dover. Ambaſſadors were ſent over to each other on this Occaſion; and, in that private Diſpatch of the Marquis of Roſney, afterwards Duke of Sully, related only by [292] himſelf, we find, that upon his landing at Dover, he was received by Ralegh, in Company with the Lords Cobham, Sidney, and others. The Interview, then expected between theſe two Princes, was not brought to paſs; nor ſeem the Propoſals, made to her Majeſty about the War with Spain, to have had the full Effect that was hoped for; becauſe, not long after, on the 5th of September, there arrived at London another Ambaſſador from France, named the Duke of Biron, with a very noble, numerous and ſtately Equipage, to the Number of 3 or 400 Perſons. The Queen was then in Hantſhire; and, during the 13 Days ſhe was entertained at Boſing, the Marquis or Wincheſter's Seat, the Duke of Biron, with his Retinue, was brought to the Vine, a fair Houſe in the ſaid County, of the Lord Sandys, which was furniſh'd with 140 B [...]ds by the neighbouring Gentry, and with all other Accommodations from the Queen's Palaces, for the Reception of the ſaid Ambaſſador. I leave this Entertainment to the Deſcription of the French and Engliſh Hiſtorians, who obſerve it as one diſcontinued Feſtival, and that the lik [...] was never made by any of our Princes in a Progreſs. 'Tis more particularly to be expected, that Ralegh did here attend upon the Court, becauſe he was commonly appointed to entertain the foreign Miniſters, eſpecially of France or the States, being ſo well acquainted with thoſe People and their Policies: And when the Queen left the Country, we find, among the ten Perſons ſhe there knighted (a greater Number than ever ſhe had conferr'd that Honour upon at one Time) that one of them was Carew, *the Brother of Sir [293] Walter Ralegh. But as for that Paſſage, in a French Hiſtorian lately quoted, between the Queen and the Ambaſſador when they were in London, of her ſhewing him, among the Heads of thoſe Rebels which were ſtuck upon the Tower, that of the Earl of Eſſex; it has been proved fabulous by Camden, who would doubtleſs have detected other ſuch Falſities in the ſaid French Author, relating to our Engliſh Hiſtory, and in particular to Sir Walter Ralegh, had his Annals extended to the Year, in which we ſhall be obliged to take Notice thereof.

Soon after the Queen's Return from this Progreſs, her laſt Parliament met at Weſtminſter, and that was on the 27th Day of October. This was a Seſſion [294] full of important Buſineſs, and Ralegh appears frequently engaged in it. The firſt or moſt antient Liſt of the Members of the Houſe of Commons, at leaſt extant, is, as I have been told by an eminent Antiquary, that which we have of this Parliament; and herein it appears, that Sir Walter Ralegh was one of the Knights of the Shire for the County of Cornwall, John Arundell, Eſq; being the other; and that Sir Carew Ralegh was one of the Burgeſſes for Foway in the ſame County. The firſt Speech we have of Sir Walter's, upon Record in this Parliament, was on November the 4th; and in Oppoſition to the Act for ſowing of Hemp. For my Part, ſaid he, I do not like this conſtraining of Men to manure or uſe their Ground at our Wills; but rather let every Man uſe his Ground to that which it is moſt fit for, and therein uſe his own Diſcretion. For Halſiers, Cables, Cordage, and the like, we have plentifully enough from foreign Nations; and we have Countries here in England that make uſe thereof in Abundance: And the Bill of Tillage may be a ſufficient Motive to us in this Caſe, not to take the Courſe that this Bill intends. For where the Law provides, that every Man muſt plough the third Part of his Land; I know divers poor People have done ſo, to avoid the Penalty of the Statute, when their Abilities have been ſo poor, that they have not been able to buy Séed-corn to ſow it withal; nay, they have been fain to hire others to plough it; which, if it had been unploughed, would have been good Paſture for Beaſts, or might have been converted to other good Uſes.

Upon this Motion, all the Houſe bid away with the Bill: But it was put to the Queſtion, whether it ſhould be committed or no? Some Doubt ariſing, the Houſe was divided; and the Yea's were 103, the Noes 162; ſo the Bill was not committed. It was afterwards put to the Queſtion for ingroſſing; [295] and, notwithſtanding Mr. Comptroller's Speech for the Weight of it (which is not preſerved) it was denied, and ſo abſolutely rejected. Three Days after, Sir Walter Ralegh was at the Committee in the Houſe, touching the Subſidy. Here he moved them to conſider for what Intent they came thither, and now in their coming, what was to be conſidered. For the Subſidy, ſaid he, the Manner and Quality thereof, I will now only intimate thus much to you; that the laſt Parliament, only three Subſidies were granted, upon fear that the Spaniards were coming; but now we ſee they are come, and have ſet Foot even in the Queen's Territories already; therefore, are the more of us to be reſpected and regarded. And ſeeing the Sale of her Majeſty's own Jewels; the great Loans her Subjects have lent her, yet unpaid; the continual ſelling of her Lands, and decaying of her Revenues; the ſparing even out of her own Purſe and Apparel for our own Sakes, will not ſerve; but ſhe muſt yet be fain to call her Court of Parliament for our Advice and Aid in this Caſe; I wiſh, for my part, as a particular Member of the Commonwealth, that we may not do leſs than we did before; and that we may alſo bountifully, according to our Eſtates, contribute to her Majeſty's Neceſſities, as they now ſtand. This Speech was confirmed by many other Members, and met with no Oppoſition that we read of. But the manner of raiſing this Subſidy created ſome ſhort Debate; in which Sir Francis Haſtings moved, that the Three Pound Men might be exempted; and all others, above that Rate, to pay according to the Rate, to make up a full Subſidy. To this Sir Walter Ralegh anſwered, If all pay, none will be aggrieved; if any be exempted, doubtleſs it will breed much Grief; the feeling will be great to thoſe Three Pound Men that will feel any Thing, but it will be nothing to them that know [296] any Thing. Sir Edward Hobby, who, it ſeems, ſat near the Door, not hearing well this Speech, ſaid, You ſhould ſpeak ſtanding, that the Houſe might hear you. Ralegh anſwered, That being in a Committee, he might ſpeak ſitting or ſtanding: ſo (without riſing) repeated his former Words. In the End this Propoſal was agreed to, and Secretary Cecyll reported to the whole Houſe, That moſt Voices concluded, there ſhould be no Exception of the Three Pound Men, becauſe, according to their Rate, ſome were aſſeſſed under Value; beſides, Separation might breed Emulation, Suſpicion of Partiality and Confuſion. Yet when Cecyll, among thoſe who launched out *, carried the Matter ſo high as to ſay, That neither Pots or Pans, nor Diſh nor Spoon, ſhould be ſpared, when Danger is at our Elbows; nor would by any Means have the Three Pound Men excluded, becauſe he'd have the King of Spain know, how willing we are to ſell all in Defence of God's Religion, our Prince and our Country; and when Mr. Francis Bacon, in his Speech, concluded it was Dulcis tractus pari jugo; therefore the Poor, as well as the Rich, not to be exempted: Ralegh did anſwer; I like it not, that the Spaniards, our Enemies, ſhould know of our ſelling our Pots and Pans to pay Subſidies; well may you call it Policy, as an honourable [297] Perſon alledged; but I am ſure it argues Poverty in the State. And for the Motion that was laſt made, Dulcis tractus pari [...]jugo: Call you this par jugum, when a poor Man pays as much as a rich? and peradventure his Eſtate is no better than it is ſet at, or but little better; while our Eſtates are three or four Pounds in the Queen's Books, and it is not the hundredth Part of our Wealth; therefore it is neither dulcis nor par. This might flow as well from the natural Source of his own Benignity, as from any Compliance with the Queen's Inclination to favour the poorer Sort, for whom Ralegh ſeems, by her Command, to have before indeed been a choſen Advocate *: but he knowing, as well as the Reſt of the Members, by former Experience that ſuch a Supply, as her Majeſty now wanted being no leſs than 300,000 Pounds, according to Cecyll's Repreſentation, could not be raiſed if ſuch an Exemption were admitted of; the former Propoſition prevailed, and the three pound Men were neceſſarily included.

When the Complaint againſt Monopolies was made on the 20th of November, and Dr. Bennet mentioned that of Cards, I cannot perceive how it could be juſtly obſerved in the Journals, to make any Change in the Countenance of Sir Walter Ralegh; ſince in the ſame Journals it is alſo obſerved, that the Patent for Cards was now granted to Edward Darcy. But, when Mr. Martin ſpoke of a [298] Country that groaned nnder the Burthen of monſtrous and unconſcionable Subſtitutes to Monopolitans of Starch, Tin, Fiſh, Cloth, Oil, Vinegar, Salt, and what not. Sir Walter Ralegh replied, I am urged to ſpeak in two Reſpects; the one, becauſe I find myſelf touched upon in particular; the other, in that I take ſome Imputation and Slander to be offered unto her Majeſty: I mean by the Gentleman who firſt mentioned Tin. For that being one of the principal Commodities of this Kingdom, and being in Cornwall, it has ever (ſo long as there were any) belonged to the Dukes of Cornwall; and they had ſpecial Patents of Privilege. It has pleaſed her Majeſty freely to beſtow on me that Privilege, and that Patent; being Word for Word the very ſame the Duke's is. And becauſe, by Reaſon of my Office of Lord-warden of the Stannaries, I can ſufficiently inform this Houſe of the State thereof, I will make bold to deliver it unto you. When the Tin is taken out of the Mine, and molten and refined, then is every Piece, containing 100 Weight, ſealed with the Duke's Seal. And by Reaſon of this Privilege (which I now have) he ever had the Refuſal in buying thereof; for the Words of the Patent are, Niſi nos emere voluimus. Now I will tell you, that before the granting of my Patent, whether Tin were but at 17 Shillings and ſo upward to 50 Shillings a Hundred; yet the poor Workman never had but two Shillings a Week, finding himſelf: But ſince my Patent, whoſoever will work, be Tin at what Price ſoever, they have four Shillings a Week truly paid: there is no Poor that will work there, but may, and have that Wages. But, notwithſtanding his Merit, as well as Right, Ralegh concluded, ſaying, Yet if all others may be repealed, I will give my Conſent as freely to the cancelling of this, as any Member of this Houſe. It is noted, that a great and uncommon Silence followed this Speech. At [299] laſt Sir Francis Haſtings ſaid, in Reſpect thereto: I joy to ſee ſo great a Reformation, that we may ſpeak quietly, and be heard peaceably; every Man has not alike Senſe or Judgment, neither is every Man's Memory alike. I wiſh, that if any Gentleman, who ſpeaks of this, or any other Subject as curious, ſhall let fall any Word amiſs or unpleaſing, that it may be attributed rather to Earneſtneſs, than Want of Duty. Throughout the further Proceedings againſt the numerous Monopolies now in Force, we find not any Mention made of his Patent aforeſaid, among thoſe which were particularly promis'd to be revoked or aboliſhed as Grievances to the State. On the 24th of November, Sir Edmund Morgan and Mr. Pemberton, both Members of the Houſe, being ſerved with Subpoenas to appear in the Court of Chancery, the ſame Day, at the Suit of Sir Walter and Sir Carew Ralegh, they had the Privilege granted them. The Officers, who ſerved thoſe Subpoenas, were taken into the Cuſtody of the Serjeant, but ſoon releaſed, upon pleading they knew not thoſe Gentlemen to be Members of Parliament. This is all I find of that Suit concerning Sir Walter Ralegh. On the 2d of December, he ſpoke againſt the Defects and Hardſhips in a Bill that was read for Reformation of Abuſes in Inns; as that, it would deprive thoſe, who, by their Lordſhips or Manors, had Right to enquire into the Default of ſelling Liquors by full Meaſure, of their Privilege; that, by diſabling a Man for ever after of being an Inn-keeper, how detrimental it might be to the Inheritance of thoſe who had Inns, ſome at 100 Pounds per Annum; and how dangerous to Inn-keepers, who might, by the Negligence of a Servant, ſuffer: All which he left to the Diſcretion of the Houſe. After other like Objections, by another Member or two, we hear no more of it. Soon after, the [300] Means of ſuppreſſing the Pirates of Dunkirk, now grown ſtrong both in Arms and Shipping, came under the Conſideration of this Houſe. As one Remedy againſt them, it was propoſed, to reſtrain the Tranſportation of Ordnance, and a Bill to prohibit the ſame was read a ſecond Time on the 8th of December; but, before it was committed, there paſſed many Speeches upon this important Argument. It ſeems, a Patent for tranſporting them had been granted to Sir Henry Nevill, and the Queen's Duty thereby roſe to 3000 l. a Year; yet this Profit no Ways ballanced the Inconveniences. For, being carried into all Countries that were Friends with Dunkirk, and Confederates with Spain, the Spaniards had ſuch Plenty, that they now uſually ſold 100 Weight of Iron Ordnance for ſeven Ducats and a half. The Laws were moreover urged in 33 of Henry VIII. and 2 of Edward VI. which prohibited the Tranſporting of Gun Metal; and tho' Guns were not then made of Iron, they now were; therefore it was within the Power of thoſe Laws. Sir Walter Ralegh, in Approbation of this Motion, ſaid, I *am ſure heretofore one Ship [301] of her Majeſty's was able to beat ten Spaniards; [...]ut now, by Reaſon of our own Ordnance, we are hardly matched one to one. And, if the Low-Countries [302] ſhould either be ſubdued by the Spaniard, or yield unto him upon a conditional Peace, or ſhall join in Amity with the French, as we ſee them daily inclining, I ſay, there is nothing does ſo much threaten the Conqueſt of this Kingdom, as the Tranſportation of Ordnance; and therefore I think it a good and ſpeedy Courſe to proceed by Way of Petition, leſt we be cut off from our Deſires, either by the Upper Houſe, or before, by the Shortneſs and ſudden Ending of the Parliament. The Generality agreed with him in the Needfulneſs [303] of reſtraining this Privilege; however, they proceeded by Way of Bill, which paſſed the Commons, but not the Lords; for other Buſineſs interfering, it fell aſleep 'till the End of the Seſſion, and then the Speaker Crook, who was to repreſent it to her Majeſty, forgetting his Promiſe, it came to nothing.

On the 9th of December the Diſpute was renew'd, whether the Statute of Tillage ſhould be continu'd? This Statute was made in the Time of Dearth, and Sir Walter Ralegh agreed with thoſe who were for having it now repeal'd. His Reaſon for it was, becauſe many poor Men are not able to find Seed to ſow ſo much Ground, as they are bound to plough, which they muſt do, or incur the Penalty of the Law. Beſides, all Nations abound with Corn. France offer'd the Queen to ſerve Ireland with Corn for ſixteen Shillings a Quarter, which is but two Shillings the Buſhel; if we ſhould ſell it ſo here, the Ploughman would be beggar'd. The Low-Countryman and the Hollander, who never ſow Corn, have, by their Induſtry, ſuch Plenty, that they will ſerve other Nations. The Spaniard, who often wants Corn, had we never ſo much Plenty, would never be beholden to the Engliſhman for it, neither to the Low-Countryman, nor to France, but will fetch it even of the very Barbarian; and that which the Barbarian has been ſuing for theſe 200 Years (I mean for Traffick of Corn into Spain) the King, in Policy, has ſet at Liberty of himſelf, becauſe he will not be beholden to other Nations. And therefore, I think, the beſt Courſe is, to ſet it at Liberty, and leave every Man free, which is the Deſire of a true Engliſhman. After other Speeches, it was put to the Queſtion, whether the Bill of Tillage ſhould be committed? and it paſs'd in the affirmative. But, it having pleas'd her Majeſty to licenſe Mr. Dormer, under [304] her Letters patent, with a Non-obſtante, this Statute, to encloſe 300 Acres of Ground, he prayed the Houſe to admit of this Proviſo; therefore it was put to the Queſtion, and carried. The Noes demanded a Diviſion of the Houſe: Whereupon Mr. Richard Martyn obſerv'd, the Noes had always carried it in this Parliament when they came to a Diviſion; many ſtaying with the Yeas, becauſe they would not loſe their Places. Sir Walter Ralegh roſe to anſwer him; but many hurrying out to the Diviſion, he and Cecyll, it ſeems, took ſome Diſpleaſure; for, after the Diviſion, when Mr. Dormer's Proviſo carried it again by a Majority, whereby the Houſe was ſet quiet, Sir Walter Ralegh ſaid, I thought I had deſerved of the Houſe to have been heard to ſpeak, as well as he that ſpake before the Diviſion; and in that I offer'd to ſpeak, and was not heard, I had Wrong: For him that laſt ſpake, it was out of Humour, and not out of Judgment. Notwithſtanding, I think it a Monopoly, and the Speech to be both Perſuaſion, and to lay a great Imputation upon the Houſe: And this is all I would have ſaid before.

Next Day came on the Queſtion, whether the Tax for Dover-Haven ſhould be continued by Force of the Statute; which was Three Pence a Ton for the Burthen of every Ship. One Member, Mr. Swale, objected, that the Charge amounted to at leaſt a Thouſand Marks a Year, yet the Haven was never the better; and that it was grown a proverbial Wiſh of any Tax, that it would not continue like that of Dover-Haven. But Mr. John Boys ſhewed the Conveniency of this Haven, and how many hundred Pounds worth of Stones were ready to repair it: Sir John Forteſcue alſo obſerv'd, what large Ships of Burthen it would receive; how neceſſary it is for the Paſſage of all Merchants: [305] As alſo that the Tax was ſmall, and the Time might be when it would need a great Tax at one Time. Laſtly, Mr. Comptroller having likewiſe expreſs'd how imprudent it was to take away this Tax, now they were debating how to defend themſelves from the Dunkirkers, which would weaken the moſt neceſſary Haven of England, Sir Walter Ralegh was more particular in theſe Words: There are divers Havens which have been famous, and now are grown to decay, as Tinmouth, Seaton and Winchelſey; Rye is of little Receipt; Sandwich (as a Burgeſs of that Town, Mr. Peak, ſaid this Parliament) is even a going. The Tax being employ'd as it ſhould be, I hold it both good and neceſſary; and there is no Trade of Fiſhermen to Newfoundland, but by this Haven of Dover; which, if the Tax be taken away, and that go to Decay, her Majeſty ſhall loſe one of the beſt and moſt neceſſary Havens of England, which hath all the Commodities that Mr. Comptroller ſhewed, and lies oppoſite to all our Enemies Countries, who may ſoon be with us, and we not able to reſiſt them, or help ourſelves, ſhould we want this Haven. I think it therefore fit this Matter ſhould be conſider'd of, and committed: And ſo it was.

The 12th of December was read, the third Time, a Bill for the more diligent Reſort to Church on Sundays, which produced ſeveral Speeches in the Houſe. The Recuſants were very numerous at this Time, no leſs than 1500 in Yorkſhire, as Dr. Bennet affirm'd, which might be one Reaſon for now urging this Bill; but thoſe, who were no ways popiſhly inclin'd, perceived ſeveral inſufferable Defects in it; as Mr. John Bond, who, among other Arguments, was not for expoſing the Eccleſiaſtical Authority among their Enemies, as more impotent than a Twelve-penny Fine. At laſt there was a Proviſo added to it, That if any Man came eight [306] Times a Year to Church, and ſaid the uſual Divine Service twice every Sunday, and Holy-Day in his Houſe, with his whole Family, that ſhould be a ſufficent Diſpenſation. But the Bill, weak enough of itſelf, was overthrown by this Conjunction, after Sir Walter Ralegh had ſhewed, That all the Church-Wardens of every Shire muſt come to the Aſſizes, to give information to the Grand Jury. Say then there be 120 Pariſhes in a Shire, there muſt now come extraordinarily 240 Church-Wardens; and ſay, that but two in a Pariſh offend in a Quarter of a Year, that makes 480 Perſons (with the Offenders) to appear: What great Multitudes this will bring together! what Quarrelling and Danger may happen, beſides giving Authority to a mean Church-Warden! how prejudicial this may be! with divers other Reaſons againſt it, and Inſtances of the Ambiguities and Equivocations in it; and as for the Proviſo newly added, it was a plain Toleration from coming to Church; and the Parſon could not prevent or conſtrain any, if they read Service at Home. Hereupon it was put to the Queſtion, and the Houſe was divided; the Yeas went forth, and were 105, and the Noes within were 106; ſo it was thrown out by one Voice. But the Yeas urging they had the Speaker's Voice, which would make it even; this grew a Queſtion, whether he had a Vote? Sir Edward Hobby thought he had one; but Sir Walter Ralegh argued, that he was foreclos'd of his Voice, by taking that Place which it had pleaſed them to impoſe upon him; and that he was to be indifferent for both Parties; withal ſhewed, that by the ol [...] Order of the Houſe, the Bill was loſt: The Speaker himſelf confirm'd his Obſervation, and confeſs'd, he had not, by Cuſtom, any Vote. Then Mr. B [...]yer, Secretary to the Lord Treaſurer Bu [...]khurſt, would have retrieved it, by ſuggeſting, [307] there was ſome foul Play; deela [...]ing, a Member was pulled back by the Sleeve as going out, and charged Mr. Dale of the Middle-Temple: To which Sir Walter Ralegh anſwer'd, in a humorous Manner, Why! if it pleaſe you, it is a ſmall Matter to pull one by the Sleeve, for ſo I have done myſelf oftentimes; which, though a familiar Phraſe for checking or reproving one's ſelf for any Weakneſs or Error, yet a very diſingenuous and incongruous Conſtruction was forced upon it by the Comptroller and Cecyll; as if, large was his Conſcience, or very flexible, that, in a Matter of this Conſequence, would be drawn backwards or forwards by the Sleeve. Ralegh took no Notice of them, and the Speaker being allowed to have no Voice, the Bill was thrown up, and they took their Leave of it. Beſides the Speeches Ralegh made in Parliament, which we have thus drawn together, as far as they are upon Record, he appears in the Committees of many other Bills, and in ſeveral Conferences with the Lords, as may be ſeen in the Journal Books of both Houſes; but being only mention'd in general, we need not here be ſo particular as to recite them: Therefore ſhall only obſerve, that the Commons, having granted the Queen a liberal Subſidy, and her Majeſty given her Royal Aſſent to Nineteen publick and ten private Acts, this laſt Parliament, in her Reign, was diſſolv'd on the 19th of December.

In the Beginning of the Year 1602, Mr. Carew's Dedication of his Survey of Cornwall is dated, as was before intimated; wherein that Author has, with ſuch Energy, copied forth the moſt amiable Diſtinctions of Ralegh's Mind: This agreeable Picture thereof, and the many other noble Attitudes in which we have ſeen it diſplay'd, have made me inquiſitive what Portraitures remained of his Perſon, [308] that we might better judge of the Correſpondence between them; how well, in one Aſpect, the Sprightlineſs of Genius conſorted with the Solidity of Judgment; how well, in one Figure, the Roughneſs of War, with the Splendor and Magnificence of Courts. I have, at laſt, had the Satisfaction of ſeeing theſe Characters united in that Portrait of Sir Walter Ralegh, ſtill remaining with the Deſcendants of his Family. *It is a half Length, repreſenting him in the ſilver Armour before-mention'd, and richly adorn'd in the Skirts, the Sword and Belt with Diamonds, Rubies and Pearls. It ſeems, by the Darkneſs and Fullneſs of the Hair, with the Freſhneſs and Clearneſs of the Countenance, to have been the Picture of him before his Guianian Expedition above related; but the Inſcription, upon another very old Draught in the ſame Poſture and Habit, mentions his Government of Jerſey. Farther, to deſcribe this Piece here, will be needleſs, ſince it is now brought into Sculpture by an excellent Hand, and ready to be made publick. Another Painting I have alſo ſeen of him, and this is at full Length; probably an Original. It agrees very well with the Foregoing, in the Form of the Face, and Colour of the Hair and Beard; at leaſt as far as may be expected from the Hands of different Artiſts, ſome Alteration perhaps by Repairs, and ſome Difference of Years in the Object; whereby he ſeems, in this laſt, more ruddy and tann'd than the other. For, by the Inſcription thereon, partly ſtill legible, it appears, [309] that this Picture was painted in this laſt Year of the Queen, above-mentioned; and that his Son Walter, who is likewiſe here drawn by him, was then eight Years of Age. Further, in this Picture the Stature of Sir Walter Ralegh meaſures about ſix Feet, is well-ſhaped, and not too ſlender: He is apparell'd in a white Sattin pink'd Veſt, cloſe-ſleev'd to the Wriſt; and over the Body of it a brown Doublet, finely flowered and embroidered with Pearl; his Belt of the ſame Colour and Ornament, in which hangs his Sword; and on the other Side, over the right Hip, is ſeen the Pommel of his Dagger. In his Hat, which he has on, is a little black Feather, with a large ruby and pearl Drop at the Bottom of the Sprig in Place of the Button. His Trunks or Breeches, with his Stockings and Ribbon-garters, fringed at the End, are all white; and Buff-ſhoes, tied with white Ribbons. His Son, ſtanding under his left Elbow, is fair and prettily featured; dreſſed in a blue ſilk Jacket and Trowſers, guarded down with narrow ſilver Galloon; Stockings blue, and white Shooes; Gloves in the right Hand, Hat or Cap in the left, and a ſilver Sword by his Side *.

A Year before this, the Lady Ralegh's Picture was alſo painted, as appears by the Date upon it. It is a half-length like the firſt, but painted on Board; a high finiſh'd Piece, in the labour'd Manner of thoſe Times, by ſome maſterly Hand; has been well kept, and is doubtleſs an Original. It repreſents her a fair handſome Woman, turn'd [310] perhaps of thirty. She has on, a dark colour'd hanging-ſleeve Robe, tuffted on the Arms; and under it, a cloſe-bodied Gown of white Sattin, flower'd with black, with cloſe Sleeves down to her Wriſt; has a rich Ruby in her Ear, bedrop'd with large Pearls; a lac'd Whisk riſing above the Shoulders; her Boſom uncover'd, and a Jewel hanging thereon; with a large Chain of Pearl round her Neck, down to her Waiſt. Theſe are all the paintings I have ſeen of them, that I can count authentic, or moſt likely to bear any true Reſemblance. But have been credibly inform'd of a Picture of Sir Walter Ralegh, in Miniature, taken not long before his Death; and another at large, repreſenting him alſo in a white Suit, which he had, beſet with Jewels, to the value of threeſcore thouſand Pounds; and that one Diamond thereof, worth a hundred Pounds, remained in the Family till the beginning of the late Queen's Reign. In this Picture there is a Ribbon-garter, fring'd at the ends, ty'd about his left Arm. This, according to the Tradition that remains in his Family, was his Lady's (otherwiſe might be thought one of the Queen's Favours at the Tilt-Yard) which he brought one Morning, when he was obliged to attend her Majeſty early, as a Token, that, for Diſpatch, he had rode 120 Miles ſince he took leave of her late the Night before. But ſuch a Number of Jewels, which might be call'd Extravagance in others, was no Expence to Sir Walter Ralegh, who had many other Kinds of Treaſure, as well as this in Spaniſh Prizes, or otherwiſe in Traffick with foreign Nations; and as for his ſtately Appearance in, by wearing of them upon ſome ſpecial Occaſions, it is not only confirm'd by Circumſtances, in part before-mentioned, but alſo by ſome Authors; who are not expected to take Notice of it with great Commendation: [311] yet the Jeſuit Drexelius might perhaps have found more dazling Examples to dreſs out his Dialogue upon Attire, nearer the Time he wrote it, *and to have parellel'd with the Roman Emperors he produces, than Ralegh; even tho' Sir Walter might, upon ſome great Aſſemblies at Court, have this very Shoes bedeck'd with precious Stones, that exceeded the value of ſix thouſand ſix hundred Pieces of Gold, as that Author relates. All I think here further obſervable upon the Pictures of Sir Walter Ralegh, is, that after ſo many which may be called genuine, and many more pretended to be ſo, ſtill in being, there have been ſuch frequent Occaſions of engraving his Effigies for his Books; yet we have never had, till now, more than two Sculptures, which can pretend to have taken from any paintings; that even theſe are different from any above deſcrib'd; and that all the reſt of the Copper Prints we have of him, whereof near half a ſcore might be reckon'd, are Copies only from the laſt of thoſe two.

[]
[...]
[]
[...]
[310]
[...]
[311]
[...]

[312] Among the Re [...]t of the Particulars, we ſhall briefly relate of Sir Walter Ralegh, in this laſt Year of the Queen's Reign; a Voyage, which he now ſet out for the Supply of his Colony in Virginia, is principally to be remembered. For tho' he had made an Aſſignment of his Patent to other Undertakers, as was before obſerved, yet they making no ſucceſsful Progreſs, he was ſo regardful [313] of the Engliſh he had planted there, that he ſent to them almoſt every other year, even from the Time of the ſaid Aſſignment. For, beſides the five Voyages before epitomized, which himſelf chiefly was at the Expence of, for the firſt Plantation of Virginia, we are well informed of five Voyages more; which, ſince thoſe he ſet forth thither for the Relief of his Countrymen, as well as for further Diſcoveries of thoſe Parts, and Alliance with the People; and that the laſt of theſe Voyages, under the Command of Captain Samuel Mace, was made this Year. In all which Sir Walter Ralegh might very well have diſburſed forty thouſand Pounds, as was before obſerved; ſince, in a French Author I have found the two firſt Voyages only to Virginia coſt him and his Friends threeſcore thouſand Crowns: yet were not the Engliſh ſo ſecurely eſtabliſhed in this moſt promiſing Plantation, as Sir Walter Ralegh would have had them; for, from the ſhort Account we have of this laſt Voyage, and other Circumſtances, we may obſerve the ſaid Colony was much impaired by the barbarous Indians, as indeed Ralegh's Purſe ſeems alſo to have been by theſe frequent Communications to it. Nor was it without much Blood, as well as Money, that this Settlement was at laſt fixed by the ſucceeding Undertakers in the next Reign; and all owing to the want of that timely and competent Aſſiſtance from the Queen or State, whereby the moſt worthy Attempts for the Publick Good were even in theſe, as well as other Times, ſo generally ſtarved. But Ralegh afterwards gave ſome emphatical Reaſons for this Unhappineſs; whence we may evidently perceive, it was to the Queen's conſulting ſo much, and relying upon the Perſuaſions of her Scribes, Men unexperienced in all warlike or adventurous Enterprizes, narrow domeſtick Politicians, or mere Courtiers, [314] who were moſt conſtant at her Ear; that ſhe ſo frequently did Things by halves, as well in Conqueſts and Diſcoveries, as in Rewards and Preferments, eſpecially of Military Men *. Thus thoſe ſpeculative Counſellors, though they could not hinder brave and active Spirits from budding out into noble Beginnings, of moſt hopeful Benefit to the Commonwealth; yet could, by ſtopping the Channel of Supplies or Encouragements, blite them from advancing to any fruitful or profitable Concluſions; and this, only to bring down thoſe of ſuperior Service and Merit, to a Level with themſelves.

Whether the Expence of thoſe Voyages was the Cauſe of Sir Walter Ralegh's ſelling, about this Time, his Eſtate, or ſome part of it, in Ireland, is not ſo expreſly told us, as that it was become leſs advantageous to him ſince the late Rebellion in that Kingdom. But we find, that a little before Sir George Carew, now Preſident of Munſter, took the Caſtle of Carigfoyl Kerry, Mr. Richard Boyle (afterwards Earl of Cork) not only bought a Ship [315] of Sir Walter Ralegh's called the Pilgrim, but ſoon after the ſaid Preſident conquered Berehaven Caſtle, he, having adviſed the ſaid Mr. Boyle to buy alſo Sir Walter's Lands in Munſter, ſent him into England with two Letters; the one to Secretary Cecyll, giving an Account of Mr. Boyle's Abilities, deſired, that he would introduce him to Sir Walter Ralegh, and recommended him to this great Man (ſays my Author) as a proper Purchaſer of his ſaid Lands; the other Letter was written by Sir George Carew, to Sir Walter Ralegh himſelf, acquainting him, that the Bearer was capable of making the Purchaſe; and that he thought he might be willing to diſpoſe of it, ſince the Management thereof, in thoſe turbulent Times, gave him a great deal of Trouble, and the Income it produced was very inconſiderable; ſo, after a Meeting, the Bargain was ſtruck up, and Conveyances executed. Theſe Lands, ſoon after in the peaceable Times, became a great Eſtate to Mr. Boyle: and this Purchaſe, as he afterwards gratefully remembered in the Memoirs he wrote of his own Life when he was Earl of Cork, was the third Addition and Riſe to his Eſtate *.

[316] As for the Eſtate at Sherborne, it appears, he now ſettled it upon his Son Walter; and that the Deeds were drawn in Midſummer, this preſent Year, for ſo we have it from has own Words. This Settlement, as I underſtand it, was of the Remainder of the Leaſe for 99 Years: For though the Biſhop of Sarum, Dr. Henry Cotton, had the laſt Year aſſigned over to the Queen, the Fee and Inheritance alſo of the ſaid Premiſes, and her Majeſty granted the ſame by her Letters Patent to Sir Walter Ralegh before her Death, yet he did not make them over to his Son, 'till the ſeventh Year of her Succeſſor. The Reaſon of ſettling his Eſtate upon his Son at this Time, appears alſo to have riſen from a Challenge, which he had lately received from Sir Amias Preſton (who had been knighted at Cadiz by the Earl of Eſſex ſince we laſt ſpoke of him) and which Ralegh ſays himſelf, he intended to anſwer. The Cauſe of their Quarrel I never could meet with in Print or Manuſcript; yet conceive Ralegh had good Reaſon on his Side, becauſe he afterwards ſhewed publickly himſelf, how deliberate he was in his Preparations for it, by ſorting his Writings, and how reſolved, by ſettling his Eſtate. But from what excellent Hands ſoever Dr. Fuller received his Information, that, upon ſome diſtaſte, Sir Amias ſent Ralegh this Challenge; we may be pretty certain from what Ralegh has mention'd, that the ſaid Information, or this Author's Account of it, is erroneous, where he adds, That Sir Walter declined it. Indeed, I agree he might do ſo, with ut any Abatement to his Valour, wherein he had abundantly ſatisfied all Poſſibility of Suſpicion, and with great Advancement of his Judgment; for having (continues Fuller) a fair and fixed Eſtate, with Wife and Children (Child he ſhould have ſaid) being a Privy-Counſellor (here he miſtakes again) and Lord-warden of [317] the Stannaries; my ſaid Author thinks, Sir Walter looked upon it as an uneven Lay to ſtake himſelf againſt Sir Amias, a private and ſingle Perſon, though of good Birth and Courage; yet of no conſiderable Eſtate. But if Ralegh did accept of the Challenge, as it appears plainly he did, when he might have had ſuch fair Reaſon of Evaſion; thoſe Inequalities in Preſton will either prove Sir Walter a generous Adverſary, or that the Injury he received from Sir Amias was indiſpenſable. Now this Repreſentation ſeems to have been officiouſly and unneceſſarily ſhaped to make Ralegh's Actions conformable with his Writings; for (continues our ſaid Author) this is conſonant to what he has written ſo judiciouſly about Duels, condemning thoſe for ill Honours where the Hangman gives the Garland *. However, they were afterwards reconciled, as Fuller concludes; and, upon the whole, Sir Walter Ralegh ſeems to have ſhewn a much more creditable Conduct herein, than Sir Francis Vere a little while before had done in the Difference between him and a certain Nobleman.

[318] But here we are no longer to take Notice of ſuch open Adverſaries; for now, in the very Cloſe of this Year, on the 24th of March, ends the long Reign of glorious Elizabeth, and now ſets the Sun of Ralegh's external Honour and Felicity; yet, like that ever active Planet, will ſhine reſplendently to the Heavens, when he is clouded or eclipſed to Mankind. How he fell into this Eclipſe, Record, the only Luminary of Time paſt, does but dimly or doubtfully diſcover. All we can do, is diligently to aſſemble every unextinguiſh'd Spark which darts any Light this Way; then ſee if they will afford that Guidance to the Truth, by being congregated, which they have not yet been obſerved to yield aſunder. And firſt, we may remember to have before read of the Prepoſſeſſions which Eſſex is affirm'd to have inſtill'd unto King James againſt Ralegh; and, after the Earl's Death, there are ſeveral Circumſtances imploying that Cecyll did the like. For tho' Cecyll and Ralegh join'd againſt Eſſex and his Faction; yet, when theſe were overthrown, they divided, and ſeem to have had a Trial of Skill with one another. And one Author ſays, that Ralegh, wanting Strength, tho' not Wit, to be the Treaſurer's Rival, periſhed, becauſe not thought to own Humility enough to be his Servant; it being more ſafe at Court to have many Enemies of equal Power, than one falſe ambitious Friend that has attained to the Abſoluteneſs of Command. In ſhort, Cecyll ſeems to have uſed thoſe Arts of Inſinuation with King James before his coming into England; to which Ralegh could not bend himſelf. That he then held clandeſtine Correſpondences with Scotland, is apparent from that Story in Sir Henry Wotton, who tells us, that her Majeſty taking the Air on Blackheath, attended by Cecyll when the Poſt rode by; and, hearing he came [319] from Scotland, ſhe called for his Packet: Cecyll, though he knew it contained Letters, which, to diſcover, were as ſo many Serpents, yet, making more ſhew of Diligence than Doubt, to obey, called in great Haſte for a Knife to rip it up; but, approaching at ſome Diſtance with it, he told the Queen it looked and ſmelled ſo ill-favour'dly, coming out of the filthy Budget, that it muſt needs be aired firſt, becauſe he knew how offenſive ill Scents were to her Majeſty: So got Opportunity to ſeparate what he would not have ſeen, and ſhe ſmelt nothing of the Matter. One Talent above the Reſt Cecyll was not wanting in to recommend him to this new Sovereign; and this was ſuch a Faculty of diſcovering Plots, as if he thought he ſhould be looked on as uſeleſs without them.

For, as a noble Author obſerves, It ſeemed as neceſſary for him, that there ſhould be Treaſons, as for the State, that they ſhould be prevented. And, though he created none, yet he fomented ſome Conſpiracies, that he might give frequent Evidences of his Loyalty; having not the Advantage of others in Perſon to gain Eſtimation, therefore did it by theſe eminent Services: And as for King James, he was ſo apprehenſive, ſo ſuſceptible of ſuch Impreſſions, that, when he was but croſs'd or diſturb'd in his Sports, he would charge People with Treaſon: Nay, we are particularly told by thoſe who were otherwiſe Friends to his Memory, that his Carver, once at Table, giving him accidentally a Nick on the Finger (as he was routing in the Diſh) his Majeſty, at the Sight of his own Blood, could not forbear calli ng out Treaſon; and that Guſtavus Adolphus, King of Sweden, was wont to make himſelf merry with this Expreſſion: And all this inſtanced, by my ſaid Author, to ſhew, that for any Clamour of this Kind King James's Word was no Slander. But more directly to our purpoſe there is another Writer, who, [320] making ſome critical Enquiry into the Preliminaries of Sir Walter's Fall, ſays, Sir Robert Cecyll, principal Secretary of State, fearing the great Abilities of Ralegh, and being wearied with the troubleſome Impertinences of Gray and Cobham; all which had joined with him in Deſign againſt the Earl of Eſſex, their common Enemy; had done their Errand to King James (whoſe Counſels he deſired to engroſs to himſelf alone) before his coming into England. And when the King was arrived, there was Matter enough to exaſperate Cecyll againſt Ralegh, if through any Deſign of Recrimination, Sir Walter did preſent to his Majeſty a Memorial; wherein he reflected heavily upon Cecyll in the matter of Eſſex; and vindicating himſelf, threw the whole Blame upon the other; further laying open (at the End thereof) the Conduct of Cecyll and his Father alſo, in the Matter of the Queen of Scots (his Majeſty's Mother) bitterly charging the Death of this unfortunate Queen upon them. However, ſays my Author, this had no Influence over the King, and only irritated Cecyll the more againſt Ralegh.

But what ſeems ſufficient to have incenſed the King alſo againſt Ralegh, was his being of that Party, who, in Regard of the inveterate Feuds between England and Scotland, deſired the King might be obliged to Articles; for, as another writes, among theſe noble and publick Spirits, were Sir John Forteſcue, Sir Walter Ralegh, the Lord Cobham, &c. all frowned upon after by the King, who had yet the Luck to live ſo long as to change his Opinion, and wiſh the Number of his Countrymen had been limited, and they not ſuffer'd, like Locuſts, to devour this Kingdom. There were not wanting ſtill other particulars, which might render Ralegh obnoxious to a Man of the King's jealous Diſpoſition; for he had (at the Time of his Majeſty's [321] Acceſſion to the Throne) the Daughter and Heir of Baſſet to his Ward, who was to be married to his Son Walter, her Eſtate worth 3000 l. per Annum; but ſhe was (after his Condemnation, we ſuppoſe) taken from him, and married to Mr. Henry Howard, who died ſuddenly at Table; and ſhe was afterwards married to the Earl of Newcaſtle, who profeſs'd he would never have wedded her, if young Walter Ralegh had been alive; conceiving her, before God, to be his Wife, for they were married as much as Children could be. Now theſe Baſſets, as we find elſewhere, were thoſe of Umberlegh and Heanton Court in Devonſhire; who, being deſcended from the Plantagenets, laid ſome Claim at this very Time of the King's Entrance to the Crown of England.

But whatever Diſcountenance Ralegh might receive at his firſt Meeting of the King, in his Journey from Scotland, *whence he ſet out on the 5th of April, 1603, and arrived at Theobalds, which [322] was Cecyll's Seat, on the 3d of May, and at London four Days after; it ſeems not to have amounted to a peremptory Diſmiſſion from his Majeſty's Service or Preſence: For we are told, the King uſed Ralegh for ſome Weeks with great Kindneſs, and was pleaſed to acknowledge divers Preſents which he had received from him being in Scotland; for which he gave him Thanks. But, finding him a martial Man, addicted to foreign Affairs and great Actions, he feared left he ſhould engage him in a War. That Ralegh was in Company with the King; and that ſome of his Converſation turned upon this Subject we have from his own Words, where he ſays, I offer'd his Majeſty, at my Uncle Carew's, to carry 2000 Men to invade the Spaniards without the King's Charge. And this agrees with his writing a Diſcourſe, which he did or intended to deliver to his Majeſty againſt the Peace with Spain now in Treaty, which ſeems to be the ſame that was 100 Years afterwards publiſh'd by his Grandſon. Herein he adviſed his Majeſty to protect the Netherlands; for, ſays he, a poor Neighbour's Houſe, ſet on Fire, is to be better guarded or watched, than a great City afar off. Herein he perſuades the King to deliberate, and not come to a haſty Concluſion of Peace with the Spaniards; for, when the Houſe is built, it is ill mending the Foundation. Herein he ſays, I dare not write all I deſire; for I know not to whoſe Hands theſe may come. This I beſeech your Majeſty to know, that it proceeds from an humble and a faithful Heart, which your Majeſty cannot beat from the Love of your Royal Perſon and good Eſtate. And laſtly, I ſhall [323] obſerve, that herein he alſo mentions another Diſcourſe, how War may be made againſt Spain and the Indies; which I will, ſays he, alſo preſent your Majeſty, if you will vouchſafe the reading thereof; but this, I think, has never appear'd in Print. The former of theſe Diſcourſes is humbly and diſcreetly addreſs'd with Variety of Arguments and Obſervations from his own Knowledge and Experience; alſo ſtrengthened with many hiſtorical Examples of Foreign Countries, and political Maxims or Sentences from the antient Claſſicks: All which he had plentifully at Command in any Topic he undertook to write, or even ſpeak of: Such the Extenſiveneſs of his Remarks and his Reading; ſuch the Felicity of his Memory and Talents of Application. But, if Reaſon would have prevail'd, it was not wanting alſo from other Hands; ſo that Sir Walter Ralegh was not ſingular in his Diſſuaſions of the King, but had the Satisfaction of ſeeing Foreigners, as well as his own Countrymen, ſubſcribe to his Senitments; and the Lord Henry Howard, tho' otherwiſe brought into the Court-Meaſures, yet could not, it ſeems, conſent to theſe of a general Pacification; therefore was, as well as Ralegh, excluded from the Benefit of thoſe rich Preſents, which the Marquis of Roſny, Ambaſſador from France, made to all thoſe Courtiers who promoted the ſame; inſomuch that Howard, being aſk'd by the King, How it happen'd he had not a Jewel as well as the reſt? Anſwer'd, in Alluſion to Eſop's Fable, Non ſum Gallus, itaque non reperi Gemmam. The Cauſes, which moved the King of Spain to ſue for this Peace, Ralegh did afterwards, with great Perſpicuity, lay open; *but his preſent [324] Oppoſition of it, and the Conſequences of that, ſeem to have been the Hinges upon which his whole Fortune now turn'd; I ſay, the moſt apparent Cauſe to me of all thoſe Sorrows and Sufferings which fill up the melancholy Remains of his Story. This unfortunate Event, which he was above ſhunning, by trimming and temporiſing in a Matter which he knew ſo highly concern'd the Honour and Advantage of his Country, he has himſelf ſo excellently accounted for, where he ſhews the ill Succeſs which attends ſuch ſincere Conduct, and how Proſperity is the Fruit of ſlaviſh or hypocritical Compliances; *that I could not, but from the [325] ſaid Occaſion of the greateſt Viciſſitude in his Life, form the Introduction to this Account of it.

[326] Thus have we ſeen ſeveral Circumſtances, and theſe are all I have met with in this Interval, whereby Ralegh might undeſignedly, and unluckily become diſagreeable to a Man of King James's Temper; but, on the other ſide, little or nothing that could ſo inflame Ralegh againſt the King, as to make him run headlong into ſuch violent Conſpiracies, as could only end in his own Ruin. Suppoſe the King did diſcourage Ralegh's Attendance upon him at his Entrance, diſlike his Patent for Wines, or removed him from the Guards, to oblige Sir Thomas Erſkine, his Countryman and Favourite, whom he afterwards prefer'd to higher Dignities; and this is all I have met with that could give Offence on the King's part: will this be thought ſufficient Provocation for a Man of Ralegh's Reaſon and Judgment, ſo tender of Fame and Reputation, ſo ſettled in Family, ſo well ſituated in his Fortune, no leſs than 3000l. a Year, as was confeſs'd at his Trial, beſides many other profitable, and I may ſay princely Poſſeſſions on the Seas, as well as the Land, to plot Commotions or Inſurrections; yet enervate himſelf for the Execution of them, by reſigning, as he ſays himſelf he did, his Office of chiefeſt Power, the Wardſhip of the Stannaries? Nay, further, to herd with a motley and disjointed Crew of Prieſts, alſo with profeſs'd Enemies to himſelf, not to mention Knaves and Fools; and, on a ſudden, reſolve to turn Rebel, Ru [...]ian and Cut-throat; to be the Coryphaeus, [327] to murder the King with his own Hand, and all his innocent Progeny! for this is the Charge that the fertile Pens of French Writers have heap'd upon him. Indeed, I was ſomewhat ſtartled, when I read it in a Hiſtory that bears the Name and Character of Thuanus, though I thought he might poſſibly come at it by miniſterial Direction to an Engliſh Reſident, till at laſt I found his Author to be no other than one of his own Countrymen, whom Camden, as I have before obſerv'd, has refuted in other Paſſages that are even more credible. Now theſe tell over this deſperate Story thus. In the Month of June Sir Walter Ralegh, a Man equally dexterous at Conſultation or Action, ſays Thuanus, and famous for his memorable Expeditions to the Indies, taking Leave of his Siſter at London, intreated her to commend him to God in her Prayers, for he was going to a Place from whence he expected never to return. She, ſuſpecting that he was going to fight a Duel, with the ſame Levity diſperſed it among the Ladies of her Acquaintance, 'till the Rumour came to Court. Then Ralegh's Friends and Relations flocked about him to know this Enterpriſe; he, apprehending himſelf detected, readily made a whole Confeſſion and Diſcovery of the Matter. The King was informed, and greatly aſtoniſhed, but would needs have Ralegh before him, who, then aſking his Pardon, acknowledg'd, that ſeeing his Majeſty give more Countenance to the Scots than the Engliſh, and had deprived him of his Command in the Guards, and that many great Men expected, when he was eſtabliſhed on the Throne, he would be revenged for the Death of his Mother, he had therefore entered into a Conſpiracy with others, whom he named, to ſhed his Royal Blood; and that they had unanimouſly deputed him to be his Majeſty's Executioner, when [328] he rode a hunting. Hereupon the ſaid Conſpirators were taken up and tried, as theſe Authors proceed to relate. If there had been any Truth in this ridiculous Story, which I think no one before has taken the Pains to relate in Engliſh, that Confeſſion had neither eſcaped the Attorney General Coke at Ralegh's Trial, when they were ſo lamely put to it to bring him in guilty without ſufficient Proof, nor King James'sapologetical Declaration after Ralegh's Death, in which his Majeſty and his Council together, have no leſs lamely offered weaker Reaſons for taking away his Life, as will be fully repreſented in its proper Place.

By our Engliſh Accounts it appears there was ſomewhat of a Plot, but it was never proved that Ralegh was engaged in it; however, his great Enemy, the Attorney-general Coke, affected to compare him with the Conſpirators, to Sampſon's Foxes, which were joined in the Tails, though their Heads were ſevered. What Share he had in that Plot may further be judged by the Promotions which the Conſpirators intended themſelves upon the Succeſs of it; for whereas one was to be Lord-chancellor, another Lord-marſhal, this Lord-treaſurer, that Maſter of the Horſe, and t'other Secretary of State: how comes it, as one Author well obſerves, that Ralegh, able to officiate any, had no Office in the State aſſign'd him? But perhaps the beſt Means to clear him, may be the very Trial by which he was condemn'd. 'Tis too common, and too tedious, to be thought needful of tranſcribing it here at length; not to ſay ſo full of barbarous Partiality and foul Language, eſpecially by Coke himſelf, that he was expoſed for it upon the publick Theatre; and thoſe, who revere the Laws of our Country, have been ſo aſhamed of it, as rather to wiſh the Proceedings have been falſely related, than believe [329] ſuch a Sentence could paſs upon ſuch inſufficient Evidence. But the Character of this Trial, and of that Attorney General, I leave to others; and ſhall here only, from the ſeveral Copies or Accounts of it I have met with, draw out a ſhort regular Narrative of the moſt material Matters of Fact, wherein Ralegh appears any way concern'd; and it is as follows:

There was one Matthew de Laurencie, a Merchant of Antwerp, Attendant on Count Aremberg, who now, about the Beginning of June, came over Ambaſſador-extraordinary from Albert, Arch-duke of Auſtria, to congratulate King James, and aſſiſt in compoſing the General Peace. With this Merchant the Lord Cobham had held Intelligence ſome Years before, upon Matters of State, with Licence. Five Days after Aremberg's Arrival, that is to ſay, about the 9th of the ſame Month, Cobham repair'd to him with Laurencie, and that Night Cobham ſupp'd, with Sir Walter Ralegh, at Durham-houſe in the Strand; whereby Ralegh came to underſtand, that Cobham had freſh Negociations with Aremberg; and was, as the chief of thoſe who refuſed the Peace, offered a Sum of Money by Cobham to be a Promoter of it; tho' that Offer, alſo made to Ralegh before Aremberg came, was afterwards pretended, as will appear, to have been for treaſonable Purpoſes. In the next Month, thoſe Perſons with whom Cobham tranſacted the Conſpiracy (or part of it) then on foot, were diſcover'd; either by the Spaniſh Faction in revenge to Ralegh, the greateſt Enemy of Spain alive, thinking he was then too far hamper'd in, or acquainted with it to eſcape; or by ſome one of the Engliſh Conſpirators to ſecure himſelf: And, when the Lord Cecyll (for he was lately made Baron of Eſſenden) found, upon the firſt News of Anthony Copley, one of theſe [330] Conſpirators, who was apprehended the 6th of July, that the King's Perſon was to be ſurpriz'd by the Lord Grey of Wilton, and George Brook, Brother to the Lord Cobham, he ſuſpected Cobham himſelf was in the Secret; and Cobham's great Intimacy with Ralegh at this Time, who was now buying an Eſtate for him, and ſettling his Houſhold Affairs, drew Ralegh alſo into Suſpicion.

Hereupon Cecyll, meeting Ralegh upon Windſor Terrace, tells him, the Lords of the Council had ſomething to ſay to him: ſo he was examined about the ſurpriſing Treaſon, and particularly about Cobham, as appears from his own Words, whom he fully cleared. After Examination, Ralegh further ſaid: Whatſoever Correſpondence there was between Cobham and Aremberg, Laurencie might be better able to give Account of it, therefore adviſed to the calling upon him; though, as he further explained, he knew of no Intelligence between them, but ſuch as might be warranted: And that Advice he wrote alſo in a Letter to Cecyll. When Ralegh returned from Examination a private Priſoner to his own Houſe, Cobham ſent him to know what had paſs'd; Ralegh writ an Anſwer by Capt. Feymis, that he was examin'd, and had clear'd him of all; and Keymis bid Cobham be of good Comfort, for one Witneſs could not condemn him: This Precaution, to arm Cobham againſt making Diſcoveries, was, after his Confeſſion of it, objected againſt Ralegh; but he utterly deny'd, that he ſent any ſuch verbal Meſſage. Now when Cobham was brought to his Examination at Richmond, one Date whereof appears to have been July 18; and after he had, by a conſtant Denial, cleared both himſelf and Ralegh of all that was queſtion'd againſt them, Cobham was, by Device, ſays my Author (in an Epiſtolary Narrative of his Trial, at which he was preſent) induced [331] to think, that Ralegh had firſt impeach'd and betray'd him. For that Part of Ralegh's Letter aforeſaid to Cecyll, referring the Lords to Laurencie for Cobham's Tranſactions with Aremberg, being ſhewed to Cobham, and accompanied, it ſeems, with ſuch artful Suggeſtions as were proper to inflame a Man of Cobham's Weakneſs, had the deſired Effect; for he being led thereby to imagine that Ralegh had accus'd him of all, or more than he knew, burſt out into vehement Exclamations againſt Ralegh, and in his Rage, or Madneſs, made the following Confeſſion. That having a Paſſport to go to the Spaniſh King, he intended firſt to confer with the Archduke; and, becauſe he knew he had not Money to pay his own Army, meant from thence to go to Spain, to deal with the King for 600,0000 Crowns, then to return by Jerſey; and that nothing ſhould be done about the Diſtribution of that Money to the Diſcontented in England, till he had ſpoken with Sir Walter Ralegh: Further, that he had never enter'd into theſe Courſes, but by his Inſtigation. He ſpake alſo of Plots, but of the Particulars could give no Account; yet acknowledg'd he was afraid that Ralegh, upon his Return to Jerſey, would have him and the Money to the King. After all this, before Cobham departed to the Stair-foot, he retracted his Confeſſion, and profeſs'd he had done Ralegh wrong: Nor does it appear, ſays my Author, that he did ſubſcribe it. In another Branch of his Examination, Cobham ſaid he had of Ralegh a Book, written againſt the King's Title, which he gave to his Brother Brook, and that Ralegh ſaid it was fooliſhly written. But this he alſo retracted, as we ſhall hear. Upon this, and other Parts of his Confeſſion more foreign to Ralegh, concerning the Advancement of Lady Arabella Stuart to the Crown, as alſo from that of George Brook, a known Enemy [332] to Ralegh, as Cecyll could not deny; aſſerting his Brother Cobham told him (tho' Cobham, in his Confeſſion, refuſed to own it) the Lord Grey and others were only on the bye, but he and Ralegh were on the main; thereby meaning, ſaid Brook, the taking away of the King and his Iſſue; together with what Ralegh acknowledg'd in his own Examination; That Cobham offer'd him 8000 Crowns for his Furtherance of the Peace, tho' the Lord Cecyll and Earl of Northumberland were to have the ſame Proffers; and that in ſome Diſcourſes he might have ſaid, the Way to invade England was to begin with Stirs in Scotland: Upon theſe Circumſtances, I ſay, Ralegh was indicted at Stanes on the 21ſt of September following; and from hence that heavy Indictment appears to have been accumulated upon him, which we ſee prefixed to his Trial. Three Days afterwards Cobham and Grey were alſo indicted at the ſame Place; and, not long after this, they were all three return'd Priſoners to the Tower of London. When the Time of their Trial drew nigh, that is to ſay in the Beginning of November, Ralegh got a poor Fellow in the Tower to caſt up a Letter, faſten'd to an Apple, in at Cobham's Window, while the Lieutenant was at Supper, to intreat him (becauſe he then knew not but Cobham might be arraign'd before him:) for God's ſake, to do him Juſtice by his Anſwer, and ſignify to him, that he had wronged him in his Accuſation; and Cobham did, by an Anſwer under his Hand, confeſs the ſame; which not being perhaps ſo full and expreſſive as Ralegh expected, he afterwards ſent Cobham another Letter, deſiring he would publiſh his Innocence at his Arraignment. But notwithſtanding that Ralegh did not now requeſt any further Juſtification under his Hand, Cobham ſent him another Anſwer, clearing him in the moſt [333] ſolemn and perfect Manner, as will preſently appear. Now by Reaſon of the Plague, which raged ſo violently in and about London, the Term having been proclaim'd to be held at Wincheſter, the State Priſoners, who were thus indicted for the Plot, were conveyed thither in great Pomp. I find, that Ralegh went in his own Coach, under the Cuſtody of Sir Robert Manſell, on the 10th of November, to Bagſhot in Surrey, twenty four Miles from London; and, two Days after, from thence, the other thirty Miles, to the Caſtle at Wincheſter. The Conſpirators conducted thither at the ſame Time, were George Brook, under the Charge of Sir William Wade; Sir Griffin Markham, under Sir Robert Worth; beſides Sir Edward Parham, Bartholomew Brookſhy, Anthony Copley; alſo William Watſon and William Clark, two Prieſts, Under-wardens of the Tower, and the Keeper of the Gate-houſe, together with a Guard of fifty Light Horſe: As for Cobham and Grey, they ſet out ſix Days, and arrived three Days before, at the ſaid Caſtle, under the like Guard.

And here Cobham having been prevailed on to make freſh Accuſations in a Letter to the Lords, at leaſt ſubſcrib'd with his Name, which will be produced a little further, Ralegh's Trial was firſt brought on; and this was on the 17th of the Month aforeſaid. He excepted not againſt his Jury, being all Strangers: But we are told by one, who ſeems to have had good Intelligence of this Matter, That there was appointed for Ralegh another Jury, the Foreman of which was Sir Michael Stanhope, the next Sir Edward Darcy, the next Sir William Killegrew, all Men of Honour, and near Servants to the late Queen Elizabeth: But theſe being found not for their Turn, they were all changed over Night, and thoſe others (named in [334] the common Printed Trial) put in their Places. After the Indictment had been opened, and aggravaed, Serjeant Heath and Attorney Coke, in Speeches, manifeſtly fathering the Treaſons of the Reſt upon Ralegh, for no other Reaſon that I can ſee, but becauſe he was a Man of Wit, and a Swordſman: Cobham's Examination was read as before quoted. Here Ralegh firſt ſhewed the Unreaſonableneſs and Improbability of the Accuſation therein againſt him, as follows: It is ſtrange for me, ſaid he, to deviſe with Cobham, that he ſhould go to Spain to perſuade the King to diſburſe ſo much Money, he being a Man of no Love in England; and I having reſigned my Room of chiefeſt Command, the Wardenſhip of the Stannaries; it is ſtrange for me to make myſelf a Robin Hood, or a Ket, or a Cade, I knowing England to be in a better State than ever it was. I knew Scotland united, Ireland quieted, Denmark aſſured, which before was ſuſpected. I knew, that having a Lady, whom Time had ſurpriſed, we had now a lawful Succeſſor. The State of Spain was not unknown to me. I had written a Diſcourſe, which I intended to preſent unto the King againſt the Peace with Spain. I knew the Spaniard had ſix Repulſes, three in Ireland, and three at Sea; and once in 1588, by my Lord-admiral, alſo at Cadiz. I knew he was diſcouraged and diſhonoured. I knew the King of Spain to be the proudeſt Prince living, but now he comes creeping to my Maſter for a Peace. I knew, whereas he had before in his Ports ſix or ſeven Score Sail of Ships, he has now but ſix or ſeven. I knew, of twenty-five Millions he had from his Indies, he has ſcarce one left. I knew him ſo poor, that the Jeſuits in Spain were fain to beg at the Church-door. Was it ever read or heard, that any Prince ſhould diſburſe ſo much Money, without a ſufficient Pawn? I knew her own Subjects, the Citizens [335] of London, would not lend her Majeſty Money, without Lands in Mortgage. I knew the Queen did not lend the States Money, without Fluſhing, Brill, and other Towns, for a Pawn; and can it be thought he would let Cobham have ſo great a Sum? I never came to the Lord Cobham's but about Matters of his Profit, as the ordering of his Houſe; and I had of his, when I was examined, four thouſand Pounds worth of Jewels for a Purchaſe, a Pearl of three thouſand Pounds, and a Ring worth five hundred Pounds. If he had had a Fancy to run away, he would not have left ſo much Money to have purchaſed a Leaſe in Fee-farm. I ſaw him buy three hundred Pounds worth of Books to ſend to his Library at Canterbury, and a Cabinet of three hundred Pounds to give Mr. Attorney for drawing the Conveyances; and God in Heaven knows, not I, whether he intended to travel: But for the Practice with Arabella, or Letters to Aremberg, or any Diſcourſe with him, or in what Language he ſpake unto him; if I knew any of theſe Things, I would abſolutely confeſs the Indictment, and acknowledge myſelf worthy of a thouſand Deaths. And a little further concerning Cobham's Examination: He that hath been examined, has ever been aſked if it be according to his Meaning, and then to ſubſcribe. Methinks, my Lords, when he accuſes a Man, he ſhould give ſome Account and Reaſon of it; it is not ſufficient to ſay we talked of it. If I had been the Plotter, would not I have given Cobham ſome Arguments, whereby to perſuade the King of Spain, and anſwer his Objections? I knew Weſtmoreland and Bothwell, Men of other Underſtandings than Cobham, were ready to beg their Bread. Here being obſtructed by other Matters, the Attorney fell at laſt into that Paſſage of Cobham's telling Brook, You are on the Bye, Ralegh and I are on the Main. But Cobham would not confirm [336] his ever having ſaid ſuch Words. Brook, who had pretended he did ſay them, was allowed to have been Ralegh's Enemy; ſo the Expreſſion was not proved. Another Matter they kept ſome Coil about was, the Book Cobham ſaid he had of Ralegh, written againſt the King's Title. This was nothing more than a Defence of the Queen's Proceedings againſt Mary Queen of Scotland, written by one Robert Snag, a Lawyer, and found by Ralegh in the Library of the late Lord-treaſurer Burghley, which he had Liberty of ſearching for ſome geographical Deſcriptions of the Weſt-Indies. Ralegh had declared to Cobham that it was fooliſhly written, but denied that he gave it him; and though Cobham, in his Examination, ſaid it was given him by Ralegh, he revoked that Confeſſion upon being further queſtioned about it (as one of the Lords of the Council own'd;) and ſaid, the Truth was, he took the ſame of himſelf out of Sir Walter Ralegh's Study when he was aſleep; ſo much to be depended on were Lord Cobham's Accuſations. But there was nothing acted thereby to the King's Prejudice, for the Book was burnt. As for the Evidence of a Rumour in Liſbon, brought into Court by one Dyer, a Pilot, who anſwering to a Queſtion, when the King would be crowned? made by ſomebody or other there, that he hoped 'twould be ſhortly; was told again, it ſhould never be, for Don Ralegh and Don Cobham would cut his Throat firſt: Ralegh made light of it, as of ſuch a Rumour and ſuch a Witneſs he might; and ſaid, If Cobham had Practice with Aremberg, it might well be known abroad: And that the Duke of Buckingham was named with Jack Straw's Treaſon to countenance it. But none of theſe little Circumſtances were much inſiſted on; and we are told by one who was preſent, that, touching the ſetting up of Arabella, [337] nothing at all was proved; nor touching the Invaſion here, or Sedition in Scotland, or even the Deſtruction of the King, &c. The Proof againſt Ralegh (as the ſame Writer continues a little further) did reſt only upon Cobham's Accuſation, and ſome Preſumptions, whereof that only was the Ground; therefore Ralegh ſpent moſt of the Time in diſabling that Accuſation, as being only utter'd in Fury and Paſſion; through the Device aforeſaid, of making Cobham believe that Ralegh had firſt accuſed him. Beſides, that he had renounced and repented it; and altho' afterwards by Practice, ſays my ſaid Author, he did affirm it, yet would he never be brought to ſet his Hand to the Examination; all which was clear. Then Ralegh, ſeeing this Retraction ſo unjuſtly overlook'd, laboured to prove theſe two Points out of Scripture, Civil Law, Statute Law, Common Law and Conſcience; in every of which he had been plentifully read (as the ſame Auditor of his Arraignment goes on) firſt, that there ought to be produced againſt him two Witneſſes; ſecondly, that his Accuſer might be brought to accuſe him Face to Face. Agreeable here to are Ralegh's own Words, after he had urged the Statutes of Edward III. Edward VI. and Queen Elizabeth; produced the Opinions of Judges in the Law, and Precedents from their Writings; beſides Teſtimonies from the Old and New Teſtament; where he ſays, If by the Statute, Civil Law, and God's Word, it be requir'd that there muſt be two Witneſſes at leaſt, hear with me, if I deſire but one. But truly it was an unreaſonable Requeſt; thoſe Statutes were repeal'd, and the Law would not allow of it now; tho' we are informed that King James himſelf, taking Notice how Cobham was with-held, ſhould ſay, If he could have ſpoken any Thing againſt Ralegh, they would have brought him from Conſtantinople to have accuſed him. Well [338] therefore might he deſire the Jury to conſider, There is no Cauſe ſo doubtful, which the King's Counſel cannot make good againſt the Law. Theſe Men do uſually defend bad Cauſes every Day againſt Men of their own Profeſſion, and as able as themſelves; if they can do ſo, what may they not do with me, who never ſtudied Law till I came into the Tower of London, who have been practis'd in other Affairs; am weak of Memory, and feeble as you ſee? (for he was fain to have a Pen and Ink to help him in the long Speeches that were made againſt him.) Then ſaid he, more cloſely to them, If you would be content to be judg'd upon Suſpicions and Inferences; if you would not have your Accuſation ſubſcrib'd by your Accuſer; if you would not have your Accuſer brought to your Face (being in the ſame Houſe too) where you are arraign'd; if you would be condemned by an Accuſation of one that has recanted, and is truly ſorrowful for it; if you, in my Caſe, would yield your Bodies to Torture, loſe your Lives, your Wives and Children, and all your Fortunes, upon ſo ſlender a Proof; then am I ready to ſuffer all theſe Things; or as the common Trial has it) If you would be contented to be ſo judged, judge ſo of me. Now tho' Ralegh at laſt put himſelf on it, that if Cobham would only ſpeak before God and the King, that ever he knew either ef Arabella's Matter, or the Money out of Spain, or of the ſurprizing Treaſon, or would accuſe him with Things equivalent, in any main Point, or any Ways to have been an Inſtigator of him to deal with the King of Spain; yet would they not let Cobham confront him, or give his Teſtimony viva voce; and tho' Ralegh did not directly conſent to be determined by Cobham's Accuſation, if they ſhould now produce it juſtified under his Hand; yet he was forced to ſubmit to what they had in Reſerve of this Kind, which was the Letter above [339] mentioned, written to the Lords at Wincheſter the Day before the Trial. Some ſay, this Letter was not written by Cobham himſelf; but that Sir William Wade, one of Cecyll's Creatures, tampering with his Weakneſs, got Cobham to write his Name to a Blank; to which, ſays my Author, Wade no queſtion wrote the Accuſation. Others imply, that Cobham did himſelf write it; tho' after he was inſtructed by a Letter from his Lady, that there was no Way to ſave his own Life, but to accuſe Ralegh; and that it was ſo reported upon the going together of the Jury. This Letter was read with great Triumph and Exultation by Coke, as follows. I have thought it fit to ſet down this to my Lords, wherein I profeſs on my Soul to write nothing but the Truth. I am come now near to the Period of my Time; therefore I confeſs the Truth before God and his Angels. Ralegh, four Days before I came from the Tower, cauſed an Apple to be thrown in at my Chamber-window; the Effect of it was, to intreat me to right the Wrong I had done him, in ſaying that I would come home by Jerſey; which under my Hand to him I have retracted. His firſt Letter was thrown in the ſame Manner, wherein he prayed me to write him a Letter, which I did. He ſent me Word the Judges met at Mr. Attorney's Houſe; and that there was good Hope the Proceedings againſt us ſhould be ſtaid; he ſent me another Time a little Tobacco. At Aremberg's coming, Ralegh dealt with me to procure him a Penſion of fiſteen hundred Pounds a Year for which he promiſed, that no Action ſhould be againſt Spain, but he would give Knowledge before-hand. He told me the States had Audience with the King. He hath been the original Cauſe of my Ruin; for I had no Dealing with Aremberg, but by his Inſtigation. He hath been the Cauſe of my Diſcontentment; he adviſed me not to be overtaken with Preachers, as Eſſex [340] was; and that the King would better allow of a conſtant Denial, than to accuſe any. But this Advice to a Denial, and by that Example, and the Deſire of any ſuch Penſion from Spain, Ralegh proteſted to be falſe. And further, to ſhew them what a baſe diſhonourable Recreant Cobham was, he pull'd out the Letter which Cobham a few Days before wrote to him voluntarily in the Tower, deſiring the Lord Cecyll to read it, becauſe he knew his Hand; and that the Jury would obſerve, if Cobham's Teſtimony were of any Credit with them, how much more ſolemnly it was writ to clear, than the other to condemn him; being in theſe Words, Seeing myſelf ſo near my End; for the Diſcharge of my own Conſcience, and freeing myſelf from your Blood, which elſe will cry Vengeance againſt me: I proteſt, upon my Salvation, I never practis'd with Spain by your Procurement; God ſo comfort me in this my Affliction, as you are a true Subject for any Thing that I know. I will ſay with Daniel, Purus ſum à ſanguine hujus: So God have Mercy on my Soul, as I know no Treaſon by you. This was the laſt Evidence given; yet the Jury brought in their Verdict guilty: This Letter, laſt produced to acquit Ralegh, not prevailing with them ſo much, it ſeems, as the Letter before, which was laſt, tho' leſs forcibly, written by Cobham to accuſe him; which, all Things conſidered, ſays the Perſon, who heard the whole Trial, was no more to be weigh'd than the Barking of a Dog; and I would not (continues he) for much, to have been of the Jury, to have found him guilty. Some of his Jury, we are further told, were after he was caſt, ſo far touch'd in Conſcience, as to demand of him Pardon on their Knees; and even Coke the Attorney himſelf, being retired into a Garden to take ſome Air, when his Man brought him Word that the Jury had condemn'd Ralegh of Treaſon, [341] anſwered, Surely thou art miſtaken, for I myſelf accuſed him but of Miſpriſion of Treaſon; and this Relation, upon the Word of a Chriſtian, I have received, ſays my Author, from Sir Edward Coke's own Mouth. Sentence being given, Ralegh humbly deſired, the King might know the Proofs againſt him; that he ſtill perſiſted in his Loyalty, notwithſtanding that Verdict; which he would pray, that his ſaid Jury might never anſwer for: and only craved Pardon for concealing Lord Cobham's Offer to him, which he did through a Confidence that he had diverted him from thoſe Humours. So accompanied the Sheriff to the Priſon with admirable Erection, yet in ſuch Sort as a condemned Man ſhould do.

Thus was he tired out of his Life, as one obſerves, by the Bawling of the King's Counſel on one Side, and the Bench's inſiſting on a Confeſſion, extorted from the Lord Cobham out of Fear, on the other, rather than convinced: And thus did his Adverſaries reap Diſhonour and Reproach in their Victory, while he received triumphant Applauſes in his Overthrow, like ſome Flowers which are ſweeter in their Fall, than others in their Bloom. He ſtood at a Bay with them from Morning 'till Night, to the great Admiration of the Hearers, who all thought that a Man of ſuch Underſtanding and Experience, would hardly be drawn into a Plot ſo ſoul and ſo fooliſh. Divers, who went thither his Enemies, went away with Commiſeration of his Injuries and Misfortunes, thinking never Man ſpake better for himſelf. One of his Auditors ſays, He behaved himſelf ſo worthily, ſo wiſely, ſo temperately, that in half a Day the Mind of all the Company was changed, from the extremeſt Fate, to the extremeſt Pity: And another ſays, That Sir Walter Ralegh's Carriage was moſt remarkable; firſt, to the Lords; humble, yet not proſtrate; [342] Towards the Jury; affable, but not fawning; rather ſhewing Love of Life, than Fear of Death: Towards the King's Counſel; patient, but not inſenſibly neglecting; not yielding to Imputations laid againſt him in Words: And it was wondered, that a Man of his heroic Spirit, could be ſo valiant in ſuffering; that he was never overtaken in Paſſion, &c. On the other Side, as to Coke's Behaviour, we ſhall, to what has been ſaid, only obſerve, as one Means to account for it, that it Eſſex was known to have ever been in any wiſe a Friend or Patron to him, as it appears he was in a private Memorial of an honourable Perſon, who was of the ſame College in Oxford with Ralegh, and almoſt of the ſame ſtanding; then Coke might perhaps think of retrieving himſelf in the Eye of the World, and making Atonement for his Ingratitude to the ſaid Earl, alſo at his Trial, and to his Memory after his Death, by his Inhumanity now to one of the contrary Faction. Cecyll, on the other Side, play'd a ſmooth Edge upon Ralegh throughout the Trial; his Blade ſeemed ever anointed with the Balſam of Compliment or Apology, whereby he gave not ſuch rough and ſmarting Wounds, though they were as deep and fatal as the other. But Ralegh could diſtinguiſh crooked Friendſhip, and perhaps the Grounds of it, in this Place, as well as he has done crooked Wiſdom in another; when, to thoſe Speeches, where Cecyll ſaid, My Affection, to you Sir Walter Ralegh was not extinguiſh'd, but ſlaked, in Regard of your Deſerts: and, excepting your Faults (I call them no worſe) by God I am your Friend: he anſwered, Whoever is the Workman, it is Reaſon he ſhould give Account of his Work to the Workmaſter. As to any Impertinences that occurred in the Trial, they appear no where ſo much as in the perſonal Reflections made by the ſaid Attorney [343] Coke, and the Lord Chief Juſtice Popham, whom Camden juſtly calls a cenſorious Man; they being foreign to the Matters Ralegh was charged with, therefore he wiſely looked over them. But theſe, and the other Irregularities throughout the whole Proceedings, which have left Men ſo unſatisfied in the Juſtice of them againſt Sir Walter Ralegh, and ſo little inclined to believe him the Criminal his Enemies made him, being ſummed up by an able Hand, and one whoſe Province it more properly was to judge of them, I ſhall take my Leave of the ſaid Trial, with a Reference to his Obſervations on it *.

[344] That Ralegh expected nothing leſs than this Kind of Treatment from thoſe Hands, is plain by the Letter which he wrote to the King himſelf juſt before his Trial; wherein having ſaid, I know, that, among many Preſumptions gathered againſt me, your Majeſty has been perſuaded, that I was one of thoſe who were greatly diſcontented, and therefore the more likely to prove diſloyal; but the great God of Heaven and Earth diſclaim me from both Worlds, if I were not the contrary, and if I took not great Comfort to behold your Majeſty always learning ſome Good, and bettering my Knowledge by your Majeſty's Diſcourſe: And having humbly beſeeched him not to believe any of thoſe, who, under Pretence of Offences to Kings, do eaſily work their particular Revenge; he ſays a little further, For my Part, I proteſt before the ever-living God, that I never intended Treaſon, conſented to Treaſon, or performed Treaſon againſt you; and yet I know I ſhall fall into their Hands, è quibus non poſſum evadere, unleſs by your Majeſty's gracious Compaſſion I be ſuſtained. Another Letter, which he wrote to the Lords, gives us ſome further Light or Aſſurance, that the Offer made to him for one Intention, and to others for another, was conſtrued as made to him for both; where, ſpeaking of the two principal Accuſations againſt him, he ſays, the firſt was, that Money was offered me [345] with a Pretence to maintain the Amity, but the Intent was to have aſſiſted his Majeſty's Surpriſe: The other, that I was privy to my Lord Cobham's Spaniſh Journey. For the firſt, it ſeems, this Money was offered to others long after it was offered to me, and upon other Conſiderations than it was to me. For myſelf I avow, upon my Allegiance, that I never knew or ſuſpected either the Man or the new Intention. To me it was but once propounded, and in three Weeks after I never heard more of it; neither did I belive that he had any Commiſſion to offer it; for, it that Word Amity had been uſed to me Colourably, I muſt have been alſo made acquainted with the true End for which it ſhould have been given; which it ſeems was for the Surprize: But of any ſuch horrible Purpoſe, if ever I had ſo much as a Suſpicion, I refuſe your Lordſhips Favour, and the King's Mercy. I know your Lordſhips have omitted nothing to find out the Truth; but, as you have not err'd, like ill Surgeons, to lay on Plaiſters too narrow for ſo great Wounds, ſo I truſt that you will not imitate unlearned Phyſicians, to give Medicines more cruel than the Diſeaſe itſelf. For the Journey into Spain, I know I was accuſed to be privy thereto; but I know your Lordſhips have a Reputation of Conſcience, as well as Induſtry. By what means that revengeful Accuſation was ſtirr'd, you, my Lord Cecyll, know right well, that it was my Letter about Keymis; and your Lordſhips all know whether it be maintain'd, or whether, out of Truth, and out of a Chriſtian Conſideration, it be revoked. A little further he ſays, *God knows, and I can give an Account of it, [346] that I have ſpent 40000 Pounds of my own againſt that King and Nation; that I never reſerved ſo much of all my Fortunes, as to purchaſe forty Pounds per Annum Land; that I have been a violent Proſecutor and Furtherer of all Enterprizes againſt that Nation: I have ſerved againſt them in Perſon; and how, my Lord Admiral and my Lord of Suffolk can witneſs. I diſcover'd, myſelf, the richeſt Part of all his Indies; I have planted in his Territories. I offer'd his Majeſty at my Uncle Carew's, to carry two Thouſand Men to invade him without the King's Charge. Alas! to what End ſhould we live in the World, if all the Endeavours of ſo many Teſtimonies ſhould be blown off with one blaſt of Breath, or be preſented by one Man's Word. Think therefore (ſays he a little further) I beſeech you, on my great Affliction with Compaſſion; who loſt my Eſtate, and the King's Favour, upon one Man's Word; and as you would that God ſhould deal with you, deal with me. He concludes in this Manner, Your Lordſhips know, that I am guiltleſs of the Surprize intended; you know, or may know that I never accepted of the Money, and that it was not offered me for any ill; and of the Spaniſh Journey, I truſt your Conſciences are reſolved. Keep not then, I beſeech you, theſe my Anſwers and humble Deſires from my Soveraign Lord, qui eſt rex pius & miſericors, & non leo coronatus. In another Letter which he wrote to the King after his Trial, he has theſe Words: Loſt I am for hearing a vain Man, for hearing only, and never believing or approving; and ſo little Account I made of that Speech of his, which was my Condemnation, that I never remember'd [347] any ſuch Thing, till it was at my Trial obiected againſt me. This Letter he nobly concludes, with a Deſire only to repay a lent Life with a Love and Affection equal to the Goodneſs wherewith his Majeſty ſhould pleaſe to beſtow it.

If theſe Letters had any good Effect, it appeared not immediately, Ralegh being kept near a Month at Wincheſter after he was condemned, in daily Expectation of Death. We find, that when the Report of the Arraignments was made to the King in his Privychamber at Wilton, he carried himſelf ſo reſervedly, that no Body could gueſs how well he was ſatisfied with the Equality of Condemnation, till he made, himſelf, a Difference in the Puniſhment. The two Prieſts were executed on the 29th of November, and George Brook on the 5th of December following. His Majeſty alſo ſign'd Warrants for Cobham, Grey and Markham, to be beheaded on the 9th Day of the ſaid Month. But, in the particular Narrative of this proceeding to Execution, Ralegh is not ſo much as mention'd: and this might be owing to the extraordinary Diſappointment of that Purgation, which was expected from one of thoſe three next to be executed; for the Day aforeſaid being come, Markham was firſt brought to the Scaffold; and, having ended his Speech, Prayers, with all he had to ſay, and being on his Knees, ready to receive the Stroke of the Ax, up ſteps John Gibb, Groom of the King's Bed-chamber, to Sir Benjamin Tichbourne, the Sheriff of Hampſhire, with his Majeſty's Warrant to ſtay the Execution; ſo Markham was told he muſt withdraw a while into the Hall, to be confronted by the Lords. Then Lord Grey was brought upon the Stage; and he is ſaid to have poured out his Prayers and his Confeſſion, tho' not one Word of them recorded in our Narrative [348] aforeſaid; then was he alſo call'd aſide. Laſtly, Cobham was brought, and expos'd in the ſame Manner; and his Devotions to God are mentioned; but not a Word of the Treaſon, his Guilt or Innocence, or concerning any Promoter of his Diſloyalty or Diſcontent: So when he had done, the Sheriff found it Time to unravel the Plot, by proclaiming and magnifying his Majeſty's Mercy, as we have it in the ſame Author, who yet cannot forbear comparing his own Relation to a Comedy, repreſenting ſo many lively Figures of Juſtice and Mercy in a King, of Terror and Penitence in Offenders, and of ſo great Admiration and Applauſe in all others as appeared in this Action, carried on only and wholly by his Majeſty's own Direction. But whereas Coke had (after his outrageous Manner) charged Ralegh in the Trial frequently with being the chief Plotter and Traitor in all this Conſpiracy; we now ſee the King, in his Warrant aforeſaid, contradicting him, where he ſays, to uſe his own Dialect, that the tuo Prieſtis, and George Brooke, vaire the principal Plotteris and Intiſairs of all the reſt, to the embracing of the ſaidis treaſonabill Machinations. And yet you find, in the Trial again, that Brook's Treaſon was diſtinct, and to be kept ſecret from Ralegh, becauſe there Brook tells Markham, Take Heed how you make Lord Cobham acquainted; for whatever he knows, Ralegh the Witch will get it out of him. In ſhort, the whole Proceeding is ſo full of Inconſiſtences, Slanders, and other like odious Effects of a falſe and malicious Proſecution, that we may well conclude with that Hiſtorian, who ſays the King had Ground enough to ſhew Mercy, which ſome of the condemned Party obtained.

But Ralegh, it ſeems, did laſt taſte of it, and for no other apparent Reaſon, but becauſe he was the [349] only one whom his Enemies ſtill wanted Matter to exclude from it; as may be gather'd from what Cecyll wrote to a Correſpondent three Days after the King's Warrant of Suſpenſe, to the others before mentioned; where, among theſe wonderful Inſtances of his Majeſty's Clemency, we are told, He pretended to forbear Sir Walter Ralegh for the preſent, till the Lord Cobham's Death had given ſome Light how far he would make good his Accuſation: And tho' we hear not that he ever did make it good, yet was the pretended Time of Ralegh's Execution ſo determined, however we find not, that he, like the reſt, was ever brought to the Place; that he wrote, what he intended for his laſt Words, to his Wife, the Night before he expected to be put to Death, in a very moving Letter, full of the moſt generous Acknowledgments, of the wiſeſt, moſt religious and affectionate Advice to her, no leſs than of the moſt heroic and magnanimous Sentiments in Regard to himſelf, and to that Suffering which ordinary Souls ſo naturally ſhrink at. It is too long to recite in this Place, beſides has been often printed, and may be eaſily met with in his Works. The hiſtorical Paſſages in it acquaint us, that his Lands were conveyed to his Son, as is before mentioned; that he intended his Wife the Profits of his Wine-office, half his Goods, and all his Jewels, except ſome one to his Son; that Baily owed him two hundred, or as other Editions have it, 1000 Pounds; and his Brother Adrian Gilber [...] ſix hundred; that he had alſo much Money owing him in Jerſey, beſides the Arrearages of the Wines, which would pay all his Debts. Towards the Concluſion, he intreats her to get thoſe Letters, if it be poſſible, which I writ, ſaid he, to the Lords, wherein I ſued for my Life. God is my Witneſs, that it was for you and yours that [350] I deſir'd Life. But it is true that I diſdain myſelf for begging it; for know it, dear Wife, that your Son is the Son of a true Man, and one, who, in his own Reſpect, deſpiſes Death, and all his miſhapen and ugly Forms. I cannot write much; God knows how hardly I ſteal this Time, while others ſleep; and it is alſo high Time, that I ſhould ſeparate my Thoughts from the World. Beg my dead Body, which living was deny'd thee, and either lay it at Sherborne, if the Land continue, or in Exeter Church, by my Father and Mother. I can ſay no more; Time and Death call me away. And, as in the former Part of this Letter, he truſts that his Blood will quench their Malice, who had thus cruelly murdered him: So in the Concluſion, he prays to God, that he may forgive his Perſecutors and Accuſers.

But after all this Uſage, Cobham never confirming his Accuſation of Sir Walter Ralegh, they both were, with the reſt of the Priſoners, returned, on the 15th of December, to the Tower of London: Thoſe, of whom the leaſt Profit was to be made, were either acquitted, or did afterwards get their Liberty; among whom was Markham, who travell'd abroad, but endured greater Diſtreſs in his State of Freedom, than he had in his Reſtraint. *But Grey, it ſeems, died in the Tower, and with Cobham it went nigh to fare ſtill worſe; for he would have ſtarved there, being ſo cloſely fleec'd [351] as he was by the Court-beggars of his great Eſtate, had they not alſo laid thereby a Kind of a Fine upon his Majeſty for his Offences; the Crown being impoſed upon to ſupport him in his many Years Confinement, as Ralegh himſelf has ſufficiently diſcover'd. † And here, to diſpatch what more remains of this Lord relating to our preſent Hiſtory, we may obſerve, that ſome Years after their Confinement, Ralegh is ſaid to have himſelf procur'd a Re-examination of Cobham, and to have been abſolutely cleared by him.

But the Practices which were uſed againſt him therein, are repreſented ſo Foul and Wicked, 96 [352] as to have given ſome, whoſe Intereſt it was to favour the Adminiſtrations of theſe Times, Occaſion to ſuſpect the Aſſertion; tho' it is corroborated by ſeveral material Circumſtances, as well as the Teſtimony of coeval Writers. The Author, in whom we firſt meet with this Paſſage, and whoſe ſhorter Account of it is before related, to ſhew that Ralegh's Life was ſurreptitiouſly taken away, gives it us again more Circumſtantially, and has a true, Story, thus, Queen Anne, that brave Princeſs, was in a deſperate, and ſome believed incurable Diſeaſe, whereof the Phyſicians were at the furtheſt End of their Studies to find the Cauſe, at a non plus for the Cure. Sir Walter Ralegh being by his long Studies, an admirable Chymiſt, undertook and performed the Cure; * for which he would receive no other Reward,, but that her Majeſty would procure, that certain Lords might be ſent to examine Cobham, whether he had accuſed Sir Walter Ralegh of Treaſon at any Time under his Hand? The King, at the Queen's Requeſt (and in Juſtice could do no leſs) ſends ſome Lords and others of the Council (which, as our Author goes on, were the Duke of Lenox, Saliſbury, Worceſter, Suffolk, Sir George Carew, and Sir Julius Caeſar) to demand of Cobham, whether he had not, under his Hand, accuſed Sir [353] Walter Ralegh at Wincheſter, upon that Treaſon he was arraign'd for? Cobham did proteſt, never, nor could he; but, ſaid he, that Villain Wade did often ſollicite me, and, not prevailing that Way, got me by a Trick, to write my Name upon a piece of white Paper, which, I thinking nothing, did; ſo that, if any Charge came under my Hand, it was forged by that Villain Wade, by writing ſomething above my Hand, without my Conſent or Knowledge. *Theſe ſix returning to the King, the Reſt made Salisbury their Spokeſman; who ſaid, Sir, My Lord Cobham hath made good all that ever he wrote or ſaid. Where it is to be noted, that this was but an Equivocating Trick in Salisbury; for it was True, that Cobham had made good whatever he had Writ, but never wrote any Thing to accuſe Ralegh; by which you ſee the Baſeneſs of this Lord, the Credulity of the King, and the Ruin of Sir Walter Ralegh. As for the miſerable End this Lord Cobham made, the ſame Author relates it; and it is alſo confirm'd [354] by others, who were well acquainted with the Hiſtory of theſe Times, and from whom we learn, that Cobham ſurvived not Sir Walter Ralegh above two or three Months.

But to return to more early Paſſages in Ralegh's Impriſonment, and to conſider his State, as it appears at his Entrance therein, we may very eaſily believe, he was at firſt in very great Trouble to be ſo ſuddenly, and in ſuch a Manner, depriv'd of Power, Fortune, Liberty and Reputation; but find nothing to confirm the extraordinary Dejection one Writer, deſcribes him under, where he ſays, ‘'In the publick Joy and Jubilee of the whole Realm, when Favour, Peace and Pardon were offered even to Offenders; he, who in Wit, in Wealth, in Courage, was inferior to few, fell ſuddenly (he cannot tell how) into ſuch a downfall of Deſpair, that his greateſt Enemies would not have wiſhed him ſo much Harm, as he would have done himſelf;'’ for we have ſeen he had Enemies, who would have done him the Injury that could not [355] be exceeded, had not the King, in ſome degree of Juſtice, rather than Mercy to him, interpos'd, and ſecured him, as well from being quite deſtroyed by, as taking Revenge on them: Beſides, that Letter to his Wife before-mentioned, when his Fate appeared neareſt and moſt unavoidable to him, demonſtrates the Firmneſs and Fortitude of a Man, who could receive Death as an Acquaintance, rather than a Stranger, or one, who, having ſo often gone to face him among the Foes to his Country abroad, could, with equal ſteadineſs and compoſure of Mind, meet him from thoſe at Home. Indeed, the Affairs of a Perſon, who had ſuch various and extenſive Dealings or Commerce with Mankind, could not but be ſomewhat perplexed and embarraſs'd, upon a Fall ſo ſudden and precipitous; therefore, to find him employing Agents for collecting in Debts, and ſatisfying Creditors, is to be expected. Thus, in one of his Letters to Sir Michael Hext, he deſires him to ſpare John Shellbury for a little Time, he being bound for him in a Sum of fifteen hundred Pounds; and, if he was reſtrained, ſo that he could not recover the Wine-arrearages, which (as we find from Ralegh's Letter before to his Wife) would clear all his Debts, they muſt remain unpaid. The Date endors'd upon this Letter, probably by Sir Michael himſelf, is November 12, 1604. In the Middle of February following, we find a Grant made by the King, to that John Shellbury and another Perſon, to this Effect: ‘'That Sir Walter Ralegh, late of Sherborne, &c. being attainted of High Treaſon, whereby all his Goods and Chattels, Real and Perſonal, Moveable and Immoveable; Debts, Duties, Sums of Money, Bonds, &c. are forfeited. His Majeſty therefore, in Conſideration that the ſaid Debts, which Sir Walter Ralegh did truly [356] owe before the ſaid Attainder and Conviction, may be juſtly and truly paid; as alſo for the Help and Maintenance of Dame Elizabeth his Wife, his Child and Family; and for other Conſiderations, grants to John Shellbury and Robert Smith of London, Gentlemen, all the ſaid Goods, &c.'’

Thus we ſee a great Diſtinction made already between him and Cobham, and ſhall find more Favour extending towards him in a little while. 'Tis ſaid to be much owing to the earneſt and unwearied Interceſſions of his Lady at Court, who, that ſhe might be more ſerviceable to him, ſoon after he was committed to the Tower, petition'd the King, that ſhe might be a Priſoner with her Huſband, or live with him there in his Confinement; and her Requeſt was granted. Here, manifeſtly after the Grant aforeſaid to Ralegh's Truſtees, becauſe that mentions but one of his Sons, ſhe was delivered of the other, and he was Chriſten'd Carew, who was yet born, as Authors compute, within the Year above-mentioned. To this Satisfaction, Ralegh had others afterwards, which greatly alleviated the loſs of his Liberty; ſo that his reſtraint, which was intended as a Mortification, his Prudence in Time ſo converted, that it proved only a Retirement, or the quiet Enjoyment of a domeſtick Life; and he felt certain Comforts ariſe from the conſtant Company of his little Family, which in the Pomp of Courts, the Pride of Conqueſts, the Glory of Diſcoveries, and the Sweetneſs of Freedom itſelf, he had never taſted. But this Tranquillity appears not to have ſuddenly arrived, being for a while diveſted of all his Eſtate; and having ſome Contentions at Law with thoſe who were conſiderably indebted to him, and could not otherwiſe be brought to Account; [357] one Inſtance whereof we have in William Sanderſon the elder, who was of Kin to Ralegh; * and (as we are told) in the Time of his Proſperity and Greatneſs, was his Servant, intruſted with receiving great Sums of Money for him out of his Office of Wines, and his other Places, by which he became in Arrear to Ralegh in divers great Sums; which, after his Troubles, he ſent for to Sanderſon, who was ſo far from paying them, that he pretended Ralegh ſhould owe him 2000 Pounds: Whereupon Sir Walter, in great Anger, commenced a Suit againſt Sanderſon, which was managed by his Servant and Sollicitor John Shellbury; and Sanderſon, being overthrown, and found in Arrear to Ralegh in very great Sums, was caſt into Priſon, where he died a Beggar. Hence ſprung all the Spleen and Malice of William Sanderſon the younger (in his Hiſtory of King James's Reign) towards Sir Walter Ralegh. Now this Expoſure both of that Author's Father and his own Hiſtory, ſo enraged the Son, that he forthwith publiſhed an Anſwer to the ſaid Pamphlet, in which he not only endeavours to ſupport what he had written of Sir Walter Ralegh in his Hiſtory, though with no Authorities or ſatisfactory Reaſons, but falls moſt foully upon Carew Ralegh, as if he was the Author of the Pamphlet aforeſaid againſt his Hiſtory; and that, with ſuch womaniſh Spleen and Slander, as might have betrayed, had not himſelf owned, that his Wife had a Hand in writing it. But of the Paſſage here [358] laſt quoted, tho' he contradicts ſeveral Particulars, he does not deny the main Point; which is, that Sir Walter Ralegh, now after his Reprieve, did commence Suits by Shellbury againſt his Father, which might naturally ſharpen the Son's Pen, and warp his Impartiality, when he was repreſenting him in his Hiſtory, and the rather if Ralegh was ſuch a Debtor beſides to his Father, as he deſcribes him. But, whoever was the Author of thoſe Obſervations on the ſaid Hiſtory; he has not more unfavourably treated it, than others who examined it. *

When Ralegh had got over theſe troubleſome Conteſts, all Things appear'd, for a while, about him as ſerene, as in ſuch a gloomy State could be hoped for; and he, who lately was upon the very Brink of Diſſolution, had all his Offices, Lands and Goods ſeized upon, and was himſelf committed a cloſe Priſoner, had not only his Life repriev'd, and his Confinement ſweetned with ſome Degrees of Latitude, but even his Eſtate alſo reſtor'd to him. For theſe Lands were actually made over by Sir Walter Ralegh to his Son, both Inheritance and Fee, before Queen Elizabeth died, as formerly was, alſo the Leaſe for Years: So that, as he obſerves again in another Place, being entail'd on Sir Walter's Heirs, he could not forfeit them, but during his [359] own Life; and the King, finding in himſelf the Iniquity of Sir Walter's Condemnation, gave him all what he had forfeited again. Herewith agrees likewiſe Sir John Harrington, who not only tells us by whoſe Mediation Ralegh recovered his ſaid Eſtate, and his Enlargement in Priſon, but how laudably he employed himſelf there at the Time of this Author's Writing, which might be about the Year 1607; where he ſays, God put it into the King's Mind, againſt Man's Expectation, to ſave his Life; and ſince, by the Suit of his faithful Wife, both to preſerve his Eſtate, and to eaſe his Reſtraint, in ſuch Sort as many, who are at Liberty, taſte not greater Comforts than he doth in Priſon; being not barr'd of thoſe Companions, meaning Books, that he may, and perhaps does, take more true Comfort in them, than ever he took of his courtly Companions in his chiefeſt Bravery.

But this Proſpect was ſoon overcaſt; for there was a young Scotchman, named Robert Car, who, ſoon after the ſaid Reſtitution, ſprang up in great Favour at Court; and, having no Fortune of his own, it was contrived by thoſe who had gaped in vain for Ralegh's Eſtate themſelves, to lay the Foundation of this Favourite's future Greatneſs upon his Ruin; for, being thus fruſtrated of the Effects of Sir Walter Ralegh's Attainder, they pretended to find a Flaw in his laſt Conveyance of the Fee and Inheritance of Sherborne to his Son; and to this purpoſe an Information was exhibited in the Exchequer by the Attorney-general Hobart, to which Ralegh put in his Anſwer; and therein the ſaid Grant or Conveyance was ſet forth to be made over, as above; yet for Want of a ſingle Word (which was found notwithſtanding in the Paperbook, and was only the Overſight of the Clerk) they pronounced the Conveyance invalid, and [360] Sherborne abſolutely forfeited to the Crown; a Judgment to be foreſeen without Witchcraft, ſince his chief Judge was his greateſt Enemy, and the Caſe argued between a friendleſs Priſoner and the King of England.

Then was Sherborne given to this Car, afterwards Earl of Somerſet. The Lady Ralegh and her Children earneſtly petitioned the King for Compaſſion, but could now obtain no other Anſwer, than he mun have the Land, he mun have it for Car. And ſhe, a Woman of high Spirit, on her Knees, pray'd to God, that he would puniſh thoſe who had thus wrongfully expoſed her and her Children to Ruin. We have an elegant Letter of Ralegh's extant, to Car himſelf, upon this Occaſion; but, having been corruptly printed, it may appear from ſeveral antient Manuſcript-copies more correct, as follows: ‘'After ſome great Loſſes, and many Years Sorrows, of both which I have Cauſe to fear I was miſtaken in the End; it is come to my Knowledge, that yourſelf, whom I know not but by an honourable Fame, has been perſuaded to give me and mine our laſt fatal Blow, by obtaining from his Majeſty the Inheritance of my Children and Nephews, loſt in the Law for want of a Word. This done, there remains nothing with me but the Name of Life, deſpoiled of all elſe but the Title and Sorrow thereof. His Majeſty, whom I never offended (for I ever held it unnatural and unmanly to hate Goodneſs) ſtayed me at the Grave's brink; not, as I hope, that he thought me worthy of many Deaths, and to behold all mine caſt out of the World with myſelf; but as a King, who, judging the Poor in Truth, has received a Promiſe from God, that his Throne ſhall be eſtabliſhed for ever. And for yourſelf, Sir ſeeing your fair Day is but now [361] in the Dawn, and mine drawn to the Evening, your own Virtues and the King's Grace aſſuring you of many Favours and much Honour, I beſeech you not to begin your firſt Building upon the Ruins of the Innocent; and that their Sorrows, with mine, may not attend your firſt Plantation. I have been ever bound to your Nation, as well for many other Graces, as for their true Report of my Trial to his Majeſty, againſt whom had I been found Malignant, the hearing of my Cauſe would not have changed Enemies into Feiends, Malice into Compaſſion, and the Minds of the greateſt Number preſent into the Commiſeration of my State. It is not the Nature of foul Treaſon to beget ſuch fair Paſſions; neither could it agree with the Duty and Love of faithful Subjects, eſpecially of your Nation, to bewail his Overthrow, who had conſpir'd againſt their moſt liberal and natural Lord. I therefore truſt, Sir, that you will not be the firſt that ſhall kill us outright, cut down the Tree with the Fruit, and undergo their Curſe, who enter the Field of the Fatherleſs; which, if it pleaſe you to know the Truth, is far leſs fruitful in Value than in Fame: But that ſo worthy a Gentleman as yourſelf will rather bind us to your Service, being, Sir, Gentlemen, not baſe in Birth or Alliance, who have Intereſt therein; and myſelf, with my utmoſt thankfulneſs, will ever remain ready to obey your Commandments.'’ This Letter, in one or two old Copies, is dated December 1608. But this ſo little prevailed upon Car, or any other Applications Ralegh might make to the King, with his Majeſty himſelf; that beſides Sherborne, and the Manors belonging to it, thoſe other Lands which Ralegh himſelf had purchaſed, call'd, Pinford and Primeſly, Barton, and the Manors appertaining alſo thereunto, forfeited with the reſt by his Attainder, were [362] alſo granted the following Year 1609, or the ſeventh of his Majeſty's Reign, to the ſaid Favourite.

But now, or not long after, Ralegh was grown into high Eſteem with that great hope and heir of theſe Kingdoms, Prince Henry Frederick, the King's eldeſt Son, who, being ſatisfied of his Loyalty, and well inform'd of his great Qualifications and Experience in Civil and Military Affairs, with his hazardous Services for the Honour and Defence of his Country, no leſs than his many publick-ſpirited Adventures, both to enlarge and enrich it, teſtified not his own Merits more in any one particular, than in diſtinguiſhing thoſe of Sir Walter Ralegh; and, notwithſtanding the many little envious Detractions of ſome undermining Courtiers about him, did both encourage his Epiſtolary Addreſſes to him from the Tower, and ſend for his Counſel or Opinion upon ſeveral emergent Occaſions. It was, perhaps, one of the brighteſt Rays in the ſhining Orb of this rare Prince's Actions; that he never left invading the King with the moſt perſuaſive Solicitations, that he would beſtow Sherborne upon him, with full deſign to return it to its juſt Owner, till his Majeſty at laſt granted his Requeſt; but by what cruel Fate Ralegh's hopes were eclipſed again, and indeed thoſe of the whole Kingdom, we ſhall ſuddenly hear.

In the mean Time, we muſt hear endeavour to give ſuch Light of that intercourſe which paſſed between the ſaid Prince Henry and Sir Walter Ralegh, as thoſe Letters and Diſcourſes, which he addreſſed to his Highneſs, and are extant, will afford; and firſt, when he found how commendably the Prince was inclined to the Studies of Navigation; how much delighted he was with a View of the Fleet at Chatham; how inquiſitive, or de [...]ous to inform himſelf, by Conſultation with the [363] moſt experienced Commanders, in the Knowledge of building Ships moſt Artfully, fitting them out moſt Commodiouſly, ſailing them moſt Dexterouſly, and fighting with them moſt Succeſsfully, in order to execute thoſe great Deſigns he had upon the Weſt-Indies and Spain itſelf, whenever the King thereof ſhould give cauſe of publick Hoſtility, as of his own Servants acquaints us, and would have done more diſtinctly, had he not been manacled in in a Courtly Maxim ſo diſcrepant with all perſonal Narrative, That to publiſh particulars agrees not with Rules of State: Ralegh compoſed and communicated to his Highneſs ſeveral Tractates upon theſe Subjects. Such was his Letter touching the Model of a Ship, which the Prince intended to build; and ſuch his Diſcourſe of a Maritimal Voyage, with the Paſſages and Incidents therein, which he ſeconded with ſome neceſſary Obſervations on the Royal Navy and Sea Service, alſo dedicated to his Highneſs; and wherein he appears to have been a moſt worthy and earneſt Counſellor of the Prince, to a due Regard and Regulation thereof. For, ſays Ralegh to him, in anſwer to any Objection that might be made to the Maintenance of ſo great a Fleet, in the Perfection and Readineſs which he recommends, now in Times of Peace: ‘'Tho' the Sword is put into the Sheath, we muſt not ſuffer it to ruſt, or ſtick ſo faſt, that we ſhall not be able to draw it readily when needs requires;'’ and, a little further, ‘'we may be aſſured, that if thoſe powerful Means, whereby we reduced our Enemies to the Courteſy of ſeeking Peace of us, were neglected, ſo as we could not again, upon Occaſion, readily aſſume the Uſe and Benefit of them, as we have done; thoſe proud maſtering Spirits, finding us at ſuch Advantage, would be more willing to ſhake us by the Ears as Enemies, [364] than to take us by the Hands as Friends. Therefore, far be it from our Hearts to truſt more to that Friendſhip of Strangers, which is but diſſembled upon Policy and Neceſſity, than to the Strength of our own Forces, which has been experienced with ſo happy Succeſs. I confeſs, that Peace is a Bleſſing of God, and bleſſed are the Peace-Makers; therefore doubtleſs bleſſed are thoſe Means whereby Peace is gain'd and maintain'd. For well we know, that God works all Things here among us, mediately and by a ſecondary Means; the which Means, of our Defence and Safety, being Shipping and Sea-forces, are to be eſteemed as his Gifts; and then only available and beneficial, when he withal vouchſafes his Grace to uſe them aright.'’ To this end, Ralegh alſo wrote another Diſcourſe for the ſaid Prince, Of the Art of War by Sea: But the untimely Death of his Highneſs, as we ſhall too ſoon find, deprived both him and Poſterity of the Advantages which a Subject ſo uſeful and uncommon, from an Author ſo able and experienc'd, did promiſe.

There is nothing in theſe Diſcourſes or any other I have met with, which ſhew Ralegh any ways concerned in writing thoſe Propoſitions or Arguments for Foreign Wars, which were delivered to Prince Henry by ſome of his Military Servants, and which were afterwards abſtractedly publiſhed, together with an Anſwer at large, written, very conformable to the Taſte of King James, by the Learned Sir Robert Cotton; tho', to the firſt Edition of this Treatiſe, the Bookſeller, having prefixed Sir Walter Ralegh's Picture, have thereby miſled ſome Writers of his Life, careleſly to inſert this Book into the Catalogue of his Writings. 'Tis true, Ralegh has obliquely and ſubordinately [365] touched this Branch of the Subject in ſome of his Diſcourſes upon War, but in other Arguments than are here anſwered, nay after this Anſwer was written; nor are they addreſſed to the Prince, but indeed written alſo after his Death. In ſome Places, he has given the greateſt Diſcouragements to a military Life, from knowing, how many are deluded to be the Executioners of other Men's Ambition, and to lay down their Lives for what they ſhould not venture them *; yet withal, the greater Diſproportion of Honour and Reward which attends that Profeſſion, than others of leſs perſonal Hardſhip and Danger, as was before partly obſerved. In other Places, he has written againſt wanton and cauſeleſs Invaſions, for the mere Sake of brutiſh and vain-glorious Victory; againſt waging War with our Enemies, 'till we beat the Art of it into them; 'till Cowards are learnt to be couragious, and Defenders become Aſſailants: Yet has elſewhere, in a very ingenious Similitude, ſhewn, that martial Policy is one of the principal Supports of [366] Government *. However, when a Prince has thereby got Authority, or the ſharpeſt Means in his Power, he would have the mildeſt Uſe; and the one acquired in full Strength, only that the other may be exerciſed with perfect Safety: For he ever preferred Reaſon and Love as ſtronger Chains of Government than Conſtraint or Violence, and thought that royal Dealings was ever ſureſt of meeting with royal Succeſs. Such were the Principles Sir Walter Ralegh infus'd not only into the Prince of Wales, but all other Readers, throughout his Writings; and agreeable hereto is the Tenor of that Letter he wrote to the ſaid Prince, Auguſt the 12th 1611, concerning the moſt eligible Power in an Engliſh Sovereign, where he has, with the Spirit of a true Patriot, ſaid: Let me not doubt but all Plans, which do not carry in them the mutual Happineſs of Prince and People, will appear as abſurd to your great Underſtanding, as diſagreeable to your noble Nature.

But now Ralegh's Pen was engaged upon a different Subject in the Prince's Service, and by his Command; for, ‘'the firſt Overtures of a Marriage between this Prince and the eldeſt Daughter of Spain being put off,'’ the like Motion [367] was now made by the Savoyan Ambaſſador, not only for a Marriage between Prince Henry and a Daughter of the Duke of Savoy, but for another, of his Son Don Phillibert, Prince of Piedmont, with Princeſs Elizabeth, the Daughter of England. Ralegh wrote two Diſcourſes, upon this Occaſion, in the Year laſt mentioned; and that he particularly was requeſted by the Prince to give his Opinion of the ſaid Offers, appears in his Introduction to the firſt of thoſe Diſcourſes, inſcribed to ſome Miniſter of State about his Highneſs; in which Ralegh has ſo notably diſcovered what a Tool for Avarice and Ambition moſt of the Catholic Princes in Europe had made of this Sacrament of Matrimony; and how notoriouſly the Caſtilians, with thoſe of whom theſe Princes are deſcended, have gotten no leſs by the Traffick of their Marriages, than they have done by the Trade of their Indies; that I wonder theſe excellent political Diſcourſes were never made publick, for the more eaſy Advertiſement of our ſucceeding Princes upon this Topick. The ſecond of them, upon the Match for Prince Henry, is treated under eight Heads; and, in the fourth Page of it, Ralegh has theſe Words: There is a Kind of noble and royal deceiving in Marriages between great Kings and Princes; yea it is, of all others, the faireſt and moſt unſuſpected Kind of betraying: It has been as ordinary among them to adventure or caſt away a Daughter to bring ſome Purpoſe to paſs, as at other Times, for ſaving of Charges, to make them Nuns. A little farther, having repreſented the Duke of Savoy ſo tied to the See of Rome, both by Religion and Benefit, that he could no more be ſeparated and ſubſiſt, than if his Soul was divided from his Body, he goes on thus, more directly, concerning the Marriages. What then remains of Profit to our Prince by this Alliance? A Sum of Money, and a [368] beautiful Lady. For Beauty (ſays he) it was never more cheap in any Age; and it is ever better loved in the Hope, than when it is had: For the Million of Crowns offered, which makes but two of our Subſidies, I ſpeak it confidently; that when thoſe Dukes, Lords, and great Ladies, who will attend the Princeſs in her Paſſage hither, ſhall be all preſented with Gifts according to their Degrees and the King's Honour; when the Preparations, Triumphs and Feaſtings are paid for, there will nothing remain but a great Encreaſe of Charge, and, perchance, a great deal of Melancholly. And a little further, Ralegh comes cloſer ſtill, to the Prince himſelf, in theſe Words: Now, if by theſe Diſlikes of the former Alliances, you make Judgment that it is my Deſire that the Prince ſhould not marry at all; I ſay, my Deſire is not, that the Prince ſhould not marry at all, but not as yet; and I am exceeding Sorry that the Prince has not the ſame Deſire. For ſeeing his Majeſty is yet but young, and by God's Favour like to live many Years; and that his Highneſs, if he ſhould now marry may have many Children born to him, before he be 30 Years old; and, ſeeing all his Children ſhall be Princes, and muſt be provided for as Princes, I think it will much perplex him to find himſelf ſo environed, 'till his Majeſty has ſomewhat repaired his Eſtate, and provided beautiful Gardens to plant theſe Olive Branches in. While the Prince is unmarried, all the Eyes of Chriſtendom are upon him; for, with what King ſoever he ſhall be ballanced, he will caſt the Scale; but, to have him weighed with a little Prince, I ſhould be ſorry, and he himſelf will be as ſorry after. All the Princes in Chriſtendom woo'd Charles, Duke of Burgundy, while his Daughter was unmarried; and while our Prince is free (our Enemies not knowing upon what Ground to build their Practices) his Majeſty's Safety is in the mean while [369] infinitely aſſured; but, the Prince once diſpoſed of, they will preſently muſter our Forces, meaſure our Fortunes, ſound us to the Bottom, and make their Approaches accordingly: they will then ſay, we have ſeen the utmoſt of the Prince of Wales! Then having obſerved, that ſince there is none but a Catholic Lady for us, let us have a King on our Side (ſays he) to boot: So, in Conſideration of the many Motives to Enmity between France and Spain, which he enumerates; as alſo the many Obligations which France then lay under, of Gratitude to the Crown of England, and the Advantage of retaining the Netherlands, he propoſes the Daughter of the French King. On the other Side, that it would be a needleſs Hazard both to neglect this Love and Union, and ſuſtain withal the Hatred of the Archduke, the Pope, and the King of Spain together; however diſunited, they were not to be feared: For then, if they ſhould combine againſt us, from whom ſhould we hope for Help? If it be from Savoy or Florence, God help us! Our Friends inhabit beyond the Mountains, our Enemies at Hand! We leave thoſe that are ſtrongeſt and neareſt us, for thoſe who are weakeſt and furtheſt off! We leave thoſe that can help us, or harm us, for thoſe that can do neither! Thoſe we leave who depend on themſelves, to wit, the French, for thoſe who depend on others, to wit, the Savoyans and Florentines! Thus ends Sir Walter Ralegh's Diſcourſe upon the Marriage propoſed for Prince Henry.

In his other Diſcourſe, on the Match that was offered for the ingenious and accompliſhed Lady Elizabeth, that Prince's Siſter, having copiouſly exemplified, as we have obſerved, what mercenary Sacrifices had been made, by crowned Heads, of their Children, in this grand Market of Matrimony; and anſwered the Objection he foreſaw ſome eſpaniolized Courtiers might make, that ſeeing the [370] Kings of France, and eſpecially of Spain had ſo often matched themſelves with the Dukes of Savoy, Why ſhould not the King of England alſo accept of their Alliance? He proceeds to examine what Encreaſe of Honour and Dignity, or what great Comfort or Contentment this excellent young Princeſs could expect or hope for by this Match? For the firſt, to wit, Honour and Dignity (ſays he) as ſhe is born the eldeſt, and now only Daughter of one of the mightieſt Kings of Chriſtendom, ſo is ſhe thereby of higher Place and State, than the Wife of a Duke of Savoy. Beſides, in her Birth and Blood, both of Father and Mother, deſcended of ſuch royal Races, as Savoy cannot add any greater Grace or Glory to; and by Nature and Education endowed with ſuch princely Perfections, both of Body and Mind, as may well deſerve to be reputed a worthy Spouſe for the greateſt Monarch of Chriſtendom, eſpecially conſidering the Poſſibilities of a Daughter of England; whereof we have had many Precedents; and, at this Time, is happily manifeſted in the King's Majeſty, our Sovereign, being deſcended of a Daughter of England; whereby the whole Iſland, formerly divided, is again now made one GREAT-BRITAIN, to the mutual Strength of either. Now to confer the Poſſibility of ſuch a Fortune, upon a poor popiſh Duke of Savoy, that can return no Recompence of Benefit to this State, were greatly for his Glory, tho' little for the Advancement of this noble Princeſs, and leſs for the Safety of this Kingdom, conſidering the Dangers that it may draw upon our worthy magnanimous Prince and the noble Duke of York, if the Ambition of this Match ſhould tickle the Savoyan to look after Poſſibilities, wherein there would want neither Means, Perſuaſions, nor Pardons from Rome, to practiſe any Villainy in that Behalf, whereby to benefit or ſtrengthen an Appendix of Spain, and ſo [371] devoted a Son to the Romiſh See. For the ſecond, namely the Comfort and Contentment of this worthy young Lady by this Match, as there is little in Appearance preſently, ſo there is leſs to be hoped for in the future. For, as first, ſhe muſt be removed far from her neareſt Blood, both by Father and Mother, into a Country far eſtranged from our Nation, as any part of Chriſtendom, and as far differing from us in Religion, as in Climate. And what true Correſpondence, or matrimonial Affection, there can be maintain'd between thoſe Perſons, whoſe Minds are different, and oppoſite in the religious Points of their Chriſtian Faith, is greatly to be doubted. Moreover it is greatly to be feared, with what Safety and Security ſhe can long live free from ſecret Practices and Treacheries, in a Country ſo near the Pope's Juriſdiction, environ'd with the Plots of the Jeſuits, who, we ſee, do daily traffick the Lives and Fortunes of all Princes who are not wholly devoted to the Romiſh Obedience; and therefore how they will entertain or tolerate the Race of our King, were too great an Error and Preſumption to truſt to: So as when the worthy Lady, hereafter by her Children or otherwiſe, has furniſh'd their Deſire, and fully ſerved their Turn, ſhe ſhall be then either forced to wound her Conſcience, by forſaking her Faith, or elſe to undergo the Scorns and Danger which ſhall be daily caſt upon her and her Family, for the Exerciſe of her Religion. And this alſo we may be well aſſured of, that, if ſhe ſhall have any Iſſue by the Prince of Piedmont, they muſt all be bred and brought up contrary to her Conſcience, which can be no ſmall Grief to a virtuous and natural Mother, and as little Comfort to our just religious King, their Grandfather. Laſtly, the very binding Cauſe of Amity between all Kings, Princes and States, is their Trade and Intercourſe of their Subjects. Now [372] there is not any Prince or State of Europe, the inland Countries of Hungary and Tranſylvania excepted, but the Engliſh have Trade withal; yea even with the Turk, Barbarian, Perſian and Indians; only with the Subjects of Savoy, I do not know that we have any meddling or interchange at at all: for the Duke has no Port, his Ditch of Villa Franca excepted, which is only capable of a few Gallies, either to furniſh Ships from, or to receive them, being Strangers. And therefore for his Majeſty of England to match his eldeſt and only Daughter with a Prince, who has his Dependance on other Kings; a Prince jeſuited, who can neither head us in Time of War, nor trade with us in Time of Peace; a Prince, by the Situation of his Country, every Way unprofitable to us; and that, no leſs perilous for his Majeſty's Daughter to live in: I reſolve myſelf, that he is of too excellent a Judgment ever to accept of it, and his honourable Council too wiſe and provident to adviſe the Proſecution thereof. Now, if his Highneſs ſhould be pleaſed to aſk my Opinion, with what Chriſtian Prince he ſhould match his Siſter, were it in his own Power and Choice to make Election, I humbly deſire to be excuſed herein; for, would it become me to preſume ſo far? It is true, I have heard it, that ſome Overtures have been made for the Prince Palatine of the Rhine; certainly he is as well born as the Duke of Savoy, and as free a Prince as he is. The Nation is faithful; he is of our Religion, and by him we ſhall greatly faſten unto us the Netherlands: And, for the little Judgment which God has given me, I do prize the Alliance of the Palatine of the RHINE, and of the Houſe of NASSAU, more than I do the Alliance of T [...]n Dukes of Savoy. And thus ends his Diſcourſe on the Marriage of Princeſs Elizabeth.

[373] What followed was, that about a Twelvemonth after the writing of thoſe Diſcourſes, the ſaid Princeſs was married to Frederick, Elector Palatine of the Rhine *, afterwards King of Bohemia; a Match which might have well anſwered all the Advantages expected from it, at leaſt one that had never been attended with ſuch a Series of Calamities, were King James to have been moved, if not through Honour and Power, as a Sovereign, yet through Nature and Affection, as a Father, to have granted them a ſeaſonable Supply againſt their Enemies. Inſtead of which, his indulging, beyond all Apprehenſion of Poſſibility, at leaſt all Production of precedent, a bleſſed peaceable Temper, as his Flatterers called it, to the ſitting down a quiet Spectator of his Childrens Overthrow, and their Fortunes, occaſioned, not only all the lamentable Wars which ſucceeded throughout Germany, to the utter Ruin of his ſaid Son-in-law, and all the Princes who aſſiſted him; but alſo thoſe of his Succeſſor at Home, throughout his own Dominions: For, daring not to draw his Sword, through Fear of offending the Spaniard, he ſat muſing at Home, one while, how to raiſe Money by Privy-Seals, Benevolences, Crown-lands and Woods, either to cram his inſatiable Favourites, or elſe to fit out more prodigal and frivolous Embaſſies, than would, by Arms, have ſettled his Children unmoveably in their Throne; and, at other Times, how to improve [374] his Sovereignty; or pick Quarrels with his Parliaments, and entail them to his Heirs-general.

As for the Prince of Wales, he is ſaid to have firſt encouraged the Prince Elector to attempt his Siſter; deſiring more to head an Army in Germany, than he durſt make ſhew of, and would, no doubt, have been bravely followed: But alas! that Fate, which ſo often ſuffers the unworthy to flouriſh, deprived this Kingdom of Prince Henry, in leſs than a Month after the Arrival of the ſaid Elector. Some have inſinuated, as if the Spaniards, becauſe his Highneſs approved Ralegh's Diſcourſe touching a War with Spain, had a Hand in his untimely End; alledging, that, if Philip the ſecond cut off his own hopeful Son Charles, for but pitying the People of Flanders, it can be no wonder he (or his Son) ſhould promote the Deſtruction of a Stranger, who did ſo far applaud the Advice of Ralegh, as to ſay, No King, but his Father, would keep ſuch a Bird in a Cage. But, from more inteſtine and unnatural Sources, his ſudden Death is ſurmiſed by others to have ſprung; the Diſeaſe being ſo violent, that the Combat of Nature againſt it, in the Strength of Youth (he being almoſt 19 Years of Age) laſted but few Days. Here it is ſomewhat remarkable, that after Sir Theodore Mayerne, with Dr. Butler Hamond, and other moſt eminent Phyſicians, had uſed the utmoſt of their Skill in vain, and had the leaſt Hopes imaginable left of the Prince's Recovery, that theſe ſhould be at laſt centered in ſome Relief that might be had from Sir Walter Ralegh, and that a Cordial from him (a State-Priſoner) ſhould be ſent for, and, with Conſent or Approbation, adminiſtered, when all other Means had failed, and were given over, as we may gather from Sir William Cornwallis, and other Hiſtorians of thoſe Times. As to the Effect, [375] though it came too late, ſo that it might rather prolong Pain than Life for a few Hours, and truly muſt have been a Kind of Miracle to have reſtored one ſo far exhauſted, and on the Point of expiring, for he died the ſame Evening, being the 6th of November 1612: Yet, to obſervant Readers, it is enough to manifeſt, firſt, what high Reputation Sir Walter Ralegh's medicinal Knowledge, through this Cordial, had now gained (and it afterwards encreaſed *) among the moſt ſkilful of the Faculty; [376] and ſecondly, the unſteady and incoherent Opinions which were entertain'd of one and the ſame Man's Loyalty; that he, who was accuſed at his Trial of a Plot to extirpate the Royal Family, [377] ſhould yet be ſo far relied on to ſave it, as to have the Lives firſt of Queen Anne, as was before related, [378] and now of Prince Henry, truſted to his Experiments. But, in a modern Author, we have ſome further Circumſtances of this Paſſage, which I have not elſewhere met with. For, having ſpoken of the particular Eſteem which Prince Henry had contracted for Sir Walter Ralegh, the conſtant Correſpondence he kept with him by Letters and Meſſages, and of the Sollicitations he had ſo repeatedly made to the King for his Liberty, as what might contribute towards his Majeſty's perſonal Prejudice againſt Ralegh, he adds: When the Prince fell into his laſt Illneſs, the Queen ſent to Sir Walter Ralegh for ſome of his Cordial, which ſhe herſelf had taken in a Fever ſome Time before, with remarkable Succeſs. Ralegh ſent it, together with a Letter to the Queen, wherein he expreſs'd a tender Concern for the Prince; and, boaſting of his Medicine, ſtumbled unluckily upon an Expreſſion to this Purpoſe, That it would certainly cure him, or any other, of a Fever, except in Caſe of Poiſon. The Prince dying, tho' he took it; the Queen, in the Agony of her Grief, ſhewed Ralegh's Letter, and laid ſo much Weight on the Expreſſion about Poiſon, that to her dying Day ſhe could never be diſſuaded from the Opinion, that her beloved Son had foul Play done him. If this was true, there might be a Streſs too confidently laid on this Medicine, in ſuppoſing that nothing but Poiſon could releſiſt the Power of it, and perhaps ſome Inadvertency in ſtarting ſuch a Suſpicion in a fond Mother, which (in the ſaid modern Writer's Opinion) there might poſſibly be no Ground for, and might, in the Conſequence, prove fatal to Ralegh himſelf; tho' the ſame Author alſo knew, Ralegh was not the only Man who ſtarted that Suſpicion; for he knew what the Prince's domeſtick Chaplain preach'd at St. James's on the Diſſolution of his Highneſs's Family; and he knew [379] what the Lord Chief Juſtice Coke not long after ſaid in open Court about the poiſoning of Sir Thomas Overbury: That it was to prevent the Diſcovery of another Crime of the ſame Nature, committed upon one of the higheſt Rank, whom he termed a Sweet Prince; and indeed ſeveral Hiſtories of theſe Times make no Secret of it, where they ſhew the Bickerings between Prince Henry and the aforeſaid Favourite Car, in Regard to the Counteſs of Eſſex, not to mention other Motives. However, the Phyſicians about the Prince gave it under their Hands, which was ſpread abroad in ſeveral Copies, that he died of a ſtrong Malignant Fever, after they had anatomiz'd him to amuſe the World (ſays another Writer) and clear the Suſpicion of Poiſon, as if no Venoms could produce the like Effects; while the King, to diſpel the Clouds and Monitors of Sorrow, commanded that no Man ſhould appear at Court in Mourning.

Whatever was the Cauſe of this excellent Prince's Death, Ralegh had no common Share in the Loſs of him; his Highneſs having, but a few Months before he died, obtained Sherborne, with Intention to return it him, as is already obſerv'd; and we are further inform'd, that King James, to ſatisfy his Favourite Car, who was now Viſcount Rocheſter, gave him, inſtead thereof, 25000 l. in Money: So far was the Crown from gaining by this Purchaſe. But now, after the Prince's Death, this Rocheſter got Sherborne of the King again; however (as ſome Kind of Compoſition or Amends) his Majeſty, we are told by Ralegh himſelf, alſo gave his Wife and Son 8000 l. for the ſaid Eſtate. But how it thrived with Rocheſter, is evident enough in the Hiſtories of thoſe Times; where it appears, that in little more than three Years from this Prince's Death, the ſaid Favourite, by the Title of [380] Earl of Somerſet, was arraigned and condemned for that black and ſhameful Buſineſs of poiſoning Sir Thomas Overbury; whereby he not only loſt Sherborne, but all thoſe other Poſſeſſions which the King had ſo laviſhly heaped upon him; for what Merits or Services, may better appear in thoſe Hiſtories, than it is needful they ſhould do here. As to Sherborne, on whom it was next beſtowed, and upon what Conſideration, with the Attempts made after Ralegh's Death by his Son Carew to recover it; ſince the Accounts thereof would carry us too far beyond the Period in theſe Sheets propoſed, and indeed do more properly relate to the Story of the Son, than the Father, I ſhall here refer to an Abſtract thereof, in a brief Memorial of the ſaid Carew Ralegh, at the Bottom of the Page *; for as [381] to his elder Brother Walter, whoſe Right it had firſt been to have purſued whatever Proſpect there [382] was of retrieving the ſaid Eſtate, he died before their Father, as will be more particularly remembered towards the Concluſion of this Work.

But which of theſe two Sons was attended on in his Adventures by Ben Johnſon, is not eaſy to diſtinguiſh from the Words of an Author, who writes, That Johnſon's Mother, having married to her ſecond Huſband a Bricklayer, took her Son from [383] Weſtminſter-School (where he had made a hopeful Progreſs under the learned Camden) and made him work at her Huſband's Trade: 'till being pitied by ſome generous Gentlemen, Camden got him a better Employment; which was to attend or accompany a Son of Sir Walter Ralegh in his Adventures; whereby gaining Experience, he made his Company acceptable among many. Now if this happened before Ben Johnſon took to acting or writing of Plays, as our ſaid Author relates it did, then Sir Walter Ralegh's eldeſt Son was ſcarce old enough to go to School, much leſs upon Adventures. Beſides, this Son never made, that we can hear of, more than one Adventure abroad, from which he never returned; therefore he could not part with his Attendant or Companion Ben Johnſon in the manner our ſaid Author intimates he did after their Return. Then if we ſuppoſe it the other Brother, Carew, he never made any Adventures at all, nor ſtir'd out of England till ſix Years after his Father's Death, and then only upon a ſhort Tour for about a Twelvemonth; which was near thirty Years after Ben Johnſon became a Dramatick Poet or Writer for the Stage; and when he ſeems rather to have wrote himſelf into his Penſion from the Crown, or otherwiſe into ſuch eaſy Circumſtances, as render it unlikely he ſhould attend even on Carew Ralegh in thoſe Sorrows and Difficulties he was then under; and conſequently in the whole, that either one or other ſhould part with him not in cool Blood, as our ſaid Author thinks, after their Return. Had the Time of his going abroad with the younger or the elder Brother been better adjuſted, that Particular of their Parting would need no Regard; ſeeing by what Trifles, what Miſunderſtanding between themſelves, or Miſrepreſentations by others, ſuch Diviſions are made between Perſons, who would, [384] or might otherwiſe be moſt ſerviceable and beneficial to one another.

If Ben Johnſon was of ſuch a ſurly and hypercritical Diſpoſition, as ſome Men's Writings, and indeed ſome of his own, have repreſented him; as it makes ſuch parting the more plauſible, if there had ever been any ſuch Meeting, ſo it is probable it would have diſtill'd with more Acrimony from his Pen, when he was giving a Character of Ralegh as an Author, than that he could find nothing to condemn, either in his Judgment or his Stile.

But as for Ralegh's Temper, to all who had Dependance upon him (and they were very numerous in the Time of his Felicity) eſpecially towards thoſe of any liberal Knowledge and Education, it appears to have been of ſingular Candor and Benignity. There are Examples, further than what have been beforementioned, of his Courteſy, ſuperior to that of many other great Perſons in his Time, towards ſuch Men of Parts as any ways relied on his Patronage or Protection; and publickly aſſerted by thoſe themſelves, who had taſted the Benefits thereof. He has alſo, under his own Hand, recommended ſuch generous Treatment, as moſt coercive, eſpecially to ſuch as live under the Power or Command of others; and exploded the Auſtere, the Imperious Regimen, as what is liable to betray its Practitioners no leſs into Peril than Diſdain; where he ſhews, how contemptibly the Vain, with effectual Sourneſs, counterfeit the Gravity of the Wiſe, becauſe the Shadow of Reverence, thereby obtained, has Power to delude the Eyes only of Underlings; and how thus, the Time wherein by uſing it well, Men might attain to be ſuch as they ought, they uſually miſpend. in ſeeking to appear ſuch as they are not: Yet withal, [385] not only how deceivable, but dangerous a Courſe this is; procuring, inſtead of the Reſpect that was hoped for, more Indignation than was feared. Many other weighty Counſels and uſeful Precautions to this purpoſe, are diſperſed up and down his Writings, both in Print and Manuſcript, which (for brevity) I forbear here to recite.

But here, as Ralegh has been occaſionally mentioned in the Character of an Author, we are reminded, that it is high time he ſhould be conſidered more particularly in that Light; which cannot in any Place more properly be done, than in this ſedentary part of his Life, when moſt of his Works were written. Here then we are arrived at that part of his Story, wherein he will appear, rather a Collegian than a Captive; a Student in a Library, than a Priſoner in the Tower. On this Occaſion, we cannot but reflect, how well ſuch Productions, in ſuch a Situation! Such ſpacious Exerciſes of Genius, in ſuch a contracted State! will prove, that, Tho' the Soul of Man, by a Fly, or a Hair, may be ſeparated from the Body, Tyranny itſelf cannot confine it to the Body; and at the ſame Time, how trifling a calamity Confinement muſt be, to thoſe who have well employed their Liberty. Some Men, impatient under ſo many Years Reſtraint, would have pined obſcurely away by Deſpair; and others with Rage, have made their Bonds more galling: But Ralegh, as in many other Diſaſters, ſo in this, has left us no common Example of an heroick Mind. In him we may obſerve, there is no levelling a ſublime Spirit with the Subalterns of Nature: Preſs it on one part, it will ſtill riſe in another; and be like ſome hardy Plants we have ſeen, whoſe Heads will ſhoot forth and flouriſh in the Sight of Mankind, tho' their Roots are cloſely fettered in Walls of Stone. [386] Happy then are they, who in their Youth have ſo fortified themſelves with Knowledge, and attained to ſuch a Reliſh of Literature, that, whereſoever they are driven by the Perſecutions of Power, they can make the Contemplation of Wiſdom beguile the Senſe of their Sufferings! Who out of the moſt prevailing Examples in all Ages, of Patience and Prudence in all Exigences, can ſet themſelves Leſſons of Fortitude, and Taſks of Imitations! Who can, out of the Misfortunes of others, extract Conſolations for themſelves; or partake in their Proſperity, and make it Tributary to their own Contentment! Such carry with them an infallible, an undeprivable Solace; which can relieve them in Poverty with ineſtimable Treaſure, manumiſe them in Priſon with intellectual Liberty: For the Multitudes of Anxieties which ſurpriſe illiterate and uncultivated Minds, even in the midſt of the moſt ſplendid Affluence or Adulation, are inacceſſible to them, under the darkeſt Clouds of Indigence or Reproach.

That Ralegh, in his greener Years, did attain to ſuch a Taſte of Letters as all his ſucceeding Avocations could never remove; and which proved not only an Ornament to thoſe his earlier and happier Days, but a Relief in his Age and Afflictions, even ſo as to render him under his darker Fortunes and Condition more illuſtrious than he was in his brighteſt Proſperity, may appear by a Survey of his Writings from the juvenile Productions of his Pen, to the more numerous and mature Offsprings of his preſent Confinement. But in this Survey, we think not the ſimple chronological Method will be either needful or acceptable; which tho' eaſieſt and readieſt for tranſcribing, would be moſt crude and disjointed in reading; and yet be incapable of admitting all into their true Order, becauſe we [387] have not the Time that ſeveral of his Pieces were written. Therefore, that we may carry on our Diſcourſe with ſome Coherence, we ſhall attempt at ſuch a Digeſtion as, upon a little Review, will naturally ariſe, or moſt conveniently, at leaſt in this Place, lead us, as out of a flow [...] [...]arden, into the high Road again of publick Action; for I might, perhaps, recommend ſome Variation, in this Arrangement, of the ſame Pieces, if they were to be revived in a uniform and methodical Edition of Sir Walter Ralegh's Works; ſo that the junior Efforts of his Muſe, or more extemporary Products of his epiſtolary Correſpondence might not, as here for Diſpatch, lead up the reſt.

Now as for theſe Productions of his Muſe, ſince ſeveral of them are mentioned in the former part of theſe Sheets, they need be here only recapitulated; as his Poem on Gaſcoign's Steele-glaſs; The Excuſe; The Silent Lover, the Anſwer to Marloe's Paſtoral; with his Poem of Cynthia, and two more on Spencer's Fairy Queen. Since the Time that theſe ſeven were before ſpoken of, I have met with four other ſuch like poetical Pieces, which ſeem alſo to have been compoſed by the ſame Hand, from thoſe elegant Taulologies or Retornellos wherein his Sonnets and Madrigals are uſually ſo correſpondent with one another. Theſe were all written long before this his Impriſonment, as were probably ſome alſo in the Aſhmolean Library; namely, Erroris Reſponſio, and his Anſwer to the Lie, &c. Beſides, we find there is a ſatirical Elegy on the Death of the Treaſurer Cecyll, Earl of Salisbury, written within this Period, likewiſe aſcrib'd to him; and we have ſtill three Pieces more of his Poetry written afterwards, and but a ſhort Time before his own Death. Theſe are of a ſolemn Nature; as his Pilgrim, his Epigram in Alluſion [388] to the Snuff of a Candle; Laſtly, a Divine Stanza, which is call'd his Epitaph.

Next we might ſpeak of thoſe ſhorter Pieces alſo in Proſe, his Letters; and theſe, being written in all parts of his Life, cannot perhaps be improperly [...] this. I have ſeen of them in Print and Manuſcript to the Number of twentyeight: Fourteen or fifteen of them have already been made uſe of in the foregoing Sheets; and the reſt, as they likewiſe are of perſonal Import, will be ſerviceable in the Remainder, ſo they need not be more particularly diſtinguiſh'd in this Place.

But thoſe more continued Compoſitions which were the Reſult of Experience and Occaſion in his ſeveral publick Profeſſions or Engagements of Life, will, perhaps, firſt demand our Obſervation; ſuch as relate to his Character as a Warrior, a Sailor, a Diſcoverer of unknown Countries, and a Politician vers'd in the Intereſt of Nations and the Arts of Government. Among theſe, we may firſt mention his military Diſcourſes; and theſe concern either a Defence of England in particular, or contain general Arguments and Examples of the Cauſes and Reaſons of War among Mankind. On the former Subject, he ſeems to have drawn up ſeveral Remonſtrances which are but ſparingly and ſlowly come to Light. However, from what has before been obſerved, of his having had a principal Hand in the Determinations of the grand Council of War, for putting the Nation in Arms when it was under immediate Apprehenſions of the Spaniſh Invaſion, there is good Reaſon to believe he was alſo the Author of a Treatiſe, containing Notes of Direction for ſuch Defence of the Kingdom: Written three Years before, when the ſaid Enemies were beginning to ſhew their Deſigns. To this Treatiſe was [389] alſo joined a Direction for the beſt and moſt orderly Retreat of an Army, whether in Campaign or Straits. And theſe were then preſented in MS. to the Privy-council. Herein, one Advice is, ſince Frontier Forces are unlikely to prevent an Enemy from landing, that if they ſhould land, through the Deficiency or Abſence of our Shipping (for this is the Force Ralegh was ever for having firſt us'd againſt ſuch foreign Invaſions) it were better by driving or clearing the Country of Proviſions, and temporiſing, to endeavour at growing ſtronger, and rendering the Enemy weaker, than to hazard all by a confuſed and diſorderly Deſcent of the Populace to oppoſe the firſt landing, as their Cuſtom heretofore was. But this, chiefly, among the ſaid Reaſons and Poſitions, for preventing an invading Enemy, was a little before the Approach of the Spaniſh Armada oppugned by Thomas Gibbes, Eſq; Muſter-Maſter-General of her Majeſty's Forces in the Low-Countries, in a Diſcourſe of the beſt Order for repulſing a foreign Force, &c. which he then exhibited in Print. This produced an Anſwer, which, having been found in an old manuſcript Copy among others of Sir Walter Ralegh's Diſcourſes, has lately been publiſhed; and which, by ſeveral Circumſtances therein, agreeing with many in his Life as well as with ſeveral Orders in the aforeſaid Council of War, ſeveral Paſſages in his Hiſtory of the World, and his other Writings, offers may Reaſons to believe it was written by him.

But if we would ſee his Opinion upon this Subject in a more extenſive and univerſal Manner, it muſt be in his Diſcourſes of the original and fundamental Cauſe of natural and neceſſary, arbitrary and cuſtomary, holy and civil Wars; which tho' alſo publiſhed ſeveral Years after his Death, have ſufficient Marks of Genuineneſs upon them. There [390] are other Writings of his beſides, which relate to this Topick. But as War in them is treated of ſubordinately, and rather with reſpect to ſome national Advantages, wherewith it might have been maintained againſt our Enemies as the Poſture of Affairs then was, or the perſonal Behaviour of ſome particular Men, ſo we may think it more proper to ſpeak of them under other Diviſions.

Among theſe, that which admits of his maritime Diſcourſes, may not perhaps be leaſt obſervable, being a Subject ſo ſcarcely handled by Men of ſuch Learning and Experience, yet of ſuch Importance to a People in our Situation. And under this Head, that which ſhould here be perhaps firſt ſpoken of, tho' indeed one of the laſt Pieces he wrote in this State of Durance is, his Diſcourſe of the Invention of Shipping, &c. wherein he treats of the Uſe, Defects, and Improvements thereof; the Strength and Deficiency of the Sea-forces of England, France, Spain and Venice, with five Cauſes of the Riſe of the Hollanders: His Encouragement of a mutual Friendſhip between them and England, as alſo of the Newcaſtle Trade. This might lead us more particularly to his excellent Obſervations and Notes concerning the royal Navy and Sea Service, which he dedicated to the Prince of Wales as is before-mentioned; therefore all we need obſerve more of it in this Place is, that herein he diſcourſes under diſtinct Heads, of the Officers of the Navy, of ſome Errors to be reformed in Ship-building; and others, in harbouring and manning the Fleet; of ſurcharging them with great Ordnance; the Defects in ſheathing and calking; the Abuſes in victualling; Inconveniency of the Cook-rooms of muſtering and preſſing Mariners; of Arms and Munition; and laſtly, of Captains to ſerve in his Majeſty's Ships. With the ſecond Head or Chapter in [391] this Tract, agrees his Letter to Prince Henry before ſpoken of, concerning the Model of a Ship. And in his Introduction to the ſaid Obſervations, as was alſo ſaid, our Author mentions a Diſcourſe of a maritimal Voyage, with the Paſſages and Incidents therein, which he had formerly written to that Prince. This, if it is now in being, muſt, I think, remain ſtill in Manuſcript; for no other Knowledge of it have I elſewhere met with; therefore it has, I fear, endured the ſame Fate with that other Work, probably, more copious and conſiderable, and to which, as what might ſeem deſigned to bring the others into Practice, they may appear only preparatory. This Work, though taken Notice of by no other Author who has written of him, is thus mentioned by himſelf. Of the Art of War by Sea, I have written a Treatiſe to the Lord Henry Prince of Wales. A Subject, to my Knowlege, never handled by any Man ancient or modern: But God has ſpared me the Labour of finiſhing it, by the Loſs of that brave Prince; of which, like an Eclipſe of the Sun, we ſhall find the Effects hereafter. Impoſſible it is to equal Words and Sorrows: I will therefore leave him in the Hands of God that hath him: Curae leves loquuntur; ingentes ſtupent. This may lead us up to ſuch of his Diſcourſes as repreſent this Art in Execution, particularly thoſe two gallant naval Actions wherein Sir Richard Greenvil loſt his Life, and himſelf won a moſt ſignal Victory, of which his own Pen has preſerved the faithful Memorials in his Report of the Truth of the Fight about the Iſles of Azores, and his epiſtolary Account of the Action at Cadiz; both of them before abſtracted into this Work. Nor did his Care terminate in the beſt Advice for the Regulation and Maintenance of our Shipping, or in recording ſome of the moſt notable Atchievements performed therewith, [392] but extended to the Choice and Reparation of the moſt convenient Harbours for their Reception; and that not only by his Speeches in Parliament, as we have already ſeen, but alſo by a Memorial he preſented to Queen Elizabeth, touching the Port of Dover in particular; declaring how honourable and profitable to her Majeſty, how neceſſary and commodious for the Realm, the rebuilding it would be; with the leaſt expenſive, and moſt perfect manner of performing the ſame.

But if we advance to his more extenſive purſuits and performances relating to that Topick, they will lead us into a new Geography, into Diſcoveries and Deſcriptions of unknown Countries, with the Voyages which himſelf and others under his charge and directions made to that Purpoſe. And under this Head would fall thoſe Papers and Diſcourſes of his, concerning the Diſcovery, Plantation, and Settlement of Virginia, which were in the Poſſeſſion of Sir Francis Walſingham, as was before obſerved; but whether now recoverable I know not, nor what is become of his Treatiſe of the Weſt Indies, which ſeems to have been a very comprehenſive Work, by the ſhort Sketch himſelf has given of its Contents before quoted.

Better Luck ſeems to have befall'n his Writings upon Guiana; for we have at leaſt four of his Diſcourſes on that Country in being, though they, probably, are not all he writ thereon; as firſt, his Conſiderations on the Voyage for Guiana, which I never ſaw in Print. Secondly, his Diſcovery of the large, rich, and beautiful Empire of Guiana, which he printed himſelf, and being, before, largely uſed and ſpoken of, the leſs need be ſaid of it here. Thirdly, his Journal of his ſecond Voyage to Guiana. This remains ſtill in Manuſcript, and perhaps ſhould do ſo; it being unfiniſhed and full of Chaſms, [393] ſeeming to contain only Notes and Obſervations for his own Memory, when he ſhould have leiſure at his return into England to digeſt and fill up the Particulars in a continued Diſcourſe: Accordingly it ſeems to have ſupply'd him therewith, when he wrote his Apology for the ſaid Voyage. But as both theſe will be made uſe of in the ſubſequent part of our Narrative, 'twill be then time enough to ſpeak more diſtinctly of them. And there alſo will be mention'd the four or five Letters we have of his extant concerning the ſaid laſt Expedition.

After his writings, becoming the Character of an able Commander both by Land and ſea, if we look for him as an Author in the Civil or Political Capacity, we may find him there alſo no leſs eminent; we may behold him in this light no leſs qualified to govern Nations, than in the other to conquer and defend them. Some of his Compoſitions under this Diſtribution, are of a general Nature; as that call'd the Seat of Government, ſhewing it to be upheld by the two great Pillars of Civil Juſtice and Martial Policy; and how this is fram'd out of the Huſbandmen, Merchants and Gentry of the Realm. The reſt of theſe Ranks or Degrees he calls the Fruit Trees of the Kingdom; or thoſe who gather the Honey, yet hardly enjoy the Wax: And as theſe feed, ſo the ſecond Sort enrich it; nouriſhing ſuch Trades as have aſſiſted our Kings with great Sums of Money, and great Fleets, upon Occaſion; while the third Sort, our Gentry, he calls the Garriſons of good Order throughout the Realm; or means rather they have been, or ſhould be ſuch, more than they were in theſe latter Times, to agree with a Note he has elſewhere dropt upon them. But this little Eſſay appears, by one Expreſſion towards the Concluſion (mentioning ſomething to be hereafter proved [394] which is not) to be no more than a Fragment. The like we apprehend of his Obſervations concerning the Cauſes of the Magnificency and Opulency of Cities, from a Word in the very firſt Paragraph, referring to ſuch People as ſeem to have been before mentioned. Tho' in the main this is a general Diſcourſe, it bears ſome particular References to a rude and barbarous People; and might poſſibly be the Reſult of ſuch Conſiderations as muſt have engaged his Mind, when thoſe Propoſitions were on foot for founding the City of Ralegh in Virginia, as was before intimated. In this little Eſſay, after having ſpoken of the Means to civilize and reform ſuch a People, he proceeds, under diſtinct Heads, to treat of the beſt Situations of Cities for Safety and Plenty; of the Multitude of Inhabitants, Religion, Academies, Courts of Juſtice, Artificers, Privileges and Triumphs; ſo concludes with thoſe three Cauſes of confirming a City in her Greatneſs, Juſtice, Peace and Plenty. Of a more extenſive Nature ſtill is that Treatiſe we have of his, called Maxims of State; being a methodical Compendium of Government in all or moſt of its Forms and Branches; with many of its Chapters analytically digeſted for the ſake of Brevity and Perſpicuity. Herein having explain'd and defin'd the Words Government, Policy, State and the Office of Soveraignty, he proceeds to diſtinguiſh the feveral Sorts of Monarchy, Ariſtocracy, Free State, Tyranny, Oligarchy and Commonwealth. Then of the founding a State, with its Parts, and of preſerving it under thoſe ſeveral Forms, by Myſteries or Sophiſms, Rules or Actions. Laſtly, the Converſion of States, general and particular, by foreign Invaſion, domeſtick Sedition, or Alteration without Violence. Thus ends this Treatiſe; to which is joined, as a kind of Corollary [395] for the better uſe of the Book, two or three Paſſages in the Story of David: From whence an Inference is drawn, that old Age is not always unfit for Government; and alſo a defence of that Prince for marrying Abiſhag: So cloſes with a portrait of political Nobility, in the Story of Adonijah aſpiring to the Kingdom; with Obſervations of the Marks to diſcern ſuch Practices; and another of the Political Prince, in a farther Example of the ſaid King David; who, tho' aged, deſerted, and rebell'd againſt by many of his Nobles, ſtirr'd up himſelf to publick Action, and thereby ſhew'd his Vigour and Sufficiency to manage the Affairs of his Kingdom. Herewith may be mention'd that larger Treatiſe bordering upon theſe Subjects, which is call'd The Arts of Empire, &c. *but handled in a different Manner. It is divided into twenty-ſix Chapters, defining publick Weals, and Differencies of Sovereignty; more particularly the three Kinds of Monarchy, and how to perpetuate them. Alſo of Councils and Counſellors, Officers, Commiſſioners, [396] Magiſtrates and Miniſters of State. Of Juſtice, Treaſure and War. Of Neighbouring Princes. The Character of an Excellent Prince. Art of Ruling. Of princely Authority, Power and Force. Of Conſpiracy and Treaſon, publick Hatred, Diffidence and Diſſimulation. Of War, defenſive and invaſive, Law of Arms, Soldiers and their Diſcipline. Of Generals and Commanders, Councils of War, Directions tactic and ſtratagemic; with Advice how to make an honourable Peace. Of Civil War; with the Cauſes and Remedies thereof. And the two laſt Chapters contain a Collection of Political Obſervations, and Maxims of State; or prudential Grounds and polemical Precepts concerning all States and Forms of Policy, &c. confirm'd by ſelect Narrations and hiſtorical Precepts.

But if we deſcend to thoſe political Writings of our Author, which were occaſionally compos'd; and with more particular Regard to the Exigents of State in his own Time, through the Virtues of a penetrating Eye into the Drifts of every neighbouring Nation, and an undiſcourageable Heart for the Security and Intereſt of his own; we ſhall find them ſtill more numerous. And theſe, as they moſt of them have a ſpecial Regard to Spain, might proceed from the perfect Knowledge he had of that Kingdom and its tyrannical Practices. One Inſtance hereof we have in that Diſcourſe of The Spaniards Cruelties to the Engliſh in Havanna; which is aſcrib'd to Sir Walter Ralegh, with other Tracts, in a Volume among the Manuſcripts of a late Perſon of Honour. His many other Obſervations of this Kind might well produce his Conſultation about the Peace with Spain, and our protecting the Netherlands, of which ſome Account has been before given; as alſo that other Treatiſe, [397] How War may be made with Spain and the Indies, mention'd in the ſame Place. Directions for ſuch an Enterprize may be eaſily preſumed to have been effectually enough given by the ſame Hands that was alſo Author of The preſent State of Spain, with a moſt accurate Account of his Catholick Majeſty's Power and Riches: Alſo the Names and Worth of the moſt conſiderable Perſons in that Kingdom: A Manuſcript which I have not hitherto been ſo ſucceſsful as to meet with. Yet take it to be a different Performance from that alſo written by our Author, and entitled, The preſent State of Things, as they now ſtand between the three Kingdoms, France, England, and Spain; whereof there is a Copy in being. *Further, it was this intimate Knowledge he had in the State of all the European Princes, which ſo well qualified him to give the approved Advice he did in thoſe two Diſcourſes he wrote upon The Match propounded by the Savoyan, between the Lady Elizabeth and the Prince of Piedmont: And that between Prince Henry of England, and a Daughter of Savoy, of which we have ſeveral manuſcript Copies, and, as I have heard, the original alſo extant. The ſame Knowledge likewiſe, enabled him ſo dexterouſly to eviſcerate the corrupt Doctrines, and pernicious Deſigns of the Papiſts, in his Dialogue between a Jeſuit and a Recuſant; ſhewing how dangerous their Principles are to Chriſtian Princes. Another excellent Tract we have of his in this Way of Writing is, his Dialogue between a Counſellor of [398] State, and a Juſtice of Peace, better known in the printed Copies, by the Title of his Prerogative of Parliaments; dedicated with a true and generous Spirit of Wiſdom and Loyalty to King James. Theſe two Dialogues will give a perfect Taſte of our Author's Manner in theſe his leſſer Compoſitions, and are anſwerable to the Character before deliver'd of his Conſultation about the Peace, abovemention'd. The laſt Tract we have to ſpeak of under this Partition, except perhaps a ſhort unprinted Diſcourſe of the Words Law and Right alſo aſcribed to him, and to be found in the Aſhmolean Library, is intitled, Obſervations touching Trade and Commerce with the Hollander, and other Nations, as it was preſented to King James; wherein is prov'd, that our Sea and Land Commodities ſerve to enrich and ſtrengthen other Countries againſt our own. But as there are ſome Reaſons to doubt whether Sir Walter Ralegh was the Author of this Treatiſe, I need ſay no more of it in this Place; yet ſhall throw them into a Corner of the Page, * [399] where they may leaſt interrupt the progreſſive View of his remaining Writings.

[400] Theſe we ſhall divide but into two Parts, and then perhaps one of them may be beſt comprehended under the Topic of Philoſophy. This Way ſeems to look, by its Subject, that ſhort Treatiſe of the Soul aſcrib'd to Sir Walter Ralegh, whereof there is a Copy preſerved among the Aſhmolean Manuſcripts. It was never publiſh'd, I think, and I have not yet ſeen it; therefore can ſay no more, at preſent, of it. But we have in Print, another Treatiſe which may be admitted under this Head, being built on the Doctrine of Pyrrho the Greek Philoſopher, entitled, Sir Walter Ralegh's Sceptick or Speculations. This Doctrine, ſhewing how much may be ſaid for and againſt the ſame Things; ſuch an ingenious Exemplification of it as this little Tract contains, may, if diſcreetly uſed, prevent many raſh, dogmatical Determinations, [401] and inure us to a wary or prudent Suſpence of Judgment: For the Sceptick, as our Author deſcribes him, does neither affirm nor deny any Poſition, but doubts of it, and oppoſes Reaſons againſt that which is affirm'd or deny'd, to juſtify his not conſenting; becauſe he may report how Things appear, but whether they are ſo he knows not. This little Tract, as it is here handled, relates chiefly to our Senſes; but another we have, upon a more dignified Topic, as concerning our Manners, or Virtues and Vices; therefore what might be more particularly ſubdivided under the Diſtinction of Moral Philoſophy; and it is call'd, Inſtructions to his Son, and Poſterity. A Treatiſe well becoming an Author, who had ſeen the World in ſo many Climates, and Life in ſo many Changes. It is written in a perſpicuous Style, with forcible Arguments, and on the moſt practical Subjects. Theſe are interſperſed with ſeveral memorable Admonitions, the Fruits of his particular Experience, therefore may claim a Part in his perſonal Hiſtory; and being apt to rivet in the Mind, may prove of conſtant Uſe and Service; as touching upon the moſt incidental Engagements in Life. Thus, in his firſt Chapter upon the Choice of Friends, he ſays: Tho' I perſuade thee to aſſociate with thy Betters, or at leaſt with thy Peers; yet remember always, that thou venture not thy Eſtate with any of thoſe Great Ones who ſhall attempt unlawful Things; for ſuch Men labour for themſelves, and not for thee; thou ſhall be ſure to impart with them in the Danger, but not in the Honour; and to venture a ſure Eſtate at preſent, in hopes of a better in future, is mere Madneſs: Beſides, great Men forget ſuch as have done them ſervice when they have obtained what they would, and will rather hate thee for ſaying, thou haſt been a means of their Advancement, [402] than acknowledge it. I could give thee a thouſand Examples; I myſelf know it, and have taſted it in all the Courſe of my Life. From his next Chapter, on the Choice of a Wife, we have before given Extracts in this Work. His third, againſt Flatterers, ends with this Reflection: Thou may'ſt be ſure, that he, who in private will tell thee of thy Faults, is thy Friend; for he adventures thy miſlike, and hazards thy hatred: Few can endure it, every Man for the moſt part delighting in Self-praiſe; one of the moſt univerſal Follies which bewitches Mankind. From the fourth Chapter on private Quarrels we have already given a Taſte; and here, the chief Caution he further urges to prevent the Inconveniences thereof, is ever to beware of unadviſed Speech. He that cannot refrain from much ſpeaking, ſays he, is like a City without Walls. And a little further, In all that ever I obſerved in the courſe of worldly Things, I ever found, that Mens Fortunes are oftner made by their Tongues than by their Virtues, and more Mens Fortunes overthrown thereby alſo, than by their Vices. In the fifth Chapter, among the Rules recommended to preſerve an Eſtate, the moſt preſſing is againſt Suretiſhip; adviſing rather to give a part of what a Man has, than live in continual Apprehenſion of loſing both it and his Friend. If thou art bound, ſays he, for a Stranger, thou art a Fool; if for a Merchant, thou putteſt thy Eſtate to learn to ſwim; if for a Churchman, he has no Inheritance; if for a Lawyer, he will find an Evaſion by a Syllable or a Word to abuſe thee; if for a poor Man, thou muſt pay it thyſelf, if for a rich one, he needs it not: Therefore from Suretiſhip as from a Man-ſlayer or Enchanter, bleſs thyſelf; for the beſt Profit and Return will be this, that if thou force him for whom thou art bound, to pay it himſelf, he will become thy [403] Enemy; if thou ſhalt chuſe to pay it thyſelf, thou wilt be a Beggar: and believe thy Father in this, and print it in thy Thoughts; that whatever Virtue thou haſt, be it never ſo manifold, if thou be poor withal, thou and thy Qualities ſhall be deſpiſed. In the ſixth Chapter, upon Servants, he has this Advice: If thou truſt any Servant with thy Purſe, be ſure thou take his Accompt e'er thou ſleep; for if thou put it off, thou wilt then, afterwards, for Tediouſneſs neglect it; I myſelf have thereby loſt more than I am worth. Whatever thy Servant gains thereby, he will never thank thee, but laugh thy Simplicity to ſcorn; beſides, 'tis the Way to make thy Servants Thieves, who elſe would be honeſt. The ſeventh Chapter is only a Word or two againſt exceeding in the Bravery of gay Garments, as what will ſoon wear out of Faſhion, when Money in the Purſe will always be in Faſhion. The eighth is upon Riches (and as it ſeems by the Beginning, ſhould follow the Fifth) herein exhorting againſt the Attainment of them by baſe or evil Means, he charges his Son, as, never to deſtroy any Man for his Wealth, ſo, by no Means further to impoveriſh the Poor; but above all Things, to exerciſe Compaſſion towards them, as the beſt Way to Proſperity and Peace of Mind. Uſe, ſays he, thy poor Neighbours and Tenants well; pine not them and their Children, to add Superfluity and needleſs Expences to thyſelf. He that has Pity on another Man's Sorrow, ſhall be free from it himſelf; he that delights in, and ſcorns the Miſery of another, ſhall, one Time or other fall into it himſelf. The ninth is againſt the Inconveniencies of delighting in Wine, as being the greateſt Enemy to Health, Truſt, Honour and Preferment; and the laſt Chapter begins thus: Now for the World, I know it too well, to perſuade thee to dive into the Practices thereof; rather ſtand upon thy own Guard againſt all that [404] tempt the thereunto, or may practiſe upon thee in thy Conſcience, thy Reputation, or thy Purſe; reſolve that no Man is wiſe or ſafe, but he that is honeſt. So concludes with adviſing him to make God his Director in all his Actions.

With theſe Inſtructions to his Son, which have, I think, been oftner printed than moſt other of our Author's leſſer Pieces; there is uſually joined, in all the Editions I have ſeen, The dutiful Advice of a loving Son to his aged Father. 'Tis a Religious and Rhetorical Exhortation to prepare for his latter End; written in a general Manner, but how probably by our Author, or by either of his Sons, it is left to the critical and diſcerning Reader. All the Works I have met with further aſcribed to Sir Walter Ralegh, bearing any Affinity with this Claſs, are two Manuſcripts, which might be diſtinguiſhed under the Branch of Natural Philoſophy.

The firſt is his Treatiſe Of Mines, and the Trial of Minerals; a Subject on which he very probably might write, both from his own Obſervations in the Weſt-Indies, and thoſe Engagements he might alſo have in his Native County of Devon, with his Brother Sir Adrian Gilbert, who firſt, in Queen Elizabeth's Reign, begun to work the long neglected Mines in Comb-Martin (whence King Edward III. had ſupply'd his Wars againſt France) and was followed by Sir Beavis Bulmer, who from thoſe Mines recovered a great Quantity of Silver, out of which, he cauſed two maſſy Goblets to be made; one whereof was preſented to the Earl of Bath; and the other, weighing one hundred thirty ſeven Ounces, to the Lord Mayor of London in the 35th of the Queen's Reign. So that what Cicero ſays to his Friend of this Iſland, that it yielded not a Drachm of that Metal, was falſe in [405] Ralegh's Time, and what he could not be ſure was true in his own. But whether the ſaid Treatiſe is ſo particular as to mention any Thing of this I know not, having never ſeen it. The ſecond Manuſcript is Sir Walter Ralegh's Collection of Chymical and Medicinal Receipts for fixing Mercury, preparing Antimony, and for the Cure of ſeveral Diſeaſes. His Application to Studies of this Kind, may perhaps be ſomewhat accountable from the Patronage, which, as in a Note before cited, it appears he had ſhewn to John Heſter, the famous Chymiſt, with the Converſation there might probably paſs between them, and the Knowledge he had learn'd from the Guianians of curing all manner of Poiſons, &c. 'Tis apparent, that he beſtowed ſome portion of his Time upon the Uſe of Lembicks and Crucibles while he was in the Tower, and ſeems to have had a kind of Laboratory there for his ſaid Operations. A view of him in this light will explain the Expreſſion in a Character of him given by Dr. Joſeph Hall, the venerable Biſhop of Norwich (whom Sir H. Wotton calls the Engliſh Seneca) where he ſpeaks (among other Things, which will be hereafter obſerv'd) of Sir Walter Ralegh's Philoſophical Experiments in the Tower. And other Authors might be produced, who, in their Character of him, alſo refer to his profound Knowledge in the Myſteries of Nature, or his Inveſtigations thereof, through the Animal, Vegetable, and Mineral World, for the Benefit of his Countrymen, notwithſtanding ſome memorable Attempts to advance their Proſperity in the Political World, had met with much Diſcouragement: As if, tho' he could not abſolutely recover them from ſome Indiſpoſitions or Corruptions of the Mind, he was hereby reſolved to try how ſerviceable and ſucceſsful he could be againſt the Maladies of their Body.

[406] How elaborately ſoever many of theſe Pieces are allowed by others to have been written, our Author looked upon them but as little Excurſions, or Sallies, as he calls them, from his grand Labour, I mean that Ocean of Hiſtory, wherein he has outdone all that went before him, and given ſuch Lights to Futurity as muſt ever be grateful. A Voyage, which, If begun even in the Dawn of his Day, when the Light of Knowledge firſt broke out upon his younger Years, and before any Wound received, either from Fortune or Time, he might yet well have doubted (as he obſerves himſelf) that the Darkneſs of Age and Death would have overtaken him long before the Performance. But being undertaken, as it was, in the Evening of a tempeſtuous Life, a Life ſo far run out in Travels and Conſiderations of ſuch oppoſite Nature; for one under the ſoul-piercing Privations of Honour, Fortune, Freedom! One buried alive! to attempt ſuch a univerſal Revival of the Dead! And, while his Body, under all thoſe preſſures, was ſo long incarcerated, for his Brain to be delivered of that Minerva, as one calls it, his Hiſtory of the World! is an Example, that might puzzle ſuch an Hiſtorian even as Ralegh himſelf to parallel. For, beginning at the Creation, he has given us the Flower of recorded Story down to the End of the ſecond Macedonian War. Thus having reviewed the three firſt Monarchies of the World, he leaves Rome in the fourth, Triumphant, about a Century and a half before the Birth of Chriſt, comprehending a period of near four thouſand Yeas. This Work was divided by our Author into five Books, who annexed to it a very copious and uſeful Chronological Table; and it was with the further Decorations of Maps, Tables of Genealogy, &c. publiſh'd in the Month of April, juſt before the Meeting of the Parliament, in a [407] large Volume, Folio, 1614. The Approbation it has met with ſince the Author's Death has been ſo univerſal, that if they are different Editions of the Book to which we may ſee different Dates printed, we may venture to ſay, no Work, of any Author in England, has been ſo often reprinted that is of equal Size and Antiquity. The ſeveral Characters and Commendations which have been beſtow'd on this Hiſtory as well by miſcellaneous Writers, who have frequently quoted it with great Deference and Reſpect, as by Hiſtorians and Criticks, who have cloſely traced and throughly examin'd it; and as well in Verſe, as Proſe; would be too numerous to be here inſerted, could they be recover'd. To provide therefore as well againſt the Ignorance as the Satiety of thoſe Readers who have not met with them, a few are preſented in the Annotation here directed to. *

[408] He took no ordinary Care to deſerve theſe Encomiums; for beſides his own Learning, Knowledge [409] and Judgment, which many would have thought ſufficient for any Undertaking, he with that Caution, wherewith we have beheld ſo many others of his great Enterprizes temper'd, would ſuffer no Part of this Hiſtory to paſs his own Hand, before ſome of the moſt able Scholars, whom he aſſemhled, it ſeems, for this Purpoſe, had debated the Parts he was moſt doubtful of, and they moſt converſant in, before him. Thus in the Moſaic and Oriental Antiquities, or fainter and more remote Footſteps of Time, he would ſometimes conſult the learned Dr. Robert Burhill. In all Parts of Chronology, Geography, and other Branches of mathematical Science, he wanted not the Opinions of the learned Hariot, and the Earl of Northumberland's three Magi, long his Neighbours in the Tower; and wherever he ſcrupled any Thing in the Phraſe or Diction, he would hear the acute and ingenious Sir John Hoſkyns, ſometime alſo Reſident in theſe Confines; who viewed and reviewed the ſaid Hiſtory, as we are told, before it went to the Preſs, and whom Ben Johnſon, [410] proud of calling others his Sons, could gratify that Humour in calling Father. Thus having ſpared no Labour, and neglected no Means to bring this Work to the Perfection wherein we behold it, 'tis no Wonder that ſome Scribbler or other ſhould, upon finding it ſo univerſally read, endeavour to raiſe himſelf a little Profit or Credit from it, by pretending that the World needed an Abridgment of its Hiſtory, as if that wherewith Sir Walter Ralegh has preſented us, either is, or was intended for any Thing more. But this more ſpecious Kind of Detraction meeting with no Countenance, the Author of it threw out another, of Animadverſions upon this Hiſtory; but as inſignificant and no leſs diſregarded than the other, being agreeable to that unhappy Spirit of Contradiction which ever harraſs'd him to oppoſe the greateſt Writers in his Time.

But that which is more conſiderable concerning this Hiſtory is, whether our Author ever continued it down to his own Times; and whether, on ſome Pretence that this firſt Part did not meet with Encouragement, he ever deſtroyed the ſaid Continuation himſelf, as we have it in the Mouths of every Body when they ſpeak of him, but in the Belief of no-body who knows any Thing of his Story or his Character. All that he ſays himſelf, in the leaſt glancing this Way, is firſt in his Preface, That he propoſed to confine his Diſcourſe with this our renowned Iſle of Great-Britain. And That he forbears to promiſe a ſecond or third Volume, which he intends if the firſt receives Grace and good Acceptance, for that which is already done may be thought enough and too much. Laſtly, in the Concluſion of the Hiſtory he ſays, Whereas this Book by the Title calls itſelf The firſt Part of the General Hiſtory of the World, implying a ſecond and third Volume, which I alſo intended and have hewn out; beſides many [411] Diſcouragements perſuading my Silence, it has pleaſed God to take that glorious Prince out of the World to whom they were directed; whoſe unſpeakable and never-enough lamented Loſs has taught me to ſay with Job, Verſa eſt in luctum cithera mea, & organum meum in vocem flentium. From hence it ſeems plain enough, that our Author had only ſome Plan, or perhaps a few rough Draughts of ſome ſucceeding Parts of the Hiſtory at this Time drawn up, and that he was diſcouraged from making any further Progreſs in them. Allowing his Mind might change, and that there was Time enough to finiſh the remaining Volumes between this Year, and that of his Death, which is ſcarcely allowable; yet as we know how moſt of that Time was employ'd by him, it will admit of no room for any ſuch Performance. For in 1615, the Year which followed that wherein he publiſh'd his Hiſtory, two at leaſt of his moſt elaborate Tracts beforemention'd were written. The ſame Year he was alſo buſy in writing Letters, and making other Intereſt for his Releaſement, which he obtain'd before it was quite expired. After this, it will no leſs appear, that he made himſelf too eminently the ſubject of modern Hiſtory, to be any further an Author of that which is ancient. There is, indeed, a little Intimation of the Deſign he had upon ſome ancient Part of our Engliſh Story, preſerved in a Letter of his own, written it ſeems, tho' undated, before his great Work was publiſh'd, to that Acquaintance, whoſe Library was moſt likely to accommodate him with thoſe uncommon Books which he wanted for his Purpoſe. This Letter is as follows. Sir Robert Cotton, If you have any of theſe old Books, or any Manuſcripts wherein I may find any of our Britiſh Antiquities; if you pleaſe to lend them me for a little [412] while, I will ſafely reſtore them, and think myſelf much beholden unto you: Or if you have any old French Hiſtory, wherein our Nation is mentioned; or any elſe, in what Language ſoever. (So ſubſcribes himſelf) Your poor Friend, W. Ralegh. But this does not ſufficiently aſſure us, whether the Uſe of theſe Books was to continue his General Hiſtory, or furniſh him upon ſome more particular Subject, however, we may incline with the Writer of Sir Robert Cotton's Life to the former Opinion. And as for the Reaſons of one ingenious Author, why Sir Walter Ralegh was the moſt proper Perſon to write the Hiſtory of his own Time; and the Opinion of another, That his admirable Performance, already publiſhed, ſufficiently ſhews, that if he had attempted the Hiſtory of his own Country, or his own Times, he would have excell'd even Livy or Thucydides; and that the Annals of Queen Elizabeth by his Pen, without diminiſhing from the ſerious and judicious Camden, had been the brighteſt Glory of her Reign; and would have tranſmitted his Hiſtory as the Standard of our Language, even to the preſent Age: Theſe are ſtill no Affirmatives that he did finiſh ſuch a ſecond Part. So that his own Intimations in the firſt Part, reſerv'd and inconcluſive as they are, ſeem to have been the only Foundation of that formal Story, How Sir Walter Ralegh, a few Days before his Death, ſent for Walter Burre, the Bookſeller who had printed his firſt Volume, and taking him by the Hand, aſked him, How that Work of his had ſold? who anſwer'd, So ſlowly that it had undone him; hereupon Ralegh ſtepping to his D ſk, reach'd out the other Part of his Hiſtory, which he had brought down to the Times he liv'd in, then ſaying, with a Sigh, Ah Friend! has the firſt Part undone thee? the ſecond Volume ſhall undo no more; this ungrateful [413] World is unworthy of it; ſo ſtept to the Fire, threw it in, and ſet his Foot on it till it was conſum'd. But, as we obſerved before, Ralegh had no Leiſure to finiſh ſuch a Second Part of his Hiſtory down to his own Time. In the next Place, 'tis no ways probable that he, who, in Regard to the firſt Part, could follow the Rule of Seneca; that he, who having ſatisfied his own Conſcience, could diſregard the Cenſure of others, ſhould ſacrifice ſo great a Part of his Labours, or any Part, in ſuch a raſh and inconſiderate Manner, to the ſudden Repreſentations of a Bookſeller, without ever ſuſpecting any mercenary Ends in him. Further, it does not appear true that the firſt Part did ſell ſlowly, for there was a ſecond Edition of it ſet forth by that very Bookſeller, within three Years after the firſt; and laſtly, the firſt Man we can meet with who reports the ſame, is a trifling and ſuperficial Writer, who produces no Authority for his Aſſertion.

As to the unfiniſh'd Parts he might have of ſuch a Continuation, to admit that they were thus deſtroy'd would, moreover, in no wiſe agree with an Account we have more ſatisfactorily atteſted of that great Quantity there was in Being of Sir Walter Ralegh's unprinted Writings, ſeveral Years after his Death. For it is affirm'd to us, That the famous Mr. Hamden, a little before the Civil Wars, was at the Charge of tranſcribing 3452 Sheets of Sir Walter Ralegh's Manuſcripts, as the Amanuenſis himſelf told me (ſays my Author) who had his cloſe Chamber, his Fire and Candle, with an Attendant to deliver him the Originals, and take his Copies as faſt as he could write them. Yet what is become of this Treaſure now, I have not been able to learn; for, if we ſuppoſe that Mr. Hamden would not be at the Trouble and Charge of tranſcribing any of [414] our Author's Writings which had then been printed; and grant that all of his which have been printed ſince that Time, as well as all we can hear of remaining in MS. which are allow'd to be his, were Part of that Collection or Quantity, they will not, both join'd together, as might be computed from what is here obſerved of them, amount to a fourth Part thereof, tho' we ſhould admit two or three Pieces more, alſo aſcribed to him, which have not yet been named, and happen to fall under his hiſtorical Diviſion. The Firſt of them is call'd, A notable and memorable Story of the cruel War between the Carthaginians and their own Mercenaries: Gather'd out of Polybius and other Authors, by that famous Hiſtorian Sir Walter Ralegh. The other two Pieces might ſeem to fall within the intended Continuation of his Univerſal Hiſtory; but the firſt of them, call'd The Life and Death of Mahomet; the Conqueſt of Spain; together with the Riſing and Ruin of the Saracen Empire, aſcribed to Sir Walter Ralegh near twenty Years after his Death, by the Bookſeller who dedicated it to his Son, is, except a few Leaves about that of Mahomet, no more than a Tranſlation of an Epitomy made by ſome ignorant Spaniſh Author, chiefly from what one of his own fabulous Countrymen had written of a fictitious Prince named Jacob Almanſor, as I have been aſſur'd by a Gentleman of great Knowledge both in the Spaniſh and Oriental Writers. But the Stile itſelf, ſo uncouth in ſome Places, ſo meagre in others, and incorrect, eſpecially in known Things, Places, and Perſons, might of itſelf exclude our Author from having any hand it. The other Piece is ſtiled, An Introduction to a Breviary of the Hiſtory of England; with the Reign of King William I. entitled the Conqueror, written by Sir Walter Ralegh. It was near [415] fourſcore Years after his Death before this was publiſh'd. Yet there are ſeveral old manuſcript Copies of it in the Libraries of the Curious, which entitle him the Author of it; but it was written at leaſt two Years before he publiſh'd his Hiſtory of the World, becauſe it was inſcribed to a Perſon who died ſo long before the ſaid Publication, in theſe Words: I intend by the Help of God and your Furtherance, right noble Earl of Saliſbury, to write a brief Hiſtory of England from William the Firſt, entitled the Conqueror, to the End of Queen Elizabeth of perpetual Memory. But by then his Hiſtory of the World was finiſh'd, he was, as we have obſerved, alſo from his own Words, diſcouraged from all Continuation. To theſe Diſcouragements might be added, the ungrateful Treatment which was ſhewn to this Part he did publiſh, at its firſt Appearance: For tho' we have obſerved what univerſal Approbation it has met with ſince the Author's Death; yet how it was rereceiv'd as ſoon as it came abroad and made its firſt Viſits at Court, we are yet to relate.

Thoſe, who thought the King muſt needs be a Patron of Authors becauſe he was one of the Number, have been ready to inſinuate, that his Favour encreaſed towards Ralegh in Proportion to the Proofs his Pen had given of his Abilities; therefore, that his many excellent Writings, and eſpecially this Hiſtory of the World, were the moſt powerful Interceſſors for his Releaſment out of the Tower; as if his Majeſty, in reſpect to his own Honour, thought it in vain longer to confine his Perſon, ſince no Condition could confine his Fame; or, in Regard to Ralegh's Merit, that he had well deſerved no Place ſhould be a Barrier to his Liberty, who had given ſuch extraordinary Teſtimony that no Age could ſet a Bound to his Knowledge. Sanderſon [416] has deſcrib'd the Freedom which not long after enſu'd, to one of thoſe Motives; where he ſays, Sir Walter Ralegh, wearied with long Impriſonment, and having there ſpent his Time well in the Hiſtory of the World, made his Petition more paſſable to the King; whoſe Love to Learning granted him now at laſt his Liberty; and, not long after, Leave to wander after a Deſign to the Weſtern World, where he had been in ſeveral Climates before. But others, who ſeem to have known the Matter much better, or have more ingenuouſly imparted it, aſſure us, that Ralegh's excellent Talents were ſo far from ingratiating him with the King, that tho' his Majeſty had been intemperately praiſed by Flatterers for ſome of the weakeſt of his own Compoſitions, yet he could not forbear, out of an impertinent Emulation, to affect Sir Walter Ralegh the leſs, becauſe of the great Repute which followed him for his excellent Pen. Nay, we are elſewhere told, in Anſwer to Sanderſon above, that Ralegh's Hiſtory of the World gave the King ſo much Diſpleaſure, that at its firſt Publication it was forbid; and particularly, for ſome Paſſages in it which offended the Spaniard; as alſo for being too plain with the Faults of Princes in his Preface. For it is, indeed, repleniſh'd with many remarkable Examples of divine Vengeance pour'd forth on Princes of many other Nations as well as our own, who ſtrove to eſtabliſh their Thrones by Oppreſſion and Iniquity. That Paſſage in Anſwer to Sanderſon, is ſo far from being deny'd by this Writer, that he afterwards confirm'd it in Contradiction to what himſelf had written as above, about Ralegh's Petition being made more paſſable by his Hiſtory; where, after his groſs Manner of Interpretation, he ſays, King James and all other Princes had Cauſe of Complaint, becauſe his whole Book ſets out the Eaſtern Monarchs [417] with much Glory, and exclaims againſt Chriſtian Princes as moſt inhuman; tracing all the Engliſh Sovereigns from the Conqueſt, eſpecially Henry the Eighth; whom, for his Daughter's Honour, Sir Walter Ralegh might have ſpar'd from Gall and Bitterneſs. And a little further, King James might perhaps obſerve more, to repreſs the Wickedneſs of ſuch a Perſon, who, under Pretence of taxing a Vice in the Father, intended cunningly to ſtain the whole Race, &c. This Objection againſt Ralegh's Character of the King, is more particularly aſcribed to King James by another Writer alſo before-cited, who tells us, That after much Scorn caſt upon Ralegh's Hiſtory, the King, being modeſtly demanded What Fault he found? anſwered, as one ſurprized, That Ralegh had ſpoken irreverently of King Henry the Eighth! as if he would have reflected a Breach of Gratitude upon our Hiſtorian towards his Benefactreſs the late Queen, In ſpeaking ſuch Truth when he was to give a Character of her Father as, not only others who read it muſt concur in, ſeeing the Hiſtorian has ſo many Proofs at his Finger's End to confirm it; but what that King himſelf, were he alive, on whom it was written, muſt alſo have allowed; ſince it is only a Paraphraſe upon his own dying Confeſſion, that he had been a Prince, who never ſpared Man in his Anger, nor Woman in his Luſt. But if King James could thus object againſt Ralegh for one Character, and pay him no Thanks for another which follows in the ſame Paragraph of that Preface, and in ſome Parts of the Hiſtory itſelf; this may perhaps beſt ſhew where lay the Breach of Gratitude. But however his Majeſty might think it a Kind of Blaſphemy, that any below the Dignity of Princes ſhould be the Cenſors of them: Yet that Objection aforeſaid ſeems not to be the natural Cauſe, ſays our laſtquoted [418] Author, of his Diſlike to this Hiſtory, ſince none ever exclaim'd more againſt that Prince than uſually King James himſelf did. And others, more particularly ſtill, are inclin'd to believe, that any Liberty Ralegh may have taken with the Characters of other Princes, was not ſo much the real Cauſe of ſuch Diſguſt in King James, as, through the Inſinuations of ſome miſchievous Sycophants about him, who knew well what Humour might be moſt agreeably fed, that ſeveral Parts of the Hiſtory contained an oblique and artful Expoſure of himſelf and his Miniſtry; as if, truly, the general Hiſtory of the World was chiefly a ſecret Hiſtory, or Satire upon his Court; and Scotch Faces were to be ſeen in it, ſtuck upon old Jewiſh, Babylonian or Aſſyrian Shoulders. For, as one has obſerv'd, There was a Time, when one of our moſt renowned Hiſtorians could not comment upon a Piece of the Old Teſtament, without being thought to write a Libel upon his own Times; and the King was almoſt led to fancy, he ſaw his own Features in the Face of Ninias the Son of Queen Semiramis; but ſurely, if he could think his Juſtice cenſured in the Story of Ahab's taking away Naboth's Vineyard, and not commended in that of the French King's Conduct towards his Judge and Admiral of France; he muſt not only have been a very captious and ſelf-tormenting Reader, but have ſatiriz'd himſelf more ſharply by engroſſing of Application, or acquieſcing in Reſemblances, than he could have been by that Author, had he really intended any. But the Truth is, that conſcious Minds can find in every Example ſomething to chaſtiſe themſelves; and, to Stomachs vitiated, through foul and unwholſome Adminiſtrations, with evil Habits, the moſt innocent Diet is upbraiding. That Ralegh ſoreſaw his Enemies would make ſuch perverſe Conſtruction and Miſuſe of his [419] Hiſtory, is evident enough in his own Words; where, mentioning the Choice he had made, at leaſt exceptionable, of the elder Times to deſcribe, he yet anticipates this Objection, Againſt this Choice alſo: Why may it not be ſaid, that in ſpeaking of the paſs'd I point at the preſent; and tax the Vices of thoſe who are yet living, in their Perſons who are long ſince dead, and have it laid to my Charge? But this I cannot help, tho' innocent; and certainly, if there be any, who, finding themſelves ſpotted like the Tygers of old Time, ſhall find Fault with me for painting them over anew, they ſhall therein accuſe themſelves juſtly, and me falſely. Yet ſuch Fault there was, we ſee, found; and ſo falſely was he accuſed. Thus the Honour which ſhould reward a publick Benefit, is ſtifled by private Prejudice.

We are therefore to ſeek ſome other Mediator for Ralegh's Deliverance out of Priſon than his Merit by this publick Benefit; and that, we ſhall at laſt find to be his Money, tho' other Cauſes in our common Hiſtories are alſo ſuggeſted, eſpecially that which ſeemed moſt effectual, the Offer he made of fitting out an Expedition to ſecure, and poſſeſs for the Crown, a Gold Mine in Guiana, which he had himſelf diſcover'd when he was formerly in that Country; and which, ſince that Time, had been by others ſo amply teſtified, that further Confirmation was not now requir'd. So that Ralegh's being deceiv'd by Keymis with Ore of a golden Complexion, which he brought from thence, or by any chymical Tricks, ſuch as ſecretly ſlipping real Gold with the Ore into the Meltingpot, are fooliſh Untruths. Now that Offer Ralegh had made at leaſt three Years before he obtain'd his Liberty, with no unreaſonable Expectation of its being accepted, ſince King James had ſo publickly aſſerted and confirm'd the Right of England [420] to that Country, through Sir Walter Ralegh's Conqueſt and Diſcoveries therein, with the Submiſſion he had gain'd from the chief Lords thereof, as to have given Commiſſions and Patents for the Poſſeſſion of the ſame, that is to ſay, all from the River of Amazons to the Deſſequebe, and all the Iſlands for twenty Miles about, in his Majeſty's Name; which were accordingly executed in all due Form by Captain Charles Leigh and Captain Robert Harcourt, which laſt left a Colony there of thirty Perſons for three Years, as may be read at large in the Narratives of their ſeveral Expeditions. Beſides, the publick Invitations and Encouragement which afterwards enſued, to all who would again ſettle and plant in that new diſcover'd Part of America, gave the Diſcoverer himſelf no doubt, the greater Hopes that his own Propoſitions, being not for his private, but the publick Benefit (yet at his own Expence, and that of ſuch Friends as he ſhould engage in the Adventure) could not but be embrac'd. Add to this, the Advantages of his further knowing the Riches of this Country, even while he was in Priſon, not only by the long Converſation he had with thoſe Indians, whom we find here with him in the former Part of his Confinement, but others who from Time to Time came over to him. For during this long Impriſonment, he held conſtant Intercourſe with Guiana, and was at the Charge every Year, or every ſecond Year, of ſending a Ship or more thither, to keep them in Hopes of being relieved from the Spaniards, who had again encroach'd upon them, and cruelly maſſacred both ſeveral of the Natives, and of his own Men. So that the Number of Voyages he ſet forth for Guiana, was at leaſt as many, if not more, than thoſe he is before obſerved to have fitted out for Virginia.

[421] But all this Experience, which ſhould have recommended his Offer, ſerv'd at firſt only to render it unacceptable. For the Treaſurer Cecyll being then alive, he, with two or three others who bore the Sway at Court, were reſolved to diſcountenance it; not that they ſo much doubted the Probability that ſuch Treaſure might remain unpoſſeſs'd, or the Knowledge and Reſolution of Ralegh to compaſs it, ſo much as his Diſpoſition towards themſelves, if by a ſucceſsful Return he ſhould purchaſe the King's Favour. Therefore, to prevent ſuch a Rival as he might prove to them, the Advantage he propos'd to the State was neglected; nay, ſo deeply had they rooted Prejudices in the King's Breaſt towards him in this particular, as well as in others before-mentioned, that when his Majeſty was ſollicited by any Perſon in Ralegh's Behalf (and Royal Sollicitors he had) he, with that implicit Reliance on other Men's Reports, which thoſe in ſupreme Station ſo often bury their own Judgments and their Juſtice in, would anſwer, That his Council knew him better than he did. But after Cecyll's Death, and now that Sir Ralph Winwood was Secretary of State, Ralegh reviv'd his Propoſal to him, and, in a Letter, told him, with relation to thoſe two or three Earwigs who were ever crawling about the King, and at the Mercy of whoſe Repreſentations he had ſo long lain, that it was his only Infelicity the King did not know him as well as thoſe Courtiers pretended to do: For had his Majeſty known me, ſays he, I had never been here where I now am; or had I known his Majeſty, they had never been ſo long there where they now are. His Majeſty not knowing me has been my Ruin, and his miſknowing them has been the Ruin of a goodly Part of his Eſtate. But they are all of them now, ſome living and ſome [422] dying, come to his Majeſty's Knowledge. We learn furtherout of the ſaid Letter, that both Queen Anne, who had inform'd herſelf from the Beginning of all that Ralegh had been accus'd with, and her Brother the King of Denmark, at both times of his being in England, were thoroughly ſatisfy'd of his Innocency, otherwiſe they would never have moved his Majeſty in his Behalf. And Prince Henry, who had been curious in ſearching into the Nature of his Offences, had been frequently a Mediator for him, as we have read before. Hereupon, ſays Ralegh, The Wife, the Brother, and the Son of a King, do not uſe to ſue for Men ſuſpect; but ſince they have all done it, and with Reference to me alone, you, ſtrengthned by their Example, may with the more Hardineſs do the like. Towards the End, Ralegh having acknowledged, that all he had remaining was owing to the King, and that he was ready to ſacrifice it all in his Majeſty's Service, concludes with this noble Diſtinction, To die for the King, and not by the King, is all the Ambition I have in the World.

This and other like Addreſſes to that new Secretary, advanced not Ralegh's Requeſt ſo much, but he found it neceſſary to uſe ſtronger Intereſt than what he was here making, and more ſubſtantial Arguments than could flow from a Pen. For whatever Pity of his Sufferings, his Merit, and Fame of Learning now begat in many, or by whatever means of the French Ambaſſador, with others of our own Lords, it is pretended in our common Accounts of him, that he got Freedom of repairing for his Health to his Houſe at St. James's, a Year or two before he procured his Commiſſion for his Voyage to Guiana, we are more poſitively and particularly told, That Sir William St. John and Sir Edward Villiers, Half-brother to the Lady Villiers, afterwards Dutcheſs [423] of Buckingham, procured Sir Walter Ralegh's Liberty, and had fifteen hundred Pounds for their Labour. It further appears that theſe uſed their Power with Sir George Villiers, the new riſing Favourite at Court, and ſo obtained the King's Conſent for Ralegh's Enlargement: For there is a Letter of Ralegh's Acknowledgments to that Favourite in theſe Words, Sir, You have, by your Mediation, put me again into the World; I can but acknowledge it; for to pay any part of your Favour by any Service of mine as yet, it is not in my Power. If it ſucceed well, a good Part of the Honour ſhall be yours; and if I do not alſo make it profitable unto you, I ſhall ſhew myſelf exceeding ungrateful. In the mean while, and till God diſcover the Succeſs, I beſeech you to reckon me among the Number of your faithful Servants, tho' the leaſt able. W. Ralegh. This Letter is dated only March 17, but probably written in this Year laſt mentioned, 1615; becauſe three Days afterwards, as Camden has preciſely remember'd, Sir Walter Ralegh was releaſed out of the Tower. So that he thus purchas'd his Liberty in the thirteenth Year of his Confinement; that is to ſay, after he had been (without Intermiſſion) twelve Years, three Months, and five Days, in the ſaid Tower of London, beſides near three Months more at his firſt Commitment thither, and during his Arraignment at Wincheſter.

At this Time Carr, Earl of Somerſet, had been about four or five Months in the ſaid Tower with his Counteſs, for the barbarous Impoiſonment of Sir Thomas Overbury about two Years before in the ſame Place, to which he had treacherouſly driven him, for only having obſtructed the ſaid Earl's vile and ſcandalous Commerce with that lewd Woman, while ſhe was young Eſſex's Wife. Theſe two Accidents (at this Time drew great Notice) happening [424] (as 'tis obſerved in a Tract aſcribed to the Lord Brook) ſo much beyond all Expectation; that the one, being a ſpecial Favourite of the King, the other a condemned Man; the one impriſon'd, the other ſet at Liberty; gave great Occaſion of Speech and Rumour, and ſo much the more Wonder and Admiration, becauſe of Ralegh's Wit and Policy. Raleigh is further ſaid by the ſame Author, to have given Somerſet many Quips and Taunts during his ſaid Impriſonment; and it may not be improbable, towards ſuch an undeſerving Intruder upon his Eſtate. But, as this Earl of Somerſet was convicted of Felony for the ſaid Murder, whereby the Two hundred thouſand Pounds he had heap'd up, and Lands to the Income of Nineteen thouſand Pounds per Annum being again diſpers'd; and as the King had laid that heavy Curſe upon himſelf and his Poſterity which he did, if ever he pardon'd any of the ſaid Murderers, it might have been thought that Ralegh's Compariſon of himſelf and that noble Malefactor, would not have been ſpoil'd, when he ſaid, That the whole Hiſtory of the World had not the like Precedent, of a King's Priſoner to purchaſe Freedom, and his Boſom Favourite to have the Halter, but in Scripture, in the Caſe of Mordecai and Haman. Inſtead of that, Ralegh is ſaid, by the Relater of this Paſſage, to have been told, the King ſhould reply upon hearing this Obſervation That Ralegh might die in that Deceit; and ſo he did, as this Author truly ſays: For the King now ſav'd the Life of the one, as much to the Aſtoniſhment of the World, as he afterwards put the other to Death. But he could do no leſs, if his Favourite was really a Maſter of ſuch Secrets as are elſewhere ſpoken of. And this is enough to reſolve why the Misfortunes of that Earl, if they may be called ſuch, which at the Worſt were more favourable [425] than his Merits in any wiſe deſerved, were not equal to his Crimes.

Ralegh being thus at Liberty, ſoon appears buſy in making Preparation for his Voyage. To this Purpoſe he called in the 8000 Pounds, which he had lent to the Counteſs of Bedford, reckon'd in King James his Declaration, a competent Satisfaction for Sherborne; tho' it was afterwards valued by the State at 5000 l. per annum. But ſeeing that not ſufficient to fit out a Fleet in the Manner he found neceſſary, his Wife conſented alſo to ſell her Houſe and Lands at Micham in Surrey, for which he received 2500 l. all which and more he expended in this Expedition. And what Frenzy could poſſeſs him, as he ſays himſelf, thus to diſpoſe of his whole Subſtance, and undertake ſuch a toilſome and perilous Voyage, now that his Conſtitution was impair'd by ſuch a long Confinement, beſides Age itſelf, Sickneſs and Affliction, were he not aſſur'd thereby of doing his Prince Service, bettering his Country by Commerce, and reſtoring his Family to their Eſtates, all from the Mines of Guiana; and, ſays he, if I myſelf had not ſeen them with my own Eyes. I have not yet heard who was the Purchaſer of that Eſtate at Micham; but there is a Letter of Ralegh's to a Nobleman extant, which poſſibly relates thereunto. It is to intreat him to make an impartial Valuation of ſome Lands to a riſing Favourite, who was to be the Purchaſer, and is penn'd in the following Words: I humbly beſeech your Lordſhip to give me Leave, and Pardon too, if I need it, for the anſwering of thoſe Things which you were lately pleas'd to object againſt me; and that you will charitably alſo conſider both of my Demands, and of the Reaſons which embolden me to make them. Thoſe Anſwers go here, in a Paper which is enclos'd, apart; and my Letter ſhall ſay but [426] thus much, that the Gentleman, who is ſo greatly in favour, hath many fair Fortunes before him, and we, nothing to look for but Miſery; and that he is better able to give us above the Worth of the Land, than we in condition to abate any Part thereof. And therefore we humbly beſeech your Lordſhip, that your Compaſſion and Care of Honour, may be the Judge between his proſperous Navigation, and our Shipwreck: And that your Charity for us, and your Deſire of Satisfaction for him, may equal the Ballance between us. I hope ſo heartily to find all juſt Favour at your Hands, as I will venture, upon this, to oſſure you, that I will do all my utmoſt to make my Wife and Son forget themſelves, and be ever mindful of their Duty towards your Lordſhip; to whom I hope they will be, as I am ſure myſelf have been, and am, a moſt faithful humble Servant.

Beſides the ten thouſand five hundred Pounds which it coſt Sir Walter Ralegh to put himſelf in Equipage for this long-propoſed Voyage, a much greater Sum than would have paid for his Liberty of receding from it, or for a formal Pardon, had he thought he needed, and had gone about to purchaſe it; there were many Co-adventurers, who by Contributions to the Expence thereof, intitled themſelves to a Share in the Returns. But moſt of theſe are called by Ralegh, a Company of Voluntiers, who had never ſeen the Sea nor Wars; and, except ſome forty Gentlemen, a very diſſolute, diſorderly, and ungovernable Crew, whom their Friends thought it an exceeding good Gain to be diſcharged of, at the Hazard of ſome thirty, forty, or fifty Pounds, knowing they could not have lived a whole Year ſo cheap at Home. There were, moreover, ſeveral Merchants, not only in England but foreign Parts, who contributed to this Mine-Adventure; ſo confident were they that it was no [427] Chimera, no ſuppoſititious or airy Treaſure that was promiſed or purſued. One of theſe Merchants, afterwards knighted, and very eminent for his Dealings, was named Peter Vanlore, who ſo approved of Sir Walter Ralegh's Undertaking, that he not only ſent a Letter to his Brother Sir Adrian Thibaut in Amſterdam, requeſting him to engage another Merchant there to communicate ſomething he knew of the Riches in Guiana to Sir Walter Ralegh; but made that Requeſt in Ralegh's own Manner of Expreſſion, from a Copy which he drew up for him. This Draught, as I have it from the ſaid Original, is as follows: Brother Tibotes, There is a Merchant in Amſterdam, that for the Love he bears to my honourable Friend Sir Walter Ralegh, is content to diſcover ſomewhat of Importance unto him in Guiana, to which Country Sir Walter Ralegh is now preparing to go; but he doth require Aſſarance from Sir Walter Ralegh, that he himſelf may be aſſured to enjoy ſuch Part of the Commodity diſcover'd, as he ſhall agree upon with Sir Walter Ralegh by his Deputy Mr. Henry Hovenar. I do therefore pray you to ſpeak with the Party which Mr. Hovenar will bring unto you, and to know what Aſſurances he will require, which to pleaſure Sir Walter I ſhall be willing to give; that is to ſay, to give him Aſſurance that upon Sir Walter's Return into England, the Charges being deducted, the Diſcoverer ſhall receive from Sir Walter ſuch Part of the ſaid Merchandize as Sir Walter and he ſhall agree on; altho' there needs no ſuch Aſſur [...]n [...]e to be given, becauſe his Majeſty doth aſſure all Sir Walter's Partners by the Great Seal of England, That they ſhall truly and quietly enjoy all their Parts and Shares of what Goods, Merchandize, or Treaſure ſoever, ſhall be returned; out of which Great Seal of England, the Diſcoverer ſhall have an Aſſignment for ſo much as belongs [428] unto him, to be deliver'd here in London, to whomſoever he ſhall appoint to receive it." Then in a new Line he concludes thus: To Mr. Peter Vanlore. This is the Letter which I deſire you to write to your Brother in Amſterdam; and for any Aſſurance you ſhall give, I will again put you in Sureties to ſave you harmleſs. W. Ralegh. This Letter is dated July 1, 1616. And if Ralegh had his Commiſſion for that Voyage before this Time, as it appears he had, by his citing it, then it muſt be erroneouſly dated, being near two Months after, in King James's Declaration. Here again, that Commiſſion ſeems to have been given under the Great Seal of England; and alſo elſewhere: In that Declaration, 'tis ſaid to be under the Privy Seal. But there are other Things obſervable of this Commiſſion as it is there printed, and in other Places, as we ſhall ſee preſently.

In the mean while we may here obſerve a little Oppoſition that was made to this Voyage. And indeed ſome Perſons at Court, who might remember what Advances Ralegh had formerly made there, by the Means of ſeveral Exploits which he undertook at a Diſtance from it; and others, admoniſh'd by Conſcience, that every friendly Gale in his Navigation would be ſplitting them upon a Rock, might well be expected to obſtruct, as far as they could, his Progreſs: But none do we hear of ſo impatient and clamorous againſt it as the Spaniard. For there had been now in England, about three Years, an Agent from Spain, named Diego Sarmiento de Acuna, better known, but not till about the Time of Ralegh's Death, or perhaps after it, by the Title of Count de Gondomar; a Man, who, if he gain'd that Influence he did over King James purely by Art, muſt be allowed a good Share of Dexterity in the Myſteries of Negotiation; but as he [429] was adapted by Nature to ſooth and captivate him, no leſs than by the Pretenſions of his Agency, it diminiſhes the Wonders of his Succeſs in making that King ſuch a Subject to his Enchantments, and keeping him ſo many Years a Priſoner as it were in the Tower he had heap'd up of airy and glittering Promiſes: Yet what Reward was reſerved, for all his Services here, in his own Country, and how this ardent Slave to the Will and Pleaſure of his Maſter, was both Executioner of his Royal Pride as well as other Paſſions, and Sacrifice alſo at laſt to them, muſt be left for thoſe to diſplay who have more Leiſure to dilate upon ſuch Retaliations of Providence. This was the Man who (as he is repreſented in King James's Declaration) now took great Alarm, and is ſaid to have made loud and vehement Aſſertions to his Majeſty in repeated Audiences, that he knew, and had diſcover'd the Intention and Enterprize of Sir Walter Ralegh to be but hoſtile and piratical, tending to the Breach between the two Crowns, and the Danger and Deſtruction of the King his Maſter's Subjects in thoſe Parts; proteſting in a ſort againſt it. To which that the King ſhould anſwer, (as it is there ſaid after Ralegh's Death) He would ſend Sir Walter Ralegh with a limited Commiſſion, (but how limited it was will ſoon appear) and that he durſt not upon Peril of his Head, do any ſuch Matter: and if he did, he would ſurely do Juſtice upon him, or ſend him bound Hand and Foot into Spain, with all the Gold and Goods he ſhould obtain by Robbery, and bring Home, were they never ſo great. Then the King by Sir Ralph Winwood, got both a ſolemn Proteſtation from Ralegh, that he had no other Intention but only to go to thoſe Gold Mines; and alſo a cloſe Letter to his Majeſty (as it is here in his Declaration juſtly call'd) confirming the ſame. [430] This cloſe Letter was both written cloſe to the Purpoſe, or in ſuch expreſſive Terms as to have laid open the whole Scheme of Ralegh's Voyage; and alſo as a Matter to be kept cloſe, or with the utmoſt Privacy; for 'tis ſaid, that upon ſuch Communication, his Majeſty promiſed, on the Word of a King, to keep it ſecret: And it would have prevented all Suppoſition of Diſingenuity, if this cloſe Letter had been fairly exhibited in that Declaration, had it been when this was penn'd, in the King's Poſſeſſion, as it ought according to his Royal Promiſe. On the contrary, this ſeems to have been the very Letter, by which, through the Spaniſh Ambaſſador's Means, his Maſter the King of Spain was pre-admoniſh'd of Ralegh's whole Enterprize, and had ſent to Guiana, before he left the Britiſh Channel, to prepare a greater Force than his, to oppoſe him, as will hereafter appear. Nay, 'tis viſible by what immediately follows in the ſaid Declaration, both that this cloſe Letter (how cloſely ſoever the Contents of it are with-held) did reveal the Particulars of Ralegh's naval Strength, and that the King did divulge it to the Spaniſh Ambaſſador; becauſe it was ſo far from making him recede from his former Jealouſy, that he is diſcover'd to have objected thereupon againſt the Number of Ships Ralegh had prepared for the ſaid Voyage, to which Ralegh then doubtleſs made as proper Anſwer, as we ſhall find he did hereafter. But in ſhort ſuch a Propoſal, by one carrying the Reputation of ſuch an active, witty and valiant Gentleman, eſpecially of ſo great a Commander at Sea, as his Enemies allow he had; one who muſt be thought moſt wary above all others of incurring King James's Diſpleaſure, under which he had ſo long ſuffer'd; one who had given ſuch publick Atteſtations of his Sincerity [431] in the Proſecution of this Propoſal; and one who, as the greateſt Proof he could give thereof, was actually embarking his whole Fortune as well as Credit, together with thoſe of his Friends and Relations, all finding Security for their good Behaviour, without any Charge to the Crown if they fail'd, and with Proſpect of great Advantage if they ſucceeded, was ſo far from being overthrown by any Remonſtrances of the Ambaſſador himſelf, or from being thought a moſt noble and generous Overture by all other Men, that even the King's Honour is acknowledged, in his own Declaration, to have been engag'd, not to deny his People the Adventure and Hope of ſo great Riches. And yet what Character of that King's Honour towards his People, is expoſed in the ſame Leaf of that very Declaration, where it is pretended, that in his own Princely Judgment he gave no Belief to it, as being perſuaded that in Nature there were no ſuch Mines entire, or that the Spaniards, ſo induſtrious in the Chace of Treaſure, would have ſo long neglected the ſame; is left to the Reader's Diſtinction. But it may be beſt diſcover'd by the Care taken to ſecure his Majeſty's Dividend ſo clearly, and to expreſs many other Articles ſo doubtfully, in the Commiſſion itſelf, of which we ſhall now give an impartial Abſtract, whether it was from a magnanimous Principle or a mercenary one, from upright Policy or downright Prevarication, that the ſame was granted; being as fo [...]lows.

JAMES, by the Grace of God, &c. To all to whom theſe Preſents ſhall come, &c. Whereas Sir Walter Ralegh, Knight, intendeth to undertake a Voyage by Sea and Shipping, to the South Parts of America or elſewhere within America, poſſeſs'd and inhabited by heathen and ſavage People, to diſcover ſome Commodities and Merchandize profitable for the [432] Subjects of our Kingdoms, whereof the Inhabitants make little or no Uſe; whence may enſue, by Commerce, ſome Propagation of the Chriſtian Faith and reformed Religion among thoſe idolatrous People: And whereas there are divers Merchants, &c. well diſpoſed to aſſiſt Sir Walter Raleigh, had they Aſſurance to enjoy their due Share of the Profits returned, Sir Walter Raleigh being under the Peril of the Law; and whereas divers other Gentlemen, his Kinſmen and Friends, with ſeveral Captains and Commanders, are alſo deſirous to follow and venture their Lives with him, if they might be commanded by none but himſelf: We, upon deliberate Conſideration, deſiring the Benefit of our Subjects, alſo to give our princely Furtherance to the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh and his Friends, as well as to encourage others in the like laudable Enterpriſes, advance the Converſion of Savages, and encreaſe Traffic by our Subjects of this Kingdom, have of our ſpecial Grace, &c. granted Sir Walter Raleigh full Power to carry for the ſaid Voyage, ſo many of our Subjects, or others who will become our Subjects, as ſhall willingly accompany him; with ſufficient Shipping, Armour, Weapons, Ordnance, Munition, Powder, Shot, &c. and all other Things as he ſhall think neceſſary for the Uſe and Defence of him and his Company; beſides Liberty to exchange or otherwiſe diſpoſe of his Goods or Merchandize; alſo to return into this or other of our Dominions with ſuch Gold, Silver, Bullion, or any other Wares, and they to be converted to the proper Uſe of the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh and his Company; paying to us, our Heirs, &c. the full fifth Part of all ſuch Gold and Silver, Bullion and Ore of Gold or Silver, Pearl or precious Stones, as ſhall be ſo imported; with all ſuch Cuſtoms, &c. as ſhall be due for any other Goods whatever. Further to encourage Sir Walter Ralegh and the Adventurers, [433] we promiſe in verbo Regio, that no Gold, Silver or other Wares by them imported from thoſe Parts ſo poſſeſs'd and inhabited; ſhall be ſeiz'd by us, our Heirs, or any of our Officers, but that it ſhall remain (the fifth Part of the ſaid Gold, Silver, Bullion, &c. as before, with all other Cuſtoms and Duties being truly paid) to the ſole Uſe of Sir Walter Ralegh and his Company. Further of our moſt ſpecial Grace, &c. we conſtitute the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh to be the ſole Governor and Commander of all Perſons who ſhall travel or be with him in the ſaid Voyage or in their Return. And give him full Power to correct, puniſh, pardon, and rule them according to ſuch Orders and Inſtructions as the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh ſhall eſtabliſh, as well in Caſes capital and criminal as civil, both marine and other; ſo that the ſaid Proceedings, as near as conveniently as may be, are agreeable to the Laws of this Realm, and to the Chriſtian Faith now profeſs'd in the Church of England. And becauſe in ſuch Enterprizes great Inconveniences have grown by Mutinies and Diſorders for Want of ſufficient Authority, we give full Power to Sir Walter Ralegh, in Caſe of Rebellion or Mutiny by Sea or Land, to exerciſe martial Law upon juſt and apparent Neceſſity, in as ample a Manner as our Lieutenant-General by Sea or Land, or our Lieutenants in the Counties of England. And we give Sir Walter Ralegh full Power to appoint ſuch Captains, and other Commanders and Miniſters under him, as ſhall be requiſite for the better ordering and governing his Company. We further command the Wardens of the Cinque Ports, Cuſtomers and other Officers, quietly to permit Sir Walter Ralegh, and all who ſhall adventure with him, to paſs to the ſaid South or other Parts of America, poſſeſs'd and inhabited as aforeſaid, and to return with any Goods whatever, and to ſell or otherwiſe diſpoſe of the ſame to the only Uſe [434] of him and his Company; paying the fifth Part of all Gold, Silver, Bullion, &c. as before, imported, and other Cuſtoms and Duties aforeſaid. And theſe Preſents, &c. ſhall be to the ſaid Wardens, &c. ſufficient Warrant. And we grant to the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh, that theſe our Letters Patents or the Inrollment thereof, with all the Grants, Clauſes, &c. therein, ſhall be ſufficient and effectual in Law, any Law, Statute, &c. notwithſtanding. Witneſs ourſelves, the 26th Day of Auguſt, in the 14th Year of our Reign of England, France, and Ireland; and of Scotland, the 50th. Per breve de privato ſigillo.

This Abſtract is made from the ſaid Commiſſion, as it is printed in King James's Declaration, and may agree with that which ſeems alſo to have been given us from the Records. Whether there was, originally, any Preamble to it we cannot ſay. But there are Authors who affirm, that in this Commiſſion King James called him his Truſty and Well beloved Sir Walter Ralegh. Tho' theſe may be Words of Courſe in ſuch like Inſtruments, yet if ſome Words were thus taken out in that Recital aforeſaid, it might give Reaſon of inferring that by the ſame Liberty others have been ſqueez'd in. Yet even as it is ſuffer'd there to appear, 'tis ſurely far from being ſo clearly penn'd in point of thoſe Limitations it is ſaid in his Majeſty's Declaration he promis'd the Spaniſh Ambaſſador: For here is no Limitation to any Part of America, not only the South Parts but elſewhere being authoriz'd, and all that are habitable, inhabited in ſome Degree or other by Heathen and Savage People: So vague, ſo equivocal, and diſputable is that Diſtinction: Not one Word of Guiana, no owning of his own Right, or the Power he had lately given to plant there, no Privilege for working any Mine there, nor Prohibition to meddle with the King of Spain's [435] Subjects there or elfewhere, as another Writer has well obſerv'd. On the contrary, full Liberty to carry what Arms and Ammunition they pleas'd for Defence, if they ſhould need it; and laſtly, the Royal Aſſurance of enjoying unmoleſted whatever they returned with. In ſhort, this Commiſſion muſt eaſily be obſerved to have been penn'd, how clearly ſoever pretended, as if King James did neither know of Sir Walter Ralegh's Intention for and at Guiana; tho' a little before, he had the whole Particulars thereof from Ralegh's own Hand, or that there were any Spaniards planted there; tho' he appears to have known that alſo from the Spaniſh Ambaſſador himſelf, whoſe own Kinſman, as we ſhall hear, was ſent, during Ralegh's Reſtraint, from Spain, to build and colonize upon that very Spot to which Ralegh had now this unlimited Commiſſion, as we may rather term it, to go. For 'tis ſo much the Reverſe of that cloſe penn'd Letter wherein Ralegh had, ſo expreſſively, and ſo unreſervedly, placed his whole Truſt of this Voyage in King James, that it ſeems contriv'd, both to hoodwink the Spaniard till the Action was over, tho' the King betray'd it himſelf, and to ſecure Loop-holes ſufficient for the Royal Authority againſt his Exceptions; but they proved ſo large, that it was thought expedient, in the End, as we ſhall find, that the Commiſſion ſhould not be inſiſted on to limit or reſtrain any body.

Whether this indiſtinct Power in that Commiſſion made Ralegh more or leſs importunate for his Pardon, we cannot ſay. Some indeed write, that he laboured mainly to obtain it; but they are led into that Belief by the Declaration aforeſaid: Whereas we find it expreſly aſſerted in a Letter of Carew Ralegh's; that his Father had Overtures made him of procuring his Pardon for 1500 l. by [436] Sir William St. John, one of the Perſons of whom he purchas'd his Freedom, therefore one whoſe Intereſt was the leſs to be doubted in this Particular; but that Sir Walter Ralegh conferring, a little before his Departure from England, with Sir Francis Bacon (newly made Lord Keeper of the Great Seal, and not long after Lord Chancellor) upon this pecuniary Pardon, he poſitively adviſed Ralegh againſt it in theſe Words: Sir, the Kneetimber of your Voyage is Money; ſpare your Purſe in this Particular, for upon my Life, you have a ſufficient Pardon for all that is paſs'd already, the King having, under his Broad Seal, made you Admiral of your Fleet, and given you Power of the Martial Law over your Officers and Soldiers. But we are elſewhere told, that even for leſs than half that Money beforemention'd, that is to ſay, for 700 l. the ſaid Sir William St. John, and alſo Sir Edward Villiers (before ſpoken of) offer'd Sir Walter Ralegh not only his full Pardon, but Liberty not to go his Voyage if he pleas'd; and that he refus'd both; the rather becauſe he was told by Sir Francis Bacon (as above) that his ſaid Commiſſion was as good as a Pardon for all former Offences, as the Law of England could afford him.

And now, near ſeven Months after the Date of his Commiſſion, began his Fleet to appear, or rather that Part of it which lay in the Thames, and conſiſted of ſeven Sail. From the Survey which was taken thereof by the Appointment of Charles Earl of Nottingham the Lord Admiral, on the 15th of March in the Year laſt named, it appears, that the firſt of them, or Admiral, a brave Ship, as deſcribed by one who might probably have ſeen it, and built by Ralegh himſelf, was named the Deſtiny, of 440 Tons, and 36 Pieces (or more) of Ordnance; Sir Walter Ralegh General, and his [437] Son Walter Captain: Beſides two hundred Men, whereof fourſcore were Gentlemen-Volunteers and Adventures, moſt of them Sir Walter's Relations; which Number was afterwards increas'd. Second, The Jaſon of London, 240 Tons, and 25 Pieces of Ordnance; Captain John Pennington Vice-Admiral, fourſcore Men, one Gentleman and no more. Third, The Encounter, 160 Tons, 17 Pieces of Ordnance; Edward Haſtings Captain: (no Men more, except the Maſter, mentioned) but he dying in the Indies, was ſucceeeded in the Command by Capt. Whitney. Fourth, The Thunder, 150 Tons, 20 Pieces of Ordnance; Sir Warham Sentleger Captain, ſix Gentlemen, ſixty Soldiers, ten Land-men. Fifth, The Flying Joan, 120 Tons, 14 Pieces of Ordnance; John Chidley Captain, twenty-five Men. Sixth, The Southampton 80 Tons, ſix Pieces of Ordnance; John Bayley Captain, twenty-five Mariners, two Gentlemen. Seventh, The Page, a Pinnace, 25 Tons, three Rabnets of Braſs; James Barker Captain, eight Sailors. But before Ralegh left the Coaſt of England, he was joined by as many Ships more; ſo that his whole Fleet conſiſted of thirteen Sail, beſides his own Ship. And tho' we cannot be ſo particular in the remaining Part, we may yet learn thus much of it, that one Ship, named the Convertine, was commanded by Capt. Keymis; another, called the Confidence, was under the Charge of Capt. Woolaſton; there was a Shallop, named the Flying Hart, under Sir John Ferne; two Flyboats under Capt. Sam. King, and Capt. Robert Smith; and a Carvel, with perhaps another named the Chudleigh, beſides.

With the former Part of the Fleet Ralegh ſet ſail from the Thames on the 28th of March aforeſaid, which was in the Year 1617, and was ſoon after ready to proceed at the Iſle of Wight, when [438] ſeveral little Accidents fell out to retard his Progreſs; for he ſtay'd there ſome Days for Sir Warham Sentleger, whoſe Ship, the Thunder, by the Negligence of her Maſter, was at Lee in the Thames: Alſo after Ralegh was got to Plymouth, Capt. Pennington was not come to the Iſle of Wight, and when he did arrive, was forced to ride back to London to engage the Lady Ralegh to paſs her Word for the Money which was to redeem the Bread for his Ship, amounting to thirty Pounds, without which he could not have gone forward; nor could Sir John Ferne proceed till Ralegh had ſupply'd him with a hundred Pounds by his Couſin Herbert, and procur'd him another hundred Pounds of his Friend Dr. Sutcliffe, Dean of Exeter, having furniſh'd himſelf with a third hundred before he came from Wales. Ralegh tarried alſo for Capt. Whitney, who had a third Part of his Victuals to provide; and to aſſiſt him, Ralegh generouſly ſold his Plate at Plymouth, notwithſtanding which, and Ralegh's having given him more Countenance than any other of his Officers, Whitney ran away from him at the Granadoes, and drew Capt. Woolaſton with his Ship after him: Ralegh had further the Patience to wait ten or twelve Days for Captain Bayley, which he afterwards ungratefully requited by deſerting alſo the Fleet at the Canaries, for no apparent Reaſon but Ralegh's refuſing him a French Shallop he took in the Bay of Portugal; and yet after Ralegh had bought her for fifty Crowns, that the French might have no Cauſe of Complaint, Bayley might have had her if he had deſired it.

For theſe Reaſons he was forced to linger ſome Months at Plymouth, loſing thereby a fair Wind, and indeed the Seaſon of the Year. The meanwhile he publiſhed in May following, ſuch Orders throughout his Fleet, as gained him great Applauſe, [439] for the Regularity and Inſtruction they eſtabliſh'd therein. A Gentleman of his Company, in a Tract he wrote of this Voyage, having expreſs'd how many Ways Sir Walter Ralegh was moved to Enterprizes of this Nature more than any other Engliſhman whatſoever; by his Wiſdom and Learning, Variety of Conference, and Experience of Places he had formerly held; alſo how much greater his noble Ends have been than any Man's whatſoever of our Nation who had attempted the like Courſes; he proceeds to the particular Government of his Fleet; which tho' others (ſays he) have in ſome Meaſure obſerved, yet in all the great Volumes which have been written, touching Voyages, there is no Precedent of ſo godly, ſevere, and martial Government; fit to be engraved in every Man's Soul that covets to do Honour to his King and Country in the like Attempts: Then exhibits a Copy of the ſaid Laws, Articles and Commandments, which, we at this preſent (ſays he) obſerve; and of which, it may not therefore be unacceptable hereunder to preſent the Heads. *

[440] It was the End of June or the Beginning of July, before all his Company join'd him and he [441] ſail'd from Plymouth; then being encounter'd with a violent Storm fome eight Leagues to the Weſt of [442] Scilly, in which Capt. Chidley's Pinnace was ſunk, and Capt. King driven into Briſtol, Ralegh held it, from Experience as well as Reaſon, the Office of a Commander of many Ships, and thoſe of different Sailings and Conditions, rather to take a Port, and keep his Fleet together, than to endanger the Loſs of his Maſts and Rigging, or the Advantage which Enemies might take, or the Loſs of more Time in attending another Rendezvous, by the Danger of a Separation. Therefore he put into Ireland, and was obliged to ſtay ſeven Weeks there; ſo that the Winds only were to be accuſed now (as he obſerves) for their Delay. And here, tho' by his Credit he procured fifty Oxen, which he diſtributed among his Fleet, ſome of the Crew ſpared not, at his Return, to defame him with having taken Care to revictual himſelf and none of the reſt. On the 19th of Auguſt he ſet forward from Cork.

When he arriv'd at the Iſle of Lancerota, on the 6th of September, Ralegh ſent a Requeſt to the Governor, that he might be admitted to treat for ſome Proviſions: The Governor ſent back Word, that he would confer with Ralegh himſelf, if he would come attended but by one Gentleman, and armed only with their Rapiers, Ralegh taking with him Lieutenant Bradſhaw, met the Governor, who [443] agreed, that if he would ſend up an Engliſh Factor, whoſe Ship then rode in the Road, whatever the Iſland afforded ſhould be deliver'd at a reaſonable Rate. Ralegh ſent the Factor, but the Governor procraſtinated, and at laſt ſent Word, that unleſs he would embark his Men which lay on the Sea Shore, the Iſlanders were ſo jealous they durſt not divide from one another to ſupply him. Ralegh comply'd, but when half his Men were got aboard, the Iſlanders began to offer Violence upon the reſt. They ſlew one, and ſent the Factor to tell Ralegh, they would part with nothing to him, for that they believed his Company to be the Turkiſh Fleet which had lately deſtroy'd Puerto Sancto. The Engliſh hereupon would have gone and helped themſelves, but Ralegh conſidering what Diſpleaſure it might give at home, how the Merchants might ſuffer, and the poor Engliſh Factor be ruin'd, complained to the Governor of the Grand Canaries; of whom he alſo deſired Leave to take Water undiſturb'd; but inſtead of Anſwer, when he landed ſome hundred Men in the Deſart Part of the Iſland where they found freſh Water, there Ambuſh was laid, by which one of his Men was wounded to Death, and more had been ſlain, had not Captain Thornhuſt and Lieutenant Hayman, two valiant Gentlemen, ſeconded by Sir Warham Sentleger and young Captain Ralegh, with half a dozen more, made forty of them run away. From this unavoidable Fray, Bayley found Pretence to turn Tail and go home again.

In Want of Water they ſail'd to Gomera, one of the ſtrongeſt and beſt defended of all theſe Iſlands, and the beſt Port. The Spaniards, being ſeated upon the very Waſh of the Sea, roughly ſaluted the Fleet at its firſt Entrance with their Cannon, and the Engliſh returned their Salutation. But as [444] ſoon as Ralegh recover'd the Harbour, and commanded there ſhould be no more firing, he ſent a Spaniard he had with him aſhore, to aſſure the Governor he had no Intention to make War with any of the Spaniſh King's Subjects; and if any Harm had been done by his great Ordnance to the Town it was their Fault, who, by ſhooting firſt, gave the Occaſion. The Governor anſwer'd, he thought they had been the Turkiſh Fleet aforeſaid; but having been certified they were Chriſtians and Engliſhmen, and ſought nothing but Water, he was willing to let them take what they pleas'd, if he might be aſſur'd they would make no Attempt upon the Town Houſes, or their Gardens and Fruits. Ralegh reply'd, that he would give him his Faith, and the Word of the King of Great Britain, his Sovereign, that if the People of the Town or Iſland ſhould loſe ſo much as an Orange or a Grape by any of his Men without paying for it, he would hang him up in the Market-place. And Ralegh kept his Men in ſuch good Diſcipline, that the Governor in divers Letters (for he wrote to him every Day) acknowledg'd how punctually Ralegh kept his Faith with him, in Regard to the inoffenſive Behaviour of his Company; and alſo how much himſelf was beholden to him for his particular Civilities. For his Counteſs, who was of Engliſh Extract, being a Stafford by the Mother's Side, and of the Houſe of Horne by the Father, having ſent Ralegh ſome Preſents of Fruit, Sugar and Ruſk, he return'd others of greater Value. * [445] The Earl moreover gave him, at his Departure, on the 21ſt of September, a Letter to Don Diego Sarmiento the Spaniſh Ambaſſador in England, teſtifying how honourably Ralegh had comported himſelf to the Moriſco's in theſe Canary Iſlands during the fourteeen Days that he was among them. Before he ſet Sail, he diſcharg'd a Bark of the Grand Canaries, taken by one of his Pinnaces, coming from Cape Blanc in Africa; who complaining that his Men had eaten of their Fiſh to the Value of ſix Ducats, Ralegh gave them eight.

After having weather'd through a violent Hurricane and ſome vaſt Showers of Rain, beſides Dangers no leſs fearful within; Sickneſs now beginning to viſit his Ship, he arriv'd on the 2d of October at the Iſle of Bravo: And here underwent great Hazards and Hardſhips; beſide the Sickneſs daily ſpreading among his Men. For whereas all thoſe who navigated even between Cape de Vert and America, were wont to paſs between fifteen and twenty Days at moſt, he found the Wind ſo contrary to him, and indeed to Nature, ſo many Storms and Showers, that he ſpent near ſix Weeks in the Paſſage from hence; by reaſon whereof, and the burning Heat of the Climate, he was in great Diſtreſs for Water. Here loſing Anchors, Cables and Water-caſk, beſides two more of his Company, he was driven after two Days, by a Kind of Turnado, from this Iſland; which, as well as the others he touch'd at, before mention'd, he has well deſcrib'd in his Journal of this unfortunate Voyage. After his Return home, Detraction did not ſpare to give out, that he went to Cape de Vert knowing it to be infected, and thereby loft many of his Men; whereas he was 160 Leagues from that Cape, according to his own Account, in his Apology; and had threeſcore Men ill in his own [446] Ship before he came to Bravo, as we find it in his Journal; tho' if he had gone to that Cape now, after the Rains which had fallen, there had been little Danger of any ſuch Infection. All Places that lie near great Rivers, in low and mooriſh Grounds, do indeed, as he rightly obſerves, ſubject their Inhabitants to Fevers and Agues; as even along both Sides of our own River Thames; and other Infection is not found either in the Indies or in Africa, except when the eaſterly Wind or Breezes are excluded and kept off by ſome high Mountains from the Valleys, whereby the Air wanting Motion, ſtagnates, and becomes exceedingly unhealthful, as at Nombre de Dios, and ſome other Places. But, ſays he, as good Succeſs admits of no Examination, ſo the contrary allows of no Excuſe.

Hence they proceeded, on the 4th of October, towards Guiana. But the Sickneſs reviſited and deſtroy'd many of thoſe whom the Storms ſpared, carrying off Numbers of his ableſt Men both for Sea and Land, no leſs than forty-two of his own Ship ending their Voyage with their Lives, moſtly in this Month, at leaſt before they reach'd the Coaſt. About the 12th of the ſame Month, when their Sickneſs began to be at the Height, and they at the greateſt Diſtance from any Shore, they were many other Ways alſo diſtreſs'd; for when they began to be in Scarcity of Water, they were alſo becalm'd; yet ever threatned with Extremity of tempeſtuous Weather, from the ſtrange and unuſual Alterations in the Atmoſphere. One while the Horizon muffled as it were in ſuch thick and fearful Darkneſs, that they were forced to ſteer a Day or two by Candle-light. At other Times, arched and overſhot with gloomy Diſcolorations; ſo that watery Rainbows were continually invading their [447] Eyes, or heavy Showers their Bodies, and dead Calms retarding their Ships. Afterwards at Trinidad, Ralegh obſerv'd, beſides two Water-galls, no leſs than fifteen Rainbows in one Day, and one of them bent as it were both Ends together, making a perfect Circle; and theſe were ever followed with wet Weather; for as he alſo noted, eſpecially of the Morning Rainbow, it did not here produce a fair Day, as in England. But one good Effect enſu'd, that when their Water was ſo ſcarce, near the latter End of this Month, that the Ship's Crew was reduced to half Allowance, they ſaved ſome Hogheads, which fell from the Clouds, and all quenched their Thirſt with great Cans of this bitter Draught, as Ralegh deſcribes that Rain Water to have been. On the laſt Day of this Month, as he was raiſed abruptly out of his Bed in a Sweat, by the Noiſe which a ſudden great Guſt had occaſion'd in his Ship, he got a Cold, which turned to a burning Fever, and caſt him down for twenty Days together; in which Time he receiv'd no other Suſtenance than a few ſtew'd Prunes, but Drink, every Hour, both Day and Night; and ſweated ſo exceſſively, that he was forced to ſhift three Times every Day, and as often at Night. At laſt the Violence of his Diſeaſe was abated, by the Oranges and other Fruits he had received at Gomera of the Governor's Lady; which he had carefully preſerved in Sand to his great Refreſhment; and without which, as he owns himſelf, he could not have lived: But it was double the Time before he could recover in any tollerable Degree from this ſharp Viſitation.

In this ſlow and ſickly Manner they arrived at laſt, on the 11th of November, at the North Cape of Wiapoco. And here Ralegh ſent for his old Servant, Leonard the Indian, who had been in England [448] three or four Years with him; but he was remov'd ſo far up in the Country, there was no purſuing him. Therefore he ſtood away for Caliana, which is in 5 Degrees on the Coaſts of Guiana, at the firſt Diſcovery call'd Port Howard, where the Caſſique was alſo his Servant, and had lived with him in the Tower of London two Years. There he arrived in a Day or two, having paſſed the Iſland noted for its Multitude of Birds and Silk-bearing Trees, and from thence ſent for his Servant Harry, the Indian, who, with other Caſſiques, came and brought him great Store of Caſſavi Bread and roaſted Mullets, with Plantanes, Pinas, Piſtacias, &c. But Ralegh ventured not to eat of the Pinas, which tempted him exceedingly, till after a Day or two's airing on the Shore in a Tent which was there pitch'd for him; then he alſo eat ſome Armadillo and a little Pork, and began to gather Strength. Here alſo he landed his ſick Men, and recovered many; and here he buried Captain Edward Haſtings (the Lord Huntington's Brother) who died ten Days or more before, and with him his Serjeant Major, Hart, and Captain Henry Snedale; the Charge of whoſe Ship Ralegh gave to his Servant Captain Robert Smith of Cornwall. Here he alſo ſet up his Barges and Shallops which they brought from England, in Quarters, cleanſed his Ships, trim'd up his Caſks, and ſupply'd them with Water; fix'd up a Forge, and made ſuch Iron Works as they wanted. Thus on that Shore, and this River they employed and refreſh'd themſelves for about three Weeks; during which Time, Ralegh was very much careſs'd by the Indians of his old Acquaintance aforeſaid, and the other Natives of this Place, who cheriſhed him daily with the beſt Proviſions that the Country yielded, and offer'd him all Kind of Obedience, even to the making him their Sovereign [449] Prince and Ruler, if he would abide and ſettle among them; ſo freſh continued his Memory, and ſuch unanimous Impreſſions of Homage and Reſpect had his former Behaviour ſtill left upon them; which Offer he mentions with the greateſt Modeſty and Indifference in the Diſpatch he now ſent to England. For in this Interval, Captain Peter Alley, one of his Company, who was much troubled with a vertiginous Diſorder in his Head, having got Leave to return home, and the Opportunity of a Dutch Veſſel which lay there, Ralegh among other Letters, ſent one by him to his Lady, dated from Caliana the 14th of November. Herein, ſays he, I cannot write to you but with a weak Hand, for I have ſuffered the moſt violent Calenture for fifteen Days that ever Man did, and lived; but God that gave me a ſtrong Heart in all my Adverſities, has alſo now ſtrengthned me in the Hell-fire of Heat. We had two moſt grievous Sickneſſes in our Ship, of which forty-two have died, and there are yet many ſick; but having recover'd the Land of Guiana this 12th of November, I hope we ſhall recover them. We are yet two hundred Men, and the reſt of our Fleet are reaſonably ſtrong, ſtrong enough I hope to perform what we have undertaken, if the diligent Care at London to make our Strength known to the Spaniſh King by his Ambaſſador, has not taught the Spaniſh King to fortify all the Entrances againſt us. Howſoever, we muſt make the Adventure, and if we periſh, it ſhall be no Honour for England, nor Gain for his Majeſty, to loſe, among many others, an hundred as valiant Gentlemen as England hath in it. Then having ſpoken of Bayley's running away from him, the unnatural Weather they had labour'd through, and their tedious Paſſage, with the Preſent of Fruits which had ſo much relieved him, as is before obſerved, beſides the Death of [450] ſome principal Officers, and Recommendation of himſelf to ſome Friends in London, eſpecially his Son Carew, he concludes thus: To tell you that I might be here King of the Indians were a Vanity; but my Name hath ſtill liv'd among them; here they feed me with freſh Meat, and all that the Country yields: All offer to obey me. At this Time alſo, a Gentleman of his Company having drawn up a Diſcourſe in Praiſe of Guiana, and in Honour of this Adventure; eſpecially of the principal Diſcoverer, Ralegh himſelf, it being dated from Caliana November the 17th, ſent it alſo into England by the ſame Bearer, and it was printed the following Year.

On the 4th of December they left this River, and came next Day to the Triangle Iſlands; but were all in Danger of leaving their Bones upon the Sholes before they got thither. For they were laid aground, eſpecially Ralegh's larger Ship, for the Space of twenty-four Hours or more; and had it not been fair Weather, would never have got off the Coaſt, having not above two Fathom of Water. Here, after a few Days, when all the Fleet was gather'd together, it being conſider'd in a general Conſultation, that Rolegh himſelf who had grappled with the Sickneſs for ſix Weeks, and was now rather ſo much relaps'd than recover'd, that he could not move otherwiſe than as he was carried in a Chair, they reſolved that there was no Thoughts of his undertaking the Paſſage up the Orenoque in Perſon. And further, though they could never underſtand by Keymis, who was the firſt of any Nation that had entered the main Mouth of that River, nor by any of their Mariners, who had traded there many Years for Tobacco, what Certainty the Water was of; yet having found by Experience, that Ships at eleven Foot Water, lay aground [451] three Days in paſſing up; therefore there was no attempting it with Ralegh's Ship, which being heavier, and charged with near forty Pieces of Ordnance, drew ſeventeen Foot. Nor would his Son with the reſt have ventured, with the Proviſions they had, through any other Perſon's Aſſurance or Reſolution of ſtaying to relieve them at a Place appointed, againſt the Forces expected to approach, but that of his Father and their General. So it was reſolved by all, that the five larger Ships ſhould ride at Punta de Gallo in Trinidad under Ralegh to ſecure their Retreat, and the five leſſer (for this was now the whole Number of his Fleet) with five or ſix Foot Companies of fifty Men each, ſhould enter the River. According to this Determination, the Fleet was here divided; that is to ſay, Captain Whitney in the Encounter; Woolaſton in the Confidence; King in the Supply; Smith in a Pink, and Hall in a Carvel. The Companies had for their Leaders, Captain Charles Parker, and Captain North (Brothers to the Lord Mounteagle and the Lord North;) young Ralegh; Captain Thornhurſt of Kent; Captain Pennington's Lieutenant, who ſeems to be another Hall, and Captain Chidley's Lieutenant, Prideux. Sir Warham St. Leger, Ralegh's Lieutenant, who had the Charge of theſe Companies, fell ſick at Caliana; ſo it was confer'd on George Ralegh, Sir Walter's Nephew, who had ſerved with great Commendation in the Low Countries; and Captain Keymis had the chief Charge for their Guidance and landing within the River. But Keymis having laid down the Plan of his intended Attempt upon the Mine, and undertaken to diſcover it with ſix or eight Perſons in Sir John Ferne's Shallop, Ralegh, upon Conſideration, diſliking that Method of Procedure, [452] determined to alter it, and therefore gave him his Inſtructions in the following Words.

Keymis, Whereas you were reſolv'd, after your Arrival into the Oronoque, to paſs to the Mine with my Couſin Herbert and ſix Musketiers, and to that End deſired to have Sir John Ferne's Shallop; I do not allow of that Courſe; becauſe you cannot land ſo ſecretly, but that ſome Indians on the River ſide may diſcover you, who giving Knowledge thereof to the Spaniard, you may be cut off before you recover your Boat. I therefore adviſe you to ſuffer the Captains and Companies of the Engliſh to paſs up weſtward of the Mountain Aio, from whence you have no leſs than three Miles to the Mine, and to encamp between the Spaniſh Town and you, if there is any Town near it; that being ſo ſecured, you may make Trial what Depth and Breadth the Mine holds, and whether or no it will anſwer our Hopes. And if you find it royal, and the Spaniards begin to war upon you, then let the Serjeant-major repel them, if it is in his Power, and drive them as far as he can: but if you find the Mine is not ſo rich as to perſuade the holding of it, and it requires a ſecond Supply, then ſhall you bring but a Basket or two to ſatisfy his Majeſty that my Deſign was not imaginary but true, though not anſwerable to his Majeſty's Expectation; for the Quantity of which I never gave Aſſurance, nor could. On the other Side, if you ſhall find any great Number of Soldiers are newly ſent into the Orenoque, as the Caſſique of Caliana told us there were, and that the Paſſages are already enforc'd, ſo as without manifeſt Peril of my Son, yourſelf and the other Captains, you cannot paſs towards the Mine; then be well adviſed how you land, for I know (that a few Gentlemen excepted) what a Scum of Men you have, and I would not for all the World, receive a Blow from the Spaniard to the Diſhonour of the Nation. [453] I myſelf, for my Weakneſs, cannot be preſent, neither will the Company land except I abide by the Ships, the Galleons of Spain being daily expected. Piggot the Serjeant major is dead, Sir Warham St. Leger, my Lieutenant, without Hope of Life, and my Nephew, George Ralegh, your Serjeant-major, now, but a young Man: it is therefore on your Judgment that I rely; who, I truſt, God will direct for the beſt. Let me hear from you as ſoon as you can. You ſhall find me at Punta de Gallo dead or alive; and if you find not my Ships there, yet there you ſhall find their Aſhes; for I will fire with the Galleons if it come to Extremity, but run away I will never.

With theſe Inſtructions thoſe five Ships ſet forward, parting from Ralegh and the reſt of the Fleet at the Iſlands aforeſaid, with a Month's Proviſion, on the 10th of December. But when they found a new Spaniſh Town, called St. Thome, conſiſting of about 140 Houſes; though lightly built, with a Chapel, a Convent of Franciſcans, and a Garriſon erected on the main Channel of the Orenoque, about Twenty Miles diſtant from the Place where Antonio Berreo, the Governor taken by Ralegh in his firſt Diſcovery and Conqueſt here, attempted to plant; Keymis and the reſt thought themſelves oblig'd, through Fear of leaving the Enemy's Garriſon between them and their Boats, to deviate from their Inſtructions, which enjoin'd them, firſt to carry a little Party to make Trial of the Mine, under a Shelter of their own Camp; and then to deal with the Spaniſh Town as it ſhould give Cauſe, by permitting or offering to prevent them. So they concluded to land in one Body, and encamp between the Mine and the Town; whereby, though themſelves were ſomething ſtronger, their Boats were ſubject to the ſame Expoſure, [454] and the Mine left untry'd contrary to Ralegh's Order. For, about three Weeks after their Departure, landing, by Night, it ſeems, nearer the Town than they ſuſpected, and meaning to reſt themſelves on the River-ſide till morning, they were, in the Night-time, ſet upon by the Spaniſh Troops, appriz'd of, and forearm'd for their coming, as we ſhall ſee. This Charge was ſo unexpected, and ſtruck the common Soldiers with ſuch Amazement and Confuſion, that had not the Captains and ſome other valiant Gentlemen made head, and animated the reſt, they had all been cut to pieces. But the reſt, by their Example, ſoon rallying, made ſuch a vigorous Defence againſt the Spaniards, that they drove them to a Retreat, till in the Warmth of their Purſuit, the Engliſh found themſelves at the Spaniſh Town before they knew where they were. Here the Battle was renewed afreſh upon them, being aſſaulted by the Governor himſelf Don Diego Palameca, and four or five Captains at the Head of their Companies; againſt whom, Captain Walter Ralegh, a brave and ſprightly young Man, now twenty-three Years of Age, but fonder of Glory than Safety, not tarrying for the Musketiers, ruſh'd foremoſt, at the Head of a Company of Pikes, and having killed one of the Spaniſh Captains, was himſelf ſhot by another; but preſſing ſtill forward, with his Sword upon Erinetta, probably the Captain who had ſhot him, this Spaniard with the Butt-end of his Musket fell'd him to the Ground, and after theſe Words, * Lord have mercy upon me, and proſper [455] your Enterprize, young Ralegh ſpoke no more. Hereupon John Pleſſington, his Serjeant, thruſt the ſaid Spaniſh Captain through the Body with his Halbert. Two Commanders more of the Spaniards were at the ſame Time ſlain, one by John of Morocco, another of young Ralegh's Company: And laſtly the Governor himſelf alſo loſt his Life in the ſaid Engagement; which happened, as Camden reckons, the ſecond of January.

The Leaders being thus all diſpatch'd, and many of their Soldiers, the reſt fled and were diſpers'd, ſome to ſhelter about the Market place, from whence they kill'd and wounded the Engliſh at Pleaſure; ſo as they ſaw no Way left to be ſafe, but by firing the Town about their Ears, and driving them to the Woods and Mountains, whence they ſtill kept the Engliſh waking with perpetual Alarms. Others were more careful to defend the Paſſages to their Mines, of which they had three or four not far diſtant, than they had been to defend the Town itſelf. But for the Magazine of Tobacco, which one Writer, among other erroneous Repreſentations of this Voyage, thought might countervail the Charge of it, could it with ſome other Things have been preſerved, it ſeems not to have been conſumed by the Engliſh; becauſe Ralegh had enough thereof ſoon after to have paid for the victualling of his Fleet, if there had been Occaſion, as himſelf has related.

[456] All Obſtructions ſeeming thus removed, Capt. Keymis had now a fair Opportunity to make what Trial he pleas'd at the Mine; and that he did attempt the Diſcovery will appear by the Conſequence, as his Preparations do in the Letter he wrote to Ralegh ſix Days after the Action aforeſaid, tho' it came not long after to his Hands. Herein having open'd, in as gradual and diſcreet a Manner as he could, how gallantly his Son fell in this Exploit, and obſerved, that if his extraordinary Valour and Vigour of Mind had not led them all on, it had never been attempted, nor performed as it was, to his ſurviving Honour; having alſo obſerv'd, that, four of the beſt Houſes in Town belonged to Refiners; tho' he had ſeen no Coin or Bullion, but only a little Plate; he adds, Now I propoſe, God willing, to viſit the Mine, not eight Miles from the Town; ſooner I could not go by Reaſon of the Murmurings, the Diſcords and Vexations wherewith the Serjeant-Major is perpetually tormented. Concluding with theſe Words, I have ſent your Lordſhip a Parcel of ſcatter'd Papers, and reſerve a Cart-load; one Roll of Tobacco, one Tortoiſe, with ſome Oranges and Lemons; praying God to give you Strength and Health of Body, and a Mind armed againſt all Extremities. I reſt ever to be commanded, this 8th of January, 1617, your Lordſhip's, Keymis.

Indeed Ralegh had need of thoſe Prayers, on his own Part, at this Time, not only in his Sickneſs, but even in the Intervals he had of Recovery; for here to give ſome Account of him in this Time of Separation, we may obſerve, that he lay with the five larger Ships under himſelf, Capt. John Pennington, his Vice-Admiral, one of the moſt ſufficient Gentlemen for the Sea, that England has, ſays he; Sir Warham St. Leger, another [457] valiant and worthy Gentleman, Sir John Ferne, and Captain Chidley of Devon, moſtly at Punta de Gallo, and other Ports about Trinidad, no leſs than a hundred and fifty Miles from the reſt of his Fleet, making the Adventure up the Oronoque, yet in daily Apprehenſions of meeting with the Spaniſh Armada, ſent purpoſely to lay wait for and deſtroy him; which it would probably have done, after the great Sickneſs which had ſo much weakned his Men, and under this diſadvantageous Diviſion of his Ships, but that the Enemy luckily waited for him in a wrong Place. Beſides, it having been falſly rumour'd in his Fleet, that he brought out of England twenty-two thouſand Broad-pieces of Gold with him, ſome of his Crew traiterouſly conſpir'd to ſail away, while he was gone aſhore in his Barge, to take Views and make Diſcoveries of the Country, which he was ſometimes wont to do, as at Terra de Brea, or the Pitch-land, as he calls it, from the bitumenous Subſtance which ſo remarkably iſſues there, as he has well deſcrib'd; and when he travers'd ſome Woods to ſeek the Trees that yield that precious Balſam whereof he got a ſmall Quantity, which ſmelt like Angelica; ſo to have left him a Prey to Famine, wild Beaſts, or the no leſs unmerciful Spaniards, by whom he might have been flea'd alive, as other Engliſhmen, who came but to traffick, had formerly been. Add to this the many Provocations he received from the Spaniards, who were in any of the Ports where his Men landed, only to exchange a few Commodities for Tobacco or other Products of the Country, not only by the moſt opprobrious Language, but diſcharging ſometimes a Volley of twenty Muſkets at a Time upon them, whereby Sir John Ferne had ſome of his Men kill'd. And laſtly, the Uneaſineſs he was continually in, that he could hear no [458] Tidings of the reſt of his Fleet thus detach'd upon the Adventure. And tho' ſome Indian Spies were brought to him in the Beginning of February, by one of whom, who could ſpeak the Spaniſh Tongue, he was firſt informed, that the Engliſh in Orenoque, were reported, by ſome Tivitivas he had ſpoken with, to have taken St. Thome, and ſlain Diego de Palameca the Governor, with Captain Erinetta, and Captain John Rues; that the reſt fied, and that two Engliſh Captains were likewiſe kill'd: Tho' the ſame was ſoon after alſo aſſerted, with other Particulars, by another Indian; yet Ralegh would not ſet them down, till he knew the Truth; which afterwards endeavouring to compaſs of other Indians, ſaid to have been at the Taking of that Town, whom he ſent in Purſuit of, they eſcaped, and he was not certified in the Report, even near the middle of this Month, for ſo far his own Journal extends.

In the mean while Keymis made an Attempt for the Mine, and had ſet forward with Captain Thornhurſt, Mr. W. Herbert, Sir John Hamden and others; but at their firſt Approach, near the Bank where they intended to land, he received, from an Ambuſcade of Spaniards in the Woods (who had probably gather'd there with Expectation of his coming that Way to the Mine) a Volley of Shot, which ſlew two of his Company, hurt ſix others, and wounded Captain Thornhurſt ſo dangerouſly in the Head, that he languiſh'd thereof three Months after. This Blow firſt ſtagger'd the Reſolution of Keymis, who then, as he reflected more upon the State of their Condition, was more over-power'd with Doubts and Diſcouragements; inſomuch that though the Engliſh under him might have been informed of two or three Mines more, beſide this which Keymis had undertaken to lead them to, by [459] a Mulatto, who had waited on the late Governor in his Chamber, and, as he has written in his Letter beforemention'd, knew all Things that concern'd his Maſter. This Servant, afterwards, by no other Means than courteous Uſage, diſcover'd the ſame to Ralegh himſelf; and not only the Places where thoſe Mines lay, but more particularly, that two of them, Gold ones, were in the Poſſeſſion of Don Pedro Rodrigo de Parama, and Hermian Frontino; and a Silver one, in the Poſſeſſion of Franciſco Faſardo; and that the Cauſe of their remaining unwrought was, that they wanted Negroes to work them: for, by a Law of Charles the Emperor, the Indians could not be conſtrain'd, and the Spaniards neither would nor could endure the Labour. Yet did the Engliſh now decline all Endeavour, either to be directed to theſe, though but few Miles diſtant from the Town, or proceed to poſſeſs that which Keymis was to conduct them to, though within a few Hours March. Nay, when the Ships were upon their Return, and they had ſailed down the River as far as the Country of Carapana, one of the natural Lords, who had reſerved that Part of Guiana to the late Queen; and, having heard that the Engliſh had abandon'd St. Thome, and left no Forces, as he hop'd they would have done, had ſent a great Canoe, laden with Store of Fruits and Proviſions, to the Captains; alſo by one of his Men, who had learn'd the Spaniſh Tongue during his long Slavery under the Spaniards, had offer'd them a rich Gold Mine in his own Country, to engage their Stay; further proffering to leave ſufficient Pledge for any Engliſh Perſon they ſhould ſend to examine it; and, when Captain Leak with another of the Company, named Molineux, offer'd themſelves to go, the greater Part nevertheleſs refus'd to ſuffer them. This Declenſion [460] of his Offer, ſo heightned Carapana's Deſire to make it acceptable, that he ſent again, leaving one of his Men ſtill aboard, who entreated to detain them but two Days, and Carapana would himſelf, aged as he was, bring them a Sample of the Ore; who, though ſtill rejected, and the Ships under Sail, yet ſent once more a Boat after them up to the Mouth of the River, in hopes to the very laſt of retrieving them, as the ſaid Captain Leak, Parker, Molineux, and half a dozen Officers more, are, by Ralegh, nominated to atteſt. But the Adventurers, among other Diſſuaſives from all Temptation to continue there any longer, harbour'd a Notion that the Spaniards had ſecretly agreed with, and employ'd thoſe Indians only to trepan the Engliſh; which appear'd but a weak and ill-grounded Apprehenſion to Ralegh; for ſuch Treachery might have been eaſily prevented, had they waited the Arrival of the old Indian Chief, who would have brought the Ore to their very Ships. And what Advantage in betraying them, ſays he, could there be, when the Guianians offered to leave Hoſtages, ſix for one? Moreover, one of the Indians, whom the Engliſh found in Fetters when they took St. Thome, and brought with them aboard, could have told them, that the very Caſſique, who ſent to ſhew them the Gold Mine in his Country, was unconquer'd and at Enmity with the Spaniard; and could have aſſur'd them withal, that ſuch Mines were in that Country poſſeſs'd by the ſaid Caſſique. But no Intreaty or Invitation would retain them, and ſo they return'd, about the middle of February, to Punta de Gallo, after the Fleet had been thus divided, and they abſent above two Months from Sir Walter Ralegh, as himſelf has informed us; whereby it appears. that the Fleet united at, or very ſoon after, the Time he [461] diſcontinued his Journal; and it appears no where in that Journal, that any inhuman Offer was made to remove from Punta de Gallo to the Charibees, many Leagues off, where he knew Famine muſt over-take the Land Soldiers before they could overtake him, as his Enemies ſuggeſted: beſides, he cleared himſelf in ſuch a ſolemn Manner of this Aſperſion at his Death, as leaves not the leaſt Stain of Cruelty any where but upon their Characters who ſlander'd him with it.

'Tis poſſible that Keymis might, at his firſt Return, be favourably received, and ss familiarly admitted to Ralegh's Table as before; for a Diſappointment of this Conſequence was not to be too readily broach'd on one Side, nor reprehended on the other. Beſides, as ſome Mitigation of their ill Succeſs, and Inducement to further Hopes, Keymis produced two Ingots of Gold which had been reſerved at St. Thome, as the King of Spain's Quota, or Proportion; together with ſeveral other valuable Spoils of the Governor. Keymis alſo brought with him a large Quantity of Papers, Letters, Memorials, Schemes, Plans and Maps found in the ſaid Governor's Study; which gave ſome ſingular Lights into the State and Condition of Spain, with Reſpect to many of the American Plantations. Among theſe Papers were found four Letters, which plainly diſcover'd, not only Ralegh's whole Enterprize to have been betray'd, but his Life thereby put into the Power of the Spaniards themſelves; * [462] and by whom, even to the Breaking of that Peace, if any was broken, for which he was afterwards exclaim'd againſt. Ralegh himſelf has related: *for he thought this ſuch black and cruel Uſage, that he forbore not, in a Letter which he wrote, about a Month after this Time, from the Iſle of St. Chriſtopher's, to Sir Ralph Winwood, the Secretary of State, to ſhew his Senſe of it in theſe Words: It pleaſed his Majeſty to value us at ſo little, as to command me, upon my Allegiance, to ſet down under my Hand, the Country and the very River by which I was to enter it; to ſet down the Number of my Men, and Burden of my Ships, and what Ordnance every Ship carried; which being made known to the Spaniſh Ambaſſador, and by him ſent to the King of Spain, a Diſpatch was made and Letters [463] ſent from Madrid before my Departure out of the Thames. By the Contents of thoſe Spaniſh Letters it further appears, that three hundred Spaniſh Soldiers, and ten Pieces of Ordnance, were commiſſioned to be ſent from their reſpective Garriſons againſt, the Adventurers up the Orenoque; that is, a hundred and fifty Men from Nuevo Reyno de Granada, under the Command of Captain Antonio Muſica; and another hundred and fifty from Puerto Rico, to be conducted under Franciſco Zanchio. There was alſo prepared an Armada by Sea, to ſet upon Ralegh himſelf and the Ships with him; by which, ſays he, we had not only been torn to pieces, but all thoſe in the River had alſo periſhed, they being of no force for the Sea Fight; for we had reſolved to have burnt by their Sides, and to have died there, had the Armada arriv'd; but, belike, they ſtay'd for us at Margarita, by which they knew we muſt paſs towards the Indies. In another Letter, which he wrote the next Day from the ſame Iſland to his Wife, Ralegh ſays, Never was poor Man expoſed to Slaughter as I was. Then having related the Particulars of the Forces beforemention'd, ſent to deſtroy him, through the Communication of his Scheme to the Court of Spain by the Spaniſh Ambaſſador, he concludes this Part with theſe Words: It were too long to tell you how we were preſerved; if I live, I ſhall make it known.

But the Indignation which Ralegh muſt have conceived at the Sight of theſe Letters, was not a little heightned, when he came to hear that Keymis had made no actual Trial at the Mine, and the Reaſons he gave for having relinquiſh'd it. He alledg'd indeed, that after the Salley of the Spaniards upon them from the woody Banks, which had diſabled ſeveral of his Men at their firſt Attempt to land, he began to conſider, they had not [464] then able Men enough left to work the Mine; though indeed, it lay not ſo deep, as to need all thoſe Pioneers and Implements, which, in King James's Declaration, Ralegh is objected againſt for not carrying with him, as may appear by the firſt Diſcovery of this Mine, in the former Part of theſe Sheets. Keymis alſo argued, they had not Men enough to keep this Mine, though they ſhould eſcape further Danger in the difficult Paſſage to it, which he feared much they ſhould not; the Spaniards being more careful to preſerve it, as was ſaid, than the Town; and the Ways to it, Aſpera y Fragoſa, as Ralegh has obſerved; agreeable to that Infirtility and Unaptneſs for Cultivation, which Acoſta and other Naturaliſts, have deſcrib'd in thoſe Grounds which are impregnate with ſuch Treaſures. Keymis urged further, that they wanted ſufficient Proviſions for the Number remaining, having been much longer up the River than they expected; and that they could not carry enough from the Town up the Mountain, their Company being divided, the greater Part, in the Town itſelf, and thoſe too weak to defend it. That he further found all Regard to Order and Obedience broke through, as ſoon as Capt. Ralegh was dead; and feared the fatal News of his Death, would either not find his ſick Father alive, or haſten his End; that to attempt the Diſcovery, and fail through any of theſe Diſcouragements, he thought would be more detrimental than wholly at this Time to decline it: that to diſcover it for a Pack of Profligates and Mutineers, was more than they deſerv'd; and to diſcover it for Ralegh himſelf, not likely to live, and unpardon'd, was, as whiſper'd in the Company, for a Man non ens in the Law. Above all that, it would therefore be a greater Error to find it for the Spaniards, than to pretend it could no-where [465] be found. Laſtly, that theſe Arguments approv'd of by the Majority, were confirmed by the Alarm they received at the Diſcovery of the Letters aforeſaid, in the Governor's Cloſet; whereby they were led, every Moment, to expect a freſh Enforcement of the Enemy againſt them from each End of the River; therefore ſeparate as the Fleet was, and not able to make Reſiſtance, they all agreed to return.

However ſpecious theſe Arguments, or ſome of them, might be, Raleigh was in no wiſe pacify'd with them. He utterly diſavowed the whole Conduct of Keymis before ſeveral of his Company, and the Ignorance he had pretended to them; told him, that a blind Man might have found the Place, by the Marks and Directions himſelf had ſet down under his own Hand; and that his Care of loſing more Men in paſſing the Woods was but feigned; for after his Son's Death, it was known he had no Care for any Man ſurviving, and therefore, had he brought Home but one hundred Weight of Ore, tho' with the Loſs of as many Men, it would have given the King Satisfaction, preſerved his Reputation, and encouraged a Return the next Year, with greater Force, to have held the Country for his Majeſty, to whom it belonged; for the Riches and Fruitfulneſs whereof, himſelf had formerly ſo largely atteſted. But ſince he had ſuffered his Wilfulneſs, in ſpite of his Knowledge, to defeat their whole Undertaking, he ſhould indeed be glad if Keymis could make thoſe Reaſons, for not opening the Mine, paſſable with the State, but that he himſelf could not juſtify the Neglect. Keymis grew deeply diſcontented hereat, and continued ſo ſeveral Days. Afterwards he came to me in my Cabbin (ſays Ralegh) and ſhew'd me a Letter he had written to the Earl of Arundel, excuſing himſelf [466] for not diſcovering of the Mine, uſing the ſame Arguments, and many others, which he had done before; and prayed me to allow thereof. But Ralegh, no Way ſatisfied, declared that as Keymis could plead no Ignorance, he could admit of no Excuſe, being wounded in his Credit with the King paſt all Recovery, and that this could admit of no Reparation. Keymis, ſeeing Ralegh reſolved not to favour his Folly, retired as one knowing not what Courſe to take, yet expreſſing, perhaps, alſo ſome Deſign of giving further Satisfaction; and went out of my Cabbin into his own, ſays Ralegh, where having ſhut himſelf in, Ralegh ſoon after heard a Piſtol go off, and ſending up to know who diſcharged it, Keymis made Anſwer, he fired it himſelf, becauſe it had been long charg'd. About half an Hour after, his Boy going into his Cabbin, found him dead, with much Blood by him, having a long Knife thruſt through his Left Pap into his Heart, and his Piſtol lying by him, with which it appeared that he had ſhot himſelf; but the Bullet being ſmall, and having only crack'd a Rib, he diſpatch'd effectually with the Knife. *And this, [467] as I compute, happen'd about the latter End of February aforeſaid, or perhaps the former Part of March, becauſe Ralegh mentions it in the Letters he wrote this Month into England, before referr'd to; therefore the Death of Keymis could not happen in the following Summer, as one Author miſtakes. And whereas ſome had given it out, that Keymis ſlew himſelf through Remorſe that he had ſeduced and deluded ſo many Gentlemen with an imaginary Mine, Ralegh will not allow that to have been the Cauſe, but aſcribes it entirely to his own poſitive and paſſionate Temper, and ſays, that he would not have laid violent Hands on himſelf for any Man's Opinion; nor when he did, adds Ralegh, could he have ſaid unto me that he was ignorant of the Place, and knew of no ſuch Mine; for what Cauſe had I then to have rejected his Excuſes, or to have laid his Obſtinacy to his Charge. Further urging, that ſeveral Captains, whom Ralegh names, might be put to their Oaths, whether or no, Keymis did not confeſs to them, coming down the River, at a Place where they caſt Anchor, that he could, from thence, have gone to the Mine in two Hours.

After this Accident it was determined, in a Council of the Officers, to make for Newfoundland, to repair and refreſh their Ships; but before, as well as after, they arrived there, great Diſorders aroſe: Some took to Courſes of their own Head, and ran away from him, as was before-mentioned; and many others proved ſo refractory and ungovernable, that, when he came to the Iſle of St. Chriſtopher's, he was forced, under the Conduct of his Couſin, Mr. Herbert, to ſhip them Home. Of whom, tho' he had [468] ſhewed ſome uncommon Generoſity to ſome of them, he ſays, in the Letter he wrote from thence to his Wife on the 22d of March, I know then will not ſpare to wound me; and further declares, There is never a baſe Slave in all the Fleet that hath taken the Pains and Care that I have done; that hath ſlept ſo little, and travell'd ſo much: My Friends will not believe them, and for the Reſt I care not. In another Letter he ſent from hence at the ſame Time to Sir Ralph Winwood, he writes to the ſame Senſe, and further adds: But theſe being gone, I ſhall, ſays he, be able, if I live, to keep the Sea till the End of Auguſt, with ſome four reaſonable good Ships; for to that Number was his Fleet now reduced. By the Time here propoſed of continuing at Sea, there might have now been Thoughts of ſome Courſe to qualify the Miſadventure of the Mine, and enable them to re attempt it; perhaps by ſome little trading Voyages: But how probable that he ſhould deſign any Thing ſo far as the Eaſt-Indies, or that with ſuch ſmall Force he intended to go for the Weſtern Iſlands, to attack the Mexico Fleet, and ſurprize the Carracks, as in the King's Declaration is laid to Ralegh's Charge, we ſhall leave for others to decide. 'Tis plain that nothing of this was put in Practice; for when they came to Newfoundland, the Company in his own Ship mutiny'd, and thoſe who were for ſtaying aboard, whom Wilſon calls the major Part, made Ralegh, ſays he, take an Oath not to go Home but by their Allowance. But the Declaration ſays, that the greater Number were for returning to England; and that Ralegh getting on the Sea-bank put it to the Queſtion; whereupon the Voices divided, ſtarboard and larboard; and that when he perceived the greater Number voted for their Return, he went to that Side and voted ſo too; but manifeſtly to the Hazard of his [469] Life was his voting on either Side. In the ſame Declaration we are further led to believe, he afterwards offered his own Ship, which was of great Value, to his Company, if they would only ſet him aboard a French Bark; and that he made the ſame Offer to ſome of his Officers when he was come back to Ireland, as not knowing how Things would be conſtrued, and being loth to put his Head under the King's Girdle; but he did, and we ſhall ſee the Conſequence of it.

By the Time that Ralegh arrived on the Coaſt of Ireland, the ſacking of St. Thome, the firing of the Town, and the Slaughter of the Spaniards, to the Number of four or five hundred Men, were largely deſcanted on by his Enemies, as by his Friends were his own more particular Misfortunes in the long and dangerous Sickneſs he had endur'd; his Diſappointment in the Mine; the Conſumption of ſo much Treaſure; the Loſs of his gallant Son; the violent End of his old Servant Captain Keymis; and above all the general Diſorder, Defection, and Diſperſion of his own Fleet. All together, it became not ſo much a national as a univerſal Topic of Diſcourſe and Attention; every one cenſuring or commiſerating as their Intereſt or Affections mov'd. It is remember'd by Camden, that Captain John North, Brother to the Lord North, a valiant Gentleman, and who was much eſteemed by Ralegh for his faithful Conduct under him throughout this Voyage, was the firſt who related the deplorable News of this unfortunate Expedition to King James, on the 13th of May, 1618. He ſeems to have done it in a very juſt and pathetical Manner; and it might have had a good Effect, had that King's Pity been as eaſily touch'd as his Fear. Among Authors, ſome, who had been for regiſtering this Commiſſion of King James with that [470] granted by Alphonſo, King of Naples, to Bertram his Captive Moor, whom he intruſted both with his Liberty, and a large Sum of Money to buy him ſome fine Horſes in Barbary, for which his Jeſter gave him a prime Place in his Fool's Chronicle; were now, upon the Expectation of a Return, ready, with the ſame Jeſter, to blot out the King, and enroll the Captive for a Fool: But others look'd upon this Action of Ralegh's in a nobler and more elevated Light, and as what, for the Integrity of acquitting his fiduciary Pledges, was rather to be compared with the generous Act of that brave Roman Conſul, Attilius Regulus; who, to keep his Promiſe and his Faith, returned to his Enemies, the Carthaginians, under whom he had been a Priſoner; tho' he knew that he went to inevitable Death.

And now the Spaniſh Ambaſſador having, by ſpecial Advertiſements, gain'd the earlieſt Intelligence of all that had paſſed at Guiana; and how, among the Reſt, his own Kinſman, the Governor, had been ſlain, broke into the King's Preſence in a turbulent Manner, and bawling out for his Majeſty's Audience, only of one Word, aſſaulted him with the abrupt and repeated Exclamation of Piratas! Piratas! Piratas! At laſt he found Breath and Words to enlarge upon the Matter ſo effectually, as what tended not only to the Infringement of his Majeſty's Promiſe, but that happy Union between the two Crowns in their Royal Progeny; now the Match between Prince Charles and Dona Maria, with all the Advantages it was pregnant with, was in ſuch a hopeful Degree of Maturity, even to the involving of both Nations in the moſt durable, and dreadful Hoſtilities, that the pacifick King of Great Britain was ready to do any Thing in the World to appeaſe him, and huſh it up. To this [471] Purpoſe, his Royal Proclamation was forthwith publiſh'd on the 11th of June, ſetting forth, that Whereas we gave Liberty to Sir Walter Ralegh and others, to undertake a Voyage to Guiana, where they had pretended a Probability of diſcovering Gold Mines, &c. We did, by expreſs Limitation and Caution, reſtrain and forbid them from attempting any Act of Hoſtility upon any Territories or Subjects of foreign Princes with whom we are in Amity; and more particularly, thoſe of our dear Brother the King of Spain, in Reſpect of his Dominions in that Continent, which, notwithſtanding, they have, by hoſtile Invaſion of the Town of St. Thome, &c. broken and infringed. We have therefore held fit to make publick Declaration of our utter Miſlike and Deteſtation of the ſaid Inſolencies; and for the better Detection and clearing up of the Truth, we charge all our Subjects, that have any Underſtanding or Notice thereof, to repair to any of our Privy Council, and make known their whole Knowledge, that we m [...]y thereupon proceed to the Exemplary Puniſhment and Coercion of all ſuch as are found guilty of ſo ſcandalous and enormous Outrages.

The next Thing to be thought of was, a proper and plauſible Inſtrument for the Apprehenſion of Sir Walter Ralegh when he ſhould come aſhore; ſuch a one was Sir Lewis Stucley ſoon found to be (and not Sir John, as one Writer erroneouſly chriſtens him) who was Vice-Admiral of Devon (not Lieutenant of the Tower, as the ſame negligent Author miſtakes again.) One who, though Ralegh's Countryman, and, as all others but Stucley ſay, his Kinſman too, yet moſt officiouſly undertook that Charge, through the ſordid Proſpect of Profit; ſo unnatural, ſays Wilſon, and ſervile is the Spirit when it hath an Allay of Baſeneſs; there being many others fitter for that Employment. However, [472] his Orders were to bring up this great Malefactor in a fair and courteous Manner, according to his Majeſty's gracious and mild Courſe, as it is call'd in his Declaration. And though we are told by one, otherwiſe miſguided in his Account of this Expedition, by ſome diſtorted Repreſentations of it in thoſe Times, That the World much wonder'd, ſo great a wiſe Man as Sir Walter Ralegh, would return to caſt himſelf upon ſo inevitable a Rock as it was feared he would; nevertheleſs, as we are aſſured, by Captain Samuel King, an old Officer of Ralegh's, who bore him Company all this while, and has left us a particular Narrative of whatſoever occurr'd in their Journey from their landing now at Plymouth, to their final Arrival at London, that he no ſooner put into the Harbour, and heard of the Proclamation aforeſaid againſt him, than he reſolved to ſurrender himſelf voluntarily into his Majeſty's Hands; and to that Intent, both moor'd his Ship and ſent his Sails aſhore the firſt Day he landed; which I take to have been in the Beginning of July, and after he had been abſent upon this Voyage a full Twelve-month. Moreover, though he ſoon met here with ſeveral diſcouraging Reports alſo, concerning the Spaniſh Ambaſſador's Stay at London only for his coming up, to proſecute him, as my ſaid Manuſcript Author has it; Ralegh ſtill continued firm in that Reſolution. The ſaid Ambaſſador is, in ſome common Memoirs, ſaid to have been ſent for over to Spain at this Time; and in ſome again, that his Commiſſion was expir'd; but others think, that Impatience to deliver the Succeſs of his Negotiations ſpur'd him away, according to Inſtruction, when he had got full Aſſurance that Ralegh ſhould be diſpatch'd at ſome Rate or other, whatever he could ſay for himſelf: for he departed for Spain [473] three Weeks before Ralegh came to London, having left the Remainder of his Buſineſs in the Hands of ſome eſpanioliz'd Partiſans at Court, whom he had made ſure. * However, before he left England, [474] an excellent Letter ſeems to have been written by Ralegh in his own Defence, and conveyed to the [475] King; which, as we have it in Print, runs thus: May it pleaſe your moſt excellent Majeſty, If in my Journey outward bound I had my Men murdered at the Iſlands, and yet ſpared to take Revenge; if I [476] did diſcharge ſome Spaniſh Barks taken without Spoil; if I did forbear all Parts of the Spaniſh Indies, wherein I might have taken twenty of their Towns on the Sea-Coaſts, and did only follow the Enterprize I undertook for Guiana, where, without any Directions from me, a Spaniſh Village was burnt, which was new ſet up within three Miles of the Mine: by your Majeſty's Favour, I find no Reaſon why the Spaniſh Ambaſſador ſhould complain of me.

If it were lawful for the Spaniards to murder twenty-ſix Engliſhmen, tying them back to back, and then cutting their Throats, when they had traded with them a whole Month, and came to them on the Land without ſo much as one Sword; and it may not be lawful for your Majeſty's Subjects, being charged firſt by them, to repel Force by Force; we may juſtly ſay, O miſerable Engliſh!

If Parker and Mecham took Campeachy and other Places in the Honduras, ſeated in the Heart of the Spaniſh Indies; burnt Towns, and killed the Spaniards, and had nothing ſaid unto them at their Return; and myſelf, who forbore to look into the Indies, becauſe I would not offend, muſt be accus'd; I may as juſtly ſay, O miſerable Ralegh!

If I have ſpent my poor Eſtate, loſt my Son, ſuffer'd by Sickneſs, and otherwiſe a World of Hardſhips; if I have reſiſted with manifeſt Hazard of my Life, the Robberies and Spoils with which my Companions would have made me rich: if when I was poor, I could have made myſelf rich: if when I had gotten my Liberty, which all Men and Nature itſelf do much prize, I voluntarily loſt it: if when I was ſure of my Life, I rendered it again: if I might elſewhere have ſold my Ship and Goods, and put five or ſix thouſand Pounds in my Purſe, and yet brought her into England; I beſeech your Majeſty to believe, that all this I have done, becauſe it ſhould not be ſaid, [477] thay your Majeſty had given Liberty and Truſt to a Man, whoſe End was but the Recovery of his Liberty, and who had betrayed your Majeſty's Truſt.

My Mutineers told me, that if I returned for England I ſhould be undone; but I believed in your Majeſty's Goodneſs, more than in all their Arguments. Sure, I am the firſt that being free and able to enrich myſelf, yet hath embraced Poverty and Peril; and as ſure I am, that my Example ſhall make me the laſt. But your Majeſty's Wiſdom and Goodneſs I have made my Judges; who have ever been, and ſhall ever be, your Majeſty's moſt humble Vaſſal, Walter Ralegh.

When Ralegh had ſettled his Affairs in the weſt of England, he began his Journey to London, purſuant to his firſt Reſolution; but before he came to Aſhburton, twenty Miles from Plymouth, he was met by Sir Lewis Stucley; who ſaid, he had Orders for arreſting him and his Ship. Ralegh anſwer'd, he had ſaved him the Labour, and done it to his Hands. And though at that Time Stucley had no Warrant, as our MS Author aforeſ [...]d goes on, for ſuch Arreſt, either from the King, or the Lords of the Council, for it ſeems that his Haſte was ſo great, and his Heart ſo ſet upon ſome ſuppoſed Purchaſe, that he could not ſtay for a Warrant; yet Ralegh, being told by him, that he had ſuch a verbal Commiſſion from the Secretary, did in no wife reſiſt even that Authority. So they went back together to Plymouth, and lay at Sir Chriſtopher Harris his Houſe; where Sir Walter Ralegh was ſo little watch'd, that he was ſometimes two or three Days without ſeeing Sir Lewis Stucley. And Ralegh himſelf ſays, that Stucley left him nine or ten Days to go where he liſted, while he rode about the Country. However, as we learn from Captain King, it did, at laſt, come into Ralegh's Mind (whether upon ſome private Advices, how inſuperably [478] the Prejudice of his Enemies was working againſt him; or any Suggeſtions of his own, how he might work a Reconciliation more ſucceſsfully from abroad, it is not ſaid, but contrive he did) to convey himſelf out of the Kingdom. Therefore, while they were at Plymouth, he employ'd our Author, the ſaid Captain King, to provide him a Bark that would carry him over into France, King James's Declaration ſays, Ralegh dealt with for a Bark, as for a Friend, and proffered twelve Crowns for the Paſſage: Stucley ſays, he dealt with two Captains of French Barks: the Declaration ſays, Ralegh was then under no Guard, and Stucley, that he was then under his keeping. But leaving theſe Inconformities to others, I here follow Captain King, who informs us, that himſelf procur'd the Veſſel, which is moſt likely, and that he detain'd it nigh four Days, riding at Anchor beyond command of the Fort. The firſt Night, about one of the Clock, they ſecretly took Boat to have gone Aboard, but before they reach'd the Bark, Ralegh, whether through ſome more prevailing Thought that might ariſe of a generous Reliance upon the King, or a more confident Dependance upon the Juſtice of his Cauſe, or for any thing he left behind, or would have firſt left either in Writing or otherwiſe, does not yet appear; but certain it is he changed his Reſolution, and returned to his Lodging unſuſpected by any one. The next Day, he ſent Money to the Maſter of the Bark, to retain him one Night more; and yet Ralegh never went nigh him afterwards.

It has been objected, as Captain King goes on, (who does not ſay by whom, but I find it in the King's Declaration) that Ralegh was obliged to return, becauſe the Night was ſo Dark that he could not find the Veſſel: But I (ſays the Captain) who [479] was with him, will take my Oath, that if he had been only willing to have rowed a quarter of a Mile further, he might have ſeen her. Beſides, if that Night would not have ſerved, one of the other three would, the Wind being fair, and the Tide falling out conveniently.

After this, ſays Captain King, Stucley received a Warrant to bring up Sir Walter Ralegh, but with no more ſpeed than his Health would permit; and he took to his Aſſiſtance, one Manourie, a French Quack, upon what Occaſion (ſays King) I here willingly omit, as well becauſe I would not meddle with any Inſtrument of State, as becauſe I, little ſuſpecting what followed, was ſomewhat careleſs in the Obſervance of their Carriage.

In their Journey they baited and lodg'd at divers Gentlemens Houſes of Ralegh's Acquaintance upon the Road, from ſome of whom hearing, more diſtinctly the nearer he approach'd it, what a ſtorm his Enemies had brew'd at Court, he began to regret his having neglected the Opportunity he had at Plymouth of retiring; which he diſcourſed of to his Lady and to Me, ſays Captain King, who told him, He could blame none but himſelf. But after that peremptory Warrant, which a Purſuivant brought down for the ſpeedy bringing up of his Perſon, he began again to meditate upon a Retreat; tho', as he grew more deſirous, it grew more difficult. Therefore, when he had made ſuch inland Advancement on his Journey as to have no Means left that would favour him by Water, He once more employed me (ſays Captain King) who was always ready to do any thing that might procure his Safety; being well aſſur'd in my own Conſcience, tho' he ſought to abſent himſelf till the Spaniſh Fury was over, yet, as he always ſaid; That no Miſery ſhould make him Diſloyal to his King or Country. And altho' [480] Manourie, in his Declaration, ſets down that Sir Walter Ralegh ſhould, to him in private, ſpeak ill of his Majeſty; yet I muſt proteſt till my laſt Hour, that in all the Years I followed him, I never heard him name his Majeſty but with Reverence: I am ſorry the Aſſertion of that Man ſhould prevail ſo much againſt the Dead.

The particulars of Captain King's Employment for this ſecond Eſcape, we ſhall reſpite a while, to make way for thoſe, which, according to the due Courſe of Time, muſt now be recur'd to out of that Frenchman's Declaration, as Captain King calls it above, and ſhall do it with ſuch Juſtice as not to omit or diſguiſe any of the ill Words, againſt his Majeſty, aſcribed to Ralegh therein. But can only do it from that which was ſuffer'd to appear after Ralegh's Death, annexed to King James's Declaration; and thereby chuſe rather to hazard a Treſpaſs upon the Patience of ſome Readers, who may think it a Detail of improbable, at leaſt inſignificant Objections, than incur the Cenſure of Partiality from others in omitting it; ſince King James, and conſequently his Council, thought it would paſs for Matter of ſuch Importance, by their making it ſo great a Part of what was hoped would juſtify his Proceedings againſt Ralegh; and of ſuch Authority, as to need no other Evidence: not that it is there too expreſſively or poſitively call'd Manourie's Declarations, or his Confeſſion or Examination upon Oath, but by a pretty, light, pliable Phraſe, 'tis ſaid, The Story himſelf reporteth to have paſſed in this Manner.

Upon Saturday, the 25th of July, Sir Walter Ralegh, Sir Lewis Stucley, and the ſaid Manourie went to he at Mr. Drake's, where the Letters of Commiſſion from the Privy Council were brought to Sir Lewis Stucley, and that Ralegh hereat changing [481] Countenance, exclaimed with an Oath, Is it poſſible my Fortune ſhould return upon me thus again? This haſtening their Departure, they advanc'd on Sunday Morning nearer to London about four Miles, and baited at Mr. Horſey's. That here Ralegh firſt cauſed Manourie to be founded what was in his Heart (ſuſpecting, apparently, that he was deſigned as a Spy over him) by his Old Domeſtick, Captain King; who, diſcourſing Manourie upon Ralegh's Calamities, ſaid, I wiſh we were all at Paris. Manourie anſwer'd, I would we were all at London; what ſhould we do at Paris? Becauſe, ſaid King, as ſoon as we come to London, they will commit Sir Walter to the Tower, and cut off his Head. Manourie ſaid, he hoped better Things, and that, according to his Ability, he was ready to do him all honeſt Service. After Dinner they ſet forward for Sherborne; and here Ralegh is ſaid to tell Manourie, All that was his, and the King had unjuſtly taken it from him. Manourie, and Ralegh's Retinue lay in the Town that Night; but Ralegh himſelf and Stucley, at old Mr. Parham's. On Monday they got to Saliſbury, where as Ralegh was walking on foot down the Hill, and had found, by Enquiry, that Manourie had got ſome Phyſick about him, he deſired him to prepare a Vomit againſt Morning. For I know, ſaid he, (as he is here repreſented, with a ſurprizing Faith already in ſuch a Man) 'twill be good to evacuate bad Humours; and by this Means, I ſhall gain Time to work my Friends, order my Aſſairs, and perhaps pacify his Majeſty: otherwiſe, as ſoon as I come to London, they'll have me to the Tower, and cut off my Head, which I cannot eſcape without counterfeiting Sickneſs, which your Vomits will effect without Suſpicion. Accordingly that, at Saliſbury, he complained of a Dimneſs of Sight, with a Dizzineſs in his Head; and, [482] when he was conducted towards his Chamber, that he ſtagger'd, and ſtruck himſelf with ſuch Violence againſt a Pillar in the Gallery, as made Stucley think he was ſick indeed; and in that Belief, Manourie left him for that Time. On Tueſday Morning, Ralegh ſent his Lady with the greateſt Number of his Servants forwards to London; and now it was he alſo ſent Captain King thither, on the Expedition aforeſaid (whom we ſhall meet with there, prepared for the ſame, as ſoon as Manourie is brought to an End of this ſame Story.) Then comes a Servant of Ralegh's, into Stucley's Chamber, and declares his Maſter was out of his Wits, that he left him in his Shirt, upon all four, ſcratching and gnawing the Ruſhes on the Planks. Stucley ſent Manourie, who found him in Bed; and aſking what he ail'd? he anſwer'd, Nothing; but that he did it on Purpoſe. That then Ralegh aſked for the Vomit, and took it without any Heſitation. At Stucley's Entrance, that he fell a raving; and, before his Vomit operated, had ſuch ſtrong Convulſions upon him, that Stucley, and all the Help he could get, were not ſtrong enough to prevent the Contraction of his Sinews as faſt as the Company could draw them ſtraight, inſomuch that Stucley cauſed him to be chaf'd and fomented, but that Ralegh, truly, afterwards laugh'd at it to Manourie, and ſaid (ſuch a Confident is he now grown) he had made Stucley a perfect Phyſician.

In the next Place, Ralegh muſt be obſerved to take ſome Repoſe; ſo Manourie is ſhut into the Room with him, and having diſſuaded him from a more violent Vomit, becauſe his firſt did not yet work, Ralegh aſk'd, if he knew not of ſome Preparation which would make him look ghaſtly and i [...]kſome outwardly, and not affect the Vitals, or make him inwardly ſick: After a Pauſe, Manourie [483] aſſur'd him he could furniſh him with an harmleſs Ointment, which would yet ſoon make him all over like a Leper. Whereby, we are told, Ralegh ſaid, the Lords would be afraid to approach him, and that it would move their Pity beſides. Soon after he had been thus anointed on the Brows, Arms and Breaſt, the Bliſters roſe ſucceſsfully, and ſo ſoon ripen'd to their full Diſcolourations, that Stucley, at his next Viſit, perceiving Ralegh's Body all broke out in purple Spots with yellow Heads, and the reſt of his Skin ſo inflamed with Heat, concluded he was ſtruck over with the Plague, and that it was highly contagious. But aſking Manourie's Opinion, he truly concealed all, for that, as yet, he knew nothing of Ralegh's intended Flight; but thought it was only to gain Time to ſatisfy his Majeſty. However, away went Stucley to the grave Biſhop Andrews, then upon the Point of his Tranſlation to Wincheſter, and ſoon made known what a frightful Figure Sir Walter Ralegh was become; deſcribed all the Tokens upon him, and, in the End, return'd with two Doctors, and one Batchelor of Phyſick. All their Skill could not enlighten them with one Spark of Knowledge in the Nature of his Diſtemper; but they gave their Opinion in Writing, that the Patient could not be removed into the Air without manifeſt Hazard of his Life; and Manourie ſet his Hand to it.

Here, Ralegh is deſcrib'd to have been much delighted that Matters went on ſo proſperouſly, eſpecially that the Vomit worked ſo thoroughly in the preſence of theſe learned Doctors. But having apprehended they would inſpect his Water, he directed Manourie to rub the Urinal with a certain D [...]ug, which turned all to ſuch a diſmal Colour, and ſuch a diſagreeable Scent, that if Heaven did not preſcribe, the Patient muſt periſh; for nothing [484] could the Phyſicians do but pronounce the Diſeaſe mortal. Further, that he then made Manourie bind his Arm about with the black Silk Ribband which he took from his Poniard; but that not diſtempering his Pulſe agreeable to Expectation, he had more Bliſters raiſed the next Day. By this Time his Phyſick having opened his Stomach and made him hungry, he got Manourie ſecretly to buy a Leg of Mutton and three Loaves, which he fed upon in private, and by this Subtilty, was thought to have faſted three Days, that is to Friday the laſt of July, ever feigning great Indiſpoſition and Uneaſineſs in Company; but when alone, for to get the Opportunity of being ſo was the chief Source of all the Artifice he did here really put in Practice, he wrote his Declaration or Apology, and is ſaid to have got Manourie to make him a Tranſcript of it; which was, as the Penman of this Story further ſays, ſince preſented to his Majeſty. But by an Expreſſion of that Ambiguity and Latitude, whether we are deſigned to underſtand it was before or after Ralegh's Death; that Penman, intelligent enough in other Parts of Manourie's ſaid Story, and the reſt of the King's Declaration (for they were both of them viſibly caſt in one Mould) might think it not neceſſary to be ſo here. It was ſurely a moſt vexatious Stratagem, that Ralegh ſhould unexpectedly make ſuch a provoking Vindication of his Voyage, and thereby defeat the Preparations that were making to cut him off for it: but however it may in the Opinion of Poſterity, have cleared his innocence; among his Cotemporaries, it could not ſecure his Safety.

The ſame Night, as the Story goes on, apparently to ra [...]ſe inflammations beyond his own Perſon, he inſinuated to Stucley, that he thought he had taken Po [...]n at Mr. Pa [...]ham's, for that he was a Papiſt, [485] and kept a Prieſt in his Houſe; but deſired, and particularly to Monſieur, that it might not be ſpoken of. A while after, being in his Bed-Chamber undreſs'd, and no Body preſent but his Friend Manourie, he is ſaid to have taken a Looking-glaſs in his Hand to admire his ſpotted Face, and to have merrily obſerved to his ſaid Confident, how they ſhould one Day laugh for having thus cozen'd the King, Council, Phyſicians, and Spaniards and all.

On the firſt of Auguſt, being the Day that the King arrived in his Progreſs at Saliſbury, Ralegh is ſaid to have taken Manourie in private, and having open'd a red Leather Trunk, put into his Hand nine Pieces of Spaniſh Gold, ſaying, There is twenty Crowns in Piſtoles, which I give you for your Phyſical Receipts, and the Victuals you bought me: and I will give you fifty Pounds a Year if you will do what I tell you: and if Sir Lewis Stucley aſks what Conference you have had with me, tell him that you comfort me in my Adverſity, and that I make you no other Anſwer than what is here written, giving him a Piece of Paper containing theſe Words, Ve la, M. Manourie, l'acceptance de tous mes travaux; perte de mon Eſtate, et de mon fils; mes maladies et douleurs: Ve la, c'effect de ma Confience au Roy. * Which Paper of Ralegh's own HandWriting, was afterwards produced by Manourie.

[486] And now Ralegh is pretended to practiſe more unreſervedly ſtill about the Eſcape with Manourie, as being all in his Power to aid him, and he the only Perſon truſted by Stucley. Whereupon he propoſes, that Ralegh, at his coming to London, ſhould lie perdue at a Friend of Manourie's in Shire-Lane, which did not long engage his Approbation, for Ralegh reſolved otherwiſe; telling this only Perſon truſted by Stucley (through an incredible Profuſeneſs of Communication) that he had ſent Captain King to hire him a Bark below Graveſend, which would go with all Winds, and another little Boat to carry him to it. Adding, that to hide himſelf in London, he ſhould be always apprehenſive of a Diſcovery by the general Searchers that are there; but that to eſcape, he muſt get Leave to go to his own Houſe, and being there, he would ſo handle the Matter, as to ſlip from Stucley through a Back-door into the Boat with Eaſe; for no Body would dream he could go on Foot, ſeeing him ſo feeble as he ſeemed to be. Then that Manourie ſhould ſay, Why would you fly? your Apology and your laſt Declaration, do they not ſufficiently juſtify you? and that Ralegh ſhould ſilence him with, Tell me no more; a man that fears, is never ſecure.

In the next Place, Ralegh is ſaid to have procur'd the King's Licence to be at his own Houſe when he ſhould come to London: and that when Manourie hereupon obſerved, his Majeſty ſeem'd not inclin'd to take away his Life, ſince he ſuffer'd him to repair to his own Habitation for the Recovery of his Health; that Ralegh ſhould reply, They uſed all theſe Kinds of Flatteries to the Duke of Bi [...]on, to draw him fairly into Priſon, and then they cut off his Head. Adding, I know they have concluded among them, it is expedient that a Man ſhould die to re-aſſure the Traffick which I have broken with [487] Spain. Thereupon, ſays our Story, he broke forth into the moſt hateful and traiterous Words againſt the King's own Perſon (but it ſurpriſingly omits them all to object only his) ending with this improbable Rant, that if he could but ſave himſelf for this Time, he would plot ſuch Plots as ſhould make the King think himſelf happy to ſend for him again, and reſtore him to his Eſtate with Advantage; yea, and would force the King of Spain to write into England in his Favour.

Nay, when Manourie (as we are further perſuaded) ſhewed ſuch Care and Concern for Stucley as to aſk, what would become of him if Ralegh eſcap'd? Whether he would be put to Death, or loſe his Office and Eſtate? Ralegh is ſaid to anſwer, Not to Death; but he would be impriſon'd for a while, yet his Lands were aſſured to his eldeſt Son, and for the reſt it was no Part of his Care. Then Manourie aſks, if it were not Treaſon in himſelf to be aiding to his Eſcape? No; anſwers Ralegh, you are a Foreigner. However, if you pretend to know any Thing, they'll put you in Priſon. But what if I am diſcover'd to have a Hand in your Eſcape? ſays t'other. Why follow me into France, your own Country, replies Ralegh; quit all and I will make amends for all.

As they travell'd, between Andover and Stains, Manourie, as this Story that is aſcrib'd to him acknowledges, diſcovered Ralegh's intended Eſcape to Stucley, who thenceforth uſed extraordinary Diligence in Guards and Watches upon him, which Ralegh perceiving, as it is alſo own'd, nevertheleſs truſts Manourie with a new Propoſal at Stains in theſe Words; I ſee it is not poſſible to eſcape by our two Means alone, Stucley is ſo watchful, and ſets ſuch ſtrict Guard upon me, and will be too hard for us with all our Cunning; therefore there is no Way but [488] to make him of our Council; and if we can perſuade him to let me ſave myſelf, I will give him in Hand the Worth of two hundred Pounds Sterling. Upon theſe Words, he drew forth and ſhewed Manourie a Jewel made in the Faſhion of Hail, powder'd with Diamonds, having a Ruby in the middle, valued at a hundred and fifty Pounds Sterling; and putting it into his Hands ſaid, Beſides this Jewel, he ſhall have fifty Pounds in Money; pray tell him as much from me, and perſuade him to it, I know he will truſt you.

This Overture being made by Manourie, Stucley, after ſome Parley, ſent back Word by him to Ralegh, that he would accept of his Offer, and bad him tell Ralegh he was content to do as he had deſired: but would chuſe rather to go with him than tarry behind with Shame and Reproach; directing Manourie further to aſk, how this could be done without loſing his Office of Vice-Admiral, which coſt him ſix hundred Pounds; alſo to what Place they ſhould go, how they ſhould live afterwards, and what Means he would carry with him to furniſh this intended Eſcape? Ralegh obviates all this with praying him to tell Stucley, that if he would ſwear unto him not to diſcover him, he would tell him his whole Intent; and that for the firſt Point, though Stucley were to loſe his Office, he ſhould yet be no loſer; that as ſoon as he was got into France or Holland, his Wife was to ſend him a thouſand Pounds; and that he ſhould carry with him only a thouſand Crowns in Money and Jewels to ſerve at preſent. After Supper, Ralegh is further repreſented ſo open, ſo contrary to all his former Character, and beyond all Manner of Belief, as to ſay, O if I could eſcape without Stucley, I ſhould do bravely; but it's no Matter, I'll carry him along, and afterwards diſpatch myſelf of him well enough. Then Manourie having appriſed Stucley [489] of all that paſs'd, brought them together. Ralegh ſhewed the Jewel, and, probably, deliver'd it, for Stucley ſhewed himſelf content, and it was probably upon the Acceptance of it, but deſired a little Reſpite to diſpoſe of his Office. Manourie, having thus ſeen the Agreement made, took his Leave of them for London (the Part deſign'd for him ending here) after having ſaid to Ralegh, he did not think of ſeeing him again, while he was in England. Ralegh, at parting, gave him, by a Letter to a Perſon at Radford, an Iron Furnace, with a Diſtillatory of Copper belonging to it; and charged him to tell every Body he met, how ſick he was, and that he left him in an extreme Looſeneſs that very Night.

But as Ralegh had diſpatch'd Captain King to London with Inſtructions to be in Readineſs for him, he kept moving on; when there fell out an Accident which gave him freſh Hopes to facilitate his Eſcape. For when he came to his Inn at Brentford, he was met by a Frenchman, named La Cheſnay, a Follower of Le Clerc, Agent from the French King; who told Ralegh, the ſaid French Agent was very deſirous to ſpeak with him, as ſoon as he got to London, about ſome Affairs which highly concerned his Safety. Accordingly the next Night after Ralegh was at London, the ſaid Le Clerc and La Cheſnay came to viſit him at his Houſe: and there Le Clerc offer'd him a French Bark, which he had prepared for him to eſcape in; and withal, his Letters recommendatory for his ſafe Conduct and Reception, to the Governor of Calais; and to ſend a Gentleman expreſly that ſhould attend and meet him there. But Ralegh underſtanding the French Bark not to be ſo ready nor ſo fit as that he had already propoſed for himſelf, gave him Thanks, and told him, that he would [490] make uſe of his own Bark, but for his Letters, and the reſt of his Offer, that he ſhould be beholden to him, becauſe his Acquaintance in France was worn out. * With this Paſſage, and a Word or two only of Ralegh's Attempt to eſcape, after he came to London, it not being thought proper here to expatiate upon the Arts uſed in betraying it, ends the tedious Fardel of Objections accumulated to render him unworthy of Mercy in the King's Declaration, and the Story aſcribed to the obſcure Frenchman aforeſaid in it, but unconfirmed by any Affidavit or Evidence upon Oath, which, in other ſuch Caſes, have been thought neceſſary Vouchers: therefore how far to be call'd heinous Offences, Acts of Hoſtility, Depredations, Abuſes of his Charge, Impoſtures and Declenſions of Juſtice, the Reader [491] may now firſt give his own Judgment, and then compare it with what has been before ſaid of theſe Accuſations by others.

And now comes on the Remainder of Captain King's Narrative; wherein he tells us, that from Salisbury he was ſent before to London to provide a Boat, and to lay her as low as Tilbury: and that he was alſo adviſed to put one Cotterell in Truſt, who had been Ralegh's Servant, for the Proviſion of a Wherry. As ſoon as King came to London, he dealt with Cotterell, who ſeem'd as willing to do Sir Walter Service as himſelf; but telling him of one Hart, who had been Boatſwain to the ſaid Captain's Ship, and had a Ketch of his own; with him the Captain therefore agreed, and gave him Money to get it in Readineſs, having vowed Secrecy upon the Reward which the Captain further promiſed him. But he had no ſooner received the thirty Pieces of Silver, than he betray'd the Deſign to Mr. William Herbert, who as ſuddenly divulg'd it; but King not ſuſpecting any Diſcovery, ſtill fed Hart with Money to keep the Ketch at Tilbury.

On Friday Night, which was the 7th of Auguſt, Sir Walter Ralegh came to London, when Captain King attended on him at his Lodgings, but was told by Ralegh that he could in no wiſe get ready to go off that Night. It ſeems to be the next Day that Stucley got his Warrant to indemnify him for any Contract he ſhould enter into with Sir Walter Ralegh, or to authorize his Compliance with any [492] Offer he ſhould make him for his Eſcape; or in ſhort, as others have not ſpared to call it, a Licence to betray him; for tho' Ralegh might now have been ſecur'd in a direct and undiſguiſed Manner, yet the Glory was to do it inſidiouſly, and under the Vizor of Friendſhip; being not more ſuitable to the Genius of predominant Power, than neceſſary on the preſent Occaſion, to give Room for ſo many more little Circumſtances of Objection, as might occur to ſupply the Place of one wanting, that ſhould have been capital. And this Night it was that the French Ambaſſador aforeſaid, came to Ralegh's Houſe, and made the Propoſal before recited. But when Capt. King came to him again the ſame Night, Ralegh ſaid there was no going now without Stucley, whom he doubted not but he ſhould engage to go along with him, and that the next Night, without Failure, he would meet the Captain at the Tower-Dock. As for Mr. Herbert aforeſaid, he was employ'd in garrowing Sir Walter Ralegh's Houſe, as the Captain phraſes it, while Ralegh, being thus drawn out of it by Stucley, under Pretence of bearing him Company, might be the more unexpectedly ſeiz'd with all ſuch private Papers as he ſhould have about him; in Hopes, no doubt, that by one means or other, ſomething might turn out to make a Charge of ſufficient Weight againſt him. But, in the Concluſion, ſays our ſaid Author, all the Papers which were found, prov'd to be no other, than what might, without any Diſcredit, have been laid open to all the World.

Capt. King went, as he further tells us, on Sunday Night to the Place appointed with two Wherries; and Sir Walter Ralegh alſo came thither; having put on a falſe Beard, and a Hat with a green Hatband. He was accompany'd with Sir Lewis [493] Stucley, young Stucley, and his own Page. Then aſking Captain King, if all Things were ready? he anſwer'd, they were, and that the Cloak-bag and the four Piſtols were in the Boat. Stucley then ſaluted Captain King, and aſk'd, whether thus far he had not diſtinguiſhed himſelf an honeſt Man? to which King anſwer'd, that he hop'd he would continue ſo.

After they enter'd the Boats and divided the Piſtols, they had not rowed above twenty Strokes before the Watermen told them, that Mr. Herbert had lately taken Boat, and made as if he would have gone through Bridge, but return'd down the River after them. This rais'd ſome Apprehenſion in Ralegh, but upon Stucley's Encouragement they row'd on; yet Ralegh, not well ſatisfy'd, call'd Captain King near to him, who was in the other Boat with young Stucley and Hart, and intimated, that he could not go forward unleſs he was ſure of the Watermen, whom he then alſo ſpake to, aſking, whether if any ſhould come to arreſt them in the King's Name, they would row forwards or return. At this, the great Boobies were ſo frighten'd that they cry'd, and anſwer'd, they knew no body there but Captain King, who had hired them to Graveſend; and that they neither dared, nor would go any further. Ralegh ſaid, that a brabbling Matter with the Spaniſh Ambaſſador, was the Cauſe that of Neceſſity he muſt go to Tilbury to embark for the Low Countries; and that he would give them ten Pieces of Gold for their Pains.

Then began Stucley's Part, curſing and damning himſelf that he ſhould be ſo unfortunate as to venture his Life and Fortune with a Man ſo full of Doubts and Fears. He ſwore that if the Watermen would not row on, he would kill them; and perſuaded Ralegh that there was no ſuch Danger as he [494] ſuſpected; of which Opinion Capt. King alſo ſtill was. Thus the Time paſs'd till they drew near Greenwich, when a Wherry croſs'd them, which Ralegh ſaid came to diſcover them. King ſought to diſſuade him from this Suppoſition, and told him that if they could but reach Graveſend, he would hazard his Life to get to Tilbury. Theſe Delays ſpent the Tide, and the Watermen ſaid, it was impoſſible to get to Graveſend before Morning. Hereupon Ralegh would have landed at Purfleet, and Hart would have poſſeſs'd him, that tho' it was Night he could procure him Horſes to Tilbury. Stucley appear'd very zealous for this Propoſal, and ſaid, that upon that Condition he could be content to carry the Cloak-bag on his own Shoulders half a Mile; but King told him, that if they could not go by Water, it was impoſſible at that Time of Night to get Horſes to go by Land.

By this Time they had rowed as far as Woolwich, or rather about a Mile beyond, which might be to a Reach call'd the Gallions near Plumſtead. Here, approaching two or three Ketches, Hart began to doubt, whether any one of them was his. Upon this, Ralegh concluded they were all betray'd, and bid the Watermen turn back, hoping to have got to his own Houſe before Morning; and began to examine Hart very ſtrictly, who pretended he had given his Men expreſs Charge not to ſtir from Tilbury till he came down; but this would not induce Ralegh to proceed. Before they had rowed back a Furlong, they eſpied another Wherry, and hailing her, they ſaid they were for the King. Ralegh perceiving they were ſome of Mr. Herbert's Crew, propoſed to Stucley, ſeeing they were diſcover'd, and in Reſpect to his Safety, that he might remain ſtill in his Cuſtody, and that Stucley ſhould openly declare to the Watermen he was his Priſoner, [495] which he did. Here Stucley and he fell into private Diſcourſe, contriving how Ralegh might reach his Houſe; and how Stucley might ſave himſelf harmleſs by ſaying, that he only pretended to go along with Ralegh, in order to diſcover his Intentions, and ſeize upon his private Papers. Then they whiſper'd ſome Time together, and Ralegh taking ſome Things out of his Pockets (whether more Rubies powder'd with Diamonds) our Author does not ſay) and gave them to Stucley, who all this while not only hugg'd and embrac'd him, as it ſeem'd with the greateſt Tenderneſs, but made the utmoſt Proteſtations of Love, Friendſhip, and Fidelity. When they were got back to Greenwich, Stucley ſaid, that he durſt not carry Ralegh to his Houſe, but perſuaded him to land, which they did; the other ſtrange Boat landing at the ſame Time, in which the Men, they perceived, belong'd to Mr. W. Herbert and Sir William St. John, the ſame who had made good Profit of Ralegh before, as we have read. Upon Greenwich Bridge Stucley told Capt. King it would be for Sir Walter's Good, that he ſhould pretend he was conſenting with him to betray his Maſter. King, not able to fathom the Depth of this Policy, as he tells us, refus'd it, thinking he ſhould not only thereby bely his own Conſcience; but make himſelf odious to the World; therefore, tho' Ralegh himſelf made ſome Motion of it to him, he could not, how ſerviceable ſoever it might prove, be guilty of ſo much Inſincerity towards him. Then Stucley arreſted the Captain in his Majeſty's Name, and committed him to the Charge of two of Mr. Herbert's Men. After this they all went to a Tavern, and by the way, Captain King heard Ralegh ſay, Sir Lewis, theſe Actions will not turn out to your Credit. Ralegh was kept apart from King till Morning, when as they [496] enter'd into the Tower, Ralegh ſaid to him, Stucley and Cotterell have betray'd me; adding, for your Part, you need be in Fear of no Danger, but as for me, it is I am the Mark that is ſhot at. Then Captain King, being forced to take his leave, left Ralegh, to his Tuition, with whom I do not doubt (ſays he) but his Soul reſteth. And ſo concludes his Narrative.

Here the curious Reader would probably be willing to know what Stucley had to ſay for himſelf upon this Buſineſs; and this I have ſome Opportunity of relating from the Tract he publiſh'd at Ralegh's Death in his own Defence; which tho', for its Author's Behaviour aforeſaid, it has been ſo much diſregarded, that of all the Hiſtorians general and particular, who have written of Sir Walter Ralegh, and ſome few of them, whoſe Characters are pretty well known, to his Diſparagement; I never met with one who has ſhewn it ſo much Credit as to quote it: Yet, as I have found ſome few Paſſages not altogether uſeleſs in explaining other Parts of this Life, ſo thoſe, which concern this Part, I have thought proper more particularly here to inſert, in obſervance to a good biographical Maxim, which enjoins us, as far as the Parts they bear in our Narrative will permit, to ſhew a due Reſpect to the Characters of all Men, and conſequently not, in Favour of any, to proſtitute our own.

In this Tract, which is properly enough addreſs'd to the King, one of the earlieſt Motives to Revenge, in that poor Inſtrument of State, as Stucley no leſs properly calls himſelf, againſt Ralegh, appears to be a Pretence, that Ralegh had abridg'd Stucley's Father of an incredible dividend in a Prize many Years before taken at Sea, whereof a more particular Account has been before given [497] in its proper Place; as the laſt Motive will appear to be what Ralegh ſaid of this Stucley in his dying Speech. But the Arguments Stucley makes Uſe of for having betray'd him, are drawn firſt from Ralegh's having pretended to be poiſon'd at Sir Edward Parham's Houſe who was Stucley's Kinſman. For he reports Ralegh to have ſaid, Tho' the Gentleman would not hurt me, yet there might be Prieſts that did it: for I remember, after my Morning's Draught of a Cup of Ale, which Sir Edward Parham offer'd me in the Hall, I felt preſently a kind of Excoriation in my Bowels, as if ſome Jeſuit had been the Butler. Now, ſays Stucley, when I ſaw the Puſtles break out upon him at Saliſbury, my Compaſſion, I confeſs, was too credulous to report it. But that being thus deceived himſelf, and thereby wronging his Kinſman, it moved his Indignation againſt Ralegh for abuſing both: ſo that in ſhort, he drew Ralegh to his Deſtruction by a Lie, becauſe he had induced Stucley to aſperſe his Kinſman with one. And tho' Divinity would not, as Stucley owns, yet Reaſon of State would hold it lawful to lie for the Diſcovery of Treaſon, in ſervice to the Commonwealth. Then he endeavours to reconcile himſelf to the Commonwealth, by anſwering the Objection of his being ſo Inſtrumental to the depriving it of ſo ſufficient a Member as had not left his Equal behind him, in theſe Words: No Man denies but he had many Sufficiencies in him: But what were theſe but ſo many Weapons of Practice and Danger againſt the State; if he eſcaped? being ſo deeply tainted in ſo many Points of Diſcontent, Diſhoneſty, and Diſloyalty. He knew, as he had written, that as in Nature, ſo in Policy, a privatione ad habitum not fit regreſſio. And therefore being deſperate of any Fortune here, agreeable to the Height of his Mind, who can doubt but he would have made up his Fortune [498] elſewhere, upon any Terms againſt his Soveraign and Country? In another Place, which relates to Ralegh's laſt Endeavours of eſcaping, he tells the King, On the Saturday when I received your Majeſty's Commiſſion by my Couſin Herbert, I received alſo Intelligence by him, that at that Inſtant Ralegh was flying from my Cuſtody without my Privity, not having, as yet, made him any Semblance of Condeſcent: ſo that I almoſt came upon him unawares, even, as he was putting on his falſe Beard, and other Diſguiſements; which declares he did ſtill diſtruſt your Goodneſs, doubtleſs out of the Conſcience of his Guiltineſs, whatever he writ or ſaid to the contrary. And is it any marvel then, that he was angry with me at his Death for bringing him back? Beſides, being a Man, as he was thought, of ſo great a Wit, it was no ſmall Grief that a Man of ſo mean Wit as I ſhould be thought to go beyond him. Yea, but you ſhould not have uſed ſuch Craft to go beyond him. No? Sic ars deluditur arte. Neque enim lex juſtior ulla eſt quam necis artifices arte perire ſua. But why did you not execute your Commiſſion bravely to his Apprehenſion on him in his Houſe? Why? my Commiſſion was to the contrary, to diſcover his Pretenſions, and to ſeize his ſecret Papers, &c. And can any honeſt Subject queſtion my Honeſty in the Performance of ſuch a Commiſſion, which tended to diſcover the ſecret Intentions of an ill-affected Heart to my Soveraign? How can any diſlike this in me, and not bewray his own diſhoneſt Heart unto the State? Yea, but tho' another might have done this, yet how might you do it, being his Kinſman and his Friend? Surely if I had been ſo; yet in a publick Employment and Truſt laid upon me, I was not to refuſe it, much leſs to prefer private Kindneſs and Amity before my publick Duty and Loyalty: for what did I know the dangerous Conſequence of theſe Matters which were to [499] be diſcovered? or who knows them yet, of thoſe that make themſelves my competent Judges? But if there were no Kindred or Amity between us, as I avow there never was, what Bond then might tie me to him, but the Tie of Compaſſion to his Miſeries? which was in my Sovereign's Heart to diſtribute, when he ſaw Time, that did command me, and not in the Diſpenſation of me, nor of any other Inſtrument's Power that is to be commanded. Theſe are his Arguments; and he concludes his Pamphlet with making two humble Petitions to his moſt excellent Majeſty; Firſt, ſeeing that I, your poor loyal Subject, am burdened and oppreſſed with the Teſtimony of a bitter Enemy, of a perjured and condemned Man, againſt all Reaſon, Conſcience and Law; that I may have your Majeſty's Leave, to the Confirmation of the Truth, which I have avowed to be ſufficient; to receive the Sacrament upon it in your Majeſty's Chapel. But if he did receive the Sacrament, to confirm the Truth of his Aſſertions, for this ſeems to be the Meaning of his Words, if they have, or were intended to have any; how that would juſtify the Falſhood of his Actions; and how, his taking of the Sacrament would be of any Credit to him, who has own'd, that Divinity would not hold his Practices lawful; or how clear him for the Violation of that Truſt and Fidelity he had before taken the Sacrament, as we ſhall hear preſently, to maintain, he was not thought a Caſuiſt, or even Inſtrument of State enough to reſolve; the laſt Petition is, That his Majeſty would be ſo gracious as to ſuffer a Declaration to come forth from the State, for the clearing of theſe Matters, and further Satisfaction of the World; which plainly diſcovers, that this Pamphlet, ſent out under the Name of this Inſtrument, was a mere concerted Preparative to the ſaid Declaration which ſo obſervantly followed it; like a [500] Fomentation to ſupple the Minds of the uneaſy People, that the ſoveraign Unguent might enter more effectually. But how little Satisfaction the ſaid Declaration gave, we have already noted; and for Stucley's Performance, it made not ſo much as himſelf eaſy; being, in his own Opinion, ſo inſufficient to deface the black and odious Stains of his Conduct, that he was forced to write an Apology beſides; and that was ſo little regarded, as never to have been thought worthy of the Preſs. Whether his Life was more ſucceſsful than his Writings, and how it fared with him after this Piece of Courtſervice, may be gathered from ſeveral Authors. Some hiſtorical Compurgators of this Reign, and conſequently no Friend to Ralegh's Memory, yet own, that Stucley's Deſtiny was ſuitable to his Dealings, being afterwards hang'd, ſay they, for clipping of Gold. But thoſe who had better Intelligence, and knew the Truth more particularly, have delivered it more perfectly; where they affirm, ‘That Stucley having, for a Bag of Money, falſified his Faith, which he had confirmed by the Tie of the Holy Sacrament, he was, before the Year came about, caught clipping the ſame Coin, in the King's own Houſe at Whitehall, which he had received as the Reward of his Perfidiouſneſs; for which being eondemned to be hang'd, he was driven to ſell himſelf to his Shirt, to purchaſe his Pardon of two Knights. Then (to avoid the Sight and Scorn of Mankind) withdrew himſelf to a little Iſland in the Severn Sea, called the Iſle of Lundy, and there died a poor diſtracted Beggar:’ Which, as we find it elſewhere ſufficiently confirmed, was in leſs than two Years after Ralegh's Death. Thus horribly did the Deceiver's Reward prove his Puniſhment; and thus we leave this notable Monument of unproſperous Treachery.

[501] Ralegh, as was before mentioned, was now Priſoner again in the Tower of London, being brought thither on Monday Morning the 10th of Auguſt. About two or three Days after, a Committee was ſelected to examine into the aforeſaid Eſcape, it being a Matter luckily capable, and highly neceſſary to be enlarged upon, in order to fill up the Meaſure of Accuſation. Such a premeditated Flight was therefore declaim'd againſt as a Crime ſo heavy and ſo heinous, ſuch a Diſdain or Deſpair of his Majeſty's Mercy, as was greatly to be expected could never obtain his Forgiveneſs. Then again, for Sir Walter Ralegh to alienate himſelf thus from his native Country by Means of a foreign Power, was ſtretch'd out to the Idea of a Separation as horrid as the Breach of ſome huge Rock or Promontory from the main Land, when its Foundation was ſap'd and waſh'd away by undermining Waves.

The Arguments Ralegh now returned to extenuate this mighty Tranſgreſſion, having been by no Author tranſmitted to us, it is not impoſſible but they were, with the reſt of his Juſtification before thoſe Commiſſioners, during the Time of this his laſt Impriſonment, induſtriouſly ſtifled. There is, notwithſtanding, one of his own Letters on this Subject deſcended, by Means of the Preſs, to us. It is directed, by the Error of the Editor it ſeems to the Duke, tho' as yet, no more than Marquis of Buckingham, and dated the 14th of October. Herein, ſays Ralegh, with Relation to his late attempted Eſcape,

That which doth comfort my Soul in this Offence is, that even in the Offence it ſelf, I had no other Intent than his Majeſty's Service, and to make his Majeſty know that my late Enterprize was grounded upon a Truth, and which with one Ship ſpeedily ſet out, I meant to have aſſured [502] or to have died; being reſolved, as it is well known, to have done it from Plymouth, bad I not been reſtrained. Hereby I hoped, not only to recover his Majeſty's gracious Opinion, but have deſtroyed all thoſe malignant Reports which had been ſpread of me. That this is true, that Gentleman, whom I ſo much truſted, my Keeper, and to whom I opened my Heart, cannot but teſtify; and wherein if I cannot be believed living, my Death ſhall witneſs. Yea, that Gentleman cannot but avow it, that when we came back towards London, I deſired to ſave no other Treaſure than the exact Deſcription of thoſe Places in the Indies. That I meant to go hence as a diſcontented Man, God, I truſt, and my own Actions will diſſuade his Majeſty; whom neither the Loſs of my Eſtate, thirteen Years Impriſonment, and the Denial of my Pardon, could beat from his Service; nor had the Opinion of being counted a Fool, or rather diſtract, by returning as I did, ballanc'd with my Love to his Majeſty's Perſon and Eſtate, any Place at all in my Heart.

It was that laſt ſevere Letter from the Lords for the ſpeed [...] bringing of me up, and the Impatience of Diſhonour, that firſt put me in Fear of my Life, or enjoying it in a perpetual Impriſonment, never to recover my Reputation loſt, which ſtrengthned me in my late, and too lamented Reſolution, if his Majeſty's Merey do not abound; if his Majeſty do not pity my Age, and ſcorn to take the extremeſt and utmoſt Advantage of my Errors; if his Majeſty, in his Charity, do not make a Difference between Offences proceeding from a Life-ſaving natural Impulſion, without all ill Intent, and thoſe of an ill Heart; and that your Lordſhip, remarkable in the World for the Nob [...]eneſs of your Diſpoſition, do not vouchſafe to become my Interceſſor; whereby your Lordſhip ſhall bind [503] an hundred Gentlemen of my Kindred to honour your Memory, and bind me, for all the Time of that Life which your Lordſhip ſhall beg for me, to pray to God that you may ever proſper; and over-bind me to remain your moſt humble Servant, W. Ralegh.

Though all other Events and Motions in this Expedition were now alſo rack'd and tenter'd by his Adverſaries; though the Commiſſioners (who were perhaps the ſame, mention'd in a Kind of oblique Manner, at the End of the King's Declaration, as Witneſſes thereof) came now conſtantly to the Tower, to pick out or catch hold of any Thing that might contribute ſome plauſible Matter to condemn him; yet after the Examinations, Reexaminations, and Confrontments of the moſt diſcontented Perſons in the late Voyage, none of all the Depoſitions upon Oath, that are pretended to have been taken, or were really worm'd out of them, were ever thought ſo material by the ſaid Commiſſioners, as to have been diſtinctly brought to Light, either in that Declaration or elſewhere, againſt Sir Walter Ralegh. Much leſs may we expect to meet with any of the Arguments urged by himſelf in his own Defence during this Inquiſition, or cloſe and private Manner of ſiſting him from ſo many Quarters. And yet, if they had been fairly preſented to the publick, it is not thought they could have given the World greater Satisfaction, or have cleared him better, than what he had juſt before written, both in his Letter to the Lord Carew and at the End of his Apology, to prove the Authority he had for the late Action at Guiana, the Integrity of his Conduct in it, with the Reaſon and Neceſſity thereof. Wherein it appears, he abſolutely depended on the Honour of King James to continue now, as he had begun, the Maintenance of his Right to that Country which Ralegh had [504] lawfully poſſeſſed for the Crown; at leaſt, ſo far, as not to renounce or circumvent his own Commiſſion: otherwiſe, how well he knew that if he made the leaſt Oppoſition to any Reſiſtance of his Attempt, he was liable to be purſued as an Invader; or if he returned with any Gold, to be perſecuted as a Plunderer by the Spaniards; and if he did neither, that he was ſtill no leſs liable to be accus'd as an Impoſtor by his Co-adventurers. But in this latter Reſpect, all Suſpicion was clearly removed, even from thoſe who by their Loſſes in this Voyage would have been moſt readily prompted to make ſuch Reproach, when they found Ralegh prove himſelf as in theſe Writings, to the Face of Mankind, ſuch a far greater Loſer than any of the reſt hereby, as was before obſerved: And as for the other two Objections, Ralegh has alſo made it no leſs amply evident in the ſame Pieces, how glaringly he muſt appear to the World, a mere premeditated or deſigned Sacrifice to one of them, if King James ſhould maim his Soveraignty of its Title to Guiana, or now diſclaimed the Undertaking there which he had before authorized. For therein he has ſhewed, that his Majeſty was well reſolved of his Right in thoſe Parts bordering the Orenoque to the South, as far as the Amazons, by having formerly given the Engliſh Leave to plant and inhabit there; and that his own Propoſal to go thither, was not accounted of as what would endanger the Peace, even by the Spaniſh Ambaſſador, who pretended it to be needleſs that Ralegh ſhould carry ſuch Strength with him, if he intended no other Enterprize, for that he ſhould work any Mine there without Diſturbance; but had a good Reaſon returned by Ralegh for that Strength, from the Example of Sir John Hawkins. Further ſhewing, that for the Spaniards to ſet up a Town upon the [505] Orenoque, was ſuch a Uſurpation, and that their King ſhould thereupon call himſelf King of Guiana, was as unreaſonable as if he were to call himſelf King of Ireland, becauſe he took Poſſeſſion at Smerwick, and built a Fort there. Having alſo ſhewn, that no Peace could be broken there by him, where no Peace was maintain'd by the Spaniards, both from their bloody Uſage of the Engliſh, who had lately been to trade there, and from the Words in the King of Spain's late Letters to the Governor; who firſt call'd us Enemies, when he hoped to cut us in Pieces, ſays Ralegh, and having fail'd, Peace-breakers; when to be an Enemy and a Peace-breaker in one and the ſame Action, is impoſſible. Moreover, that here the Spaniards began the firſt Slaughter; that their Town was not burnt by any Knowledge or Permiſſion of his, nor his Directions to the Mine followed. Laſtly, having obſerv'd how little the Spaniards can endure that the Engliſh Nation ſhould look upon any Part of America, being above a fourth Part of the whole known World, tho' the hundredth Part was never poſſeſſed by the Spaniards; and withal, the many ill Conſequences of acknowledging, that we have offended the King of Spain by landing in Guiana, even to the Ruin of our Navigation, Trade, Power and Dominion in this Quarter of the Globe, where there was as much Room and Reaſon for advancing the Honour and Riches of England as of any State in Chriſtendom; he concludes his Apology with theſe Words, I have ſaid it already, and I will ſay it again, that if Guiana be not his Majeſty's, the working of a Mine there, and the taking of a Town there, had been equally perilous; for, by doing the one, I had robb'd the King of Spain, and been a Thief; and, by the other, a Diſturber or Breaker of the Peace.

[506] Now it is plain, that King James ſo much waved his right to Guiana, at leaſt till Ralegh was put to Death (for then he aſſum'd it again, by the Power he gave for another Expedition to thoſe Parts, *however, irreſolutely according to Cuſtom, he revok'd it) that as we obſerve in his Declaration, not only the place which Ralegh went to is pretended to be out of his Commiſſion, but the Title he ſtood upon, to be no ways compatible with it. Yet ſo inconteſtably did Ralegh make it appear, no doubt in his Examinations at Preſent, no leſs than in the Writings abovemention'd, that if any Peace could be broken where no Peace had been maintain'd, it muſt either be by King James himſelf, in firſt granting a Commiſſion to plunder another Prince (for he knew where Ralegh was going, and no where declines his Knowledge that the Spaniards were ſettled there) and then betraying it to procure a Defeat of the very Attempt he had empower'd; or elſe by the Spaniards themſelves, in reſiſting his Endeavours to put it in Execution; that after all this queſtioning, canvaſing, and heaping up of Allegations againſt him, the Council could not think it juſtifiable to take away Sir Walter Ralegh's Life for all that had paſſed at Guiana. Yet, as he muſt be put to Death, they found a Way to appeaſe the Spaniards with his Blood, by making this laſt Action at St. Thome the efficient Cauſe, but the obſolete Condemnation at Wincheſter, fifteen Years paſt, the nominal Cauſe of his Deſtruction: as a [507] Courſe whereby both the Law would be judicially ſatisfied, and the Title be left, for fear of Diſpleaſure, undecided. So in the whole, it was reſolved there ſhould be room enough to revoke the King's former Mercy, as it appears in his Declaration; and that Ralegh might loſe his Head upon his former Attainder; notwithſtanding the Repugnancies apparent in ſuch a Concluſion to Men of Penetration; among whom, Carew Ralegh has very well obſerv'd thereupon, that his Father was condemn'd for being a Friend to the Spaniards, and loſt his Life by the ſame Sentence for being their Enemy.*

[508] A Method, however, of diſpatching him being thus piec'd out, the King, or thoſe with whom he left the Management of this Affair when he went upon his Progreſs, appear'd very eager for bringing it to a Period. Therefore, as the ſhorteſt way, a privy Seal was ſent to the Judges, forthwith to order Execution. But they conſidering there ought to be ſome Face of Regularity in the Matter, and a little Finger in the Court of Juſtice to ſlide it off with as much Decency and Smoothneſs as the Buſineſs would allow of, demur'd upon that extrajudicial Manner of Proceeding. Therefore, on Friday the 23d of October, there was a Conference held upon the Form or Manner how Priſoners, who have been attainted of Treaſon and ſet at Liberty, ſhould be brought to Execution, between all the Juſtices of England; as one of them, Judge Hat [...]on tells us: wherein the Queſtion being put, Whether a privy Seal was ſufficient, it being directed to the Juſtices of the King's-Bench, to command them to award Execution againſt Sir Walter Ralegh or how they ſhould proceed before Execution be awarded? It was reſolv'd by all, That he ought to be brought to the Bar, [...]y Hab [...]as Corpus to the Lieutenant of the Tower, and then demanded, if he could ſay any thing why Execution ſhould not be awarded? For the Proceedings againſt him being before Commiſſioners, they are deliver'd only into the Court of King's-Bench, or they might have remain'd in a Bag or a Cheſt, and no Roll made thereof; and ſo long Time paſſing, it is not a legal Courſe that he ſhould be commanded by a privy Seal or great Seal to be Executed, without being demanded, what he hath to ſay? For he might [509] have a Pardon, or he might ſay that he was not the ſame Perſon: as if one be outlawed of Felony, and taken, he ſhall not be preſently hang'd, but he ſhall be brought to Bar, and ſo demanded, &c. Upon this Reſolution, a privy Seal came to the Juſtices of the King's-Bench, commanding them to proceed againſt him according to Law. In what Senſe he was ſo proceeded againſt may be better underſtood by that Notice, which on the 24th of October, being the next Day, Ralegh received from the Commiſſioners to prepare for Death; and by his not being ſuffer'd, when he ſoon after appear'd, in Court, before the Judges, according to Law, to make any Defence of himſelf for what had been the Occaſion of his coming thither; as may be ſeen by the following Abſtract of the ſaid Proceedings, which I have been favour'd with from authentick Copies.

On Wedneſday, the 28th of October, Sir Walter Ralegh, at eight o'Clock in the Morning, was awaked out of a Fit of a Fever, with Summons preſently to appear at the King's-Bench Bar at Weſtminſter; and, ſoon after nine o'Clock, he was, by Writ of Habeas Corpus, brought thither. The Writ being deliver'd to the Judges by Sir Walter Apſley, and Sir Walter Ralegh's Conviction at Wincheſter read, the Attorney, Mr. Henry Yelverton, ſet forth, That the Priſoner having been fifteen Years ſince convicted of High-Treaſon, and then received the Judgment of Death, his Majeſty, of his abundant Grace, had been pleaſed to ſhew Mercy unto him, till now, that Juſtice calls to him for Execution. Sir Walter Ralegh (continued he) hath been a Stateſman, and a Man, who, in regard to his Parts and Quality, is to be pitied: He hath been as a Star at which the World have gazed; but Stars may fall, nay they muſt fall when they trouble the Sphere wherein they abide. It is therefore his Majeſty's [510] Pleaſure now to call for Execution of the former Judgment, and I now require Order for the ſame. Then the Clerk of the Crown, Mr. Fanſhaw, having read the Record of the Conviction and Judgment, the Priſoner, holding up his Hand, was aſk'd, what he could ſay, why Execution ſhould not be awarded againſt him. Ralegh told the Lords, his Voice was grown weak by his late Sickneſs, and an Ague he had at that Inſtant upon him, in which he was brought thither; therefore (as it appears in another Copy of theſe Proceedings before referr'd to) deſired the Relief of a Pen and Ink. But the Lord Chief Juſtice, Sir Henry Montague, telling him he ſpake audibly enough, he went on to this Effect: That he hoped the Judgment he received to die ſo long ſince, could not now be ſtrained to take away his Life; ſince by his Majeſty's Commiſſion for his late Voyage, it was imply'd to be reſtor'd, in giving him Power as Marſhal on the Life and Death of others; and ſince he undertook the ſame to honour his Sovereign, and enrich his Kingdom with Gold, of the Ore whereof, this Hand, ſaid he, hath found and taken in Guiana. Then beginning to mention by what unavoidable and unblameable Means the ſaid Enterprize miſcarried, the Lord Chief Juſtice interrupted and told him, whatever he ſpoke touching his Voyage was not to the Purpoſe; alſo that his Commiſſion could be of no Service to him; that Treaſon was not pardon'd by Implication, and that he muſt ſay ſomething elſe to the Purpoſe, otherwiſe they muſt proceed to give Execution. Ralegh then finding whatever he ſhould offer in his own Juſtification would be no Way to the Purpoſe, put himſelf upon the King's Mercy; yet gave ſome Reaſons why he hoped the King would take Compaſſion upon him concerning that Judgment which was ſo long paſt, in which both his Majeſty was of Opinion, and there were ſome preſent who [511] could witneſs, that he had hard Uſage. The Lord Chief Juſtice adviſed him to the Wiſdom of Submiſſion, and told him, he was called to grant Execution upon the Judgment given fifteen Years ſince; all which Time he had been as a Man dead in the Law, but the King, in Mercy, ſpared him; that he might think it heavy if this were done in cold Blood; but it was not ſo, for new Off [...]nces had ſtirr'd up his Majeſty's Juſtice to revive what the Law had formerly caſt upon him. I know, continued he, that you have been valiant and wiſe, and I doubt not but you retain both theſe Virtues, for now you ſhall have Occaſion to uſe them. Your Faith hath heretofore been queſtioned, but I am reſolved, you are a good Chriſtian; for your Book, which is an admirable Work, doth teſtify as much. I would give you Counſel, but I know you can apply unto yourſelf far better than I am able to give you. Yet with the good Neighbour in the Goſpel, he was for pouring ſome Oil into his Wounds; tho' far was it from yielding the Refreſhment he promiſed, by Reaſon of the Severity wherewith he ſo ſharpened the Infuſion. I give you the Oil of Comfort, ſaid he, though in Reſpect that I am a Miniſter of the Law, mixed with Vinegar. Nay, the Judge further gave him, how unneceſſary ſoever he juſt before own'd it to be, one Lecture upon Sorrow. Sorrow, ſaid he, will not avail you in ſome Kind; for were you pained, Sorrow would not eaſe you; were you afflicted, Sorrow would not relieve you; were you tormented, Sorrow would not content you; and yet the Sorrow for your Sins would be an everlaſting Comfort to you. Then another alſo upon Death. You muſt do as that valiant Captain did, ſaid he, who, perceiving himſelf in Danger, ſaid, in Defiance of Death, Death, thou expecteſt me; but, maugre thy Spite, I expect thee. Fear not Death too much, [512] nor fear Death too little; not too much, leſt you fail in your Hope; nor too little, leſt you die preſumptuouſly: and here I muſt conclude my Prayers to God for it, and that he would have Mercy on your Soul. So he ended with ſaying, Execution is granted.

Ralegh then deſir'd, that he might not be cut off ſo ſuddenly; for that he had ſomething to do in Diſcharge of his Conſcience, ſomething to ſatisfy his Majeſty, and ſomething the World in: he deſir'd further, that he might be heard at the Day of his Death; and concluded with calling on God to be his Judge, before whom he ſhould ſhortly appear, that he was never diſloyal to his Majeſty; which I will juſtify, ſaid he, where I ſhall not fear the Face of any King on Earth. Thus the Manuſcripts here chiefly followed, conclude; but in the more ancient Copy of theſe Proceedings, Ralegh's Concluſion, to the ſame Senſe, is thus more copiouſly expreſs'd: I moſt humbly beſeech your Lordſhips, that you will grant me ſome Time before my Execution, that I may ſettle my Affairs and my Mind more than they yet are; for I have much to do, both for my Reputation, Conſcience, and Loyalty; and I would beſeech the Favour of Pen, Ink, and Paper, to expreſs myſelf ſomething thereby, and to diſcharge myſelf of ſome Truſt of worldly Matters that were put in me; which Leiſure, I beſeech you think, that I crave not for to gain one Minute of Life; for now being old, ſickly, in Diſgrace, and certain to go to it, Life is weariſome to me. And I do laſtly beſeech your Lordſhips, that, when I come to die, I may have Leave to ſpeak freely at my Farewell, to ſatisfy the World only, that I was ever loyal to the King, and a true Lover of this Commonwealth; for this I will ſeal with my Blood. So craving their Prayers, he was led away to the Gate-houſe, near the Palaceyard.

[513] The King was all this while retir'd as it were, or at ſome Remoteneſs from this tragical Scene, and, as I have receiv'd it from particular Tradition, in Hertfordſhire; as if he would have diverted himſelf not only from the Sight or Report, but even the Thoughts of it: yet what an effectual and expeditious Hand he had in it, may further appear by his ſpecial Warrant for the Execution; which was produced ready ſign'd, as if it at Weſtminſter, in a Manner as ſoon as the Sentence was over, being dated the ſame Day, and directed to his Chancellor Verulam. Herein, his gracious Majeſty, diſpenſing with the Manner of Execution according to his former Judgment, and releaſing him of the ſame to be drawn, hang'd and quarter'd, ſays, our Pleaſure is, inſtead thereof, to have the Head only of the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh cut off, at or within our Palace of Weſtminſter: commanding the ſaid Chancellor hereupon to direct two ſeveral Writs under the Great Seal; one to the Lieutenant of the Tower, or his Deputy, for the Delivery of Sir Walter Ralegh to the Sheriffs of Middleſex at the ſaid Palace; and the other to the ſaid Sheriffs for the receiving the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh from the ſaid Lieutenant, and for executing him there; for which this to be his Warrant and Diſcharge againſt us our Heirs and Succeſſors for ever.

We find about the ſame Time ſome Petitions preſented to the King in Behalf of Sir Walter Ralegh, which were ſtrengthened with the Solicitations of ſome Perſons in great Power and Eſteem with his Majeſty; but ſhall not wonder at their having no Effect with him, to mitigate this peremptory and rigorous Doom, if it be true as an Author, who had Opportunity enough of obſerving his Diſpoſition, and Abilities ſufficient to give a clear [514] Judgment of it, has ſaid thereof, with Relation to Sir Walter Ralegh, that King James ſo far participated of the Humour of a puſillanimous Prince, as to pardon any ſooner that thoſe injur'd by himſelf. As for Ralegh, we find not that he harbour'd the leaſt Expectation or Deſire of a Reprieve; for that all the Oppreſſions of Age, Sickneſs, Obloquy, Spoil and Loſs of all his Means, beſides the other Indignities he now lay under, baniſh'd every Wiſh of Redreſs in this World, but by that Diſſolution which puts an End to all worldly Miſeries, appears pretty evident in the Letter he ſeems to have written but a ſhort Time before his Death to the King; in which, he rather acknowledges ſome former Tendencies to Favour and Compaſſion, than deſires any Repetition of them, and gives a very good Reaſon for having no further Proſpect of any Thing ſubſtantial therein, where he ſays, I have not ſpared my Labour, my poor Eſtate, and the hourly Hazard of my Life; but God hath otherwiſe diſpoſed of all, and now end the Days of my Hope. But if the Days of his Hope had ended when he landed at Plymouth, the Days of his Life had probably been augmented to a much greater Number. Not, if it had been prolonged into many other Acts, that they might have adorn'd it with ſuch unfading Renown, as that one whereby with ſuch univerſal Admiration he finiſhed it. That Letter aforeſaid he concludes with the generous Profeſſion of being in nothing ſo miſerable, as in that I could never meet with an Occaſion, ſays he, wherein to be torn in Pieces for your Majeſty's Service. But his Majeſty choſe rather to let his own Name and Memory be torn in Pieces for Ralegh's Honour, and not only by all indifferent or impartial Judges, [515] but by his own Countrymen; *and even by Antagoniſts to one another in other Parts of Hiſtory, than ſuffer any Mercy to interfere with that ſordid but deceitful, and ſoon after derided Purſuit of a profitable Alliance with the Crown of Spain.

Whether any ſuch Conditions were offer'd him at this Time to lengthen the ſhort Line of an uncomfortable Exiſtence, which were either ſo extortionate as Ralegh could not comply with them, or ſo baſe and deteſtable as to be worſe than Death, the Particulars are not come to Light; unleſs ſome Glimpſes thereof may be diſcerned in that Epigram he wrote a little while before his End, in Alluſion to the Light of a Candle, which is as follows:

Cowards may fear to die, but Courage ſtout,
Rather than live in Snuff, will be put out.

Moreover, how ſublimely his Thoughts were now ſequeſter'd or elevated from all worldly Conſiderations, and with what Serenity, what Steadineſs, he did in a Manner poſſeſs the Joys of a better State before he could be driven to it, is viſible in that Poem he wrote about the ſame Time, on the Pilgrimage his Soul was ſuddenly to make to [516] the Regions of Eternity, which he concludes with this Diſtich:

Of Death and Judgment, Heaven and Hell,
Who often thinks, muſt needs die well.

And that his Faith was no leſs ſtedfaſt in the Hopes of a Reſurrection, we are as convincingly aſſured by thoſe Verſes which, this laſt Night of his Life, he probably wrote alſo here, in the Gate-houſe, they being found there in his Bible; and, according to the moſt ancient Copies I can meet with, penn'd in theſe Words.

Even ſuch is Time, who takes in Truſt
Our Youth, our Joys, and all we have;
And pays us but with Earth and Duſt:
Who in the dark and ſilent Grave,
When we have wander'd all our Ways,
Shuts up the Story of our Days.
But from that Earth, that Grave and Duſt,
The Lord ſhall raiſe me up I truſt.

The next Morning, being Thurſday the 29th of October, and the Lord-Mayor's-Day, Sir Walter Ralegh was conducted, by the Sheriffs of Middleſex, to the Old Palace-yard in Weſtminſter, where there was a large Scaffold erected before the Parliament-houſe for his Execution. He had on a wrought Night-cap under his Hat, a Ruff Band, a black wrought Velvet Night-Gown over a Haircolour'd Sattin Doublet, and a black wrought Waiſtcoat, a Pair of black cut Taffety Breeches, and Aſh-colour'd Silk Stockings. He mounted the Scaffold with a chearful Countenance, and ſaluted the Lords, Knights, and Gentlemen of his Acquaintance there preſent. Then Proclamation [517] being made by an Officer for Silence, he introduc'd his Speech with informing them, that as he was yeſterday taken out of his Bed in a ſtrong Fit of a Fever, which much weaken'd him, and whoſe Untimelineſs forbearing no Occaſion or Place, he expected it again To-day; therefore did firſt implore God, that he would preſerve him from the Interruptions thereof at this Time, and next deſired the Audience, if any Diſability of Voice or Dejection of Countenance ſhould appear in him, that they would impute it rather to the Diſorder of his Body than any Diſmay of Mind. Then pauſing a little, he ſat down, and directed himſelf towards a Window, where the Lords Arundel, Northampton, Doncaſter, with other Nobles were ſitting, and begun his Speech. But they being at ſome Diſtance from the Scaffold, he apprehended they did not plainly diſtinguiſh his Words, therefore ſaid, he would ſtrain his Voice, for that he would willingly have them hear him. To which the Lord Arundel anſwer'd, they would rather come down to the Scaffold; which he and ſome others did. Then Sir Walter Ralegh having ſaluted them ſeverally, began again, as follows:

I thank God, that he has ſent me to die in the Light and not in Darkneſs. I likewiſe thank God, that he has ſuffer'd me to die before ſuch an Aſſembly of honourable Witneſſes, and not obſcurely in the Tower; where, for the Space of thirteen Years together, I have been oppreſs'd with many Miſeries. And I return him Thanks, that my Fever hath not taken me at this Time, as I prayed to him it might not; that I might clear myſelf of ſome Accuſations unjuſtly laid to my Charge, and leave behind me the Teſtimony of a true Heart both to my King and Country.

[518] There are two main Points of Suſpicion that his Majeſty hath conceived againſt me, and which, I conceive, have ſpecially haſtned my coming hither; therefore I deſire to clear them to your Lordſhips, and reſolve you in the Truth thereof. The firſt is, that his Majeſty hath been inform'd, I have had ſome Plot or Confederacy with France, for which he had ſome reaſons, tho' grounded upon a weak Foundation. One was, that when I return'd to Plymouth, I endeavoured to go to Rochel, which was becauſe I would fain have made my Peace before I came to England. Another Reaſon was, that again I would have bent my Courſe to France, upon my laſt intended Eſcape from London, being the Place where I might have the beſt Means of making ſuch Peace, and the beſt Safeguard during that Terror from above. Theſe, join'd with the coming of the French Agent to my Houſe here in London, only to confer about my ſaid Voyage, together with the report of my having a Commiſſion from the King of France, might occaſion my being ſo ſuſpected in this particular, and his Majeſty to be ſo diſpleaſed with me. But this I ſay; for a Man to call God to Witneſs at any Time to a Falſhood, is a grievous Sin. To call him as Witneſs to a Falſhood at the Point of Death, when there is no Time for Repentance, is a Crime far more impious and deſperate; therefore, for me to call that Majeſty to witneſs an Untruth, before whoſe Tribunal I am inſtantly to appear, were beyond Meaſure ſinful, and without Hope of Pardon. I do yet call that great God to witneſs, that, as I hope to ſee him, to be ſaved by him, and live in the World to come, I never had any Plot or Intelligence with the French King, never had any Commiſſion from him, nor ſaw his Hand or Seal; that I never had any Practice or Combination with the French Agent, nor ever knew or ſaw ſuch a Perſon, till I met him in my Gallery unlook'd [519] for. If I ſpeak not true, O Lord, let me never inter into thy Kingdom.

The ſecond Suſpicion or Imputation was, that his Majeſty hath been informed, I had ſpoken diſloyally of him. The only Witneſs of this was, a baſe Frenchman, a Renegade, a chymical Fellow, whom I ſoon knew to be perfidious; for being drawn by him into the Action of freeing myſelf at Wincheſter, in which I confeſs my Hand was touch'd, he, being ſworn to Secrecy over-night, revealed it the next Morning. 'Tis ſtrange, that ſo mean a Fellow could ſo far incroach himſelf into the Favour of the Lords; and, gaping after ſome great Reward, could ſo falſly accuſe me of ſeditious Speeches againſt his Majeſty, and be ſo credited. But this I here ſpeak, it is no Time for me to flatter or to fear Princes, I, who am ſubject only unto Death; and for me, who have now to do with God alone, to tell a Lye to get the Favour of the King were in vain: And yet, if ever I ſpake diſloyally or diſhoneſtly of the King, either to this Frenchman or any other; ever intimated the leaſt Thought hurtful or prejudicial of him, the Lord blot me out of the Book of Life.

I confeſs, I did attempt to eſcape, and it was only to ſave my Life. I likewiſe confeſs, that I feigned myſelf to be indiſpoſed at Salisbury; but I hope it was no Sin; for the Prophet David did make himſelf a Fool, and ſuffer'd Spittle to fall upon his Beard to eſcape from the Hands of his Enemies, and it was not imputed unto him as a Sin: what I did, was only to prolong Time, till his Majeſty came, in Hopes of ſome Commiſeration from him.

But I forgive that Frenchman; and likewiſe Sir Lewis Stucley, the Wrongs he hath done me with all my Heart; for I have received the Sacrament this Morning of Mr. Dean, and I have forgiven all Men; [520] but, in Charity to others, am bound to caution them againſt him, and ſuch as he is. For Sir Lewis Stucley, my Keeper and Kinſman, hath affirmed, that I ſhould tell him, my Lord Carew and my Lord of Doncaſter here, did adviſe me to eſcape; but I proteſt before God, I never told him any ſuch Thing; neither did theſe Lords adviſe me to any ſuch Matter. It is not likely I ſhould acquaint two Privy Counſellors of my Eſcape; or that I ſhould tell him, my Keeper, it was their Advice; neither was there any Reaſon to tell it him, or he to report it; for it was well known, he left me ſix, eight, or ten Days together alone, to go whither I liſted, while he rode about the Country. He further accus'd me, that I ſhould ſhew him a Letter, whereby I did ſignify, that I would give him ten thouſand Pounds to eſcape; but God caſt my Soul into everlaſting Fire if ever I made ſuch Proffer of ten thouſand Pounds, or one thouſand Pounds; but indeed, I ſhewed him a Letter, that if he would go with me, there ſhould be Order taken for the Diſcharge of his Debts when he was gone; neither had I one thouſand Pounds, for, if I had, I could have made my Peace better with it otherwiſe than by giving it Stucley. Further, he gave out, when I came to Sir Edward Parham's Houſe, who had been a Follower of mine, and gave me good Entertainement, I had there received ſome Dram of Poiſon. When I anſwer'd that I feared no ſuch Thing, for I was well aſſur'd of thoſe in the Houſe; and therefore wiſhed him to have no ſuch Thought. Now I will not only ſay, that God is the God of Revenge, but alſo of Mercy; and I deſire God to forgive him, as I hope to be forgiven. Then caſting his Eye upon his Note of Remembrance, he went on thus:

It was told the King, that I was brought perforce into England; and that I did not intend to return again. Whereas Captain Charles Parker, Mr. [521] Treſham, Mr. Leak, and divers others that knew how I was dealt withal by the common Soldiers, will witneſs to the contrary. They were an hundred and fifty of them who mutiny'd againſt me, and ſent for me to come to them; for unto me they would not come. They kept me cloſe Priſoner in my Cabbin, and forced me to take an Oath, that I would not go into England without their Conſent, otherwiſe they would have caſt me into the Sea. After I had taken this Oath, I did, by Wine, Gifts, and fair Words, ſo work upon the Maſter-gunner, and ten or twelve of the Faction, that I won them to deſiſt from their Purpoſes, and intended, when I returned home, to procure their Pardon; in the mean while propoſed, that I would diſpoſe of ſome of them in Ireland; to which they agreed, and would have gone into the North Parts, from which I diſſuaded them, and told them, they were Red-ſhanks who inhabited there, ſo drew them to the South; and the better to clear myſelf of them, was forced to get them an hundred and fifty Pounds at Kingſale, otherwiſe I had never got from them.

There was a Report alſo, that I meant not to go to Guiana at all; and that I knew not of any Mine, nor intended any ſuch Matter, but only to get my Liberty, which I had not the Wit to keep. But it was my full Intent to go for Gold, for the Benefit of his Majeſty, myſelf, and thoſe who went with me, with the Reſt of my Countrymen: tho' he that knew the Head of the Mine, would not diſcover it when he ſaw my Son was ſlain, but made himſelf away. Then turning to the Earl of Arundel, he ſaid, My Lord, you being in the Gallery of my Ship at my Departure, I remember you took me by the Hand, and ſaid, you would requeſt one Thing of me; which was, whether I made a good Voyage or a bad, that I would return again into England; which I then promis'd, and gave you [522] my Faith I would. So you did, ſaid his Lordſhip, 'tis true, and they were the laſt Words I ſaid to you. Another ſlander was raiſed of me, that I ſhould have gone away from them, and have left them at Guiana; but there were a great many worthy Men, who accompanied me always, as my Serjeant-major, and divers others (whom he nam'd) that knew it was none of my Intention. Alſo it hath been ſaid, that I ſtinted them of freſh Water; to which I anſwer, every one was, as they muſt be in a Ship, furniſh'd by Meaſure, and not according to their Appetites. This Courſe all Seamen know muſt be uſed among them, and to this Straight were we driven. Another Opinion was held, that I carried with me ſixteen thouſand Pieces of Gold; and that all the Voyage I intended, was but to gain my Liberty, and this Money into my Hands: But as I ſhall anſwer it before God, I had no more in all the World, directly or indirectly, than one hundred Pounds, whereof I gave about forty-five Pounds to my Wife. But the Ground of this falſe Report was, that twenty thouſand Pounds being adventured, and but four thouſand appearing in the Surveyor's Books, the Reſt had my Hand to the Bills for divers Adventures; but, as I hope to be ſav'd, I had not a Penny more than one hundred Pounds. Theſe are the material Points I thought good to ſpeak of; I am at this Inſtant to render my Account to God, and I proteſt, as I ſhall appear before him, this that I have ſpoken is true.

I will borrow but a little Time more of Mr. Sheriff, that I may not detain him too long; and herein I ſhall ſpeak of the Imputation laid upon me through the Jealouſy of the People, that I had been a Perſecutor of my Lord of Eſſex; that I rejoiced in his Death, and ſtood in a Window over-againſt him when he ſuffer'd, and puff'd out Tobacco in Defiance of him; when as, God is my Witneſs, that I ſhed Tears for [523] him when he denied; and, as I hope to look God in the Face hereafter, my Lord of Eſſex did not ſee my Face at the Time of his Death; for I was far off, in the Armory, where I ſaw him, but he ſaw not me. 'Tis true, I was of a contrary Faction; but I take the ſame God to witneſs, that I had no Hand in his Death, nor bare him any ill Affection, but always believed it would be better for me that his Life had been preſerved; for after his Fall, I got the Hatred of thoſe who wiſhed me well before; and thoſe who ſet me againſt him, ſet themſelves afterwards againſt me, and were my greateſt Enemies: And my Soul hath many Times been grieved, that I was not nearer to him when he died; becauſe, as I underſtood afterwards, he aſked for me at his Death, and deſired to have been reconciled to me.

And now I entreat, that you all will join with me in Prayer to that great God of Heaven, whom I have grievouſly offended, being a Man full of all Vanity, who has lived a ſinful Life in ſuch Callings as have been moſt inducing to it; for I have been a Soldier, a Sailor, and a Courtier, which are courſes of Wickedneſs and Vice; that his Almighty Goodneſs will forgive me; that he will caſt away my Sins from me; and that he will receive me into everlaſting Life: So I take my leave of you all, making my Peace with God.

Then Proclamation being made, that all Men ſhould depart the Scaffold, he prepared himſelf for Death, giving away his Hat and Gap and Money to ſome Attendants who ſtood near him. When he took leave of the Lords and other Gentlemen, he intreated the Lord Arundel to deſire the King, that no ſcandalous Writings to defame him might be publiſh'd after his Death. Concluding, I have a long Journey to go, therefore muſt take my leave. [524] Then having put off his Gown and Doublet, he call'd to the Headſman to ſhew him the Ax, which not being ſuddenly done, he ſaid, I pr'ythee let me ſee it. Doſt thou think that I am afraid of it? Having finger'd the Edge of it a little he return'd it, and ſaid, ſmiling, to the Sheriff, This is a ſharp Medicine, but it is a ſound Cure for all Diſeaſes; and having intreated the Company to pray to God to aſſiſt and ſtrengthen him, the Executioner kneeled down and aſked him Forgiveneſs; which Ralegh, laying his Hand upon his Shoulder, granted. Then being aſked, which way he would lay himſelf on the Block, he anſwer'd, So the Heart be right, it is no Matter which way the Head lies. As he ſtoop'd to lay himſelf along, and reclined his Head, his Face being towards the Eaſt, the Headſman ſpread his own Cloak under him. After a little Pauſe, he gave the Sign that he was ready for the Stroke by lifting up his Hand, and his Head was ſtruck off at two Blows, his Body never ſhrinking or moving. His Head was ſhew'd on each ſide of the Scaffold, and then put into a red Leather Bag, and, with his Velvet Night-gown thrown over it, was afterwards conveyed away in a Mourning Coach of his Lady's. His Body, as we are told, was buried hard by, in the Chancel of St. Margaret's Church, near the Altar; but his Head was long preſerved in a Caſe by his Widow, for ſhe ſurvived him twenty-nine Years, as I have found by ſome Anecdotes remaining in the Family; and after her Death, it was kept alſo by her Son Carew, with whom it is ſaid to have been Buried.

Thus have we ſeen how Sir Walter Ralegh, after a ſhining and conſpicuous Series of Actions againſt the Enemies of his Country, and for the Improvement of Navigation as well as the Enlargement and [525] Enrichment of the Britiſh Empire, under one Soveraign, was deprived of his Liberty, his Eſtate, and his Life under another; how Sir Walter Ralegh, who had been one of the greateſt Scourges of Spain, was made a Sacrifice to it; how the Services of Sir Walter Ralegh, I ſay, in Camp, in Court, by Land, by Sea, with Sword and Pen, were an Honour to Queen Elizabeth's Reign; and how his Sufferings at Wincheſter, at Weſtminſter, by Impriſonment, by Law, with Slander and the Ax, were the Diſgrace of King James's. Writers vary in their Accounts of his Age; but the moſt credible Hiſtorians inform us, that he was ſixty-ſix Years Old at his Execution. Yet was it conjectured, by the extraordinary Effuſion of Blood from his Veins, that he had Stock and Strength enough left of Nature to have ſurvived many Yaars. His Death was managed by him, as one Author has obſerved, with ſo high and religious a Reſolution, as if a Roman had acted a Chriſtian, or rather a Chriſtian a Roman: And this is confirm'd by Sir Richard Hutton's Evidence, who ſays, He died in a good and religious Manner; ſpake much, and without any Fear of Death ſubmitted himſelf to the Block; by his Death he gained great Reputation in this Life, and, by the Grace and Mercy of God, Remiſſion of his Sins and Eternal Life hereafter.

And now, ſince it is Time to cloſe the Scene, Let this glorious and gallant Cavalier, whoſe Enemies have confeſs'd he was one of the weightieſt and wiſeſt Men that this Iſland ever bred, reſt in his Grave, and may his Virtues live in Poſterity; whom to inſpire therewith, the Felicities of Commemoration, however here diſpoſed of, ſeem to have ſignally combin'd; having tranſmitted many ample Teſtimonies, how emulous the Harmony of Record and the Spirit of Communication have been [526] to reſtore thoſe Honours to his Memory which were torn from his Perſon; and make Hiſtorical Compenſation for ſuch honourable Calamities: and that ſo early, that from this ſpeedy Growth of his Fame, through his extraordinary Merits and Miſfortunes, the learned and judicious Mr. Nathanael Carpenter, who wrote but few Years after his Death, drew that comprehenſive Character which has ſo much engaged the Concurrence of all ſucceeding Writers; where he ſays, Who hath not known or read of that Prodigy of Wit and Fortune, Sir Walter Ralegh? A Man unfortunate in nothing elſe but in the greatneſs of his Wit and Advancement! Whoſe eminent Worth was ſuch, both in domeſtick Policy, foreign Expeditions and Diſcoveries; in Arts and Literature, both Practic and Contemplative, that it might ſeem at once to conquer both Example and Imitation. But leſt a private Judgment ſhould be ſuſpected, more liable to the Ignorance of a Stranger, or the Affection of a Friend; and that there may be no room left to doubt either of ſuch manifold Worth in Sir Walter Ralegh, or that it was all made a Sacrifice of State to the Enemies and Deceivers of the State, we have reſerved, as moſt convincing, the Acknowledgments of an Enemy, who made him that Sacrifice, here to conclude with. For King James, ſoon after Ralegh's Execution, beginning to ſee how he was, and would be deluded by the Spaniard, made one of his Miniſters write to h s Agent in Spain, to let that State know, they ſhould be look'd upon as the moſt unworthy People in the World, if they did not now act with Sincerity, ſince his Majeſty had given ſo many Teſtimonies of his; and now of late, by cauſing Sir Walter Ralegh to be put to Death, chiefly for the giving them Satisfaction. Further to let them ſee how, in many Actions of late, his Majeſty had [527] ſtrained upon the Affections of his People, and eſpecially in this laſt concerning Sir Walter Ralegh, who died with a great deal of Courage and Conſtancy. Laſtly, that he ſhould let them know, how able a Man Sir Walter Ralegh was, to have done his Majeſty Service. Yet, to give them Content, he hath not ſpared him; when by preſerving him, he might have given great Satisfaction to his Subjects, and had at Command, upon all Occaſions, as uſeful a Man as ſerved any Prince in Chriſtendom.

Appendix A THE TRIAL OF Sir Walter Ralegh, Kt. FOR HIGH TREASON, At Winton the 17th of November, 1603. 1 JAC. I.

[]
The COMMISSIONERS were,
  • The Right Hon. Henry Howard, Earl of Suffolk, Ld. Chamberlain.
  • Charles Blunt, Earl of Devon.
  • Lord Henry Howard, afterward Earl of Northampton.
  • Robert Cecil, Earlof Saliſbury.
  • Edward Lord Wotton of Morley.
  • Sir John Stanhope, Vice-Chamberlain.
  • Ld. Ch. Juſt of Eng. Popham.
  • Ld. Chief Juſtice of the Common-Pleas, Anderſon.
  • Mr. Juſtice Gawdie.
  • Mr. Juſtice Warburton, and
  • Sir William Wade.

FIRST, The Commiſſion of Oyer and Terminer, was read by the Clerk of the Crown-Off [...]ce; and the Priſoner bid hold up his Hand:

And then preſently the Indictment, which was in Effect as followeth:

[529] THAT he did conſpire, and go about to deprive the King of his Government, to raiſe up Sedition within the Realm, to alter Religion, to bring in the Roman Superſtition, and to procure foreign Enemies to invade the Kingdom. That the Lord Cobham, the [...]th of June laſt, did meet with the ſaid Sir Walter Ralegh in Durham Houſe, in the Pariſh of St. Martin's in the Fields, and then and there had Conference with him how to advance Arabella Stuart to the Crown and royal Throne of this Kingdom; and that then and there it was agreed, That Cobham ſhould treat with Aremberg, Ambaſſador from the Arch-Duke of Auſtria, to obtain of him 600,000 Crowns, to bring to paſs their intended Treaſons. It was agreed, That Cobham ſhould go to Albert the Arch-duke, to procure him to advance the pretended Title of Arabella: From thence, knowing that Albert had not ſufficient Means to maintain his own Army in the Low-Countries, Cobham ſhould go to Spain to procure the King to aſſiſt, and further her pretended Title.

It was agreed, the better to effect all this Conſpiracy, That Arabella ſhould write three Letters, one to the Arch-duke, another to the King of Spain, and a third to the Duke of Savoy; and promiſe three Things: Firſt, To eſtabliſh a firm Peace between England and Spain. Secondly, To tolerate the Popiſh and Roman Superſtition. Thirdly, To be ruled by them in contracting of her Marriage.

And, for the effecting theſe traiterous Purpoſes, Cobham ſhould return by the Iſle of Jerſey, and ſhould there find Sir Walter Ralegh, Captain of the ſaid Iſle, and take Counſel of Ralegh for the diſtributing of the aforeſaid Crowns, as the Occaſion or Diſcontentment of the Subjects ſhould give Cauſe and Way.

And further, That Cobham and his Brother Brook met on the 9th of June laſt, and Cobham [530] told Brook all theſe Treaſons: To the which Treaſons Brook gave his Aſſent, and did join himſelf to all theſe; and after, on the Thurſday following, Cobham and Brook did ſpeak theſe Words; That there would never be a good World in England, till the King (meaning our Sovereign Lord) and his Cubs (meaning his Royal Iſſue) were taken away.

And the more to diſable and deprive the King of his Crown, and to confirm the ſaid Cobham in his Intents, Ralngh did publiſh a Book, falſly written againſt the moſt juſt and Royal Title of the King, knowing the ſaid Book to be written againſt the juſt Title of the King; which Book Cobham after that received of him. Farther, for the better effecting theſe traiterous Purpoſes, and to eſtabliſh the ſaid Brook in his Intent, the ſaid Cobham did deliver the ſaid Book unto him, the 14th of June. And further, the ſaid Cobham, on the 16th of June, for Accompliſhment of the ſaid Conference, and, by the traiterous Inſtigation of Ralegh, did move Brook to incite Arabella to write to the three forenamed Princes to procure them to advance her Title; and that ſhe, after ſhe had obtained the Crown, ſhould promiſe to perform three Things, viz. 1. Peace between England and Spain. 2. To tolerate with Impunity, the Popiſh and Roman Superſtitions. 3. To be ruled by them three, in the contracting of her Marriage.

To theſe Motions, the ſaid Brook gave his Aſſent; and for the better effecting of the ſaid Treaſons, Cobham, on the 17th of June, by the Inſtigation of Ralegh, did write Letters to Count Aremberg, and did deliver the ſaid Letters to one Matthew de Lawrency, to be delivered to the ſaid Count, which he did deliver, for the obtaining of 600,000 Crowns; which Money, by other Letters, Count Aremberg did promiſe to perform the Payment of; and this Letter Cobham received the 18th of June. And then did [531] Cobham promiſe to Ralegh, that when he had received the ſaid Money, he would deliver 8000 Crowns to him; to which Motion he did conſent; and afterwards Cobham offered Brook, that after he ſhould receive the ſaid Crowns, he would give to him 1000 thereof; to which Motion Brook did aſſent.

To the Indictment, Sir Walter Ralegh pleaded Not guilty.

The JURY.
  • Sir Ralph Coniſby, Knt.
  • Sir Thomas Fowler, Knt.
  • Sir Edward Peacock, Knt.
  • Sir William Rowe, Knt.
  • Henry Goodyer, Eſq
  • Roger Wood, Eſq
  • Thomas Walker, Eſq
  • Thomas Whitby, Eſq
  • Thomas Highgate, Gent.
  • Robert Kempthorn, Gent.
  • John Chawkey, Gent.
  • Robert Brumley, Gent.

Sir Walter Ralegh was aſked, whether he would take Exceptions to any of the Jury.

Ralegh.

I know none of them; they are all Chriſtians and honeſt Gentlemen; I except againſt none.

E. Suff.

You Gentlemen of the King's learned Council, follow the ſame Courſe as you did the other Day.

Ralegh.

My Lord, I pray you I may anſwer the Points particularly, as they are delivered, by Reaſon of the Weakneſs of my Memory and Sickneſs.

Popham, Chief Juſtice.

After the King's learned Council have delivered all the Evidence, Sir Walter, you may anſwer particularly to what you will.

Heale, the King's Serjeant at Law.

You have heard of Ralegh's bloody Attempts, to kill the King and his royal Progeny, and, in Place thereof, to advance one Arabella Stuart. The Particulars of the Indictment are theſe: Firſt, That Ralegh met with Cobham the 9th of June, and had Conference of an Invaſion, of a Rebellion, and an Inſurrection, to be made by the King's Subjects, to depoſe [532] the King, and to kill his Children, poor Babes, that never gave Offence: Here is Blood, here is a new King and Governor. In our King conſiſts all our Happineſs, and the true Uſe of the Goſpel; a Thing, which we all wiſhed to be ſetled after the Death of the Queen. Here muſt be Money to do this, for Money is the Sinew of War. Where ſhould that be had? Count Aremberg muſt procure it of Philip King of Spain, 5 or 600,000 Crowns, and out of this Sum, Ralegh muſt have 8000; then there muſt be Friends to effect this. Cobham muſt go to Albert, Arch-Duke of Auſtria, from whom Aremberg was Ambaſſador at that Time in England. And what then? He muſt perſuade the Duke to aſſiſt the pretended Title of Arabella. From thence Cobham muſt go to the King of Spain, and perſuade him to aſſiſt the ſaid Title. Since the Conqueſt, there was never the like Treaſon. But out of whoſe Head came it; Out of Ralegh's, who muſt alſo adviſe Cobham to uſe his Brother Brook to incite the Lady Arabella to write three ſeveral Letters, as aforeſaid in the Indictment; all this was on the 9th of June. Then three Days after, Brook was acquainted with it: After this, Cobham ſaid to Brook, 'Twill never be well in England, till the King and his Cubs are taken away. Afterwards Ralegh delivered a Book to Cobham, treacherouſly written againſt the Title of the King. It appears, that Cobham took Ralegh, to be either a God, or an Idol. Gobham endeavours to ſet up a new King, or Governor. God forbid, mine Eyes ſhould ever ſee ſo unhappy a Change. As for the Lady Arabella, ſhe, upon my Conſcience, hath no more Title to the Crown than I have; which, before God, I utterly renounce. Cobham, a Man bred in England, hath no Experience abroad. But Ralegh, a Man of great Wit, Military, and a Sword-man. Now whether theſe Things were bred in a hollow [533] Tree, I leave to them to ſpeak of, who can ſpeak far better than myſelf.

Sir Edward Coke, the King's Attorney.

I muſt firſt, My Lords, before I come to the Cauſe, give one Caution; becauſe we ſhall often mention Perſons of eminent Places, ſome of them great Monarchs: Whatever we ſay of them, we ſhall but repeat what others have ſaid of them; I mean the capital Offenders in their Confeſſions: We, proſeſſing Law, muſt ſpeak reverently of Kings and Potentates. I perceive theſe honourable Lords, and the reſt of this great Aſſembly, are come to hear what hath been ſcattered upon the Wreck of Report. We carry a juſt Mind, to condemn no Man, but upon plain Evidence. Here is Miſchief, Miſchief in ſummo gradu, exorbitant Miſchief. My Speech ſhall chiefly touch theſe three Points; Imitation, Supportation, and Defence.

The Imitation of Evil ever exceeds the Precedent, as on the contrary, Imitation of Good ever comes ſhort. Miſchief cannot be ſupported, but by Miſchief: Yea, it will ſo multiply, that it will bring all to Confuſion. Miſchief is ever underprop'd by Falſhood of foul Practices. And becauſe all theſe Things did concur in theſe Treaſons, you ſhall underſtand the Main, as before you did the Bye.

The Treaſon of the Bye, conſiſteth in theſe Points: Firſt, That the Lord Grey, Brook, Markham, and the reſt, intended by Force in the Night, to ſurprize the King's Court; which was a Rebellion in the Heart of the Realm, yea, in the Heart of the Heart, in the Court. They intended to make him, that is a Sovereign, ſubject to their Power, purpoſing to open the Doors with Muſquets and Calivers, and to take alſo the Prince and Council. Then, under the King's Authority, to carry the King to the Tower, and to make a State of the Admiral: When they had the King there, to extort three [534] Things from him. Firſt, A Pardon for all their Treaſons. Secondly, A Toleration of the Roman Superſtition: Which their Eyes ſhall ſooner fall out, than they ſhall ever ſee; for the King hath ſpoken theſe Words in the hearing of many, I will loſe the Crown and my Life, before ever I will alter Religion. And Thirdly, To remove Counſellors: In the Room of the Lord Chancellor, they would have placed one Watſon a Prieſt, abſurd in Humanity, and ignorant in Divinity. Brook, of whom I will ſpeak nothing, Lord Treaſurer; the great Secretary muſt be Markham, Oculus Patriae. A Hole muſt be found in my Lord Chief Juſtice's Coat. Grey muſt be Earl Marſhal and Maſter of the Horſe, becauſe he would have a Table in the Court: Marry, he would advance the Earl of Worceſter to a higher Place. All this cannot be done without a Multitude. Therefore Watſon the Prieſt telleth a reſolute Man, That the King was in Danger of Puritans and Jeſuits; ſo to bring him in Blindfold into the Action; ſaying, That the King is no King till he be crown'd, therefore every Man might right his own Wrongs: But he is Rex Natus, his Dignity deſcends as well as yours, my Lords. Then Watſon impoſeth a blaſphemous Oath, that they ſhould ſwear to defend the King's Perſon, to keep ſecret what was given them in Charge, and ſeek all Ways and Means to advance the Catholick Religion. Then they intend to ſend for the Lord Mayor and the Aldermen, in the King's Name, to the Tower, leſt they ſhould make any Reſiſtance, and then to take Hoſtages of them; and to enjoin them to provide for them Victuals and Munition. Grey, becauſe the King removed before Midſummer, had a further Reach, to get a Company of Swordmen to aſſiſt the Action: Therefore he would ſtay till he had obtain'd a Regiment from Oſtend or Auſtria. So you ſee, theſe Treaſons were like Sampſon's Foxes, [535] which were joined in their Tails, tho' their Heads were ſever'd.

Ralegh.

You Gentlemen of the Jury, I pray remember I am not charged with the Bye, being the Treaſon of the Prieſt.

Attorney.

You are not: My Lords, you ſhall obſerve three Things in the Treaſons. Firſt, They had a Watch-Word (the King's Safety); their Pretence was Bonum in ſe, their Intent was Malum in ſe. Secondly, They avouched Scripture; both the Prieſts had, Scriptum eſt; perverting and ignorantly miſtaking the Scriptures. Thirdly, They avouched the Common Law to prove, That he was no King till he was crowned, alledging a Statute of 13 Eliz. This, by Way of Imitation, hath been the Courſe of all Traytors.

In the 20th of Edward II. Iſabella the Queen, and the Lord Mortimer, gave out, That the King's Perſon was not ſafe, for the Good of the Church and Commonwealth.

The Biſhop of Carliſle did preach on this Text, My Head is grieved; meaning by the Head, the King; that when the Head began to be negligent, the People might reform what is amifs.

In the 3d of Henry IV. Sir Roger Claringdon, accompanied with two Prieſts, gave out, that Richard II. was alive, when he was dead.

Edward III. cauſed Mortimer's Head to be cut off, for giving Couuſel to murther the King.

The 3d of Henry VII. Sir Henry Stanley found the Crown in the Duſt, and ſet it on the King's Head. When Fitzwater and Garret told him, that Edward V. was alive, he ſaid, If he be alive, I will aſſiſt him: But this coſt him his Head.

Edmund de la Pole, Duke of Suffolk, killed a Man in the Reign of King Henry VII. for which the King would have him hold up his Hand at the Bar, and then pardoned him. Yet he took ſuch Offence [536] thereat, that he ſent to the Noblemen, to help to reform the Commonwealth; and then ſaid, he would go to France and get Power there. Sir Roger Compton knew all the Treaſon, and diſcovered Windon and others that were attainted.

He ſaid, there was another Thing that would be ſtood upon, namely, that they had but one Witneſs; then he vouched one Appleyard's Caſe (Temp. Eliz.) a Traytor in Norfolk, who ſaid a Man muſt have two Accuſers. Helmes was the Man that accuſed him; but Mr. Juſtice Catlin ſaid, that that Statute was not in Force at that Day; his Words were, Thruſt her into the Ditch.

Then he went on ſpeaking of Accuſers, and mad [...] this Difference: An Accuſer is a Speaker by Report; when a Witneſs is he, that upon his Oath ſhall ſpeak his Knowledge of any Man.

A third Sort of Evidence there is likewiſe, and this is held more forcible than either of the other two; and that is, when a Man, by his Accuſation of another, ſhall, by the ſame Accuſation, alſo condemn himſelf, and make himſelf liable to the ſame Fault and Puniſhment: This is more forcible than many Witneſſes. So then, ſo much by Way of Imitation. Then he defined Treaſon: There is Treaſon in the Heart, in the Hand, in the Mouth, in Conſummation; comparing that in Corde to the Root of a Tree; in Ore, to the Bud; in Manu, to the Bloſſom; and that which is in Conſummatione, to the Fruit.

Now I come to your Charge, you of the Jury: The Greatneſs of Treaſon is to be conſidered in theſe two Things, Determinatione finis, and Electione medicorum. This Treaſon excelleth in both, for that it was to deſtroy the King and his Progeny. Theſe Treaſons are ſaid to be Crimen laeſae Majeſtatis; this goeth farther, and may be termed Crimen extirpandae Regiae Majeſtatis & totius Progeniei [537] ſuae. I ſhall not need, my Lords, to ſpeak any Thing concerning the King, nor of the Bounty and Sweetneſs of his Nature, whoſe Thoughts are innocent, whoſe Words are full of Wiſdom and Learning, and whoſe Works are full of Honour; although it be a true Saying, Nunquam nimis, quod nunquam ſatis. But to whom do you bear Malice? To the Children?

Ralegh.

To whom ſpeak you this? You tell me News I never heard of.

Attorney.

Oh Sir, do I; I will prove you the notoriouſeſt Traytor, that ever came to the Bar. After you have taken away the King, you would alter Religion: As you Sir Walter Ralegh have followed them of the Bye in Imitation; for I will charge you with the Words.

Ralegh.

Your Words cannot condemn me, my Innocency is my Defence: Prove one of theſe Things wherewith you have charged me, and I will confeſs the whole Indictment; and that I am the horribleſt Traytor that ever lived, and worthy to be crucified with a thouſand thouſand Torments.

Attorney.

Nay, I will prove all: Thou art a Monſter; thou haſt an Engliſh Face, but a Spaniſh Heart. Now you muſt have Money: Aremberg was no ſooner in England (I charge thee Ralegh) but thou incitedſt Cobham to go unto him, and to deal with him for Money, to beſtow on diſcontented Perſons, to raiſe Rebellion in the Kingdom.

Ralegh.

Let me anſwer for myſelf.

Attorney.

Thou ſhalt not.

Ralegh.

It concerneth my Life.

Lord Chief Juſtice Popham.

Sir Walter Ralegh, Mr. Attorney is but yet in the General; but when the King's Council have given the Evidence wholly, you ſhall anſwer every Particular.

Attorney.

Oh! do I touch you?

Lord Cecil.
[538]

Mr. Attorney, when you have done with this general Charge, do you not mean to let him anſwer to every Particular?

Attorney.

Yes, when we deliver the Proofs to be read. Ralegh procured Cobham to go to Aremberg, which he did by his Inſtigation: Ralegh ſupped with Cobham before he went to Aremberg; after Supper, Ralegh conducted him to Durham Houſe; from whence Cobham went with Lawrency, a Servant of Aremberg's, unto him, and went in by a Back-way. Cobham could never be quiet until he had entertain'd this Motion, for he had four Letters from Ralegh. Aremberg anſwered, the Money ſhould be performed, but knew not to whom it ſhould be diſtributed. Then Cobham and Lawrency came back to Durham Houſe, where they found Ralegh. Cobham and Ralegh went up, and left Lawrency below, where they had ſecret Conference in a Gallery, and after Cobham and Lawrency departed from Ralegh. Your Jargon was Peace! What is that? Spaniſh Invaſion, Scotiſh Subverſion. And again, you are not a fit Man to take ſo much Money for procuring of a lawful Peace, for Peace procured by Money is diſhonourable. Then Cobham muſt go to Spain, and return by Jerſey, where you were Captain: And then, becauſe Cobham had not ſo much Policy, or at leaſt Wickedneſs, as you, he muſt have your Advice for the Diſtribution of the Money. Would you have depoſed ſo good a King, lineally deſcended of Elizabeth, eldeſt Daughter of Edward IV: Why then muſt you ſet up another? I think you meant to make Arabella a titular Queen, of whoſe Title I will ſpeak nothing; but ſure you meant to make her a Stale: Ah good Lady! you could mean her no good.

Ralegh.

You tell me News, Mr. Attorney.

Attorney.
[539]

Oh Sir! I am the more large, becauſe I know with whom I deal: For we have to deal to-day with a Man of Wit.

Ralegh.

Did I ever ſpeak with this Lady?

Attorney.

I will track you out before I have done; Engliſhmen will not be led by Perſuaſion of Words, but they muſt have Books to perſuade.

Ralegh.

This Book *was written by a Man of your Profeſſion, Mr. Attorney.

Attorney.

I would not have you impatient.

Ralegh.

Methinks you fall out with yourſelf; I ſay nothing.

Attorney.

By this Book, you would perſuade Men, that he is not the lawful King. Now let us conſider ſome Circumſtances: My Lords, you know my Lord Cobham (for whom we all lament, and rejoice; lament in that his Houſe, which hath ſtood ſo long unſpotted, is now ruinated: Rejoice, in that his Treaſons are revealed) is neither Politician nor Sword-man; Ralegh was both, united in the Cauſe with him, and therefore Cauſe of his Deſtruction. Another Circumſtance is, the ſecret contriving of it. Humphry Stafford claimed Sanctuary for Treaſon, Ralegh in his Machiavilian Policy hath made a Sanctuary for Treaſon. He muſt talk with none but Cobham, becauſe (ſaith he) one Witneſs can never condemn me. For Brook ſaid unto Sir Griffith Markham, take heed how you do make my Lord Cobham acquainted; for whatſoever he knoweth, Ralegh the Witch will get it out of him. As ſoon as Ralegh was examined on one Point of Treaſon concerning my Lord Cobham, he wrote to him thus; I have been examined of you, and confeſſed nothing. Further, you ſent to him [540] by your truſty Francis Kemiſh, that one Witneſs could not condemn; and therefore bad his Lordſhip be of good Courage. Came this out of Cobham's Quiver? No: But out of Ralegh's Machiavelian and Deviliſh Policy. Yea, but Cobham did retract it: Why then did you urge it? Now then ſee the moſt horrible Practices that ever came out of the bottomleſs Pit of the loweſt Hell. After that Ralegh had Intelligence that Cobham had accuſed him, he endeavoured to have Intelligence from Cobham, which he had gotten by young Sir John Payton: But I think it was the Error of his Youth.

Ralegh.

The Lords told it me, or elſe I had not been ſent to the Tower.

Attorney.

Thus Cobham, by the Inſtigation of Ralegh, entred into theſe Actions: So that the Queſtion will be, Whether you are not the principal Traytor, and he would nevertheleſs have entred into it? Why did Cobham retract all that ſame? Firſt, Becauſe Ralegh was ſo odious, he thought he ſhould fare the worſe for his Sake. 2dly, He thought thus with himſelf, if he be free, I ſhall clear myſelf the better. After this, Cobham aſked for a Preacher to confer with, pretending to have Dr. Andrews; but indeed, he meant not to have him, but Mr. Galloway, a worthy and reverend Preacher, who can do more with the King (as he ſaid) than any other; that he, ſeeing his conſtant Denial, might inform the King thereof. Here he plays with the Preacher. If Ralegh could perſuade the Lords, that Cobham had no Intent to travel, then he thought all ſhould be well. Here is Forgery. In the Tower, Cobham muſt write to Sir Thomas Vane, a worthy Man, That he meant not to go into Spain; which Letter Ralegh deviſed in Cobham's Name.

Ralegh.
[541]

I will waſh my Hands of the Indictment, and die a true Man to the King.

Attorney.

You are the abſoluteſt Traytor that ever was.

Ralegh.

Your Phraſes will not prove it, Mr. Attorney.

Attorney.

Cobham writeth a Letter to my Lord Cecil, and doth will Mellis, his Man, to lay it in a Spaniſh Bible, and to make as though he found it by chance. This was after he had Intelligence with this Viper; then he was falſe.

Lord Cecil.

You mean a Letter intended to me; I never had it.

Attorney.

No, my Lord, you had it not. You, my Maſters of the Jury, reſpect not the Wickedneſs and Hatred of the Man, reſpect his Cauſe; if he be guilty, I know you will have Care of it, for the Preſervation of the King, the Continuance of the Goſpel authoriſed, and the Good of us all.

Ralegh.

I do not hear yet, that you have ſpoken one Word againſt me; here is no Treaſon of mine done. If my Lord Cobham be a Traytor, what is that to me?

Attorney.

All that he did, was by thy Inſtigation, thou Viper; for I Thou thee, thou Traitor.

Ralegh.

It becometh not a Man of Quality and Virtue, to call me ſo: But I take Comfort in it, it is all you can do.

Attorney.

Have I anger'd you?

Ralegh.

I am in no Caſe to be angry?

C. J. Popham.

Sir Walter Ralegh, Mr. Attorney ſpeaketh out of the Zeal of his Duty, for the Service of the King, and you for your Life; be valiant on both Sides.

Now they proceed to the reading the Proofs.

The Lord Cobham's Examination read.

‘He confeſſeth he had a Paſport to go into Spain, intending to go to the Arch-duke, to confer with him [542] about theſe Practices; and becauſe he knew the Archduke had not Money to pay his own Army, from thence he meant to go to Spain, to deal with the King for the 600,000 Crowns, and to return by Jerſey; and that nothing ſhould be done, until he had ſpoken with Sir Walter Ralegh, for Diſtribution of the Money to them which were diſcontented in England. At the firſt Beginning, he breathed out Oaths and Exclamations againſt Ralegh, calling him Villain and Traytor; ſaying, he had never entered into thoſe Courſes, but by his Inſtigation, and that he would never let him alone.’

Here Mr. Attorney willed the Clerk of the Crown-Office, to read over theſe laſt Words again (he would never let him alone.)

The Lord Cobham's Examination.

‘Beſides, he ſpake of Plots and Invaſions: Of the Particulars whereof he could give no Account, tho' Ralegh and he had conferred of them, becauſe he was (as he ſaid) confounded with them. Further, he ſaid, he was afraid of Ralegh, that when he ſhould return by Jerſey, that he would have him and the Money to the King. Being examined of Sir Arthur Gorge, he freed him, ſaying, They never durſt truſt him; but Sir Arthur Savage they intended to uſe, becauſe they thought him a fit Man.’

Ralegh.

Let me ſee the Examination: This is abſolutely all the Evidence can be brought againſt me; poor Shifts! You Gentlemen of the Jury, I pray you underſtand this: This is that which muſt either condemn, or give me Life; which muſt free me, or ſend my Wife and Children to beg their Bread about the Streets. This is what muſt prove me a notorious Traytor, or true Subject to the King. Let me ſee my Accuſation, that I may make my Anſwer.

Clerk of the Council.

I did read it, and ſhew you all the Examinations.

Ralegh.
[543]

At my firſt Examination at Windſor, my Lords aſked me, what I knew of Cobham's Practice with Aremberg; I anſwered negatively: And as concerning Arabella, I proteſt before God, I never heard one Word of it. If that be proved, let me be guilty of a thouſand Treaſons. It is a ſtrange Thing you will impute that to me, when I never heard ſo much as the Name of Arabella Stuart, but only the Name of Arabella.

After being examined, I told my Lords, that I thought my Lord Cobham had Conference with Aremberg, l ſuſpected his viſiting of him: For after he departed from me at Durham Houſe, I ſaw him paſs by his own Stairs, and paſſed over to St. Mary-Saviours, where I knew Lawrency a Merchant, and a Follower of Aremberg, and therefore likely to go unto him. My Lord Cecil aſked my Opinion concerning Lawrency; I ſaid, That if you do not apprehend Lawrency, it is dangerous, he will fly; if you do apprehend him, you ſhall give my Lord Cobham Notice thereof. I was aſked likewiſe, Who was the greateſt Man with my Lord Cobham? I anſwered, I knew no Man ſo great with him, as young Wyat of Kent.

As ſoon as Cobham ſaw my Letter to have diſcovered his Dealing with Aremberg, in his Fury he accuſed me; but before he came to the Stair-foot he repented him, and ſaid, he had done me wrong. When he came to the End of his Accuſation, he added, That if he had brought this Money to Jerſey, that I would have delivered him and the Money to the King. Mr. Attorney, You ſaid this never came out of Cobham's Quiver, he is a ſimple Man: Is he ſo ſimple? No: He hath Diſpoſitions of his own, he will not eaſily be guided by others, but when he has once taken Head in a Matter, he is not eaſily drawn from it; he is no Babe. But it is ſtrange for me to deviſe with Cobham, that he [544] ſhould go to Spain, to perſuade the King to diſburſe ſo much Money, he being a Man of no Love in England, and I having reſigned my Room of chiefeſt Command, the Wardenſhip of the Stannaries: Is it not ſtrange for me, to make myſelf Robin Hood, or a Kitt, or a Cade; I knowing England to be in better Eſtate to defend itſelf than ever it was. I knew Scotland united, Ireland quieted, Denmark aſſured, which before was ſuſpected. I knew that having loſt a Lady whom Time had ſurpriſed, we had now an active King, a lawful Succeſſor. The State of Spain was not unknown to me. I had written a Diſcourſe, which I had intended to preſent unto the King, againſt Peace with Spain. I knew the Spaniards had ſix Repulſes, three in Ireland, and three at Sea, and once in 1588 at Cales, by my Lord Admiral. I knew he was diſcouraged and diſhonoured. I knew the King of Spain to be the proudeſt Prince living; but now he cometh creeping to the King my Maſter for Peace. I knew, whereas before he had in his Ports ſix or ſeven Score Sail of Ships, he hath now but ſix or ſeven. I knew of twenty-five Millions he had from his Indies, he hath ſcarce one left. I knew him ſo poor, that the Jeſuits in Spain, who were wont to have ſuch large Allowance, were fain to beg at the Church-door. Was it ever read or heard, that any Prince ſhould diſburſe ſo much Money, without a ſufficient Pawn? I knew her own Subjects, the Citizens of London, would not lend her Majeſty Money, without Lands in Mortgage. I knew the Queen did not lend the States Money, without Fluſhing, Brill, and other Towns for a Pawn. And can it be thought, he would let Cobham have ſo great a Sum?

I never came to the Lord Cobham's, but about Matters of his Profit, as the ordering of his Houſe, paying of his Servants Board-wages, &c. I had [545] of his when I was examined, four thouſand Pounds worth of Jewels for a Purchaſe; a Pearl of three thouſand Pounds, and a Ring worth five hundred Pounds: If he had had a Fancy to run away, he would not have left ſo much to have purchaſed a Leaſe in Fee-farm. I ſaw him buy three hundred Pounds worth of Books, to ſend to his Library at Canterbury, and a Cabinet of thirty Pounds to give to Mr. Attorney, for drawing the Conveyances; and God in Heaven knoweth, not I, whither he intended to travel. But for that Practice with Arabella, or Letters to Aremberg, or any Diſcourſe with him, or in what Language he ſpake unto him; if I knew any of theſe Things, I would abſolutely confeſs the Indictment, and acknowledge myſelf worthy a thouſand Deaths.

Cobham's ſecond Examination read.

‘The Lord Cobham being required to ſubſcribe to an Examination, there was ſhewed a Note under Ralegh's Hand, the which when he had peruſed, he pauſed, and after brake forth into theſe Speeches: Oh Villain! Oh Traytor! I will now tell you all the Truth! And then ſaid, His Purpoſe was to go into Flanders and into Spain, for the obtaining the aforeſaid Money, and that, Ralegh had appointed to meet him in Jerſey as he returned home, to be adviſed of him about the Diſtribution of the Money.’

Popham, Lord Chief Juſtice. When Cobham anſwered to the Interrogatories, he made ſcruple to ſubſcribe; and being urged to it, he ſaid, if he might hear me affirm, that a Perſon of his Degree ought to ſet his Hand, he would; I lying then at Richmond, for Fear of the Plague, was ſent for, and I told him he ought to ſubſcribe; otherwiſe it were a Contempt of a high Nature: Then he ſubſcribed. The Lords queſtioned with him further, and he ſhewed them a Letter, as I thought written to me, but it was indeed written to my Lord Cecil: He deſired to ſee the [546] Letter again, and then ſaid, Oh Wretch! Oh Traytor! Whereby I perceived you had not performed that Truſt he had repoſed in you.

Ralegh.

He is as paſſionate a Man as lives, for he hath not ſpared the beſt Friends he hath in England in his Paſſion. My Lords, I take it, he that hath been examined, hath ever been aſked at the Time of his Examination, if it be according to his Meaning, and then to ſubſcribe. Methinks, my Lords, when he accuſes a Man, he ſhould give ſome Account and Reaſon of it; it is not ſufficient to ſay, we talked of it. If I had been the Plotter, would not I have given Cobham ſome Arguments, whereby to perſuade the King of Spain, and anſwer his Objections. I knew Weſtmorland and Bothwell, Men of other Underſtandings than Cobham, were ready to beg their Bread.

Sir Thomas Fowler, one of the Jury. Did Sir Walter Ralegh write a Letter to my Lord before he was examined concerning him, or not?

Attorney.

Yes.

Lord Cecil.

I am in great Diſpute with my ſelf, to ſpeak in the Caſe of this Gentleman: A former Dearneſs between me and him ty'd ſo firm a Knot of my Conceit of his Virtues, now broken by a Diſcovery of his Imperfections. I proteſt, did I ſerve a King that I knew would be diſpleaſed with me for ſpeaking, in this Caſe I would ſpeak, whatever came of it: But ſeeing he is compacted of Piety and Juſtice, and one that will not miſlike any Man for ſpeaking a Truth, I will anſwer your Queſtion.

Sir Walter Ralegh was ſtaid by me at Windſor, upon the firſt News of Copley, that the King's Perſon ſhould be ſurpriz'd by my Lord Grey, and Mr. George Brook; when I found Brook was in, I ſuſpected Cobham, then I doubted Ralegh to be a Partaker. I ſpeak not this that it ſhould be thought [547] I had greater Judgment than the Reſt of my Lords, in making this Haſte to have him examin'd; Ralegh following to Windſor, I met with him upon the Terrace, and willed him, as from the King, to ſtay, ſaying, The Lords had ſomething to ſay to him: Then he was examined, but not concerning my Lord Cobham, but of the ſurprizing Treaſon; my Lord Grey was apprehended, and likewiſe Brook; by Brook we found, that he had given Notice to Cobham of the ſurprizing Treaſon as he deliver'd it to us, but with as much Sparingneſs of a Brother as he might: We ſent for my Lord Cobham to Richmond, where he ſtood upon his Juſtification, and his Quality; ſometimes being froward, he ſaid he was not bound to ſubſcribe, wherewith we made the King acquainted. Cobham ſaid, if my Lord Chief Juſtice would ſay it were a Contempt, he would ſubſcribe; whereof being reſolved, he ſubſcribed. There was a Light given to Aremberg, that Lawrency was examined; but that Ralegh knew that Cobham was examined, is more than I know.

Ralegh.

If my Lord Cobham had truſted me in the Main, was not I as fit a Man to be truſted in the Bye?

Lord Cecil.

Ralegh did by Letter acquaint us, that my Lord Cobham had ſent Lawrency to Aremberg, when he knew not he had any Dealings with him.

Lord H. Howard.

It made for you, if Lawrency had been only acquainted with Cobham, and not with you. But you knew his whole Eſtate, and were acquainted with Cobham's Practice with Lawrency; and it was known to you before, that Lawrency depended on Aremberg.

Attorney.

1. Ralegh proteſteth againſt the ſurprizing Treaſon. 2. That he knew not of the Matter touching Arabella. I would not charge you Sir Walter with a Matter of Falſhood: You [548] ſay, you ſuſpected the Intelligence that Cobham had with Aremberg by Lawrency.

Ralegh.

I thought it had been no other Intelligence, but ſuch as might be warranted.

Attorney.

Then it was but lawful Suſpicion. But to that whereas you ſaid, That Cobham had accuſed you on Paſſion, I anſwer three Ways. 1. I obſerv'd when Cobham ſaid, Let me ſee the Letter again, he pauſed, and when he did ſee that Count Aremberg was touch'd, he cry'd out, O Traytor! O Villain! now will I confeſs the whole Truth. 2. The Accuſation of a Man on Hear ſay, is nothing: Would he accuſe himſelf on Paſſion, and ruinate his Cauſe and Poſterity, out of Malice to accuſe you? 3. Could this be out of Paſſion? Mark the Manner of it: Cobham had told this at leaſt two Months before to his Brother Brook, You are Fools, you are on the Bye, Ralegh and I are on the Main, we mean to take away the King and his Cubs; this he deliver'd two Months before. So mark the Manner and the Matter; he would not turn the Weapon againſt his own Brother, and accuſe himſelf to accuſe you.

Ralegh.

Hath Cobham confeſſed that?

Lord Chief Juſtice.

This is ſpoken by Mr. Attorney, to prove that Cobham's Speech came not out of Paſſion.

Ralegh.

Let it be proved that Cobham ſaid ſo.

Attorney.

Cobham ſaith, he was a long Time doubtful of Ralegh, that he would ſend him and the Money to the King. Did Cobham fear leſt you would betray him in Jerſey? Then of Neceſſity there muſt be Truſt between you. No Man can betray a Man, but he that is truſted, in my Underſtanding. This is the greateſt Argument to prove, that he was acquainted with Cobham's Proceedings. Ralegh hath a deeper Reach than to make himſelf, as he ſaid, Robin Hood, a Ket, or Cade; yet I never heard [549] that Robin Hood was a Traytor; they ſay he was an Outlaw. And whereas he ſaith, that our King is not only more wealthy and potent than his Prededeceſſors, but alſo more politick and wiſe, ſo that he could have no Hope to prevail: I anſwer, there is no King ſo potent, wiſe, and active, but he may be overtaken through Treaſon. Whereas you ſay, Spain is ſo poor; diſcourſing ſo largely thereof, it had been better for you to have kept in Guiana, than to have been ſo well acquainted with the State of Spain. Beſides, if you could have brought Spain and Scotland to have joined, you might have had Hope to prevail. For his ſix Overthrows, I anſwer, he hath the more Malice, becauſe Repulſes breed Deſire of Revenge. Then you ſay, you never talk'd with Cobham but about Leaſes, and letting Lands, and ordering his Houſe; I never knew you Clerk of the Kitchen, &c. If you had fallen on your Knees at firſt, and confeſſed the Treaſon, it had been better for you. You ſay, he meant to have given me a Cabinet of thirty Pounds; perhaps he thought by thoſe Means, to have anticipated me therewith. But you ſay, all theſe are Circumſtances. I anſwer, all this Accuſation in Circumſtance is true: Here now I might appeal to my Lords, that you take hold of this, that he ſubſcribed not to the Accuſation.

Lord H. Howard.

Cobham was not then preſſed to ſubſcribe.

Attorney.

His Accuſation being teſtified by the Lords, is of as great Force, as if he had ſubſcribed. Ralegh ſaith again, if the Accuſer be alive, he muſt be brought Face to Face to ſpeak, and alledges 25 Edw. III. That there muſt be two ſufficient Witneſſes that muſt be brought Face to Face before the accuſed, and alledgeth 10, and 13 Eliz.

Ralegh.
[550]

You try me by the Spaniſh Inquiſition, if you proceed only by the Circumſtances, without two Witneſſes.

Attorney.

This is a treaſonable Speech.

Ralegh.

Evertere hominem juſtum in cauſa ſua, injuſtum eſt: Good my Lords, let it be proved, either by the Laws of the Land, or by the Laws of God, that there ought not to be two Witneſſes appointed; yet I will not ſtand to defend this Point in Law, if the King will have it ſo; it is no rare Thing to be falſly accuſed. A Judge condemned a Woman in Sarum, for killing her Huſband, on the Teſtimony of one Witneſs; afterwards his Man confeſſed the Murder, when ſhe was executed. Who after, being touch'd in Conſcience for the Judgment, was uſed to ſay, Quod nunquam de hoc facto animam in vita ſua purgaret. It is alſo commanded by the Scripture, Deut. xvii. In ore duorum aut trium teſtium, &c. and xix. Non ſtabit unus teſtis contra aliquem, &c.

If Chriſt requireth it, as it appeareth, Mat. xviii. If by the Statute, Civil Law, and God's Word, it be required that there muſt be two Witneſſes at the leaſt; bear with me if I deſire one.

I would not deſire to live, if I were privy to Cobham's Proceedings: I had been a Slave, a Villain, a Fool, if I had endeavoured to ſet up Arabella, and refuſed ſo gracious a Lord and Soveraign. But urge your Proofs.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

You have offered Queſtions on divers Statutes, all which mention two Accuſers in Caſe of Indictments; you have deceived yourſelf, for the Laws of 25 Ed. III. and 5 Ed. VI. are repeal'd. It ſufficeth now, if there be Proofs made either under Hand, or by Teſtimony of Witneſſes, or by Oaths; it needs not the Subſcription of the Party, ſo there be Hands of credible Men, to teſtify the Examination.

Ralegh.
[551]

It may be an Error in me, and if thoſe Laws be repeal'd, yet I hope the Equity of thoſe Laws remains ſtill; but if you affirm it, it muſt be a Law to Poſterity; the Proof of the common Law is by Witneſs and Jury; let Cobham be here, let him ſpeak it: Call my Accuſer before my Face, and I have done.

Attorney.

Scientia ſeeleris eſt mera Ignorantia: You have read the Letter of the Law, but underſtand it not. Here was your Anchor-hold, and your Rendezvous; you truſt to Cobham; either Cobham muſt accuſe you, or not accuſe you; if he did, then it would not hurt you, becauſe he is but one Witneſs, if he did not, then you are ſafe.

Ralegh.

If ever I read a Word of the Law, or Statute before I was Priſoner in the Tower, God confound me.

Attorney.

Now I come to prove the Circumſtances of the Accuſation to be true. Cobham confeſſed he had a Paſport to travel, hereby intending to preſent Overtures to the Arch-duke, and from thence to go to Spain, and there to have Conference with the King for Money: You ſay, he promiſed to come home by Jerſey, to make merry with you and your Wife.

Ralegh.

I ſaid, in his Return from France, not Spain.

Attorney.

Further, in his Examination, he ſaith, Nothing could be ſet down for the Diſtribution of the Money to the Diſcontented, without Conference with Ralegh. You ſaid, it ſhould have been for Procurement of Peace, but it was for raiſing Rebellion. Further, Cobham ſaith, He would never have entred into theſe Courſes, but by your Inſtigation, and that you would never let him alone. Your Scholar was not apt enough to tell us all the Plots; that is enough for you to do, that are his Maſter: You intended to truſt Sir Arthur Savage, whom I [552] take to be an honeſt and true Gentleman, but not Sir Arthur Gorge.

Ralegh.

All this is but one Accuſation of Cobham's, I hear no other Thing; to which Accuſation he never ſubſcribed, nor avouched it. I beſeech you, my Lords, let Cobham be ſent for, charge him on his Soul, on his Allegiance to the King: if he affirm it, I am guilty.

Lord Cecil.

It is the Accuſation of my Lord Cobham, it is the Evidence againſt you; muſt it not be of Force without his Subſcription? I deſire to be reſolved by the Judges, Whether by the Law it is not a forcible Argument of Evidence.

The Judges.

My Lord, it is.

Ralegh.

The King, at his Coronation, is ſworn In omnibus Judiciis ſuis Aequitatem, non Rigorem Legis obſervare: By the Rigour and Cruelty of the Law, it may be a forcible Evidence.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

That is not the Rigour of the Law, but the Juſtice of the Law; elſe when a Man hath made a plain Accuſation, by Practice, he might be brought to retract it again.

Ralegh.

Oh my Lord! you may uſe Equity.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

That is from the King; you are to have Juſtice from us.

Anderſon.

The Law is, if the Matter be proved to the Jury, they muſt find you guilty; for Cobham's Accuſation is not only againſt you, there are other Things ſufficient.

Lord Cecil.

Now that Sir Walter Ralegh is ſatisfied, that Cobham's Subſcription is not neceſſary; I pray you Mr. Attorney go on.

Ralegh.

Good Mr. Attorney be patient, and give me Leave.

Lord Cecil.

An unneceſſary Patience is a Hindrance; let him go on with his Proofs, and then refel them.

Ralegh.

I would anſwer particularly.

Lord Cecil.
[553]

If you would have a Table, and Pen and Ink, you ſhall.

Then Paper and Ink was given him.

Here the Clerk of the Crown read the Letter which the Lord Cobham did write in July, which was to the Effect of his former Examination, further ſaying, I have diſcloſed all; to accuſe any falſely, were to burthen my own Conſcience.

Attorney.

Read Copley's Confeſſion the 8th of June, he ſaith, He was offered 1000 Crowns to be in this Action.

Here Watſon's Additions were read.

The great Maſs of Money from the Count was impoſſible, &c.

Brook's Confeſſion read.

There have Letters paſſed, ſaith he, between Cobham and Aremberg, for a great Sum of Money, to aſſiſt a ſecond Action, for the ſurprizing of his Majeſty.

Attorney.

It is not poſſible it was of Paſſion; for it was in Talk before three Men being ſeverally examined, who agreed in the Sum to be beſtowed on diſaffected Perſons. That Grey ſhould have 12000 Crowns, and Ralegh ſhould have 8000, or 10000 Crowns.

Cobham's Examination, July 18.

If the Money might be procured, ſaith he, then a Man may give Penſions. Being aſked, if a Penſion ſhould not be given to his Brother Brook, he denied it not.

Lawrency's Examination.

Within five Days after Aremberg arrived, Cobham reſorted unto him. That Night that Cobham went to Aremberg with Lawrency, Ralegh ſupped with him.

Attorney.

Ralegh muſt have his Part of the Money, therefore now he is a Traytor. The Crown ſhall never ſtand one Year on the Head of the King (my Maſter) if a Traytor may not be [554] condemned by Circumſtances. For if A tells B, and B tells C, and C D, &c. you ſhall never prove Treaſon by two Witneſſes.

Ralegh's Examination was read.

He confeſſeth Cobham offered him 8000 Crowns, which he was to have for the Furtherance of the Peace, between England and Spain; and that he ſhould have it within three Days. To which, he ſaid, he gave this Anſwer, When I ſee the Money, I will tell you more; for I had thought it had been one of his ordinary idle Conceits, and therefore made no Account thereof.

Ralegh.

The Attorney hath made a long Narration of Copley, and the Prieſts, which concerns me nothing; neither know I how Cobham was altered. For he told me, If I would agree to further the Peace, he would get me 8000 Crowns. I aſked him, Who ſhall have the reſt of the Money? He ſaid, I will offer ſuch a Nobleman (who was not named) ſome of the Money. I ſaid, He will not be perſuaded by you, and will extremely hate you for ſuch a Motion. Let me be pinched to Death with hot Irons, if ever I knew there was any Intention to beſtow the Money on diſcontented Perſons. I had made a Diſcourſe againſt the Peace, and would have printed it: if Cobham changed his Mind, if the Prieſts, if Brook had any ſuch Intent, what is that to me? They muſt anſwer for it. He offered me the Money before Aremberg came, that is Difference of Time.

Serj. Philips.

Ralegh confeſſeth the Matter, but avoideth it, by diſtinguiſhing of Times. You ſaid, it was offered you before the Coming of Aremberg; which is falſe. For you being examined whether you ſhould have ſuch Money of Cobham, or not: You ſaid, Yea; and that you ſhould have it within two or three Days. Nemo moriturus praeſumitur mentiri.

Lord Henry Howard.
[555]

Alledge me any Ground or Cauſe, wherefore you gave Ear to my Lord Cobham for receiving Penſions, in Matters you had not to deal with?

Ralegh.

Could I ſtop my Lord Cobham's Mouth?

Lord Cecil.

Sir Walter Ralegh preſſeth, that my Lord Cobham ſhould be brought Face to Face. If he aſks Things of Favour and Grace, they muſt come only from him that can give them. If we ſit here as Commiſſioners, how ſhall we be ſatisfied, whether he ought to be brought, unleſs we hear the Judges ſpeak?

Lord Chief Juſtice.

This Thing cannot be granted; for then a Number of Treaſons ſhould flouriſh: The Accuſer may be drawn by Practice, whilſt he is in Perſon.

Judge Gaudy.

The Statute you ſpeak of, concerning two Witneſſes, in Caſe of Treaſon, is found to be inconvenient; therefore by another Law it was taken away.

Ralegh.

The common Trial of England is by Jury and Witneſſes.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

No, by Examination: If three conſpire a Treaſon, and they all confeſs it; here is never a Witneſs, yet they are condemned.

Judge Warburton.

I marvel, Sir Walter, that you being of ſuch Experience and Wit, ſhould ſtand on this Point; for ſo, many Horſe-ſtealers may eſcape, if they may not be condemned without Witneſſes. If one ſhould ruſh into the King's Privy-Chamber, whilſt he is alone, and kill the King (which God forbid) and this Man be met coming with his Sword drawn all bloody; ſhall not he be condemned to Death? My Lord Cobham hath, perhaps, been laboured withal; and to ſave you, his old Friend, it may be that he will deny all that which he hath ſaid.

Ralegh.

I know not how you conceive the Law.

Lord Chief Juſtice.
[556]

Nay, we do not conceive the Law, but we know the Law.

Ralegh.

The Wiſdom of the Law of God, is abſolute and perfect, Haec fac, & vives, &c. But now by the Wiſdom of the State, the Wiſdom of the Law is uncertain. Indeed where the Accuſer is not to be had conveniently, I agree with you; but here my Accuſer may, he is alive, and in the Houſe, Suſanna had been condemned, if Daniel had not cried out: Will you condemn an innocent Iſraelite, without Examination or Knowledge of the Truth? Remember it is abſolutely the Commandment of God; if a falſe Witneſs riſe up, you ſhall cauſe him to be brought before the Judges; if he be found falſe, he ſhall have the Puniſhment which the Accuſed ſhould have had. It is very ſure, for my Lord to accuſe me is my certain Danger, and may be a means to excuſe himſelf.

Lord Chief Juctice.

There muſt not ſuch a Gap be opened for the Deſtruction of the King, as would be, if we ſhould grant this. You plead hard for yourſelf, but the Laws plead as hard for the King. I did never hear that Courſe to be taken in a Caſe of Treaſon, as to write to one another, or ſpeak to one another, during the Time of their Impriſonment. There hath been Intelligence between you, and what underhand Practices there may be, I know not. If the Circumſtances agree not with the Evidence, we will not condemn you.

Ralegh.

The King deſires nothing but the Knowledge of the Truth, and would have no Advantage taken by Severity of the Law. If ever we had a gracious King, now we have! I hope, as he is, ſuch are his Miniſters. If there be but a Trial of five Marks at the Common Law, a Witneſs muſt be depoſed. Good my Lords, let my Accuſer come Face to Face, and be depoſed.

Lord Chief Juſtice.
[557]

You have no Law for it: God forbid any Man ſhould accuſe himſelf, upon his Oath.

Attorney.

The Law preſumes, a Man will not accuſe himſelf to accuſe another. You are an odious Man: For Cobham thinks his Cauſe the worſe, that you are in it. Now you ſhall hear of ſome Stirs to be raiſed in Scotland.

Part of Copley's Examination.

Alſo Watſon told me, that a ſpecial Perſon told him, that Aremberg offered to him a thouſand Crowns to be in that Action; and that Brook ſaid, the Stirs in Scotland came out of Ralegh's Head.

Ralegh.

Brook hath been taught his Leſſon.

Lord H. Howard.

This Examination was taken before me; Did I teach him his Leſſon.

Ralegh.

I proteſt before God, I meant it not by any Privy-Counſellor; but, becauſe Money is ſcant, he will juggle on both Sides.

Ralegh's Examination.

The Way to invade England, were to begin with Stirs in Scotland.

Ralegh.

I think ſo ſtill: I have ſpoken it to divers of the Lords of the Council, by Way of Diſcourſe and Opinion.

Attorney.

Now let us come to thoſe Words of Deſtroying the King and his Cubs.

Ralegh.

O barbarous! if they, like unnatural Villains, ſhould uſe thoſe Words, ſhall I be charged with them? I will not hear it; I was never falfe to the Crown of England. I have ſpent 40000 Crowns of mine own, againſt the Spaniſh Faction, for the Good of my Country. Do you bring the Words of theſe helliſh Spiders, Clark, Watſon, and others, againſt me?

Attorney.

Thou haſt a Spaniſh Heart, and thyſelf art a Spider of Hell; for thou confeſſeſt the [558] King to be a moſt ſweet and gracious Prince, and yet haſt conſpired againſt him.

Watſon's Examination read.

He ſaid, that George Brook told him twice, that his Brother, the Lord Cobham, ſaid to him, That you are but on the Bye, but Ralegh and I are on the Main.

Brook's Examination read.

Being aſk'd what was meant by this Jargon the Bye and the Main, he ſaid, That the Lord Cobham told him, that Grey and others, were in the Bye, he and Ralegh were on the Main. Being aſk'd what Expoſition his Brother made of theſe Words, he ſaid, he is loth to repeat. And after ſaith, by the Main, was meant, the taking away of the King and his Iſſue. And thinks on his Conſcience, it was infuſed into his Brother's Head by Ralegh.

Cobham's Examination read.

Being aſk'd, if ever he had ſaid, It will never be well in England, till the King and his Cubs were taken away. He ſaid, He hod anſwered before, and that he would anſwer no more to that Point.

Ralegh.

I am not named in all this: There is a Law of two Sorts of Accuſers, one of his own Knowledge, another by Hear-ſay.

Earl of Suffolk.

See the Caſe of Arnold.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

It is the Caſe of Sir William Thomas, and Sir Nicholas Arnold.

Ralegh.

If this may be, you will have any Man's Life in a Week.

Attorney.

Ralegh ſaith, That Cobham was in a Paſſion when he ſaid ſo. Would he tell his Brother any Thing of Malice againſt Ralegh, whom he loved as his Life?

Ralegh.

Brook never loved me; until his Brother had accuſed me, he ſaid nothing.

Lord Cecil.

We have heard nothing that might lead us to think, that Brook accuſed you, he was [559] only in the Surpriſing Treaſon; for by accuſing you, he ſhould accuſe his Brother.

Ralegh.

He doth not care much for that.

Lord Cecil.

I muſt judge the beſt. The Accuſation of his Brother was not voluntary; he pared every Thing as much as he could, to ſave his Brother.

Cobham's Examination read.

He ſaith, he had a Book written againſt the Title of the King, which he had of Ralegh, and that he gave it to his Brother: Ralegh ſaid, it was fooliſhly written.

Attorney.

After the King came within twelve Miles of London, Cobham never came to ſee him, and intended to travel without ſeeing the Queen, ahd the Prince. Now in this Diſcontentment, you gave him the Book, and he gave it to his Brother.

Ralegh.

I never gave it him, he took it off my Table. For I well remember, a little before that Time, I received a Challenge from Sir Amias Preſton, and for that I did intend to anſwer it, I reſolved to leave my Eſtate ſettled, therefore laid out all my looſe Papers, amongſt which was this Book.

Lord Howard.

Where had you this Book?

Ralegh.

In the old Lord-Treaſurer's Study, after his Death.

Lord Cecil.

Did you ever ſhew or make known the Book to me?

Ralegh.

No, my Lord.

Lord Cecil.

Was it one of the Books which was left to me or my Brother?

Ralegh.

I took it out of the Study in my Lord Treaſurer's Houſe in the Strand.

Lord Cecil.

After my Father's Deceaſe, Sir Walter Ralegh deſired to ſearch for ſome Coſmographical De [...]criptions of the Indies, which he thought were in his Study, and were not to be had in Print; which I granted, and would have truſted Sir Walter [560] Ralegh as ſoon as any Man; though ſince, for ſome Infirmities, the Bands of my Affection to him have been broken; and yet, reſerving my Duty to the King my Maſter, which I can by no Means diſpenſe with, by God, I love him, and have a great Conflict within myſelf: But I muſt needs ſay, Sir Walter uſed me a little unkindly, to take the Book away without my Knowledge; nevertheleſs I need make no Apology in Behalf of my Father, conſidering how uſeful and neceſſary it is for Privy-Counſellors, and thoſe in his Place, to intercept and keep ſuch kind of Writings; for whoſoever ſhould then ſearch his Study, may in all Likelihood find all the notorious Libels that were writ againſt the late Queen; and whoſoever ſhould rumage my Study, or at leaſt my Cabinet, may find ſeveral againſt the King, our Sovereign Lord, ſince his Acceſſion to the Throne.

Ralegh.

This Book was in Manuſcript, and the late Lord Treaſurer had wrote in the Beginning of it with his own Hands theſe Words, This is the Book of Robert Snagg. And I do own, as my Lord Cecil has ſaid, that I believe they may alſo find in my Houſe, almoſt all the Libels, that have been writ againſt the late Queen.

Attorney.

You were no Privy-Counſellor, and I hope never ſhall be.

Lord Cecil.

He was not a ſworn Counſellor of State, but he has been called to Conſultations.

Ralegh.

I think it a very ſevere Interpretation of the Law, to bring me within Compaſs of Treaſon for this Book, writ ſo long ago, of which nobody had read any more than the Heads of the Chapters, and which was burnt by Brook without my Privity; admitting I had delivered the ſame to my Lord Cobham, without allowing or approving, but diſcommending it, according to Cobham's firſt Accuſation. And put the Caſe I ſhould come [561] to my Lord Cecil, as I have often done, and find a Stranger with him, with a Packet of Libels, and my Lord ſhould let me have one or two of them to peruſe, This I hope is no Treaſon.

Attorney.

I obſerve there was Intelligence between you and Cobham in the Tower; for after he ſaid, It was againſt the King's Title, he denied it again.

Sir William Wade.

Firſt my Lord Cobham confeſſeth it, and after he had ſubſcribed it, he revoked it again: To me he always ſaid, That the Drift of it was againſt the King's Title.

Ralegh.

I proteſt before God, and all his Works, I gave him not the Book.

Note.

Sir Robert Wroth ſpeaketh, or whiſpereth ſomething ſecretly.

Attorney.

My Lords, I muſt complain of Sir Robert Wroth; he ſays, this Evidence is not material.

Sir Robert Wroth.

I never ſpake the Words.

Attorney.

Let Mr. Serjeant Philips teſtify, whether he heard them.

Lord Cecil.

I will give my Word for Sir Robert Wroth.

Sir Robert Wroth.

I will ſpeak as truly as you, Mr. Attorney, for, by God, I never ſpake it.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

Wherefore ſhould this Book be burnt?

Ralegh.

I burned it not.

Serj. Philips.

You preſented your Friend with it, when he was diſcontented. If it had been before the Queen's Death, it had been a leſs Matter; but you gave it him preſently when he came from the King, which was the Time of his Diſcontentment.

Ralegh.

Here is a Book ſuppoſed to be Treaſonable; I never read it, commended it, or deliver'd it, nor urged it.

Attorney.

This is cunning.

Ralegh.
[562]

Every Thing that doth make for me is cunning, and every Thing that maketh againſt me is probable.

Attorney.

Lord Cobham ſaith, that Kemiſh came to him with a Letter torn, and did with him not to be diſmay'd, for one Witneſs could not hurt him.

Ralegh.

This poor Man hath been cloſe Priſoner the [...]e eighteen Weeks; he was offered the Rack to make him confeſs. I never ſent any ſuch Meſſage by him; I only writ to him, to tell him what I had done with Mr. Attorney; having of his, at that Time, a great Pearl, and a Diamond.

Lord H. Howard.

No Circumſtance moveth me more than this. Kemiſh was never on the Rack; the King gave Charge, that no Rigour ſhould be uſed.

Commiſſioners.

We proteſt before God, there was no ſuch Matter intended, to our Knowledges.

Ralegh.

Was not the Keeper of the Rack ſent for, and he threatned with it?

Sir William Wade.

When Mr. Sollicitor and my ſelf examined Kemiſh, we told him he deſerved the Rack, but did not threaten him wiih it.

Commiſſioners.

It was more than we knew.

Cobham's Examination read.

He ſaid, Kemiſh brought him a Letter from Ralegh, and that Part which was concerning the Lords of the Council, was rent out; that he was examined, and cleared him of all; and that the Lord H. Howard ſaid, becauſe he was diſcontent, he was fit to be in the Action. And further, that Kemiſh ſaid to him from Ralegh, that he ſhould be of good Comfort, for one Witneſs could not condemn a Man for Treaſon.

Lord Cecil.

Cobham was aſked whether and when he heard from you; he ſaid, every Day.

Ralegh.

Kemiſh added more, I never bad him ſpeak theſe Words.

[563]
Nota. Mr. Attorney here ofſered to interrupt him.
Lord Cecil.

It is his laſt Diſcourſe. Give him leave Mr. Attorney.

Ralegh.

I am accuſed concerning Arabella, concerning Money out of Spain. My Lord Chief Juſtice ſaith, a Man may be condemned with one Witneſs, yea without any Witnefs. Cobham is guilty of many Things, Conſcientia mille Teſtes. He hath accuſed himſelf, what can he hope for but Mercy? My Lords, vouchſafe me this Grace. Let him be brought, being alive, and in the Houſe; let him avouch any of theſe Things, I will confeſs the whole Indictment, and renounce the King's Mercy.

Lord Cecil.

Here hath been a Touch of the Lady Arabella Stuart, a near Kinſwoman of the King's. Let us not ſcandal the Innocent by Confuſion of Speech: She is as innocent of all theſe Things as I, or any Man here; only ſhe received a Letter from Cobham, to prepare her; which ſhe laugh'd at, and immediately ſent it to the King. So far was ſhe from Diſcontentment, that ſhe laugh'd him to ſcorn. But you ſee how far the Count of Aremberg did conſent.

The Lord Admiral (Nottingham)
being by in a Standing, with the Lady Arabella, ſpake to the Court.

The Lady doth here proteſt upon her Salvation, that ſhe never dealt in any of theſe Things, and ſo ſhe willed me to tell the Court.

Lord Cecil.

The Lord Cobham wrote to my Lady Arabella, to know if he might come to ſpeak with her, and gave her to underſtand, that there were ſome about the King, that laboured to diſgrace her; ſhe doubted it was but a Trick. But Brook ſaith, his Brother moved him to procure Arabella to write Letters to the Kings of Spain: But he ſaith, he never did.

Ralegh.
[564]

The Lord Cobham hath accuſed me, you ſee in what Manner he hath forſworn it. Were it not for his Accuſation, all this were nothing. Let him be aſked, if I knew of the Letter which Lawrency brought to him from Aremberg. Let me ſpeak for my Life, it can be no hurt for him to be brought; he dares not accuſe me. If you grant me not this Favour, I am ſtrangely uſed. Campian was not denied to have his Accuſers Face to Face.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

Since he muſt needs have Juſtice, the acquitting of his old Friend may move him to ſpeak otherwiſe than the Truth.

Ralegh.

If I had been the Infuſer of all theſe Treaſons into him. You Gentlemen of the Jury, mark this: He ſaid, I have been the Cauſe of all his Miſeries, and the Deſtruction of his Houſe; and that all Evil hath happened unto him, by my wicked Counſel; if this be true, whom hath he Cauſe to accuſe, and be revenged on, but on me? And I know him to be as revengeful, as any Man on Earth.

Attorney.

He is a Party, and may not come, the Law is againſt it.

Ralegh.

It is a Toy to tell me of Law. I defy ſuch Law, I ſtand on the Fact.

Lord Cecil.

I am afraid my often ſpeaking (who am inferior to the Lords here preſent) will make the World think, I delight to hear myſelf talk. My Affection to you, Sir Walter Ralegh, was not extinguiſhed, but ſlaked, in Regard of your Deſerts. You know the Law of the Realm (to the which your Mind doth not conteſt) that my Lord Cobham cannot be brought.

Ralegh.

He may be, my Lord.

Lord Cecil.

But dare you challenge it?

Ralegh.

No.

Lord Cecil.
[565]

You ſay, that my Lord Cobham, your main Accuſer, muſt come to accuſe you. You ſay he hath retracted: I ſay many Particulars are not retracted. What the Validity of all this is, is merely left to the Jury. Let me aſk you this; If my Lord Cobham will ſay, you were the only Inſtigator of him to proceed in the Treaſons, dare you put yourſelf on this?

Ralegh.

If he will ſpeak it before God and the King, that ever I knew of Arabella's Matter, or the Money out of Spain, or of the ſurprizing Treaſon; I put myſelf on it, God's Will and the King's be done with me.

Lord Howard.

How if he ſpeak Things equivalent to what you have ſaid?

Ralegh.

Yes, in a main Point.

Lord Cecil.

If he ſay, you have been the Inſtigator of him to deal with the Spaniſh King, had not the Council Cauſe to draw you hither?

Ralegh.

I put myſelf on it.

Lord Cecil.

Then, Sir Walter Ralegh, call upon God, and prepare yourſelf; for I do verily believe my Lords will prove this. Excepting your Faults (I call them no worſe) by God, I am your Friend. The Heat and Paſſion in you, and the Attorney's Zeal in the King's Service, makes me ſpeak this.

Ralegh.

Whoſoever is the Workman, it is Reaſon he ſhould give Account of his Work to the Work-maſter: But let it be proved that he acquainted me with any of his Conferences with Aremberg: He would ſurely have given me ſome Account.

Lord Cecil.

That follows not. If I ſet you on Work, and you give me no Account, am I therefore innocent.

Attorney.

For the Lady Arabella I ſaid, ſhe was never acquainted with the Matter. Now that Ralegh had Conference in all theſe Treaſons, it is manifeſt; [566] the Jury hath heard the Matter. There is one Dyer, a Pilot, that being in Lisbon, met with a Portugal Gentleman, who aſked him if the King of England was crowned yet? To whom he anfwered, I think not yet, but he ſhall be ſhortly. Nay, ſaith the Portugal Gentlemen, that ſhall he never be, for his Throat will be cut by Don Ralegh and Don Cobham before he be crown'd.

Dyer was called and ſworn, and delivered this Evidence.

Dyer.

I came to a Merchant's Houſe in Lisbon, to ſee a Boy that I had there; there came in a Gentleman into the Houſe, and enquiring what Countryman I was, I ſaid an Engliſhman: Whereupon he aſked me, if the King was crowned? And I anſwered, that I hoped he ſhould be ſo ſhortly. Nay, faith he, he ſhall never be crowned, for Don Ralegh and Don Cobham will cut his Throat e'er that Day come.

Ralegh.

What infer you upon this?

Attorney.

That your Treaſon hath Wings.

Ralegh.

If Cobham did practiſe with Aremberg, how could it not but be known in Spain? Why did they name the Duke of Buckingham with Jack Straw's Treaſon, and the Duke of York with Jack Cade, but that it was to countenance his Treaſon?

Conſider, you Gentlemen of the Jury, there is no Cauſe ſo doubtful, which the King's Council cannot make good againſt the Law. Conſider my Diſability, and their Ability: They prove nothing againſt me, only they bring the Accuſation of my Lord Cobham, which he hath lamented and repented as heartily, as if it had been for a horrible Murther. For he knew, that all this Sorrow which ſhould come to me, is by his Means. Preſumptions muſt proceed from precedent or ſubſequent Facts. I have ſpent 40000 Crowns againſt the Spaniard. I had not purchaſed forty Pounds a Year. If I had [567] died in Guiana I had not left 300 Marks a Year to my Wife and Son. I that have always condemn'd the Spaniſh Faction, methinks it is a ſtrange Thing that now I ſhould affect it. Remember what St. Auſting ſays, Sic judicate tanquam, ab alio mox judicandi, unus judex, unum tribunal. If you would be contented, on Preſumptions, to be delivered up to be ſlaughter'd, to have your Wives and Children turned into the Streets to beg their Bread; if you would be contented to be ſo judged, judge ſo of me.

Serj. Philips.

I hope to make this ſo clear, as that the Wit of Man ſhall have no Colour to anſwer it. The Matter is Treaſon in the higheſt Degree, the End to deprive the King of his Crown. The particular Treaſons are theſe: Firſt, To raiſe up Rebellion; and, to effect that, to procure Money, to raiſe up Tumults in Scotland, by divulging a treaſonable Book againſt the King's Right to the Crown; the Purpoſe, to take the Life of his Majeſty and his Iſſue. My Lord Cobham confeſſeth Sir Walter Ralegh to be guilty of all theſe Treaſons. The Queſtion is, Whether he be guilty as joining with him, or inſtigating of him? The Courſe to prove this, was by my Lord Cobham's Accuſation. If that be true, he is guilty; if not, he is clear. So whether Cobham ſay true, or Ralegh? That is the Queſtion. Ralegh hath no Anſwer, but the Shadow of as much Wit, as the Wit of Man can deviſe. He uſeth his bare Denial; the Denial of a Defendant muſt not move the Jury. In the Star-Chamber, or in the Chancery, for Matter of Title, if the Defendant be called in Queſtion, his Denial on his Oath is no Evidence to the Court to clear him, he doth it in propria Cauſa. Therefore much leſs in Matters of Treaſon. Cobham's Teſtiſication againſt him before then, and ſince, hath been largely diſcourſed.

Ralegh.
[568]

If Truth be conſtant, and Conſtancy be in Truth, Why hath he forſworn that, that he hath ſaid? You have not proved any one Thing by direct Prooſs, but all by Circumſtances?

Attorney.

Have you done? The King muſt have the laſt.

Ralegh.

Nay, Mr. Attorney, he which ſpeaketh for his Life, muſt ſpeak laſt. Falſe Repetitions and Miſtakings muſt not mar my Cauſe. You ſhould ſpeak ſecundum allegata & probata. I appeal to God and the King in this Point, Whether Cobham's Accuſation be ſufficient to condemn me.

Atterney.

The King's Safety, and your Clearing, cannot agree, I proteſt, before God, I never knew a clearer Treaſon.

Ralegh.

I never had Intelligence with Cobham ſince I came to the Tower.

Attorney.

Go too, I will lay thee upon thy Back, for the confidenteſt Traytor that ever came at a Bar. Why ſhould you take 8000 Crowns for a Peace?

Lord Cecil.

Be not ſo impatient, good Mr. Attorney, give him Leave to ſpeak.

Attorney.

If I may not be patiently hcard, you will encourage Traytors, and diſcourage us. I am the King's ſworn Servant, and muſt ſpeak; if he be guilty, he is a Traytor; if not, deliver him.

Note, Here Mr. Attorney ſat down and would ſpeak no more until the Commiſſioners urged and intreated him: After much ado he went on, and madc a long Repetitiom of all the Evidence for the Direction of the Jury; and at the repeating of ſome Things, Sir Walter Ralegh interrupted him, and ſaid, He did him wrong.
Attorney.

Thou art the moſt vile and execrable Traytor that ever lived.

Ralegh.

You ſpeak indiſcreetly, barbarouſly and uncivilly.

Attorney.
[569]

I want Words ſufficient to expreſs thy viperous Treaſons.

Ralegh.

I think you want Words indeed, for you have ſpoken one Thing half a dozen Times.

Attorney.

Thou art an odious Fellow, thy Name is hateful to all the Realm of England for thy Pride.

Ralegh.

It will go near to prove a meaſuring Caſt between you and me, Mr. Attorney.

Attorney.

Well, I will now make it appear to the World, that there never lived a viler Viper upon the Face of the Earth than thou; and therewithal drew a Letter out of his Pocket, ſaying further, My Lords, you ſhall ſee this is an Agent, that hath writ a Treatiſe againſt the Spaniard, and hath ever ſo deteſted him; this is he that hath ſpent ſo much Money againſt him in Service; and yet you ſhall all ſee, whether his Heart be not wholly Spaniſh. The Lord Cobham, who, of his own Nature was a good and honourable Gentleman, till overtaken by this Wretch, now finding his Conſcience heavily burthened with ſome Courſes, which the Subtilty of this Traytor had drawn him into, my Lords, he could not be at Reſt with himſelf, nor quiet in his Thoughts, until he was eaſed of that heavy Weight; out of which Paſſion of his Mind, and Diſcharge of his Duty to his Prince, and his Conſcience to God, taking it upon his Salvation, that he wrote nothing but the Truth, with his own Hands he wrote this Letter. Now, Sir, you ſhall ſee whether you had Intelligence with Cobham within four Days before he came to the Tower. If he be wholly Spaniſh, that deſired a Penſion of 1500 Pounds a Year from Spain, that Spain by him might have Intelligence, then Ralegh is a Traytor. He hath taken an Apple, and pinned a Letter unto it, and threw it into my Lord Cobham's Window; the Contents whereof were this; It is doubtful whether [570] we ſhall be proceeded with or no, perhaps you ſhall not be tried. This was to get a Retractation. Oh! it was Adam's Apple, whereby the Devil did deceive him. Further he wrote thus, Do not as my Lord of Eſſex did; take heed of a Preacher; for by his Perſuaſion be confeſſed, and made himſelf guilty. I doubt not, but this Day, God ſhall have as great a Conqueſt by this Traytor, and the Son of God ſhall be as much glorified, as when it was ſaid, Viciſti Galileae; you know my Meaning. What tho' Cobham retracted, yet he could not re&;st nor ſleep, until he had confirmed it again. If this be not enough to prove him a Traytor, the King my Maſter ſhall not live three Years to an End.

Nota. Here Mr. Attorney produced the Lord Cobham's Letter (writ to the Commiſſioners the Night before Ralegh's Trial, viz. Nov. 16.) and as he read it, inſerted ſome Speeches.

I have thought it fit, to ſet down this to my Lords, wherein I profeſs on my Soul, to write nothing but the Truth. I am come new near to the Period of my Time, therefore I confeſs the Truth before God, and his Angels. Ralegh, four Days before I came to the Tower, cauſed an Apple (Eve's Apple) to be thrown in at my Chamber window; the Effect of it was to intreat me to right the Wrong that I had done him, in ſaying, That I ſhould have come home by Jerſey; which under my Hand to him. I have retracted. His firſt Letter I anſwered not, which was thrown in the ſame Manner, wherein he prayed me to write him a Letter, which I did. He ſent me Word, that the Judges were at Mr. Attorney's Houſe, and that there was good Hope the Proceedings againſt us ſhould be ſtaid; he ſent me another Time a little Tobacco. At Aremberg's coming, Ralegh dealt with me, to procure him a Penſion of 1500 Pounds a Year, for which he promiſed that no Action ſhould be againſt Spain, but he would give Knowledge before-hand. He [571] told me the States had Audience with the King. (Ah, is not this a Spaniſh Heart, in an Engliſh Body?) He hath been the original Cauſe of my Ruin; for I had no Dealing with Aremberg, but by his Inſtigation. He hath been alſo the Cauſe of my Diſcontentment; he adviſed me, not to be overtaken with Preachers, as Eſſex was, and that the King would better allow of a conſtant Denial, than to accuſe any.

Attorney.

O damnable Atheiſt! he hath learned ſome Text of Scripture, to ſerve his own Purpoſe, but falſly alledged. He counſels him, not to be counſelled by Preachers, as Eſſex was: He died the Child of God, God honoured him at his Death; Thou waſt by when he died, Et Lupus & turpes inſtant morientibus Urſae. He died indeed for his Offence. The King himſelf ſpake theſe Words; He that ſhall ſay Eſſex died not for Trea on, is puniſhable.

Ralegh.

You have heard a ſtrange Tale of a ſtrange Man; now he thinks he hath Matter enough to deſtroy me; but the King, and all of you ſhall witneſs by our Deaths, which of us was the Ruin of the other. I bid a poor Fellow throw in the Letter at his Window, written to this Purpoſe, You, know you have undone me, now write three Lines to juſtify me. In this I will die, that he hath done me Wrong: Why did not he acquaint me with his Treaſons, if I acquainted him with my Diſpoſitions?

Attorney.

But what ſay you now of the Letter, and the Penſion of 1500 l. per Annum?

Ralegh.

I ſay, that Cobham is a baſe diſhonourable poor Soul.

Attorney.

Is he baſe? I return it into thy Throat, on his Behalf: But for thee, he had been a good Subject.

Lord Chief Juſtice.
[572]

I perceive thou art not ſo clear a Man, as you have proteſted all this while; for you ſhould have diſcovered theſe Matters to the King.

Nota. Here Ralegh pulled a Letter out of his Pocket, which the Lord Cobham had written to him (but a few Days before he wrote that above to the Lords) and deſired my Lord Cecil to read it, becauſe be only knew his Hand, the Effect of it was as followeth.

Cobham's Letter of Juſtification to Ralegh.

Seeing myſelf ſo near my End, for the Diſcharge of my own Conſcience, and freeing myſelf from your Blood, which elſe will cry Vengeance againſt me: I proteſt upon my Salvation, I never practiſed with Spain by your Procurement; God ſo comfort me in this my Affliction, as you are a true Subject for any Thing that I know. I will ſay, as Daniel, Purus ſum a ſanguine hujus. So God have Mercy on my Soul, as I know no Treaſon by you.
Ralegh.

Now I wonder how many Souls this Man hath! He damns one in this Letter, and another in that.

Here was much ado; Mr. Attorney alledged, that his laſt Letter was politickly and cunningly urged from the Lord Cobham, and that the firſt was ſimply the Truth; and that leſt it ſhould ſeem doubtful, that the firſt Letter was drawn from the Lord Cobham by Promiſe of Mercy, or Hope of Favour, the Lord Chief Juſtice willed, that the Jury might herein be ſatisfied. Whereupon the Earl of Devonſhire delivered, that the ſame was merely voluntary, and not extracted from the Lord Cobham, upon any Hopes or Promiſe of Pardon.
Nota. This was the laſt Evidence; whereupon a Marſhal was ſworn, to keep the Jury private. The Jury departed, and ſtaid not a Quarter of [573] an Hour, but returned, and gave their Verdict Guilty.

Serj, Hele demanded Judgment againſt the Priſoner.

Clerk of the Crown.

Sir Walter Ralegh, Thou haſt been indicted, arraigned, and pleaded not guilty, for all theſe ſeveral Treaſons; and for Trial thereof, haſt put thyſelf upon thy Country; which Country are theſe, who have found thee Guilty. What canſt thou ſay for thyſelf, why Judgment and Execution of Death, ſhould not paſs againſt thee?

Ralegh.

My Lords, The Jury have found me Guilty. They muſt do as they are directed. I can ſay nothing, why Judgment ſhould not proceed. You ſee whereof Cobham hath accuſed me. You remember his Proteſtations, that I was never Guilty. I deſire the King ſhould know of the Wrongs done unto me, ſince I came hither.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

You have had no Wrong, Sir Walter.

Ralegh.

Yes, of Mr. Attorney. I deſire, my Lords, to remember three Things to the King. 1. I was accuſed to be a Practiſer for Spain: I never knew, that my Lord Cobham meant to go thither; I will aſk no Mercy at the King's Hands, if he will affirm it. 2. I never knew of the Practice with Arabella. 3. I never knew of my Lord Cobham's Practice with Aremberg, nor of the ſurpriſing Treaſon.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

In my Conſcience I am perſuaded, that Cobham hath accuſed you truly. You cannot deny, but that you were dealt with, to have a Penſion to be a Spy for Spain; therefore you are not ſo true to the King, as you have proteſted yourſelf to be.

Ralegh.

I ſubmit myſelf to the King's Mercy; I know his Mercy is greater than my Offence. I [574] recommend my Wife, and Son, of tender Years, unbrought up, to his Compaſſion.

Lord Chief Juſtice.

I had thought I ſhould never have ſeen this Day, to have ſtood in this Place, to give Sentence of Death againſt you; becauſe I thought it impoſſible, that one of ſo great Parts ſhould have fallen ſo grievouſly. God hath beſtowed on you many Benefits. You had been a Man fit, and able, to have ſerved the King in good Place. You had brought yourſelf into a good State of Living: If you had entered into a good Conſideration of your Eſtate, and not ſuffered your own Wit to have entrapped yourſelf, you might have lived in good Comfort. It is beſt for Man not to ſeek to climb too high, leſt he fall; nor yet to creep too low, leſt he be trodden on. It was the Poſie of the wiſeſt and greateſt Counſellor of his Time, in England, In medio ſpatio mediocria firma locantur. You might have lived well with 3000 l. a Year, for ſo I have heard your Revenues to be. I know nothing might move you to be diſcontented; but, if you had been down, you know Fortune's Wheel, when it is turned about, riſeth again. I never heard, that the King took away any Thing from you, but the Captainſhip of the Guard, which he did with good Reaſons, to have one of his own Knowledge, whom he might truſt in that Place. You have been taken for a wiſe Man, and ſo have ſhewed Wit enough this Day. Again, for Monopolies for Wine, &c. If the King ſaid, It is a Matter that offends my People, ſhould I burthen them for your particular good? I think, you could not well take it hardly, that his Subjects were eaſed, tho' by your private Hindrance. Two Vices have lodged chiefly in you; one is an eager Ambition; the other corrupt Covetouſneſs. Ambition, in deſiring to be advanced to equal Grace and Favour, as you have been before time; that Grace you had then, you got [575] not in a Day or Year. For your Covetouſneſs, I am ſorry to hear that a Gentleman of your Wealth ſhould become a baſe Spy for the Enemy, which is the vileſt of all other; wherein, on my Conſcience, Cobham hath ſaid true: By it you would have increaſed your Living 1500 l. a Year. This Covetouſneſs is like a Canker, that eats the Iron-place where it lives. Your Caſe being thus, let it not grieve you, if I ſpeak a little out of Zeal, and Love, to your Good. You have been taxed by the World, with the Defence of moſt heatheniſh and blaſphemous Opinions, which I liſt not to repeat, becauſe Chriſtian Ears cannot endure to hear them, nor the Authors and Maintainers of them be ſuffered to live in any Chriſtian Common-wealth. You know what Men ſaid of Harpool. You ſhall do well before you go out of the World, to give Satisfaction therein, and not to die with theſe Imputations on you. Let not any Devil perſuade you to think, there is no Eternity in Heaven; if you think thus, you ſhall find Eternity in Hell-fire. In the firſt Accuſation of my Lord Cobham, I obſerved his Manner of ſpeaking: I proteſt before the Living God, I am perſuaded he ſpoke nothing but the Truth. You wrote, that he ſhould not in any Caſe confeſs any Thing to a Preacher, telling him an Example of my Lord of Eſſex, that noble Earl that is gone; who, if he had not been carried away with others, had lived in Honour to this Day among us. He confeſſed his Offences, and obtained Mercy of the Lord; for I am verily perſuaded in my Heart, he died a worthy Servant of God. Your Conceit of not confeſſing any Thing, is very inhuman and wicked. In this World is the Time of confeſſing, that we may be abſolved at the Day of Judgment. You have ſhewed a fearful Sign of denying God, in adviſing a Man not to confeſs. It now comes in my Mind, why you may not have [576] your Accuſer Face to Face; for ſuch a one is eaſily brought to retract, when he ſeeth there is no Hope of his own Life. It is dangerous that any Traytors ſhould have any Accefs one to another, or Conference; when they ſee themſelves muſt die, they will think it beſt to ſee their Fellow live, that he may commit the like Treaſon again, and ſo in ſome Sort ſeek Revenge.

Now it reſteth to pronounce the Judgment, which I wiſh you had not been this Day to have received of me: For, if the Fear of God in you had been anſwerable to your other great Parts, you might have lived to have been a ſingular good Subject. I never ſaw the like Trial, and I hope, I ſhall never ſee the like again.

Appendix A.1 The JUDGMENT

But ſince you have been found guilty of theſe horrible Treaſons, the Judgment of the Court is, that you ſhall be had from hence to the Place whence you came, there to remain until the Day of Execution; and from thence you ſhall be drawn upon a Hurdle through the open Streets to the Place of Execution, there to be hanged and cut down alive, and your Body ſhall be opened, your Heart and Bowels plucked out, and your Privy-Members cut off and thrown into the Fire, before your Eyes; then your Head to be ſtrucken off from your Body, which ſhall be divided into four Quarters, to be diſpoſed of at the King's Pleaſure: And God have Mercy upon your Soul.

FINIS.
Notes
*
In a Viſitation-book, made anno 1623, of the Counties of Wilts, Dorſet and Somerſet, among the MS. Collections of Brown Willis Eſq; of Whaddon Hall in Bucks, there is a Pedigree of Sir Walter Ralegh's Family from the Reign of King John; with a Copy whereof that worthy Antiquary having obliged me, I find this Wymond, in the Time of King Henry III. is therein called Lord of Coliton and Nettlecomb: So it may ſeem, the Eſtate in Somerſetſhire was of latter Acceſſion to the Family, and that in Devonſhire the more ancient Seat; or that the Removal was made rather to the former, than the latter County.
Mr. Hooker, who was the firſt Chamberlain of Exeter about 1554, and twice Member of Parliament for that City, as we find in the Notitia Parliamentaria, by Brown Willis, Eſq; vol. 2. 1716. p. 272; as alſo for Athenry in Ireland about 1570, as I find by his own Words; did actually ſet forth in Print his Tracts about the Government of Exeter, and Biſhops of that See; beſides his Augmentations of the Engliſh and Iriſh Chronicles, with other Pieces, before, or by the Year 1587; and, having lived to near eighty Years, died in 1601, according to Anthony Wood, and my ſaid Author Prince, in his Life; though the former of them quotes from Hooker's own Words, that he was living in 1605 (if 'tis not a Miſtake of the Preſs) and the latter has made no Boggle at the Blunder.
*
Hooker's Synopſis Chronographical, or hiſtorical Record of Devonſhire, a MS. as quoted by Prince, fol. 530. A Copy whereof, in this Author's Time, was in the cuſtody of Mr. John Eaſtchurch of Wood in that County; ſtill extant, as I have heard, in thoſe Parts; and Pity it is, that it has not yet ſeen the publick Light; ſince above a hundred Years ago, it was revis'd by ſo able a Judge of its Worth as Sir John Dodderidge, and had his Recommendation to the Preſs.
*
See Digges's compleat Ambaſſador, Fol. 250.
*
The Maſſacre of Paris was begun on St. Bartholomew's Day 1572. And if between Mezeray's Eſtimate of the Numbers that were butchered over France, which is one of the leaſt; and Perefixe's, which is one of the largeſt, we incline to the medium; we ſhall prefer the Computation of Natalis Comes, who wrote earlier, and about the very Time. He reckons them at threeſcore thouſand. And ſo inſatiable was the Fury of theſe Parricides, that they ſpared neither Age, Sex, nor Quality. But yet Sir W. Ralegh, in one of his MS Diſcourſes on the Marriage between England and Savoy, hereafter more particularly ſpoken of, numbers them (not yet ſo high as ſome of their own Hiſtorians) at no leſs than a hundred thouſand. And Margaret, Queen of Navarre, conſeſſes in her Memoirs, liv. 1. That ſeveral of her Brother's Friends fell as well as his Enemies, in the blind Rage of this diffuſive and undiſtinguiſhing Deſolation. Inſomuch that in Contempt of all princely Promiſes and Proteſtations of Amity, their Hiſtorians were ſuffered to boaſt, More Hereticks had been deſtroyed in that one Day, than in all the twelve Years of the War. Well therefore did that Deputy of the reformed Religion, in his Treaty for a Peace with the King and Queen Mother, which they agreed to, inſiſt upon Security for the Preſervation of it: And when the Queen Mother ſaid, Why, is not the Word of a King ſufficient Security? Well did he anſwer; No, by St. Bartholomew, Madam. How much this flagrant Exploit was gloried in over France and Rome, their Proceſſions, Thankſgivings, Medals, and Jubilee, will ſufficiently declare.
This blazing Star, on which 30 different Books were written, which had been read by Tycho Brahe, the noble Dane, before he compoſed his larger Work thereon, firſt appeared on the 9th of November 1572, in the Form of a Lozenge of four Points, and continued immoveable nine Months, ſays De Serres. Sir Thomas Smith, in a Letter dated December 11, that Year to Sir F. Walſingham, deſcribes it a fair Comet without Beard or Tail, on the Back-ſide of Caſſiopeia's Chair, and on the Edge of Lactea Via; that it was between the Size of Jupiter and Venus, and had then appeared three Weeks in England. But Camden, in his Annals of Queen Elizabeth, more particularly obſerves it to have ſhone brighter than the Planet of Jupiter in the Perigree of his Eccentric and Epicycle; that it continued in the ſame Place full ſixteen Months; though after eight Months it viſibly diminiſhed. Mr. Thomas Digges and Dr. John Dee, two famous Mathematicians of thoſe Times, have learnedly proved by the Doctrine of Parallexes, that it was fixed in the celeſtial, not the elementary Region; and that it diſappeared by Aſcenſion. Theodore Beza very ingeniouſly applied it to the Star which appeared at the Slaughter of the Innocents under Herod. And Queen Elizabeth's gallant Comportment at the Sight of it, from her Window at Richmond, which ought not to have eſcaped her Annaliſt aforeſaid, is preſerved by the Earl of Northampton, in his learned Defenſative againſt the Poiſon of ſuppoſed Prophecies. 2d Edit. Fol. 1620. p. 77.
That extraordinary Eruption of Blood carried off King Charles IX, on the 30th of May 1574, in the 24th Year of his Age. His Succeſſor, Henry III. was ſtabbed to Death by a Jacobin Friar, named James Clement, Anno 1589, in that very Chamber where the Council had been held for the fatal Bartholomew's Day; ſo made Way for the Houſe of Bourbon: And the Duke of Guiſe was murdered in the ſaid King's Cabinet at Blois, about a Year before. See the Hiſtorians of France.
*
And yet within four Years before Sir Humphrey Gilbert obtain'd his Patent, there reſorted to the Coaſts of Newfoundland for Fiſh about fifty Sail of Engliſh, above a hundred Sail of Spaniards for Cod, and thirty more from Biſcay for Whale to make Train-oil; above fifty Sail of Portugueſe; and about an hundred and fifty Sail of the French and Bretaigns. My Author obſerves, that the Trade our Nation had then to Iceland, was the Reaſon the Engliſh were not there in ſuch Numbers as other Nations.
Theſe Staves were not ſhort like Truncheons, but rather like Poles, or Watermen's Stretchers, though not ſo long or clumſily made; for being headed at one End with a ſharp Point or Pile of Iron, they might be uſed for Defence, or Offence, either as Quarter ſtaves, or Spears.
*
This Treatiſe is entitled, The Diſcovery of a gaping Gulph, wherein England is likely to be ſwallowed by another French Marriage, &c. Printed with a ſmall Letter, in a thin Octav [...], 1579.
The Names of this Author, and his Printer or Publiſher, were John Stubbs and William Page; and that Sentence was executed on them at Weſtminſter, November 3. 1581. Vide Stow's Chronicles and Camden's Annals in thoſe Years.
*
The Author of Sir Walter Ralegh's Life, in Lives Engliſh and Foreign, 1704. Vol. 1. p. 86, ſays, that Ralegh's Diſguſt at the Deputy's preferring Zouch, grew to a Difference between him and the ſaid Lord Grey, which was referr'd by the Council of War in Ireland to that in England; and there decided in Ralegh's Favour; the ſolliciting of which Buſineſs was the true Cauſe of his leaving Ireland. But he quotes no Authority; and I think by what is before ſaid of the Matter, this true Cauſe will appear a groundleſs Conjecture; at leaſt leſs probable, than what might perhaps be drawn from Spenſer's View of Ireland, Vol. 6. p. 1 [...]09.
*
As Authors have been very defective and erroneous in their Accounts of this brave and publick-ſpirited, but unfortunate Knight, Sir Humphrey Gilbert of Compton; I ſhall here obſerve that John Hooker, who knew him, ſays he was bred at Oxford. Hooker takes Notice of his extraordinary Services in Ireland, for which he was made Colonel of Munſter; and Sir Roger Williams, in his Actions of the Low countries, tells us he was the firſt Engliſh Commander who led a Regiment thither to ſerve the Prince of Orange againſt the Spaniards. But John Prince, who pretends to give us his Life among his Worthies of Devon, mentions nothing of his Land-ſervices. The ſaid J. Prince quotes Sir W. Pole's MSS. to vouch this Gilbert's being knighted by the Queen at Greenwich 1577. But Hooker aforeſaid ſhews him to have been knighted in the Church at Drogheda, by Sir Hon. Sidney Deputy of Ireland, ſeven Years ſooner at leaſt; and agreeable thereto, we find him call'd Sir Humphrey Gilbert in a Letter of Sir Thomas Smith's, dated 1572, among Sir D. Digges's Collection before mentioned, p. 299. Laſtly, another Writer of his Life, in Latin, places his laſt Expedition to Newfoundland 20 Years ſooner than he undertook it, if it is not the Fault rather of the Printer than the Author, Vid. Hollandi Herwologia Anglica. fol. Arnheim 1620, p. 65. As for Sir Humphrey's Writings, we have extant in Hakluyt, Vol. 3. p. 11. his Diſcourſe to prove a Paſſage by the North-weſt to Cathay and the Eaſt-Indies, in ten Chapters; firſt publiſh'd in 4to. 1576. at the End of which he mentions another Diſcourſe, now loſt I fear; wherein he amended the uſual Errors of Sea-cards, which make the Degrees of Longitude in every Latitude of equal Bigneſs; and invented a ſpherical Inſtrument, with a Compaſs of Variation, for the perfect Knowledge of the Longitude; and laid down a preciſe Order to prick the Sea-cards, with certain Rules for the ſhortning any Diſcovery, and knowing at the firſt Entrance of any Fret, whether it lies open to the Ocean more Ways than one, and how far the Sea ſtretches itſelf into the Land. As for the Picture at Compton, ſaid by Prince to be drawn for Sir H. Gilbert; if his Author, Sir W. Pole, is no truer in his Aſſertion of the Queen's having given Sir Humphrey the Gold Chain repreſented about the Neck thereof, than he was in her having knighted him, and there are no other Signatures beſides that Chain, and the Inſcription of Virginia on the Globe, with the Verſes under it relating thereto; I ſee not but the Picture is to be doubted, as rather meant for his Brother Ralegh, who was honoured with a Golden Chain by the Queen, and whoſe Title to that Inſcription on the Globe was beyond any Man's in the World. But the ſtately Poem in Latin Hexameters, upon his laſt Expedition, by Stephanus Parmenius Budeius, a learned Hungarian, who was drowned with him, was undoubtedly, among other Engliſh Adventurers therein nam'd, chiefly intended for his Honour.
*
But that he now ſailed thither himſelf, or then made the Diſcovery, whatever he might do before, of the Country hereafter mentioned, in Perſon, and returned in the Beginning of 1585, as the Author of his Life, in Lives Engliſh and Foreign, tells us, vol. I. p. 90, is all Fancy and Fiction.
*
Sir Edward Walker, Garter, and Secretary of War to King Charles I. obſerves, ‘'That in all Queen Elizabeth's 44 Years Reign ſhe created but ſix Earls, and eight or nine Barons. So that when ſhe died, the Nobility conſiſted but of one Marquis, 19 Earls, two Viſcounts, and about 30 Barons: But doubts whether in the Reign of King James, the Diſpenſing of Honours ſo liberally was not one of the Beginnings of general Diſcontents, eſpecially among Perſons of great Extraction. So that when this King died, having reigned but 22 Years, he left the Nobility in his three Kingdoms above double the Number to what he found them, though his Reign was peaceable, and not full of Action, which renders Men in Capacity highly to merit from their Prince; and ſo, without Envy, receive Advancement.'’ And a little further, ‘'When Alliance to a Favourite; Riches, though gotten in a Shop; Perſons of private Eſtates, and of Families, that many of them, and their Fathers, would have thought themſelves highly honoured to have been but Knights in Queen Elizabeth's Time, were advanced; then the Fruits thereof began to appear, &c.'’
For the ſaid Lord-treaſurer Burghley ſent, in a Letter to Dr. Norgate, his Vice chancellor, on the 26th of July 1585, the Opinion of the two chief Juſtices, Sir Chriſtopher Wraye and Sir Edmond Anderſon, upon this Controverſy between that Univerſity and Mr. Rawlie, as he is therein call'd, for the Nomination of Vintners, and ſetting the Price of Wine there; which Opinion is as follows—‘"Firſt, touching the Nomination of Vintners there, we think it appertaineth to the Univerſity, by Uſage and Charters from her Majeſty, confirmed by Parliament; and that Mr. Rawlie can nominate none there. For the Price; it ſeemeth they may ſet Prices, ſo as it be according to the Statute, and not otherwiſe. And if the Vintners ſet at higher Prices, they are to be puniſhed by Law. Which Penalty Mr. Rawlie may diſpenſe withal; and yet cannot ſue for the Penalty by his Patent againſt the Statute Laws; for therein all Liberties to the Univerſity is excepted."’ After this, we hear no more of the Diſpute.
*
One Argument uſed by a l [...]te Author to prove this was the firſt Attempt made for the Diſcovery of theſe Parts of America, is, that theſe Navigators ‘"knew no other Way to ſail from England to the Coaſt of Virginia, than to go firſt to the Canaries, from thence to Hiſpaniola, and into the Gulph of Mexico; then out by Cuba and the Gulph of Bahama; and ſo coaſt along the Shore from Florida to Virginia, from the Latitude of 30 Minutes to 42; which is in ſhort (ſays he) like going from London by Portſmouth, and from thence to Exeter, away to Briſtol, and ſo up by the Banks of the Severn to come at Weſt-Cheſter."’
*
While this Sarmiento was Ralegh's Priſoner in England, they were one Day ſurveying a Map together, concerning which Sarmiento told him a pleaſant Story of the Painter's Wives Iſland; which Ralegh, afterwards, ingenicuſly applied; where he compares the Liberties of local and hiſtorical Fiction, of ſuch as Geographers make, in filling up the blank Spaces of their Maps with Lands of Pigmeys, and Rocks of Load-ſtone; to thoſe of Hiſtorians, in repairing the broken Accounts of paſt Ages; yet concludes, with an encouraging Difference, againſt the ignorant Deſcribers of remote Places in Favour of liberal Conjecture, to enlighten the Obſcurities of antient Times. See the Hiſtory of the World, Lib. 2. Cap. 23. Sec. 4.
Being at Leeds in Yorkſhire, ſoon after Mr. Ralph Thoreſhy the Antiquary died, Anno 1725. I ſaw his Muſaeum; and in it, among his other Rarities, what himſelf has publickly call'd (in the Catalogue thereof, annex'd to his Antiquities of that Town) Sir Walter Ralegh's Tobacco box. From the beſt of my Memory, I can reſemble its outward Appearance to nothing more nearly than one of our modern Muff-caſes; about the ſame Height and Width, covered with red Leather, and opened at Top (but with a Hinge, I think) like one of thoſe. In the Inſide, there was a Cavity for a Receiver of Glaſs or Metal, which might hold half a Pound or a Pound of Tobacco; and from the Edge of the Receiver at Top, to the Edge of the Box, a circular Stay or Collar, with Holes in it to plant the Tobacco about, with ſix or eight Pipes to ſmoke it in. This travelling Box, with the Manuſcripts, Medals, and other Rarities in its Company, deſcending to a young Clergyman, the Son of the deceaſed, was ſoon after reported to have been tranſlated to London.
*
An Author of Experience has lately informed us; ‘'That the Benefit of this Vegetable to Great Britain is prodigious, if we conſider the ſhort Time ſince it was firſt introduced into England by Sir Walter Ralegh. 'Tis now become, ſays he, the Staple of two of his Majeſty's Colonies, inhabited by half a Million of People; many of whom could hardly ſupport themſelves at Home; yet there they live in great Splendor and Eaſe; having ſumptuous Buildings, rich Equipages, Slaves and other Attendance. According to the exacteſt Computation that has been made on this Branch of our Trade, about 430 Sail of Ships, with above 5000 Seamen, have been employed in one Year to bring over about 75000 Hogſheads of Tobacco from Virginia and Maryland; the Freight of which, at 8 l. per Ton (a Medium in Times of Peace) amounts to 150,000 l. ſterling; moſt of which Sum centers among ourſelves, in the Payment of Sailors and Tradeſmen, who live by Shipping; beſides about 15 s. per Hogſhead, Cuſtom-houſe Fees, Cooperage, Lighterage, Wharfage, Porterage, Cartage, Warehouſe Rent, Brokerage, and other incident Charges. 'Tis further calculated, that out of the ſaid 75000 Hogſheads imported, there are exported 46000 Hogſheads, containing 720 lb. per Hogſhead, at Fourpence per Pound on Board; which amounts to 552,000 l. towards ſupporting the Ballance of Trade with foreign Nations.'’ The ſame Author a little further obſerves, ‘'as another great Benefit ariſing from this Vegetable, that the Produce is laid out in our Britiſh Manufactures, and exported to the Britiſh Colonies; which in one Year has amounted to 500,000 l. (and would be much more, if proper Encouragement were given to manufacture it before Exportation) therefore it may be juſtly ſaid, that Tobacco is become in few Years one of the moſt valuable Branches of Trade belonging to Great Britain.'’ Thus far Mr. John Lacy, Tobacco merchant, in his Obſervations on the Nature, Uſe and Trade of Tobacco. Folio, one Sheet, printed Mar. 1. 1733. Beſides the Advantage this Vegetable is of to Trade, a large Revenue ariſes to the Crown [...]y Cuſtom-duties on Tobacco.—I have ſeen an Account, upon the Veracity whereof I can depend, by which it appears, the Money paid on this Article of Tobacco into his Majeſty's Exchequer in the Year 1731, was 175,277 l. 8 s. 10 d. and that a Medium for ſeven Years paſt to that Time was 169,079 l. o s. 10 d.
*
Entitled the Counter-blaſt to Tobacco, 4to. without Date. There is alſo extant King James's Warrant to the Lord-treaſurer Dorſet, Anno 1604, for laying a good heavy Impoſition upon Tobacco, that leſs Quantity may be brought into the Realm, and only ſufficient for the better Sort, who will uſe it with Moderation for their Health: Wherefore he authoriſes the ſaid Treaſurer to order, that from the 26th of October enſuing, the proper Officers ſhould take, of all who import Tobacco, the Sum of ſix Shillings and eightpence upon every Pound Weight, over and above the Cuſtom of Twopence per Pound, uſually paid heretofore. Rymer's Foedc [...] Tom. XVI. Fol. 601.
*
There is in Being an old Manuſcript Liſt of the Officers in Queen Elizabeth's Time and their Fees; in which I find that, as Officer of the Coinage of Tin, and Steward of the Stannaries in the Dutchy of Cornwall, Sir Walter Ralegh's Fee was 53 l. 6 s. 8 d. Cotton. Libr.
On the 8th of December 1585, the Earl of Leiceſter and his Train, with an Army of about 5000 Men, ſet out from Harwich in 50 Sail of Ships to his Government of the Netherlands, and it was committed as abſolutely to him, as it had been to the Emperor Charles V. But at laſt the Hollanders growing jealous of his Authority, and complaining of certain Innovations, Factions and treacherous Commanders under him, he was recalled, and returned to London the 23d of November this following Year (ſoon after the Corpſe of his much lamented Nephew Sir Philip Sidney) not without leaving behind a printed Vindication of himſelf in Dutch, now ſcarce to be found; and ſtriking a Medal, repreſenting his own Head on one Side, and ſeven unguarded ſtraggling Sheep on the other. The Author of a brief Diſcourſe of Dr. Allen's ſeditious Drifts, &c. 4to. 1588. p. 46. endeavours to clear the Earl's Conduct in that Government againſt the ſaid Doctor; as E. Cliffe, in his Breviate of Holland's Deliverance and Ingratitude to the Crown of England and the Houſe of Naſſau, 4to. 1665. p. 55. does againſt Vander Sande and Hugo Grotius; eſpecially the latter, who inſinuates, as if the Earl, who died within two Years following, was poiſoned by his Wife, becauſe ſhe ſoon after married again. I have read, this Earl's Effects were then ſeized upon by the Crown for Debt, and heard that an Inventory of them is in the Poſſeſſion of Sir John Evelyn, Bart.
Here this Author illuſtrates his Addreſs by theſe Examples; ‘"The Spaniards at their firſt Entrance into Hiſpaniola, found neither Sugar-canes nor Ginger growing there, nor any King of our Cattle; but finding the Place fit for Paſture, they ſent Kine and Bulls, and ſundry other profitable Beaſts thither, and tranſported the Plants of Sugar-canes, and ſet the Roots of Ginger; the Hides of which Oxen, with the Sugar and Ginger, are now the chief Merchandize of that Iſland. The Portugals alſo at their firſt Footing in Madera, as John Barras writes in his firſt Decade, found nothing there but mighty Woods for Timber, whereupon they called the Iſland by that Name: howbeit, the Clime being favourable, they inriched it by their own Induſtry, with the beſt Wines and Sugars in the World. The like Manner of Proceeding they uſed in the Iſles of the Azores, by ſowing therein great Quantity of Woad. So they dealt in St. Thomas under the Equinoctial; and in Braſile, and in ſundry other Places."’
*
But ſix Years before this Occaſion of raiſing the military Strength of England, according to Sir Walter Ralegh, there were, upon a general View and Maſter, found in the Kingdom, of all Men fit to bear Arms, 1172000. See his Select Eſſays and Obſervations 8vo. 1650, in his Diſcourſe of the Invention of Shipping. p. 27.
The Earl of Eſſex was now Maſter of the Queen's Horſe. See the Letter to Mendoza aforeſaid, p [...]25. In which Sir Henry Wotton agrees, who makes this father Obſervation: ‘"This Service at Tilbury Camp was, in my Judgment (ſays he) the very Poiſon of all that followed; for there, while the Queen ſtood in ſome doubt of the Spaniſh Invaſion, ſhe made him in Field, Commander of the Cavalry, as he was before in Court, and much graced him openly in View of the Soldiers and People, even above my Lord of Leiceſter: The Truth is, from thenceforth, he fed too faſt."’ Parallel bebetween Robert Devereux Earl of Eſſex, and George Villiers Duke of Buckingham.
*
Michael Ca [...]ielnau, who was Ambaſſador here many Years, and who has given the moſt noble and ingenuous Character of the Queen, in his Memoirs, of any Foreigner I have met with that knew her obſerves that ſhe built a noble Fleet, the Bulwark of ner Kingdom, and launch'd a large Man of War every ſecond Year. But by that long Liſt of the Engliſh Navy (which this Year oppoſed the Spaniſh Armada) among the MSS. in the Royal Library 14. B. XIII, lately printed by Mr. Lediard, in his Naval Expeditions, Fol. 238. it appears there were very few Ships of that Burden among them. For tho' that Liſt raiſes their Number beyond all other Accounts, to 197 Sail (manifeſtly omitting ſome which were there, and probably admitting ſeveral which were not;) yet there are not above ſix Ships among them mentioned to be of 500 Ton, and not above ſeven of greater Burden.
*
What further perſuades me to believe Ralegh entered the Fleet at this Place and Time is, my having met with a certain foreign Hiſtory, hereafter mentioned, which had been his own Book, and wherein he has with his own Hand corrected other Paſſages relating to himſelf; but has let this of his joining the Fleet, as above, paſs uncontradicted.
*
His Parallel between Robert Earl of Eſſex and George Duke of Buckingham, beforementioned
*
‘'It was affirmed by Men of great Judgment in Calais, that never was ſeen by any Man living ſuch a Battery; ſo great for Number, ſo furious, and of ſo long Continuance, as the Engliſh made againſt the Spaniſh: Calais ſaw the Spaniſh Navy firſt driven from their Anchors with Fire; they ſaw the greateſt Galleaſs of the Spaniſh, whereof was Commander that worthy Nobleman Moncada, ſpoiled, and himſelf ſlain in it by the Engliſh: Calais ſaw the next Day, that the Engliſh fought and beat the Armada from eight o'Clock in the Morning 'till four in the Afternoon without ceaſing: Calais ſaw the Spaniſh hoiſt up all their Sails and fly as faſt as the Wind could drive, and the Engliſh purſue them: Yet Calais ſaw a ſufficient Navy of England left before Dunkirk, able to maſter all the Shipping that the Duke of Parma had provided.'’ Thus in a ſcarce old Tract in the Harleyan Library, B. H. called, A Pack of Spaniſh Lies, firſt printed in Spain, tranſlated, and now ripped up, unfolded and condemn'd, 4to. 1588. p. 6.
*

At the End of an old Pamphlet before quoted, called, Certain Advertiſements out of Ireland, concerning the Loſſes and Diſtreſſes of the Spaniſh Navy, there is one Liſt of fifteen Spaniſh Ships, which periſhed, or were taken by the Engliſh in July and Auguſt in the narrow Seas; and another Liſt of 17 more, ſunk, burnt and taken on the Coaſts of Ireland in September; ſo that both Loſſes were 32 Ships, in which were alſo deſtroyed and taken 10185 Men, whereof 1000 were detained Priſoners in England and Zealand; further adding, there were Multitudes beſides ſlain, ſunk, or ſtarved, who were not accounted for. Inſomuch, as Van Meteran in Hakluyt more diſtinctly computes, with whom, I obſerve, moſt of our Hiſtorians agree, there returned not Home above 53 Sail, leaving alſo behind the greater and better part of their Men; and, as they all conclude, There was not a famous or worthy Family in all Spain, which in this Expedition loſt not a Son, a Brother, or a Kinſman.

Among the Engliſh, there were not in the whole eight or nine Days Engagement above 100 loſt, and among them only one Captain, named Cock.

*
The Notice of this moſt uſeful Scheme (ſince I have not at preſent Mr. Hartlib's own Account) I ſhall here offer in Sir William Petty's ingenious Repreſentation of it, directed many Years ſince to the ſaid laſt Projector himſelf. ‘'We muſt recommend, ſays he, an Office of Addreſs, according to the Projection of Mr. Hartlib, that painful and great Inſtrument of this Deſign; whereby the Wants and Deſires of all may be made known to all. Where Men may know what is already done, in the Buſineſs of Learning; what is at preſent in doing, and what is intended to be done; to the End, that by ſuch a general Communication of Deſigns and mutual Aſſiſtance the Wits and Endeavours of the World may no longer be as ſo many ſcattered Coals, which, for want of Union, are ſoon quenched; whereas being but laid together, they would have yielded a comfortable Light and Heat. For, methinks, the preſent Condition of Men is like a Field, where, a Battle having been lately fought, we ſee many Legs, Arms, and Organs of Senſe, lying here and there, which, for want of Conjunction, and a Soul to quicken and enliven them, are fit for nothing but to feed the Ravens and infect the Air: So we ſee many Wits and Ingenuities diſperſed up and down the World, whereof ſome are now labouring to do what is already done; and puzzling themſelves to re-invent what is already invented: Others we ſee quite ſtuck faſt in Difficulties for want of a few Directions, which ſome other Man, might he be met withal, both could and would moſt eaſily give him. Again, one Man wants a ſmall Sum of Money to carry on ſome Deſign that requires it, and there is perhaps another, who has twice as much ready to beſtow upon the ſame Deſign; but theſe two, having no Means ever to hear the one of the other, the good Work, intended and deſired by both Parties, does utterly periſh and come to nothing. But this we paſs over ſlightly, though very fundamental to our Buſineſs; becauſe the Maſter-Builder thereof himſelf has done it ſo ſolidly.'’
*
Where, ſpeaking of the long Lives of the Patriarchs, and ſome of late Memory, he ſays, ‘"I myſelf knew the old Counteſs of Deſmond of Inchequin in Munſter, who lived in the Year 1589, and many Years ſince; who was married in Edward the Fourth's Time, and held her Jointure from all the Earls of Deſmond ſince then; and that this is true, all the Nobility and Gentlemen of Munſter could witneſs."’ Hiſtory of the World. Lib. I. Cap. 5. Sect. 5. Of this old Lady, ſee more in Lord Bacon's Hiſtory of Life and Death, and Sir William Temple's Eſſay on Health and long Life, in his Miſcellanies, Part 3. (publiſh'd by Jonathan Swift, M. A. Prebendary of St. Patrick's) 8vo. 1701. p. 125, where, telling us ſhe lived far in King James's Reign. it appears ſhe muſt have been alive at the Time Sir Walter Ralegh was writing that he knew her in Ireland the Year aforeſaid.
Entitled, Collin Clout's come home again (in the laſt Edition of Spenſer) Vol. 4. p. 1121.
*
This Treatiſe, now very ſcarce, is called The Art of Engliſh Poeſy; contrived in three Books: The firſt of Poets and Poeſy; the ſecond of Proportion; the third of Ornament. London, 4to. 1589. I never ſaw but one of them, and this is in the curious Library of that worthy Owner James Weſt, Eſq; of the Middle-Temple. There is a wooden Print of the Queen before it; and, though dedicated to the Lord Burghley, the Work is addreſs'd directly to the Queen. Therefore that Paſſage in the firſt Book, cap. 26. where the Author is ſo luxuriant upon the Epithalamies, or poetical Manner of celebrating Marriages; and that in the third Book, cap. 23. where he makes the Imperial Ambaſſador, a Bohemian born, ſo bluntly expreſs in the French Tongue what a gallant Horſewoman the Empreſs was, will, among ſome others, be allowed very remarkable, in a Book ſo publickly and ſo particularly tendered to the Peruſal of our Virgin-Queen.
*
Lady Iſabella Thynne; the ſame who is ſo finely celebrated by Mr. Waller, tho' her Sirname is no where to be found in any of the printed Editions I have ſeen of his Poems; but I have had an old MS. Collection, in which one Poem is directed to the Lady Iſabella Thynne cutting Trees in Paper; which Poem is printed among Mr. Waller's, but her Name left out. In the Print alſo we have only a Fragment; but my Copy had it entire. For the Poem which follows it, in Mr. Waller's printed Collection, is a Compliment to the ſame Lady, for reſtoring him this Piece, becauſe he deſired to print it, though the laſt Thought was torn off and loſt; which, to his Regret, he never could recollect; ſo was obliged to print it imperfectly, in his own Apprehenſions at leaſt, though all the World beſides have looked upon what is printed of it as a perfect Maſter-piece, even of that great Hand: And for our Conſolation it may be obſerved, if he had not loſt this Concluſion, we ſhould have loſt that fine Poem, which was the Conſequence of it.
*
See Iſaac Walton's Compleat Angler, 4th Edition, 8vo. 1668. p. 76, &c. This Walton was 25 Years of Age at Ralegh's Death, and lived 90 Years. Beſides that Book, for which he has been called the Father of Anglers, he wrote five Lives of learned and religious Men, excellently well, being either from a perſonal Knowledge of them, or their intimate Friends.
*

Entitled, The Demonſtration of Diſcipline which Chriſt hath preſcrib'd in his Word for the Government of the Church in all Times and Places until the World's End.

The horrible Treaſon in this Book it ſeems (which was inſerted in the Indictment) lay in theſe Words to the Biſhops: ‘'Who can without bluſhing, deny you to be the Cauſe of all Ungodlineſs, ſeeing your Government is that which giveth Leave to a Man to be any Thing ſaving a ſound Chriſtian: For certainly it is more free in theſe Days to be a Papiſt, an Anahaptiſt, of the Family of Love; yea, any wicked one whatſoever, than that which we ſhould be: And I could live theſe twenty Years any ſuch in England, yea, in a Biſhop's Houſe may-be, and never be moleſted for it. So true is that which you are charged with in a Dialogue lately come forth againſt you, and ſince burned by you; That you care for nothing but the Maintenance of your Dignities, be it to the Damnation of your own Souls, and infinite Millions more.'’ Strype's Life and Acts of Archbiſhop Whitgift, Fol. 1718. P. 343.

*
Herein his Majeſty tells the Queen, ‘'That hearing of the Apprehenſion of Mr. Udall, Mr. Cartwright, and certain other learned Miniſters of the Evangell, within your Realm (ſays he) of whoſe good Erudition and fruitful Travels in the Church, we hear a very credible Commendation, howſoever their Diverſity from Biſhops, and others of your Clergy, in Matters touching them in Conſcience, hath been a mean, by their Dilation, to work them your Miſliking; at this preſent, we cannot (weighing the Duty we owe to ſuch as are afflicted for their Conſcience in that Profeſſion) but by our moſt effectual and earneſt Letter, interpone us at your Hands to any harder Uſage of them for that Cauſe. So requeſting her earneſtly to let them be releaſed out of their preſent Straite, he concludes, from Edinburgh the 12th of June 1591.'’
*
Of whom we have this Tradition, That he was the firſt Man King James asked for when he came into England, and being anſwered, he was dead, the King replied, By my Sal then the greateſt Scholar in Europe's dead.
*
As for her Friends, the Lord Thomas Howard, and the other Ships, Sir Walter Ralegh further ſays of them, ‘'If all the reſt had entered, all had been loſt; for the very hugeneſs of the Spaniſh Fleet, if no other Violence had been offered, would have cruſh'd them into Shivers; of which the Diſhonour and Loſs to the Queen, had been far greater than the Spoil or Harm that the Enemy could any way have received. Notwithſtanding it is true, that the Lord Thomas would have entered between the Squadrons, but the reſt would not condeſcend; and the Maſter of his own Ship offered to leap into the Sea, rather than conduct it with the reſt to be a Prey to the Enemy; where there was neither Hope or Poſſibility either of Defence or Victory. Which alſo in my Opinion, ſays Ralegh, had ill ſorted with, or anſwered the Diſcretion of a General, to commit himſelf and his Charge to aſſured Deſtruction, without hope or any likelihood of prevailing thereby, to diminiſh the Strength of her Majeſty's Navy, and enrich the Pride and Glory of the Enemy. The Foreſight of the Queen's (continues he) commanded by Mr. Vaſavour, performed a very great Fight, and ſtayed two Hours as near the Revenge as the Weather would permit, not forſaking the Fight till he was likely to be encompaſſed by the Squadrons, and with great Difficulty cleared himſelf. The reſt gave divers Vollies of Shot, and entered as far as the Place permitted, and their own Neceſſities, to keep the Weather Gage of the Enemy, until they were parted by Night.'’ Thus in Sir Walter Ralegh's ſaid report of this fight.
*
Linſ [...]h [...]ten a Dutch Author, tho' he miſtakes in ſome particulars; as making this Engagement to have happened a Fortnight later, &c. yet agrees with Sir Walter Ralegh, that Sir Richard made a wonderful Oppoſition; for he mentions, ‘'no leſs than ſeven or eight Ships boarding the Revenge; that ſhe reſiſted them at leaſt 12 Hours; that the Spaniards loſt above 400 Men in the Fight; and that when Sir Richard was conveyed into the Spaniſh Admiral's Ship the St Paul, all the Captains were aſtoniſhed at his ſtout and couragious Heart, for he ſhewed no Sign of Faintneſs, nor Change of Colour; but, feeling the Hour of Death approach, ſaid in the Spaniſh Tongue, Here die I Richard Greenvill, with a joyful and quiet Mind, having ended my Life like a true Soldier, that has fought for his Country, Queen, Religion, and Honour, &c. He gives us further, as an Inſtance of his Bravery, that while he continued amongſt the Spaniſh Captains, and they were at Dinner or Supper with him, he would carouſe three or four Glaſſes of Wine, and take the Glaſſes between his Teeth and cruſh them in Pieces, and ſwallow them down; ſo that often the Blood would run out of his Mouth, without any other Harm to him.';’
*
This Carack was in Burden no leſs than 1600 Ton, whereof 900 were Merchandiſe: She carried 32 Pieces of braſs Ordnance, and between 6 and 700 Paſſengers; was built with Decks ſeven Story, one main Orlop, three cloſe Decks, one Forecaſtle, and a Spare-deck of two Floor apiece. According to the Obſervations of Mr. Robert Adams, an excellent Geometrician, ſhe was in length from the Beak-head to the Stern 165 Feet; in breadth near 47 Feet; the length of her Keel 100 Feet; of the Main maſt 121 Feet; its Circuit at the Partners near 11 Feet; and her Main-yard 106 Feet.
*
As to her Lading, according to the Catalogue taken at Leade [...]hall the 15th of September this Year, the principal Wares conſiſted of Spices, Drugs, Silks, Callicoes, Carpets, Quilts, Cloth of the Rind of Trees, Ivory, Porcellan or China Ware, Ebony; beſides Pearl, Muſk, Civet, and Ambergris; with many other Commodities of inferior Value. The Cargaſon freighted ten of our Ships for London, and was, by moderate Computation, valued at 150000l. Sterling.
*
This Sect was ſo called from Robert Brown, Son of Anthony Brown, Eſq; of Tolethorp in Rutlandſhire, and Grandſon of Francis Brown, whom King Henry VIII, Anno Regn. 18. privileged by Charter to wear his Cap in Preſence of himſelf, his Heirs, or any of his Nobles, and not to uncover but at his own Pleaſure. This Robert ſtudied Divinity in Cambridge, and was ſoon diſcovered by Dr. Still, Maſter o [...] Trini [...]y-College, to have ſomewhat extraordinary in him that would pro [...] great Diſturbance to the Church. He travelled to Zeland, an [...] etu [...]ed, as we are told, confirmed in Error and Obſtinacy which he firſt preached at Norwith Anno 1581, and wrote a Book to juſ [...]i [...]y his Doctrine; for which Biſhop Phreak of that Dioceſe confined him: But being related to the Lord Burg [...]e [...], and he rather imputing it to Zeal than Malice, interceded to have him c [...]aritably per [...]aded out of his Opinions, and releaſed. The lat [...]er being done, he was ſent home in 1585, but remain'd incorrigible; w [...]erefore his good old Father would own him for his Son no long [...]r than his Son own'd the Church of England for his Mother; but he choſe rather to part with his aged Sire than his new Schiſm: So, with Richard Harriſon a Schoolmaſter, he ſet up for an Orator againſt Biſhops and all Eccleſiaſtical Authority. When Gentleneſs was found ineffectual, Severity was ſo long, and upon ſo many Occaſions exercis'd, that this Brown uſed to boaſt he had been committed to Thirty-two Priſons, and in ſome could not ſee his Hand at Noon-day, yet did he to the laſt ſave his Life and Living, which was Achurch in Northamptonſhire. This Favour is conceived to proceed from the Promiſes he made of Conformity, together with the Intereſt of his powerful Kindre [...] He allowed a Salary for one to diſch [...]rge his Cure; and tho' he oppoſed [...]is Pariſhioners in Judgment, yet agreed in taking their Tithes. He was of a Nature uncontrolable, ſo far from the Sabbatarian Strictneſs, afterwards eſpouſed by ſome of his Followers, that he ſeemed rather a Libertine therein. In a Word, he had (ſays my Author) a Wife with whom he never lived, and a Church in which he never preached, tho' he received the Profits thereof; and as all the other Scenes of his Life were ſtormy and turbulent, fo was his End; for the Conſtable of his Pariſh requiring ſomewhat roughly the Payment of certain Rates, his Paſſion moved him to Blows w [...]ereof Complaint being made to Juſtice St. John, he rather inclin'd to pity than puniſh him; but Brown, at fair Words alſo diſguſted, ceaſed not till he was ſent to Northampton Jail on a Bed in a Cart, being very infirm and aged above 80 Years; where ſoon after he ſicken'd and died Anno 1630.
*

The late Dr. George Sewell in his Tragedy of Sir Walte [...] Ralegh, 8vo. 1719, Act. I. Scene I. makes the following Reflection on the Attorney General's ſtarting from the Queſtion in [...]bate at Ralegh's Trial, to upbraid him with this imputation Atheiſm.

Sir Julius Caeſar.
When Prejudice and ſtrong Averſion work,
All whoſe Opinions we diſlike are Atheiſts:
Now 'tis a Term of Art, a bugbear Word,
The Villain's Engine, and the Vulgar's Terror.
The Man who thinks and judges for himſelf;
Unſway'd by aged Follies, rev'rend Errors;
Grown holy by traditionary Dullneſs
Of School-Authority; he is an Atheiſt!
The Man, who hating idle Noiſe, preſerves
A pure Religion ſeated in his Soul;
He is a ſilent, dumb, diſſembling Atheiſt!
Lord Howard.
I had forgot it—yes, the baſe-tongu'd Gownſman
Did call him Atheiſt—ſo Men judge at home,
Who never trac'd a Providence at Sea;
And ſaw his Wonders in the mighty Deep.
The Atheiſt-Sailor were a monſtrous Thing,
More wonderful than all old Ocean breeds!
But I will witneſs for my Ralegh's Faith;
Yes, I have ſeen him when the Tempeſt rag'd,
When from the Precipice of Mountain-Waves,
All Hearts have trembled at the Gulph below;
He with a ſteddy, ſupplicating Look,
Diſplay'd his Truſt in that tremendous Pow'r,
Who curbs the Billows, and cuts ſhort the Wings
Of the rude Whirlwind in its midway Courſe,
And bids the Madneſs of the Waves to ceaſe.
O Fellow-Soldier! were that Folly thine;
Tho' thou wert dearer than the Love of Honour
To this old Boſom; I would pluck thee hence
Tho' my Heart crack'd—
*
This Aſſertion will further appear to any who ſhall have the Curioſity to conſult the late learned Dr. John Wallis, in his Treatiſe of Algebra, where he compares the Improvements which Hariot made, with what Deſcartes has advanced, as his own, without mentioning the Name of this Engliſhman in his Geometry; and gives it clearly on Hariot's Side. Nay, this P [...]agiariſm was ſo well known, as to have been objected againſt Monſieur Deſcartes in his own Country; and the Frenchman, who has paid the ſingular Honours to his Memory of writing his Life, having confeſſed it was the Opinion of ſome, that he ſtole his Method of Algebra from one Hariot, an Engliſhman, does not go about to contradict it.
*
Addition to Camden's Britannia, tranſlated by the preſent Biſhop of London, fol. 1695. pag. 166. upon which we may obſerve, tho' the Engliſh have not been ſo grateful as the Romans were in celebrating thoſe worthy Perſons who have made the like beneficial Importations to the laſting Ornament and Fertility of their Country; yet that we have had ſome Authors not altogether ſilent in theſe vegetable Antiquities, from whom we learn, that Dr. Linacre firſt brought into this Land that Prince of Flowers the Damask Roſe; that the Perdigwen Plum, with two Kinds more, were firſt made Natives of this Soil by Thomas Lord Cromwell, when he returned from his Travels; and the Apricock, by a Prieſt named Wolfe, Gardener to King Henry VIII. In this Reign were alſo firſt propagated among us Hops and Artichokes; and then were Cherry Orchards firſt planted here, about Sittingborne in Kent, with a more improved Kind of that Fruit, brought from Flanders by one Harris, another of that King's Gardeners: But what effect Cardan's Recommendation of Olive-Trees had with King Edward VI. I find not. In the Reign of Queen Elizabeth, when Edmund Grindal, afterwards Archbiſhop of Canterbury, returned from Exile, he firſt tranſported the Tamerick, ſo uſeful in Medicine againſt Diſeaſes of the Spleen. Then alſo after our opening a Trade with Zant, the Shrub which bears the Currans was firſt tranſplanted hither. In 1578 the Tulip firſt ſhewed her gaudy Garment in Engliſh Ground; and, laſtly, not to extend further on this Subject now, as for the profitable Plant Tobacco, and that princely one the Orange-Tree, enough is ſaid above, in the Body of this Work, to the Honour of Sir Walter Ralegh.
*
Sir Hugh Plat informs us, ‘'That delicate Knight Sir Francis Carew, once making a ſplendid Entertainment for Queen Elizabeth at Beddington, led her Majeſty, after Dinner, to a Cherry-Tree in his Garden, which had on it Fruit in their Prime, then above a Month after all Cherries had taken their farewell of England. This Retardation he performed by ſtraining a Tent or Canvas Cover over the whole Tree, and wetting it as the Weather required with a Scoop; ſo by obſtructing the Sun-Beams, they grew both great, and were very long before they gained their perfect Cherry-colour; and when he was aſſured of the Time her Majeſty would come, he removed the Tent, and a few ſunny Days brought them to their full Maturity.'’ See his Garden of Eden, 12 mo. 1655. pag. 165.
*
The Empire of Guiana is directly Eaſt from Peru towards the Sea, and lies under the equinoctial Line, was then governed by the ſame Laws, and under the ſame Religion. There are many Atteſtations of the wonderful Riches in theſe Parts, eſpecially the Imperial City, which they called Manoa, where, Franciſco Lopez, ſpeaking of the Magnificence of the Emperor's Court, ſays, ‘'That all the Veſſels of his Houſe, Table and Kitchen, were of Gold and Silver; that in his Wardrobe were hollow Statues of Gold, which ſeemed Giants; and the Figures, in Proportion and Bigneſs, of all the Beaſts, Birds, Trees and Herbs that the Earth brings forth, and of all the Fiſhes that the Sea or Waters of his Kingdom breeds. Finally, there was nothing in his Country whereof he had not the Counterfelt in Gold.'’ Further, that City of Manoa was by Juan Martinez, the firſt Chriſtian who ſaw it, called El Dorado, or the Golden City, upon ſeeing the Guianians there, and all about the Borders, in their drunken Revels, anoint themſelves with a glutinous Balſom, and powder their naked Bodies over with gold Duſt 'till they all glittered from Head to Foot.
*
'Tis the Indian Fig, which he curiouſly deſcrib'd; and how it bears Oyſters, by planting itſelf into the Sea; ſo that one Stem ſoon becomes a Grove. See Hiſt. of the World, lib. 1. cap. 4. ſect. 2,
*
Whether the Poiſon they uſed in Guiana was the ſame with that in ſome other Parts of the Weſt-Indies, Ralegh has not told us; but Sir John Hawkins informs us, that about Cumana, where they are very expert Archers, ‘'their Poiſon is of ſuch Force, that a Man being ſtruck therewith, dies in twenty-four Hours; and, that in his Judgment, there can be no ſtronger; uſing thereunto Apples, which are fair and red of Colour; but are a ſtrong Poiſon (perhaps the Manchineil) of which with venomous Bats, Vipers, Adders, and other Serpents, they make a Medley, and anoint their Arrows.'’
*
Whether Ralegh, at his Return, brought of this Fruit into England, which is otherwiſe called the Ananas, and vulgarly the P [...]e Apple, from ſome Reſemblance it bears in Shape to the Canes of the Pine tree; or any of that moſt delicious Wine made thereof, which he there alſo taſted, has rather been ſuggeſted than confirmed; but afterwards, when, by a ſpeedy Voyage, ſome of the Fruit was brought over and preſented to King James, in greater Perfection than we can conceive from taſting what is forced out of h [...]t Beds here, he diſcovered one of the noble Maxims in his King craft, by declaring, It was a Fruit too delic [...]s, for a Subject to taſte of.
*
Mr. Theobald thinks, we may be able to account, in a few Lines, for the Myſtery of theſe ſuppoſed headleſs People: For Olearius ſpeaking (ſays he) of the Manner of Cloathing of the Samojeds. a People of North Muſcovy, ſays, ‘'Their Garments are made like thoſe called Coſaques, open only at the Necks, When the Cold is extraordinary, they put their Coſaques over their Heads, and let the Sleeves hang down, their Faces being not to be ſeen, but at the Cleft, which is at the Neck; whence ſome have taken occaſion to write, that in theſe northern Countries, there are People without Heads, having their Faces in their Breaſts.'’ Theobald"s Shakeſpear, 8vo. 1733. vol.
*
‘"The Winter and Summer here, as touching Cold and Heat (ſays Ralegh) differ not; neither do the Trees ever ſenſibly loſe their Leaves, but have always Fruit either ripe or green; and moſt of them, both Bloſſoms, Leaves, ripe Fruit, and green at one Time: But their Winter conſiſts of terrible Rains and overflowing of the Rivers, with many great Storms and Guſts, Thunder and Lightnings; of which we had our Fill ere we return'd."’
*
Succeeding Voyagers have obſerv'd of the Karaguata Guacu, a Braſilian Free about 14 or 15 Foot high, with yellow Flowers on the Top, and large long thick Leaves, which yield an unctuous Liquor ſerving for Soap, and Strings for Fiſhing-Nets; that with the Wood thereof, and of another call'd Imbaiba, the Inhabitants kindle their Fires by ſtriking them together, as we by a Flint and Steel.
*
Of theſe Sea-monſters, otherwiſe call'd Manati by the Spaniards, Ralegh ſays he had ſeen as big as a Wine-pipe; others deſcribe its Fleſh to be like Beef, and to yield and excellent Oil, the Hide being dreſs'd, makes good Buff, and dried, good Targets or Armour; wherefore, we are told, Sir Walter Ralegh brought ſeveral of theſe Hides into England.
*
Francis Sparrow, above mentioned in the Body of the Work, confirms this Account of the Mines in theſe Words: ‘'Within ſix Weeks after I departed out of the River Orenoque, I came to the rich Country of Curaa in Guiana, where are the Mines of white Stone, in which is much natural and fine Gold, which the Indians call Callicurii. The Gold in this Place runs between the Stones like Veins, of which Gold I had ſome Store; but now the Spaniard is the better for it. In Curaa is alſo Gold in ſmall Grains, which lie in the Sands in the little Rivers or Brooks: I always took thoſe Grains for the fineſt Gold. In theſe Rivers where Gold lieth are many Aligators or Crocodiles.'’
*
Theſe Inſtruments were ſuch preferable Commodities among ſome of thoſe Indians, that Francis Sparrow, in his Deſcription of Guiana before-mentioned, tells us he bought at Camalaha, to the South of the Orenoque, eight young Women, the eldeſt whereof was not 18 Years of Age, for one red-hafted Knife, which in England coſt him one Halfpenny.
*
Sir Walter Ralegh afterwards, exemplifying how little a reſolute and experienced Man of War will fear to paſs by the beſt appointed Fort of Europe, with the Help of a good Tide and a leading Gale of Wind; and how hard a Matter it is to ſtop a good Ship without another as good to encounter it, ſays, ‘'The Fort St. Philip terrified not us in the Year 1596, when we entered the Port of Cadiz; neither did the Fort at Puntal, when we were entered, beat us from our anchoring by it; tho' it played upon us with four Demi-Cannons with in Point blank from ſix in the Morning till 12 at Noon.'’ Hiſt. of the World, lib. 5. cap. 1. Sect. 10.
*
Cadiz was a large and beautiful City, and being the chief See of the Biſhop, had a good Cathedral Church, Abbey, Nunnery, and fine College of Jeſuits; was ſtrongly ſituated both by Nature and Art; the Buildings of hard Stone, all flat roof'd, after the Turkiſh Manner; ſo that having lodged Heaps of great Stones on the Tops of their Houſes, every Woman could endanger the Paſſengers in the Streets, which were very narrow, perhaps to avoid the great Heat. All the Houſes had fair Window-frames, and large folding Shutters; but were barr'd with Iron, and none glazed, except the Churches. They had few Chimnies, but in ſome lower Out-rooms for neceſſary Uſes; ſeeming to be more careful of keeping themſelves from roaſting, than to have much of any Thing roaſted.
*
After the Surrender was over, Order was given to tranſport the religious Men and Women, Merchant's Wives, &c. to Port St. Mary, that no Violence might be offer'd them. They had alſo Liberty to take as many of their Cloaths or Goods as they could carry with them; which produced a remarkable Example in a beautiful young Spaniſh Lady, who, leaving all that was precious and valuable, bore away her old and decrepid Huſband upon her Back, whom before ſhe had hidden from the Danger of the Enemy; herein imitating the Piety of the Bavarian Women, after the Conqueſt of their Country by the Emperor Conrade III.
*
The Earl of Eſſex, in a brief Narrative of the Advantages accruing to England, and Loſſes to the Spaniard, by this Expedition, ſays, ‘'The Engliſh took two Galleons, routed 15 Gallies, with an unequal Number of Ships; freed many of their Countrymen condemn'd to the Gallies, and releas'd ſeveral Spaniards from Impriſonment; took the beſt fortify'd City in all Spain, and ſtayed thirteen Days in their Country; brought home, beſides the Galleons aforeſaid, 100 Braſs Guns, with a rich Booty; and the Sailors, but eſpecially the Soldiers, great Plunder; the Enemy loſt 13 of his moſt ſerviceable Ships, 40 Indian Merchantmen, and 4 others, beſides vaſt Quantities of Ammunition, Proviſions, &c. rendering it almoſt impoſſible he ſhould in ſome Time appear again at Sea in a formidable Manner.'’
*
This was Hieronymus Oſorius, a Native of Liſbon, and Biſhop of Si [...]ves and Algarva; characteriz'd by Foreigners to have been a Man of ſtrict Virtue in his Morals, and Maſter of a florid Pen in his Writings; which were publiſh'd at Rome in four Volumes, by his Nephew, who alſo wrote his Life. See more in Thuanus, Anno 1580, when he died, aged 74 Years, and in Anthony Teſſier's Additions to that Hiſtorian's Eloges des Hommes Scavans &c. 8vo. vol. 1. Utrecht 1694. p. 502. This Biſhops was, for none of his Writings, more noted with us, than his Epiſtolary Admonition to Queen Elizabeth, and his Controverſy with that learned Orator and Civilian Dr. Walter Haddon; who dying in the Year 1571, before he had compleated his laſt Book againſt Oſorius, it was finiſh'd and publiſh'd by John Fox the Martyrologiſt in 1577, and four Years after tranſlated into Engliſh; wherein Fox charges the Biſhop's Book againſt the Doctor with being full of Lies, Calumnies, and Errors: And the Lord Bacon, where he notes, among the Diſtempers of Learning, that Luxuriancy of Style which began to prevail in Luther's Time, with the Cauſes thereof; which introduced an affected Study of Eloquence, and grew to ſuch Exceſs, that Authors regarded a Roundneſs of Period more than Richneſs of Invention, Soundneſs of Argument, or Depth of Judgment; and were charmed rather with Softneſs than Strength, Sweetneſs than Solidity, and Fulneſs of Words than Weight of Matter; he inſtances, among others then growing into Eſteem, the flowing and watery Vein of Oſorius. De Augment. Scientiarum, lib. 1.
*
Mr. Evelyn in his Book of Medals, gives us the Sculpture of a large one that was ſtruck this Year, having the Arms of England, France and Holland, in a three-fold knot on one Side, repreſenting a triple League againſt Spain with this Inſcription, Rumpitnr haud facile; and on the reverſe, a Navy of great Ships at Sea, under the Name of Jehovah, with this Epigraph, Quid me perſequeris, 1596. Hence thought by ſome to have been in Memory of the Victory at Cadiz; but as he tells us, it was ſtruck upon the Alarm menacing thoſe three Nations on the Surprize of Callais this Year. Therefore where he is ſpeaking of thoſe adventrous Argonauts in theſe Times, who deſerved the Honour of Medals for their Exploits at Sea, among whom, he reckons chiefly thoſe who found out new Worlds, planted Colonies, and enlarged the Britiſh Empire, he adds, I know not whether there was any Medals of the Earl of Eſſex's Expedition to Cadiz, and of the Heroes who accompanied him. So recommends Sir W. Ralegh to that Diſtinction, as being ‘'a Perſon of extraordinary Merit for his Learning and Experience: and who is he, continues my Author, that deplores not his being ſo happily cut off, (and our ſince Want of ſuch as Ralegh was) to gratify the crafty and Malicious?'’ Further, where he is ſubſiding from Arms to Arts, he mentions Ralegh again among the foremoſt of thoſe illuſtrious Perſons, of whom he ſays, ‘'How ſhould one rejoice to find in more laſting Matter than painted Cloth, the true Effigies of ſuch as were famous for both.'’ Numiſmata, fol. 1697. p. 99, 160, 161.
*
That there are many rich Mines and Minerals in Guiana, as well as Mountains and Rivers impregnate with Gold, is not only thus conſtantly intimated by the Engliſh Travellers thither of theſe Times, but atteſted by the Spaniards themſelves, in their further Diſcoveries many Years after; as may be ſeen in Father D'Acuna's Relation of the River of Amazons, and other Spaniſh Authors. But as for the rich City of Manoa, juſt before ſpoken of, which they had called El Dorado, it ſeems now to have been invented by theſe Indians, as a gilded Bait to draw the Spaniards into League with them againſt their Enemies; and propagated by the Spaniards themſelves, to inhance the Merit of their Travels, and ſharpen the Appetite of their Succeſſors to purſue the Enterprize; for no ſuch City having been found, it has been reputed a Kind of Philoſopher's Stone in Coſmography: Yet, like that in Chymiſtry, tho' undiſcover'd itſelf, it was, and may further be the Means of many profitable Diſcoveries. If ſuch a Metropolis had been diſtinctly aſcertain'd by Antonio de Herera, and John de Laet's excellent Accounts and Maps of theſe Parts, and had not appear'd doubtful even to Father D'Acuna himſelf; I ſee not how Monſieur Sanſon, who, in 1680, graved a little Map to explain the French Tranſlation of the ſaid Jeſuit's Diſcourſe, could have omitted it; and for the new Edition, publiſhed in 1715, another Map was graved by Mr. De Liſle; which, tho' more copious and compleat, is not, as I can hear, more particular in this Reſpect.
*
Sir Thomas Bodley informs us, that before he returned from the united Provinces in 1597, and after, the Earl of Eſſex uſed him ſo kindly, that though he meant to ſettle his Dependence only on the Lord Burghley, as beſt able, and moſt willing to work his Advancement with the Queen; yet the Earl, who ſought, by all Devices, to divert her Liking both from the Father and the Son eſpecially; did often to withdraw his Affection alſo from both, entertain the Queen with prodigal Speeches of his Sufficiency for a Secretary; which were accompanied with ſuch Words of Diſgrace againſt the latter, ‘'That neither ſhe herſelf took any great Pleaſure to prefer me the ſooner, ſays Bodley; for ſhe hated his Ambition, and would give little Countenance to any of his Followers; and both the Lord Burghley and his Son waxed jealous of my Courſes.'’ And a little further, ‘'when I had thoroughly bethought me, firſt in the Earl; of the ſlender Hold-faſt he had in the Queen; of an endleſs Oppoſition of the chiefeſt of our Stateſmen, likely ſtill to wa [...]t upon him; of his perillous, feeble, and uncertain Advice, as well in his own, as in all the Cauſes of his Friends; and when I had fully conſidered how untowardly theſe two Counſellors were affected to me; how ill it became my natural Diſpoſition to become a Stickler in publick Faction; and how well I was able to live of my ſelf, &c. I was reſolved to take my Farewell of State Employments, and ſo retire from Courts.'’
*
Theſe Iſlands are ſituate in the Atlantick, or weſtern Ocean, between 37 and 40 Degrees; and diſtant from England about 400 Leagues. They were ſo named by the Portugueſe, from a Kind of Hawks, call'd by them Aſores, by the Romans Accipitres, and by us Goſhawks; theſe Iſlands breeding Abundance of thoſe Birds: Though Ortelius derives the Name from a French Word, ſignifying to dry or wither, without giving Reaſon for his Etymology. They are nine in Number, and named St. Mary's, which is near the Coaſt of Spain; St. Michael's, which is the largeſt of them, being about 20 Miles long; the Ter [...]era, ſo called, becauſe lying the third from Spain, is the ſtrongeſt; Gratioſa, from the Fertility of the Soil, and pleaſant Temper of the Air; St. George's, like the two firſt, from the Saint's Name on whoſe Day it was diſcovered; the Pike, from the wonderful ſharp Mountain thereon, which riſes Steeple-wiſe three Miles high, is ſix or ſeven Miles in Circuit at the Baſe, and reported to have Vulcano's in its Bowels, diſgorging Flakes and Stones of Fire; Fayall was ſo called from Faya, the Beech tree, which grew in Plenty there; Flores, from the Abundance of Flowers which overſpread the Iſland; and Cuervo, from the vaſt Flocks of Crows or Ravens which were obſerved to breed therein.
*
This Rainbow, by the Light of the Moon, is the rather to be obſerved, becauſe Pliny, in his Natural Hiſtory, ſpeaking of Meteors, denies any Rainbow to be ſeen, but oppoſite to the Sun, and never in the Night-Seaſon; yet tells us, Ariſtotle reports, for a Rarity, that in his Time there was a Nocturnal Rainbow ſeen; but, withal, that it could only be at the Full of the Moon. Nevertheleſs, in theſe Parts, they are very ordinary, as well when the Moon is not at Full, as otherwiſe: for no longer than a Week after this Time, Ralegh and his Company obſerved another lunary Rainbow, as they rode at Anchor before Flores; and there could not be two full Moons in ſeven Days, which makes it probable theſe Iſlands were not known to the Greeks and Romans, or thoſe Meteors not ſufficiently obſerved by them
*
Among the reſt, there was one Captain William Morgan, a brave old Soldier, in this March; who, being reproved by our Author, Sir A. Gorges, for coming to the Field only in his Doublet and Hoſe, without either Armour or Target, anſwer'd, That his Fleſh was of Muſket Proof. Immediately after a Muſket Ball ſtruck him point-blank upon his Belly, and, with the Force of its own Blow, fell flat at his Feet, leaving only a black Spot or Bruiſe upon his Skin;—thanks to the Buckle that join'd his Girdle; deſerving to be repoſited among thoſe Trophies in the Temple of Mars, which Witneſs he wants not one Brother Soldier's impenetrable Suit of Mail, nor the ſeven-fold Shield of another, who can encounter his Enemy behind the Curtains only of a Pair of Proverbs, atteſting How little Armour will ſuffice, that is well-plac'd; and, How much Fortune favour the bold.
*
‘'In my Opinion (ſays Gorges) though that Anſwer much ſhewed his Valour; yet became it not the Place that my Lord held: For, in Truth, a General ought not to be ſo adventurous and careleſs of himſelf upon every ſlight Occaſion, nor to go unarmed to Places of imminent Peril. Homer deſcribes the valiant Heroes and brave Leaders of the Greeks, to be beſt armed; as Achilles, Ajax, &c.—Inſomuch that their very Arms are famous to theſe Days, the Uſe whereof we make now ſcornful. But they are no beaten Soldiers in the Wars who held theſe Opinions; for it is truly ſaid, That a great and wiſe General ſhould die old; and I have read, that Epaminondas was fined by his Countrymen the Tbebans, for being too forward and ſerving in a Battle unarmed, though he won the Victory.'’
*
Sir Walter Ralegh, in his Diſcourſe touching a War with Spain, and our Protection of the Netherlands, has diſcovered many other Diſadvantages in the Spaniſh Fleets of theſe Times, through this Medley of Shipping whereof they were compoſed; as the Diverſity of Conduct and Swiftneſs in them, whereby they could not either aſſail or defend in groſs as the Engliſh or Dutch could. Alſo the Confuſion among their Mariners, of ſo many different Countries, and conſequently Languages; ſo as not to underſtand Directions, and take them in general, or even miſtake them, to the Loſs of their Ship: Beſides, being of ſuch ſtrange Nations, unconcerned in the Quarrels they were forced into, they fought with their Hands, but not their Hearts; and deſired Liberty rather than Victory. See Ralegh's Three Diſcourſes, 8vo, 1702. p. 13, 14.
*
This Sounding of ours, ſo much in Practice, continues Sir Arthur Gorges, and yet, many Times, bringing no great Certainty, makes me call to mind an odd Conceit and Speech of a Spaniſh Priſoner, which the General gave me in this Journey. He was a Gentleman, a Soldier, and of late Years, traded to the Weſt-Indies: With whom I one Day talking and diſcourſing of their Voyages (wherein he was very well experienc'd) he told me that, in their Navigation from the Indies, they ſought out Spain in. a more certain and gallant Manner than we did England. For, ſaid he, ‘'We ſeek out our Coaſt aloft with our Eyes by the Heavens, by the Sun or Stars, and with the Uſe of Art and Inſtruments, which ſeldom or never fails: But you, ſaid he, that ſeek for England, when you are forced to run into narrow Seas, are forced, for your ſureſt Directions, like Men blindfold, to ſearch under the Water, and ſcrape with Lead and Tallow to the Bottom for Banks, Sands, and Shallows, as if you would rake Hell for Inſtructions, to find out the Channel, which you call the Sleeve; and yet, for all your Soundings, are oftentimes miſtaken.' I anſwer'd him; Indeed it was true, that our Humility taught us to go by the Ground; whereas their Pride led them to gaze above the Clouds, and thereby ſo dazzled their Eyes, that they often ſtumbled upon thoſe Men of War which now uſed as well to ſound the Spaniſh Pocket, as the Engliſh Sleeve.'’
*
‘'When any Weſtern Gentleman (ſays Mr. Carew) wants Money to ceſray his Expences at London, he reſorts to one o [...] the Tin Merchants to borrow ſome; but ſhall as ſoon wreſt the Club out of Hercules's Fiſt, as one Penny out of their Fingers, unleſs they give Bond for every 20 l. ſo taken in Loan, to deliver 1000 Pound Weight of Tin at the next Coinage, which ſhall be within two or three Months, or half a Year at fartheſt. At which Time the Price of every thouſand will not fail to be at leaſt 23, perhaps 25 Pounds; yea, and after Promiſe made, muſt be driven with ſome Indignity to make three or four Errands to his Houſe, before he ſhall get the Money deliver'd. Thus ſome one Merchant will have 500 Pounds out before-hand, reaping thereby a double Commodity, both of exceſſive Gain for his Loan, and of Aſſurance of being ſerv'd with Tin for his Money. This they ſay is no Uſury forſooth, becauſe the Price of Tin is not commonly known before hand (for once only, within theſe 12 Years, on purpoſe to eſcape the Penalty of the Law, they brought it a little under 20 l. the thouſand) but, if to take above fifty in in the hundred be Extremity, whatſoever Name you liſt to give it, this, in Truth, can be no other than Cut-throat, and abominable Dealing,'’ Survey of Cornwall, p. 14, b. 16.
*

To the Queen. ‘'From a Mind delighting in Sorrow, from Spirits waſted with Paſſion, from a Heart torn in Pieces with Care, Grief and Travel, from a Man that hateth himſelf and all Things elſe that keep him alive; what Service can your Majeſty expect, ſince any Service paſt deſerves no more than Baniſhment and Proſcription into the curſedſt of all [...]ſlands? It is your Rebels Pride and Succeſſion muſt give me Leave to ranſome myſelf out of this hateful Priſon, out of my loath'd Body; which, if it happen ſo, your Majeſty ſhall have no Cauſe to miſlike the Faſhion of my Death, ſince the Courſe of my Life could never pleaſe you.'’

Happy he, could finiſh forth his Fate,
In ſome unhaunted Deſart moſt obſcure
From all Society, from Love and Hate
Of worldly Folk, then ſhould he ſleep ſecure;
Then wake again, and yield God ever Praiſe:
Content with Hips and Haws and Brambleberry,
In Contemplation paſſing out his Days,
And Change of holy Thoughts to make him merry,
Who, when he dies, his Tomb may be a Buſh,
Where harmleſs Robin dwells with gentle Thruſh.
Your Majeſty's exiled Servant,
ROBERT ESSEX.
*
John Stow' [...] Annals, Edit, 1615. Fol. 79 [...]. This is that Sir Carew Ralegh who appears, in the Court-Rolls of Gillingham in [...] to have been one of the Stewards, his Brother Sir Walter Ralegh being the other of that Manor, in theſe Times belonging the Crown; as I have it from a Letter of ſome obliging Remarks upon the Family of the Raleghs, written by William Nicholas, Eſq; of Weſt-horſely in Suſſex. This muſt be alſo the ſame Sir Carew Ralegh, who had in 1616, for what Conſideration is not mention'd, 100 l. paid him from the Government, as I find in an Abſtract of the State of his Majeſty's Revenue, reprinted 8vo. 1692, p. 30. Likewiſe the ſame who ſold Widdycombe Ralegh to one of the Martyns, as is before obſerved; and the antient Patrimony of Fardel to Walter Heale, Eſq; of Brixton, as John Prince informs us in the Worthies of Devon, Fol. 402. Laſtly, the ſame Sir Carew Ralegh, who married Dorothy, Daughter of Sir William Wroughton, and Relict of Sir John Thynne, by whom he had Gilbert, Hier of Downton; and he, by Lucy, Daughter of Sir Gilly Wroughton, of Broadbinton in Wilts had ſeveral Children, as Gilbert, George, Walter, Katharine, Anne, &c. This I gather from a Pedigree of the Raleghs, in the Poſſeſſion of Brown Willis, Eſq; mention'd at the Beginning of this Work; wherein it farther appears, the ſaid Sir Carew, his Son, and Grand-Children, were all alive in 1623. And hence the Wiltſhire Raleghs have flouriſh'd to theſe latter Times.
‘'Whereas certain French Writers have mention'd, ſays Camden, that the Queen ſhewed to Biron the Earl of Eſſex's Skull in her Cloſet, or according to others ſixer upon a Pole; it muſt needs be a Story as ridiculous as falſe; ſince that was interr'd with his Body.'’ Annal Eliz. 1601.
*
Of whom, none more remarkable than Serjeant Heale who marvelled much the Houſe ſhould demur upon granting this Subſidy, or in the Time of Payment; ‘'When all we have, ſaid he, is her Majeſty's; and ſhe may lawfully, at Pleaſure, take it from us: Yea, ſhe has as much Right to all our Lands an Goods, as to any Revenue of her Crown.'’ At which the Houſe hummed and laughed. ‘'Well, all your Humming, ſaid the Serjeant, ſhan't put me out of Countenance.'’ So to mend the Matter, he told them, ‘'he could prove his former Poſition in the Time of King Henry III. King John, King Stephen, &c.'’ At this, the Houſe was lou [...]er than before, 'till they hummed the Serjeant into his Seat; but he was afterwards more particularly expoſed for theſe ſlaviſh Principles.
*
Sir Walter, ſpeaking of a Parliament in the Reign of King Richard II. wherein a Subſidy was given only by the better Sort, and the Commons ſpared, ſays (in the Perſon of a Juſtice of Peace) ‘'I myſelf once moved it in Parliament, in the Time of Queen Elizabeth, who deſired much to ſpare the common People, and I did it by her Commandment: but, when we caſt up the Subſidy-books, we found the Sum but ſmall, wheu the 30 Pound Men (perhaps the Cypher is added by Miſtake) were left out.'’ See Ralegh's Prerogative of Parliaments.
*
Sir Walter Ralegh has alſo written upon this Subject in two or three Places. In his Diſcourſe, touching a War with Spain, and the protecting of the Netherlands, written not long after he made the afore [...]aid Speech, having told King James how he remembered, that within theſe 30 Years, two of her Majeſty's Ships would have commanded 100 Sail of theirs; and that when he w s a Captain in Ireland, 100 Foot and 100 Horſe would have beaten all the Force of the ſtrongeſt Provinces: He adds, ‘'but of late I have known an Eaſterling fight, Hand to H nd, with one of her Majeſty's Ships; and [...] have in this laſt War, overthrown with even or far leſs Number. The Netherlands (continues he) in thoſe Days, had wooden Guns, and the Iriſh had Dar [...]; but the one is now furniſhed with as great a Number of Engliſh Ordnance as ourſelves, and the other with as good pikes and Muſkets as England hath.'’ See Ralegh's three Diſcourſes, 8vo. 1702, p. 16. In another Diſcourſe he afterwards writ, touching a Marriage between Prince Henry of England, and a Daughter of Savoy, ſpeaking of the Netherlands, he has theſe Words; ‘'Whereas, in my Time, I have known one of her Majeſty's Ships command 40 of theirs to ſtrike Sail; they will now undertake us one to one, and not give us a good Morrow: They maſter us both in their Number and in their Mariners; and they have our own Ordnance to break our own Bones withal. We had Reaſon to help them; but not to help them up to that Height, as to make them able to tread upon our own Heads.'’ Thus in the old MS. of that Diſcourſe, communicated by the noble Earl of Oxford. Laſtly, in another Diſcourſe Sir Walter Ralegh wrote after this, I mean that on the Invention of Shipping, he has more copiouſly argued upon this Head. Theſe Arguments I ſhall here alſo annex, both as what will exemplify the Conſtancy of his Judgment, and prove the Genuineſs of theſe Diſcourſes; though two of them are poſthumous Publications, and the other was never publiſhed. "There is no State, ſays he, grown in Haſte, but that of the United Provinces, eſpecially in their Sea-Forces; and by a contrary Way to that of France, or Spain; the latter by Invaſion, the former by Oppreſſion. For I myſelf may remember, when one Ship of her Majeſty's would have made 40 Hollanders ſtrike Sail, and to come to Anchor; they did not then diſpuce de mari [...]be [...]o; but readily acknowledged the Engliſh to be Domini Maris Britannici." And a little further: "But whence comes this Diſpute? Not from the Encreaſe of Numbers, not becauſe our Neighbours breed more Mariners than we do, nor from the Greatneſs of their Trade in all Parts of the World; for the French creep into all Corners of America as they do, and the Spaniards and Portugueſe employ more Ships by many (fiſhing Trades excepted) than the Netherlands: But it comes from the deteſtable Covetouſneſs of ſuch particular Perſons as have gotten Licences, and given Way to the tranſporting of Engliſh Ordnance Fuit haec ſapientia quondam, publica privatis ſecernere, ſacra profanis; and that in ſo great Abundance, that not only our good Friends, the Hollanders and Zealanders, have furniſhed themſelves, and have them lying on their Wharfs to ſell to others; but all other Nations have had from us, not only to furniſh their Fleets, but to garniſh all their Forts and other Places, fertifying their Coaſts; without which, the Spaniſh King durſt not have diſmounted ſo many Pieces of Braſs in Naples, and elſewhere, to arm his great Fleet in 1588. But it was directly proved in the Lower-houſe of Parliament, Anno—of Queen Elizabeth, that there were landed in Naples above 140 Culverins Engliſh; ſince which Time, and not long ſince, it is lamentable that ſo many have been tranſported into Spain. But thoſe belike who then determin'd it, and the Tranſporters, have now forſaken the Country; and tho' the Procurers remain, I am reſolved they alſo have forſaken the Care of his Majeſty's Eſtate, and the Honour of this Nation. I urge not this Point, as thinking it unfit to furniſh his Majeſty's good Friends and Allies, who have had with us one common Enemy for many Years. But all politick States have well obſerved this Precept, Ut [...]ic tractarent amicum, tanqnam inimicum futurum; for, what are all the Ships in the World to be valued at, other than a Company of floating Tubs, were they not furniſh'd with Ordnance, either to offend others, or defend themſelves? If a Ship of 1000 Tons had in her 1000 Muſketeers, and never a great Gun; with one Crumſter, carrying 10 or 13 Culverins, ſhe may be beaten to Pieces, and her Men ſlaughtered. Certainly the Advantage, which the Engliſh had by their Bows and Arrows in former Times, was never ſo great as we might now have had by our Iron Ordnance, if we had either kept it within the Land, kept it from our Enemies, or imparted it to our Friends moderately: For, as by the former, we obtained many notable Victories, and made ourſelves Maſters of many Parts of France; ſo by the latter, we might have commanded the Seas, and thereby the Trade of the World itſelf. But we have now, to our future Prejudice, and how far to our Prejudice I know not, forged Hammers, and delivered them out of our Hands to break our own Bones withal." See judicious and ſelect Eſſays by Sir Walter Ralegh. 8vo. 1650, p. 27, 32, &c.
*
'Tis in the Poſſeſſion of Captain William Elwes, Nephew of the Lacy Elwes, Grand Daughter of Sir Walter Ralegh; and to that Gentleman we are oblig'd for the Liberty of bringing the ſame into Pr nt.
Among the Collections of his Grace the Duke of Dorſet at Knowle in Kent.
*
This Picture of Sir Walter and his Son, did belong to the Carews of Beddington, whence, by Marriage with a Daughter of the late Sir Stephen Leonard. Baronet, it was removed to Weſt-Wickham in Kent; near which Place, at a Gentleman's Seat, where there is a Copy that was taken from it, I lately ſaw it.
*
As Lord Hay and others in King James's Reign, but above all the Duke of Buckingham, with whom it was common, at an ordinary Dancing, to have his Cloaths trimmed with great Diamond Buttons, and to have Diamond Hatbands, Cockades and Ear rings; to be yoked with great and manifol [...] Ropes and Knots of Pearl; in ſhort, to be manacled, fettered and impriſoned in Jewels; inſomuch, that, "at his going over to Paris in 1625, he had 27 Suits of Cloaths made, the richeſt that Embroidery, Lace, Silk, Velvet, Silver, Gold and Gems could contribute: one of which was a white uncut Velvet, ſet all over, both Suit and Cloak, with Diamonds, valued at Fourſcore thouſand Pounds, beſides a great Feather ſtuck all over with Diamonds; as were alſo his Sword, Girdle, Hatband, and Spurs.' This from a MS. in the Harleyan Library. B H. 90. C. 7. fol. 642.
Of theſe two Sculptures or Prints of Sir Walter Ralegh, the firſt is an extraordinary Rarity; inſomuch, that many Virtuoſi and Antiquaries, who have ſearched after, and collected the graved Heads of eminent Perſons, for many Years together, have not ſo much as ever heard of it: The Felicity and the Favour are therefore the greater, that I have been oblig'd with the Sight of it by General Dormer, who has procur'd a freſh and fair Impreſſion of it from France into his choice and coſtly Collections; for it is a French Piece, in the Octavo Size, and graved by Thomas Leau, an Artiſt, who was encouraged by ſome of our Nobility in theſe Times for the Excellence of his Hand. It repreſents him in a cloſe-bodied ſilk Coat, laced; agrees pretty well in the Features with thoſe before deſcrib'd, eſpecially the high Forehead and cornering up of the Hair above the Right Temple. It has a Compartment or Group at the Bottom, diſplaying his Victory over the Fleet in the Bay of Cadiz; yet, in the large Latin Inſcription, expreſſing his Titles and Offices of Command, there is Mention made of his Government of Jerſey: So I conclude it was graved between his Preferment thereto, and the Queen's Death. The other Print of him, is that which we ſee prefix'd to moſt of the Editions of his Hiſtory of the World, whether to the firſt Edition I am not yet certain, the oldeſt that I have ſeen being among the Heads, annexed to Henry Holland's Baſilogia, was graved by Simon Paſs in the Year 1617, repreſenting him in a cloſe-bodied Suit, thickly laced; a full laced Ruff and Truncheon in his Hand: Alſo when he was more aged and corpulent, than we ſee him in any of thoſe before mention'd. By the viſible Eraſement of a long Inſcription that was at the Bottom, for the Subſtitution of that which is more brief, the Plate ſhould ſeem to have been graved before that Year; but by the Truncheon in his Hand, not till he had his Command as General for his laſt Expedition; yet, being probably taken from ſome anthentic Painting, it lay moſt ready to be copied, when any Print was wanting for his leſſer Works. This is all I ſhall here obſerve upon the Pictures of Sir Walter Ralegh; and, for much of this, we are obliged to the Knowledge and Induſtry of the ingenious Mr. Vertue.
*
‘'That her Majeſty, in her Advancement of her Men of War, ſays Sir Walter Ralegh, did ſooner believe other Men, than herſelf; a Diſeaſe unto which many wiſe Princes beſides herſelf have been ſubject: I ſay, that ſuch a Confidence, altho' it may [...]eem altogether to excuſe her noble Nature, yet can it not, but in ſome ſort, accuſe her of Weakneſs, And exceeding ſtrange it were, were not the Cauſe manifeſt enough, that where the proſperous Actions are ſo exceedingly priz'd the Actors are ſo unproſperous and neglected. The Cauſe, I ſay, which hath wrought one and the ſame Effect in all Times and among all Nations, is this; that thoſe, who are neareſt the Perſon of Princes (which martial Men ſeldom are) can, with no good Grace, commend, or at leaſt magnify, a Profeſſion far more noble than their own; ſeeing therein, they ſhould only remind their Maſters of the Wrong they did unto others, in giving leſs Honour and Reward to Men of far greater Deſerving, and far greater Uſe, than themſelves.'’ Hiſtory of the World, lib. 5. cap. 6. ſect. 2.
*
See an Extract of the ſaid Memoirs, in the Life of the late Earl of Orrery, by Euſtace Budgell, Eſq; 8vo. 1732, p. 13, 18, 19. But, it ſeems, the ſaid Earl of Cork was afterwards ſadly plunder'd of his great Eſtate; for at the breaking out of the Civil Wars, he wrote theſe Words in a letter to another Nobleman ‘"Thus your Lordſhip ſees in what miſerable Condition we are fighting Night and Day to preſerve ourſelves and our Caſtles; for all we had without Doors is loſt, and poor I, that, beſides my Houſe, Demeſne, Parks, Iron-works, Fiſhings, and other Commodities, had a Revenue of fifty Pounds per diem, cannot now truly ſay, that I have fifty Pounds per Ann. in certain Revenue."’ Thus in the Earl of Cork's Letter to the Lord Newbourgh, Chancellor of the Exchequer in Ireland. MS. in the Harleyan Library, B. H. 90. C. 7. ſol. 706.
*
This curious and copious Digreſſion againſt Duels, which that Author alludes to, is in Sir Walter Ralegh's Hiſtory of the World, lib. V. cap. III. S. XVII. ſect. 2. Sir Walter has alſo, in his Inſtructions to his Son, written a Chapter againſt Private Quarrels; in which he no leſs wiſely, than bravely ſays ‘'Thou ſhalt be in as much Danger in contending with a Brawler in a private Quarrel, as in a Battle, wherein thou may'ſt get Honour to thyſelf, and Safety to thy Prince and Country; but, if thou be once engaged, carry thyſelf bravely, that they may fear thee after.' And a little further I would not have thee, for any reſpect, lofe thy Reputation, or endure publick Diſgrace; for better it were not to live, than to live a Coward, if the Offence proceed not from thyſelf; if it does, it ſhall be better to compound it upon good Terms, than to hazard thyſelf; for if thou overcome, thou art under the Cruelty of the Law; if thou art overcome, thou art dead or diſhonoured, &c.'’
Sir Robert Baſſet, by his Grandmother, deſcended from the Plantagenets, and of the Blood Royal, in the Beginning of King James's Reign, made ſome Pretenſions to the Crown of England; but, not being able to make them good, was forced to fly into France to ſave his Head; to compound for which, together with his generous Way of Living, he greatly exhauſted his Eſtate, ſelling off no leſs than 30 Manors of Land; tho' there is now a fair Eſtate belonging to the Heir of the Family. Prince's Worthies of Devon, fol. 114. See alſo Wood's Ath. Oxon. vol. I. col. 366.
*
Sir Richard Baker's Chronicle. Alſo Sir John Hawles, in his Reply to the Magiſtracy and Government of England, vindicated, &c. Fol. 1689. more expreſly ſays, "Cobham and Ralegh were not permitted to come at the King, upon his Journey into England, and had Word ſent them, they might ſpare their Labour." But Stow ſays, when the King came towards York, his. Train increaſed by ſuch Numbers of Gentleman from the South, as made Proviſions ſo dear, that he was fain to publiſh an Inhibit on againſt the inordinate Acceſs: So that many were ſtopp'd in their Way. Thus perhaps the Countermand might not be particular of any Perſon; however ſome, as we ſee, apply it to Ralegh, as others have alſo done to Cobham; affirming, the King check'd him for his Abſence from his Charge at that dangerous Time, being then Lord-Warden of the Cinque-Ports.
*
Ralegh lays down five Reaſons for the King of Spain's making this Peace with England and the Netherlands: "As firſt, his having ſo exhauſted his Treaſure, that he was no longer able to maintain the Archduke's Army. Secondly, the great Interruption of his Trade, and Loſſes of his Merchants, to the breaking of both his Banks at Seville. Thirdly, his Fear that the Engliſh and Netherlanders would plant in the Weſt-Indies. Fourthly, to recruit his Coffers, and enable himſelf to break into War again. Fifthly, that the Engliſh may decline, and forget the Paſſages and Pilctage to the Weſt-Indies, and their Sea-Officers may be worn out; for, except a little Trade for Tobacco, there is not a Ship that ſails that Way: And ſeeing the Spaniards, may hang up the Engliſh or put them to Death by Torments, as they do; and that the Engliſh dare not offend the Spaniards in thoſe Parts, a moſt notable Advantage gotten in the Concluſion of the Peace! it is certain, that the Engliſh will give over that Navigation to the infinite Advantage of the Spaniſh King both preſent and future. For theſe Cauſes of Importance it was, that the Catholic King ſought the Peace of England and the Netherlands; and ſo much all Men of Judgment diſcern." See theſe Reaſons more at large in Sir Walter Ralegh's Dialogue between a Jeſuit and a Recuſan [...], among the genuine Remains, publiſh'd at the End oſ an Abridgment of his Hiſtory of the World, by Philip Ralegh, Eſq; 8vo. 1700.
*
In a curious Diſcourſe, where he Learnedly and Religiouſly reconciles Fortune with Reaſon and Providence, Ralegh has theſe Words. "But may it be objected, that, if Fortune and Chance were not ſometimes the Cauſes of Good and Evil in Men, but an idle Voice whereby we expreſs Succeſs, how comes it then, that ſo many worthy and wiſe Men depend upon ſo many unworthy and empty-headed Fools? That Riches and Honour are given to external Men, and without Kernel; and ſo many Learned, Virtuous and Valiant Men, wear out their Lives in poor and dejected Eſtates? In a Word, there is no other inferior or apparent Cauſe, beſides the Partiality of Men's Affection, but the Faſhioning and not Faſhioning ourſelves according to the Nature of the Times wherein we live. For whoſoever is moſt able, and beſt ſufficient to diſcern, and has withal an honeſt and open Heart, and loving Truth; if Princes, or thoſe who Govern, endure no other Diſcourſe than their own Flatteries; then, I ſay, ſuch a one, whoſe Virtue and Courage forbids him to be baſe, and a Diſſembler, ſhall evermore hang under the Wheel; which kind of deſerving well, and receiving ill, we always falſely charge Fortune withal: For whoſoever ſhall tell any Great Man, or Magiſtrate, that he is not Juſt; the General of an Army, that he is not Valiant; and great Ladies, that they are not Fair; ſhall never be made a Counſellor, a Captain, or a Courtier. Neither is it ſufficient to be Wiſe with a Wiſe Prince, Valiant with a Valiant, and Juſt with him that is Juſt, for ſuch a one has no Eſtate in his Proſperity; but he muſt alſo change with the Succeſſor, if he be of contrary Qualities; ſail with the Tide of the Time, and alter Form and Condition, as the State or States-maſter changes: Otherwiſe, how were it poſſible that the moſt baſe Men, and ſeparate from all imitable Qualities, could ſo often attain to Honour and Riches, but by ſuch an obſervant ſlaviſh Courſe?" A little further, having quoted out of Menander, "That every Fool is won with his own Pride, and the flattering Applauſe of others; he infers, That whoſoever will live altogether out of himſelf, ſtudy other Men's Humours, and obſerve them, ſhall never be Unfortunate. On the contrary, that Man, who prizes Truth and Virtue, except the Seaſon wherein he lives be of theſe, and all Sorts of Goodneſs, Fruitful, ſhall never proſper by the Poſſeſſion or Profeſſion thereof." So, after other learned Authorities and proper Examples, concludes with the following ingenious Alluſions, "Whoſoever therefore will ſet before him Machiavel's two Marks to ſhoot at, Riches and Glory, muſt ſet on and take off, a back of Iron to a weak Wooden Bow, that he may fit both the Strong and the Feeble. For as he, who firſt deviſed to add Sails to rowing Veſſels, did either ſo proportion them, as being faſtened aloft, and towards the Head of his Maſt, he might abide all Winds and Storms, or elſe he ſome Time or other periſh'd by his own Invention: So that Man, who prizes Virtue for itſelf, and cannot endure to hoiſt and ſtrike Sail, as the divers Natures of Calms and Storms require, muſt cut his Sails and his Cloth of mean Length and Breadth, and content himſelf with a ſlow and ſure Navigation; to wit, a mean and free Eſtate." Sir Walter Ralegh's Hiſtory of the World, lib. I. cap. 1. ſect. 15.
*
Sir John Hawles, Sollicitor General to the late King William, in his Reply to a Sheet of Paper, entitled, The Magiſtracy and Government of England, vindicated; Printed in Fol. 1689. having obſerved, that the Accuſations of Sir Walter Ralegh did not amount to a legal Proof; ſays further, p. 35, as follows. "Not to mention all that might be excepted to in the Trial of the Caſe cited; I would know, by what Law is the Depoſition of a Perſon, who might be brought Face to Face to the Priſoner, read as Evidence? I would know, by what Law it is forbidden, that the Accuſer ſhould be brought Face to Face to the Accuſed? I would know, by what Law Brook's Depoſition of what the Lord Cobham told him of Ralegh, was Evidence againſt Ralegh? I would know, by what Law the Story Dyer told of what an unknown Man ſaid to him at Liſbon of Don Ralegh, was Evidence againſt Ralegh? I would know, by what Statute, the Statutes of the 25th of Edward III. and the 5th of Edward VI. are repeal'd? This Trial was ſo very irregular throughout, that I would willingly believe it was not ſo as it is related; but, if it were ſo, I am ſure none can defend it: And even for that Reaſon, if any ſuch Reſolution was in the Caſe, as is cited, I am ſure it ought to carry no Credit with it: And there is no Reaſon to believe there was any ſuch Reſolution; there being no Occaſion for it; the Queſtion being only Fact, which Sir Walter deny'd. The Circumſtances of his Trial, in which the Court always over-ruled the Priſoner, were ſomewhat like the Lord Ruſſel's; he complained of the ill Uſage of the King's Counſel, as well as the Lord Ruſſel; and both had Reaſon ſo to do. Hearſay was admitted to be given in Evidence againſt both; all that either of them ſaid for themſelves, tho' very material, was ſlighted. The one was put in Mind, at his Trial, of the Death of the Earl of Eſſex; as the other was, of the Death of the Viſcount Stafford; both in their dying Speeches, vindicated themſelves of thoſe Aſperſions. The principal Witneſſes, in both Caſes, had before the Trials, aſfirm'd, they knew nothing againſt them: They were both accuſed with having heard what other Perſons had ſaid in their Company, and had not diſcover'd it; they both gave the ſame Anſwer, that they could not help other Men's talk. I think it is plain, at this Day, that of Sir Walter Ralegh is thought a Sham-plot; What the Lord Ruſſel's is thought, let the author ſay."
*
As the King's Counſel, in Ralegh's Trial, uſed Arguments, grounded on Preſumptions, to prove him Guilty; ſo did he there alſo uſe others to clear himſelf, grounded on theſe of his great Expences againſt the Spaniards, and his having always been ſuch a noted Enemy to their Faction. But the Sum of 40,000 l. in this Letter above, is only call'd ſo many Crowns in the ſaid common Trial.
*
James Wadſworth, in his Engliſh Spaniſh Pilgrim, 4to, 1630, p. 66, ſpeaking of the State and Demeanor of the Engliſh Fugitives under the King of Spain's Dominions, ſays, "This Sir Griffin Markham, at his firſt arrival in Bruxels, being kept under by the Jeſuits, was driven to ſuch an Exigency, that he was conſtrained to pluck out the inlaid Silver of the Hilts of his Sword, to buy Flour to make a Haſty-pudding for his Dinner; but he afterwards (ſays the ſame Author) took the beſt way to raiſe his Fortunes; having got into Favour with the Duke of Nubu [...]ge, who gives him the ſureſt Penſion of all."
96
* The Lord Cecyll, who was created Earl of Saliſbury in 160 [...], and Lord Treaſurer, upon the Death of Buckhurſt, Earl of Dorſet, in 1608, did very much engroſs the Revenues of the Crown, as Ralegh made appear to the King himſelf, in an excellent Dialogue he dedicated to his Majeſty; where, among the Particulars, of Cecyll's neglecting an Increaſe of 40,000 [...]. to the King's Eſtate, the conferring a 10,000 l. Fine upon Devonſhire and his Miſtreſs, the engroſſing to himſelf many goodly Manors, and the Exchange of Theobald's for Hatfield, which the greateſt Subject or Favourite Queen Elizabeth had, never durſt have named to her; he farther inſtances, that, 'It had been an honeſt Service to the King, to have alſo added 7000 l. Lands of the Lord Cobham's, with his Woods and Goods worth 30,000 l. more. For thoſe Lands, remaining with George Brook's Children but during their Lives, had been the King's for ever in Effect; but to wreſt them from the King, and draw the Inheritance upon himſelf, the Treaſurer perſuaded his Majeſty to relinquiſh his Intereſt for a petty Sum of Money; and, that there might be no Counter-working, he ſent Brook ſix thouſand Pounds to make Friends; whereof Lord Hume had two thouſand Pounds back again, Buckhurſt and Berwick had the other four thouſand Pounds, and the Treaſurer and his Heirs the Maſs of Land for ever." What then came to the King by this confiſcation? (ſays one of the Correſpondents in the ſaid Dialogue.) "His Majeſty (anſwers t'other) by all thoſe goodly Poſſeſſions, Woods and Goods, loſes five hundred Pounds a Year, which he gives in Penſion to Cobham to maintain him in Priſon." See Sir Walter Ralegh's Prerogative of Parliaments in his Remains (laſt Edit.) p. 249, &c.
*
The Author of Aulicus Coquinariae thinks, he ſufficiently anſwers this Paſſage; where he ſays, p. 97, ‘'The Queen was never cur'd of her Diſeaſe, but by Death, that ends all Maladies.'’ Now the Diſeaſe, which this Queen Anne died of, was a Dropſy, but not till after Sir Walter Ralegh's Death, and above fifteen Years after this his Impriſonment; whereas the Diſeaſe, from which Ralegh recover'd her, was a Fever, as Dr. Welwood informs us in his Notes on Wilſon's Hiſtory of King James. In the ſame Place, he ſays, it was ſome Time before the Illneſs of Prince Henry; and Camden, in his Annals of King James, telling us, when Sir Julius Caeſar was made a Privycounſellor, we may conclude this Cure was perform'd between the Years 1607 and 1612.
*
An Author has attempted to diſprove this Particular thus: ‘'How could Wade tamper with Cobham to write his Name to a Blank, to which Wade framed the Accuſation againſt Ralegh; when it appears, Cobham never ſigned at all to his Examinations?'’ Aulic. Coquin. p. 190. But it is plain this Trick of Wade's, if ſuch he committed, could not be meant of Cobham's Examinations, for they were taken at Richmond and at London; but the Queſtion here put was, Whether Cobham had not, under his Hand, accuſed Sir Walter Ralegh at Wincheſter? which could relate only to this Letter of Accuſation before quoted, which was ſubſcribed with Cobham's Name, and pretended to be written by him the Night before Ralegh's Trial there.
He tells us, that "as Lord Grey died pitied, Cobham died ſcorn'd, and his Death as baſe; for he died louſy for Want of Apparel and Linnen; and had ſtarved, had not a Trencherſcraper, ſome Time his Servant in Court, relieved him with Scraps, in whoſe Houſe he died, being ſo poor a Houſe, as he was forced to creep up a Ladder into a little Hole to his Chamber; which was a ſtrange Judgment, and unprecedented, for a Man of ſeven thouſand Pounds per Annum, and of a perſonal Eſtate of thirty thouſand Pounds; of all which the King was ſo cheated (or of what ſhould have eſcheated to him) that he could not give him any Maintenance, as in all Caſes the King does, unleſs out of his own Revenue of the Crown; which was the Occaſion of this Lord's Want (his Wife being very rich, and would not give him the Crumbs that fell from her Table) and this was a juſt Judgment of God on him." Thus Weldon, p. 37, &c. Oſborne alſo, much to the ſame Senſe, tells us, from the Authority of William Earl of Pembroke, that Cobham died in a Room aſcended by a Ladder, at a poor Woman's Houſe in the Minories, formerly his Laundreſs, rather of Hunger, than of any more natural Diſeaſe. Thus miſerable was his Fate, in meeting with a Prince ſo inconſiderately profuſe to Strangers, that he forgot the Owner, not leaving him wherewithal to buy Bread: An Impiety not found among Infidels, who ever deemed it leſs Injuſtice to take away Life, than the means to maintain it.
*
For the ſaid William Sanderſon the Elder, who was much engaged among the Merchant-Adventurers in Queen Elizabeth's Reign, and one of her Commiſſioners for the Spaniſh Prize-Goods; alſo of Note for the great Globes, which, by his Encouragement, were brought to Perfection, married, about the Year 1571, Margaret Snedale or Snowdale, the Daughter of Sir Walter Ralegh's Siſter Mary, by her Huſband Hugh Snedale, a Commander in the Queen's royal Navy.
*
Dr. Welwood in his Notes on Wilſon's Hiſtory of King James, ſays, nothing could inhance the Value of it more than "a moſt wretched one publiſhed by one William Sanderſon; who pretends, in ſeveral Places, to ſome ſecret Memoirs or Diſcourſes with great Men, to make good the Paſſages of his Hiſtory. But the Truth is, the whole is nothing elſe but an ill-compil'd Collection out of other Authors; wherein he, for the moſt Part, miſtakes or perverts their Meaning. In curſorily reading over this Hiſtory. I have ſometimes taken Notice of above four or five groſs Errors, either in Names, Things or Chronology, in one ſingle Page,"
*
His Words are: 'It may be affirmed, the Number of thoſe that have been ſlaughtered by their Fellow-creatures, exceed the Number of all the Inhabitants that ever were at one Time living upon the Face of the Earth; yet very few of this infinite Number, thus untimely Slain, were ever Maſters of the Grounds of the Diſputes for which they ſuffered, or the true Reaſon of their being led to the Battle; the Truth, with much Artifice, being kept from all, but what were Parties to the Deſign reſolved on. What deluded Wretches then have a great part of Mankind been, who have either yielded themſelves to be ſlain in Cauſes, which, if truly known, their Hearts would abhor, or been the bloody Executioners of other Men's Ambition! It is a hard Fate to be ſlain for what a Man ſhould never willingly Fight; yet few Soldiers have laid themſelves down in the Bed of Honour under better Circumſtances.' Ralegh's Three Diſcourſes p. 110.
*
It is as follows: 'They ſay, that the goodlieſt Cedars, which grow on the high Mountains of Libanus, thruſt their Roots between the Clifts of hard Rocks, the better to bear themſelves againſt the ſtrong Storms that blow there. As Nature has inſtructed thoſe Kings of Trees, ſo has Reaſon taught the Kings of Men to root themſelves in the hardy Hearts of their faithful Subjects. And, as thoſe Kings of Trees have large Tops, ſo have the Kings of Men large Crowns; whereof, as the firſt would ſoon be broken from their Bodies, were they not underborne by many Branches; ſo would the other eaſily [...]otter, were they not faſten'd on their Heads with the ſtrong Chains of Civil Juſtice and Martial Diſcipline.' Ralegh's main, (laſt Edit.) p. 116.
*
This Marriage was celebrated on the 14th of February 1612, in ſuch Pomp and Splendor, that the Jewels only, which were worn by the King, Queen and Prince, were valued that Day, by his Majeſty himſelf (upon Occaſion of Diſcourſe happening of the Bravery then appearing) at 900,000 l. Sterling. Sir John Finet's Obſervations touching Foreign Ambaſſadors, 8vo. 1656. p. 11.
*
Inſomuch, that there has been a diſtinct Volume, written upon this Cordial; whereby I find it is not to be taken for that which is called Sir Walter Ralegh's Cordial, in a Book entitled, as I remember, The Lady's Cloſet open'd; for that is only a ſimple Strawberry-Water. But this here meant, was his Great Cordial, as I find Ralegh in one of his Manuſcripts, has ſtyl'd it himſelf. This Cordial roſe into ſuch high Repute, for its ſovereign Virtues, in the Reign of King Charles II, and was ſo much recommended to and admired by him, that he commanded Nicholas e Febvre, the Royal Profeſſor in Chymiſtry, and Apothecary in Ordinary to his Majeſty's Houſhold, to prepare a Quantity of this precious Remedy after the exacteſt Manner, which the ſaid Chymiſt not only did, but compoſed in French alſo, under his Majeſty's Auſpices and Command, a Treatiſe entitled, Diſcours ſur le Grand Cordial de Sir Walter Ralegh, which he dedicated to the ſaid King: And this was at the ſame time Tranſlated into Engliſh by Peter B [...]lon, Student in Chymiſtry. For there were both Licenſed on the 23d of April 1664; tho' the Tranſlation appears to have been Printed firſt, becauſe it is dated that Year; and the Original the Year after: The French is in 120. the Engliſh in 8vo. After the Dedication, follows this Introduction of the Recipe:—Eximium Cordiale Regium multis rebus neceſſariis auctum, ſecundum conſilium & approbationem illuſtriſſimorum virorum, D. D. Kenelmi Digby, Equitis Aurat, & ſereniſſimae Reginae matris Cancellarii, & D. D. Alex. Fraiſer, Equitis Aurati, & ſereniſſimi ac potentiſſimi Regis Caroli Secundi, &c. Archiatrorum Comitis. Next follows the Receipt in theſe Words:—‘'Recipe Raſurae Cornu Cervi, libram unam; Carnis Viperarum cum Cordibus & Hepatibus, uncias ſex; Florum Bor [...]ginis, Bug oſſae, Roris Marini, Calendulae, Vetonicae, Coronariae rubrae, Roris ſolis, Roſarum rubrarum, & Sambuci, ſingulorum libram ſemiſſem; Herbarum Scordii, Cardui Benedicti, Meliſſae, Dictamni Cretici, Menthae, Majoranae, Betonicae, ſingularum manipulos duodecim; Granorum Kermes recenter in rob redactorum, Cubebarum, Cardamomi majoris, Baccarum Juniperi, Maceris, Nucis Myriſticae, Caryophyllorum, Croci, ſingulorum uncias duas; Cinnamomi acutiſſimi, Corticis ligni Saſſafras, flavedinis malorum Citriorum & Aurantiorum, ſingulorum uncias tres: Lignorum Aloes & Saſſafras uniuſcujuſque uncias ſex; Radicum Angelicae, Valerianae, Carlinae, Fraxinellae ſeu Dictamni albi, Serpentariae Virginianae, Zedoariae, Tormentillae, Biſtortae, Ariſtolochiae longae, rotundae &. avae, Gentianae & Imperatoriae, ſingulorum unciam unam & ſemiſſem. Omnia inciſa & groſſo modo contuſa in vaſe idoneo poſita cum ſpiritu vini rectificato extrahantur ſecundum Artem. Tincturae filtratae in extractum mediante, in Mariae balneo, diſtillatione evaporentur. Magna expreſſum comburatur; cineres reverberati per aquam elixivientur, unde ſal purum lege Artis paretur, quod extracto miſceatur. His ita peractis, huic extracto adde, ut Artis eſt, Pulverem ſequentem caeteraque ingredientia. Recipe Lapidum Bezoardicorum Orientalium & Occidentalium verorum uniuſcujuſque unciam ſemiſſem, Magiſterii ſolubilis Perlarum Orientalium uncias duas, Magiſterii ſolubilis Corellorum rubrorum uncias tres; Boli Orientalis, Terrae ſigillatae verae, Unicornu Mineralis, Cornu Cervi Philoſophicè praeparati, & Cornu Cervi calcinati, ſingulorum unciam unam; Ambraegriſeae electiſſimae in Eſſentiam reductae, unciam unam; Moſchi Orientalis optimi eſſentificati drachmam unam & ſemiſſem; Croci ſolis cum tinctura Antimonii Baſilii Valentini parati drachmas duas. Sacchari candiſati albi ſubtiliſſime pulveriſati, libras duas. Ex his omnibus mixtis & ex arte unitis fiat Confectio vere Regia, quae ad uſum reſervetur in pixidibus apprime clauſis.'’ Then the Author aforeſaid begins his Diſcourſe with Examples among the Antients of thoſe who have made themſelves Famous by their Remedies, as Mithridates, &c. and among the Moderns, Matheolus, B. Valentine, Paracelſus, and others; but finds none more worthy, in this particular, than Sir Walter Ralegh, becauſe he has not only ſelected moſt judiciouſly whatever is moſt Choice and Soveraign in the Animal, Vegetable, and Mineral World; but has alſo manifeſted ſo much Art and Experience in the Preparation of this Great and Admirable Cordial, as will, of itſelf, render him Immortal: Wherefore he ſays, he could not reſtrain the Applauſes owing to his Honour and Glory, which he has more than merited by that noble Labour and profound Study, that acquired him the ſublime Knowledge he had in the Virtues and Qualities of all thoſe Ingredients, which unite to the Compoſition of this incomparable Remedy. So he proceeds to explain, firſt the Virtues of every individual Drug, which, together, cauſe thoſe rare Effects this Cordial daily produces (ſays he) as well towards the Healthful as the Sick. Secondly, He ſpecifies how Art helps Nature in the harmonious and exquiſite Method of the Preparation. Thirdly, Diſtinguiſhes the Efficacy of it in Maritime or Iſlandic and Northerly Countries. Laſtly, What a Preſervative it is, as well as Reſtorative; and concludes with the Expoſition of the Doſe, the Quantity, Time and Method of uſing it. Thus much concerning this Diſcourſe on Sir Walter Ralegh's great Cordial, of which the following Particulars may be here farther obſerved: That the Author le Febvre acknowledging, he had inſerted two Ingredients, by the Counſel and Approbation of the aboveſaid Sir Kenelm Digby and Sir Alexander Fraiſer, which were not mentioned in the firſt Preſcription, and which I have marked before in a different Character, being the Fleſh, H [...]a [...]t and Liver of Vipers, and the mineral Unicorn which ſome would have to be the white Loadſtone; it may induce the Curious to enquire whether more Liberties have not been taken with Sir Walter Ralegh's own genuine Recipe. To this end, ſhould be conſulted the Engliſh Copy thereof in Sir Kenelm Digby's Collection of Receipts printed a few Years after le Febvre's Book. Alſo Sir Walter Ralegh's Book of Chymical Receipts, an original MS. in Sir Hans Sloane's Library, marked B. 387. In which Book (all written with Ralegh's own Hand) there are, p. 63. b. theſe Words, Our Great Cordial, and underneath, ſeveral Ingredients ſet down, tho' not near the Number above cited; but ſcored out again with a Pen, tho' not [...]llegibly. The next Leaf is torn out, where 'tis ſuppoſed Ralegh had writ it more compleatly; and that from this Leaf, le Febvre's Copy was taken. Laſtly, There is a Receipt of this Cordial remaining with a Lady, who is a Deſcendant from Sir Walter Ralegh; but, whether agreeing with thoſe in Print, I have not, at this juncture, the Leiſure for making a Requeſt to be ſatisfied.
*

Carew Ralegh was born, as is before obſerved, in the Tower, in the latter End of 1604 (or Beginning of the next Year) being aged about 13 Years at his Father's Death, as he tells us himſelf; became a Gentleman-commoner of Wadham College in Oxford in 1620, as Anthony Wood informs us; but indeed rather ſooner, becauſe Carew Ralegh's own Words are, that, after having been five Years at Oxford, he came to Court, and, by the Favour of William Earl of Pembroke, his noble Kinſman, hoped to obtain ſome Redreſs in his Misfortunes; but the King, not liking his Countenance, ſaid, he appeared to him like his Father's Ghoſt: Whereupon the Earl adviſed him to travel, which he did till the Death of King James, which happen'd about a Year after. Then returning, and a Parliament ſitting, he according to the Cuſtom of this Land, petition'd to be reſtor'd in Blood, that he might be enabled to inherit whatever Lands might fall to him, as his Father's Heir, or any other Way; but his Petition having been twice read in the Houſe of Lords, King Charles ſent Sir James Fullerton (then of the Ped-chamber) for Mr. Ralegh, who being brought into the King's Chamber by that Knight, his Majeſty (after uſing him with great Civility) told him plainly, that he had formerly promiſed Sir John Digby, now Earl of Briſtol, to ſecure his Title to Sherborne (it being confer'd on him 14th of June) againſt the Heirs of Sir Walter Ralegh; whereupon Digby had given him, being then Prince, ten thouſand Pounds; ſo that now he was bound to make good his Promiſe, being King; and therefore, unleſs he would quit all his Right and Title to Sherborne, he neither could, nor would paſs his Bill of Reſtoration. Mr. Ralegh urged the Juſtice of his Cauſe; that he deſir'd only the Liberty of a Subject, and to be left to the Law, which was never deny'd any Freeman; but the King was poſitive, and ſo left him. After this, Sir James Fullerton uſed many Arguments to perſuade Submiſſion, as the Impoſſibility of conteſting with kingly Power, and the many Inconveniencies of not being reſtor'd in Blood; all which conſider'd, together with ſplendid Promiſes of great Preferment in Court, and particular Favours from the King, not improbable, wrought much in the Mind of young Mr. Ralegh, who, being not full twenty Years old (as he ſays himſelf) left friendleſs and fortuneleſs, it prevailed ſo far, that he ſubmitted to the King's Will. Whereupon there was afterwards an Act paſſed 3 0 Caroli for his Reſtoration; and, together with it, a Settlement of Sherborne to the Earl of Briſtol; and, in Shew of ſome Kind of Recompence, four hundred Pounds a Year Penſion, during Life, was granted to Mr. Ralegh after the Death of his Mother, who had that Sum paid during her Life, in Lieu of Jointure. About a Twelvemonth after this, Mr. Carew Ralegh married the Lady Philippa, Relict of Sir Anthony Aſhley, a rich young Widow, by whom he had two Sons and three Daughters, and was not long after, at leaſt before the Year 1635, made one of the Gentlemen of the King's Privy-chamber. Among the ingenious Poems of Thomas Carew, Eſq; (who was another of thoſe Gentlemen) printed 8vo. 1640, p. 80. there is a Compliment, To his Couſin C. R. marrying the Lady A. by which Letters are to be underſtood this Mr. Ralegh, and that Lady Aſhley. As for the kind Token, which Anthony Wood ſays the King honoured him with at his Majeſty's leaving Hampton-court, and going into the Iſle of Wight, anno 1647, it was no more than a Picture of the Lady Stanley, as I remember, which was Mr. Ralegh's own Property; therefore she King, among the Letters he left on the Table, deſired, in one of them, the ſaid Picture might be returned him, as may appear by thoſe Letters which were then printed, or the Extract of them in Heath's Chronicle. In the Year 1650, and afterwards, ſeveral little Tracts of his Father's were publiſh'd and dedicated to him. In 1651, there was a Committee for the Sale of Delinquents Eſtates; and about that Time the Earl of Digby being fled to France, Mr. Ralegh had a fair Proſpect to recover his Eſtate, therefore deliver'd his Caſe in to the ſaid Committee; and it was order'd, 'That this Caſe be reported to the Houſe with the Opinion of this Committee; That they conceive him a ſit Object of their Mercy. He alſo, about the ſame Time, drew up a brief Relation of Sir Walter Ralegh's Troubles, and addreſs'd it to the Parliament. But whether printed before his Death I know not, (the Edition here uſed being dated three Years after) nor wherefore his Caſe and Petition were laid aſide. In 1656, came out the Obſervations on Sanderſon's Hiſtory of King James; which this Hiſtorian ſuppoſing to be writ by Carew Ralegh, publiſh'd an Anſwer to it the ſame Year, with ſome ſcandalous and unworthy Reflections therein upon him: But no one has given Heed to them. He certainly made his Court to the Commons of England, in Hopes of getting Sherborne by their Means.

Hence Wood ſays, he cringed to Men in Power, and was made Governor of the Iſle of Jerſey, by the Favour of General Monk, in the latter End of January 1659, as Whitlock has recorded. At the Reſtoration of King Charles II. his Majeſty would have confer'd ſome perſonal Honour upon him, but he declined it in Hopes of ſomething better; the King therefore Knighted his eldeſt Son Walter, who died ſoon after at Weſt Horſels, in Surrey, his Father's Seat, which had, I think, been the Earl of Dorſet's; for his Will is dated from thence, as a Friend who has ſeen it informs me. This was ſold after Mr. Ralegh's Death to Sir Edward Nicholas, Secretary to King Charles. He had another Seat at Kenton Park near Hampton Court, which, I think, he ſold himſelf; and dying in 1666, was buried in the Month of December according to A. Wood, in his Father's Grave; who further ſays, he has ſeen ſome Sonnets of his Compoſition, and certain ingenious Diſcourſes in MS. alſo a Poem ſet to Muſick by Mr. Henry Lawes. Sir Henry Wotton, in his Letters, gives him the Character of a Gentleman of dexterous Abilities, and he is by others mentioned with Honour; but far, God wot (ſays Wood) was he from his Father's Parts, either as to his Sword or Pen.

*
This was firſt publiſhed with the Title of The Cabinet-Council, containing the chief Arts of Empire, and Myſteries of State diſcabineted, &c. By the ever renowned Knight Sir Walter Ralegh: publiſhed by John Milton, Eſq 8vo. 1658, who prefixed this Motto, Quis Martem Tunica tectum, Adamantina digne ſcripſerit? The Editor's Opinion of this Book and its Author, he farther offers to the Reader in theſe Words, "Having had the MS. of this Treat [...]ſe written by Sir Walter Ralegh many Years in my Hands, and finding it lately by Chance among other Books and Papers; upon reading thereof, I thought it a Kind of Injury to with-hold longer the Work of ſo eminent an Author from the publick; it being both anſwerable in Stile to other Works of his already extant, as far as the Subject would permit, and given me for a true Copy by a learned Man at his Death, who had collected ſeveral ſuch Pieces. John Milton." In the ſecond Edition it was titled, The Arts of Empire, and Myſteries of State diſcabineted, &c. 8vo. Lond. 1692; containing 238 Pages, and beginning with theſe Words, A commonwealth is a certain ſovereign Government of many Families, &c.
*
In the Harleyan Library, No 38. B. 3. 'Tis a Tract of about three Sheets and a Page in Folio, copied, as appears, about the Reign of King Charles I. and begins with theſe Words, the three great Kingdoms, France, England, and Spain, as they now ſtand, may be compared to the Election of a King of Poland, where there are three Factions, and in the End, two of them join'd together, are able to overcome the third.
*

Roger Coke, in his Detection of the Court and State of England during the four laſt Reigns, printed 8vo. the third Edition, 1697, ſpeaking of Ralegh, page 83, fixes theſe Obſervations on Trade and Commerce upon him in theſe Words: ‘'While he was thus confined, he was the firſt who made publick the Growth by Sea of the Dutch, and the Riches they deriv'd from their Fiſhing upon the Coaſts of England and Scotland, and the Conſequence which would neceſſarily follow, not only to the Loſs of the King's Sovereignty of the Britiſh Seas, but to the Trade and Navigation of England otherwiſe. After that, one Tobias Gentleman ſet forth another Treatiſe of this Nature, and how this Fiſhery might be carried on from the Ports of England; and dedicated it to the King. But the King, wholly giving himſelf up to Pleaſure, neither minded one, nor regarded the other.'’ That Gentleman was a Fiſherman, or other like Seafaring Man, and I have ſeen his Treatiſe; but publiſhed long before this, I think, was, which that Hiſtorian aſcribes thus to Sir Walter Ralegh. The firſt Edition of theſe Obſervations I could ever meet with in Print, is in 12mo. 1653, and it was bound up with the ſecond Edition of Ralegh's Remains, 1656. Its anonymous Publiſher appears to be the Bookſeller; who had no other Authority for appropriating it to Sir Walter Ralegh, but the Opinion of a Perſon who recommended it to him as a genuine Piece of his Writing. 'Tis true, our Author has touch'd, after a different Manner, upon the Topick, in ſome of his Tracts, and particularly at the End of his Diſcourſe of Shipping; where he laments, ‘'That Strangers ſhould be permitted to eat us out, by exporting and importing both our own Commodities, and thoſe of foreign Nations.'’

But I think no Treatiſe of his will be found that deſcends ſo much into minute Examples, Calculations, &c. However, not to except at this, becauſe a Treatiſe upon Trade may require Obſervations ſuitable to the Subject, it does not appear probable, that the Author of theſe Obſervations, whoſe Project was, as he tells us, "To erect twenty Buſſes in ſome Sea-ports Town, ſo by Degrees to extend a thouſand or two over the Nation; who was one that had traced this Buſineſs, made his Endeavours known not only to the King, but his Noblemen, Merchants and others, who had made him Subſcriptions to diſburſe large Sums of Money for building up this great and rich Sea-city;" ſhould be a Priſoner all this while in the Tower of London. No, this Projector, further propoſing to conſtitute a State-merchant, for theſe Purpoſes; and praying, in the Concluſion, that the King would give him leave to nominate the Commiſſioners for conferring upon, and making Report thereof to his Majeſty, ſeems to have been ſome manufacturing or mercantile Man, one ambitious of that Office himſelf, and conſequently none of Sir Walter Ralegh. But if from the Subject whereon, we bend our Conſideration to the Time when this Tract was written, we ſhall find further Objection againſt entitling our Author to it. For the very firſt Words of the Dedication are, "According to my Duty, I am embolden'd to put your Majeſty in Mind, that, about 14 or 15 Years paſt, I preſented you a Book of ſuch extraordinary Importance for Honour and Profit of your Majeſty and Poſterity, and doubting it has been laid aſide, &c. I am encouraged to preſent you with one more, &c." Now if we allow the firſt Book to have been preſented in the very firſt Year of the King's being in England, then this ſecond muſt have been preſented in 1617 or 1618, when Sir Walter Ralegh was out of England, or his Thoughts far differently engag'd. But the greateſt Objection of all is, that there are ſeveral Manuſcripts of this Treatiſe in the Libraries of our Nobility and Gentry (more ancient than the earlieſt Edition in Print) which, as I have obſerv'd, do all entitle it to one John Keymer, poſſibly the Merchant or Vintner of that Name, whom Ralegh many Years before had licenſed to retail Wine in Cambridge, as is related in the foregoing Part of this Life. With one of theſe Manuſcripts (the moſt ancient I have ſeen) among the Collections of the late Mr. Granger, there was another, written alſo in the ſame little neat old Hand, aſcribed to the ſame Keymer, and which I take to be that firſt mentioned in his Dedication laſt quoted; and alſo to agree in its Contents with John Keymer's Obſervations made upon the Dutch Fiſhery, about the Year 1601. Demonſtrating there is more Wealth raiſed out of Herrings and other Fiſh in his Majeſty's Seas and the neighbouring Nations in one Year, than the King of Spain hath from the Indies in four: And that there were twenty thouſand Ships and other Veſſels, and about four hundred thouſand People then ſet on Work by Sea and Land, and maintained only by Fiſhing upon the Coaſts of England, Scotland, and Ireland. Printed 8vo. Lond. (from the original Manuſcript) for Sir Edward Ford, in the Year 1664. Whoever has read theſe two Pieces, will allow that one Hand writ them.

*

This may not perhaps be better introduced than in the Reflection of Biſhop Hall, who in his ingenious Book of Conſolations, has theſe Words, "A wiſe Man, as Laurentius the Presbyter obſerved well, does much in Solitude. So may'ſt thou employ the Hours of thy cloſe Retiredneſs, and bleſs God for ſo happy an Opportunity. How memorable an Inſtance has our Age afforded us of an eminent Perſon to whoſe Impriſonment we are all obliged, beſides many philoſophical Experiments, for that noble Hiſtory of the World now in our Hands? The Court had his youthful and freer Years, and the Tower his latter Age; the Tower reformed the Courtier in him, and produced thoſe worthy Monuments of Art and Induſtry, which we ſhould have in vain expected from his Freedom and Jollity. It is obſerved, that ſhining Wood, when it is kept within Doors, loſes its Light: it is otherwiſe with this, and many other active Wits, which had never ſhin'd ſo much, if not for Cloſeneſs." Thus in a Treatiſe call'd, Balm of Gilead; or, Comforts for the Diſtreſs'd, both moral and divine, by Dr. Joſeph Hall, Biſhop of Norwich, 12mo. 1652; afterwards reprinted under the Title of The Art of Patience, &c. 8vo. 1684. In the Familiar Letters of James Howel, Eſq; ſpeaking of this rare and renowned Knight, he ſays, "His Fame ſhall contend in Longaevity with this Iſland itſelf, yea with that great World which he Hiſtoriſes ſo gallantly." In another well-known Book of his, call'd Dodona's Grove; or, The Vocal Foreſt, diſcourſing of Ralegh, and deſcribing him to have been, "A Cavalier of a ſpacious Underſtanding, and of no vulgar Reach in Policy, ſcientifical, and full of abſtruſe Notions; he adds, "That tho' his Body was under Reſtraint, and coffin'd up ſo many Years, yet he never travers'd more Countries than then; for his Brain ran over all the World, as appears by that famous Monument he tranſmitted to Poſterity, and hung up in the Temple of Fame, while he was as it were buried alive." But in the Life of the Lord Stafford, written by Anthony Stafford, Eſq; 4to. 1640, this Author goes ſo far as to ſay, That if Sir Walter Ralegh's Hiſtory of the World had been written in the Indian Tongue, we ſhould not have ſcrupled or avoided the Pains of learning that Language, only to read it. If we conſult what Character the Hiſtorians give it, we may find many of them who never name it without ſome Epithet or Sentence in its Praiſe. Thus Dr. Heylin in one Place calls it an excellent Hiſtory; in another, the firſt or chief of Hiſtories. And thus in the Preface of Dr. William Howell's Univerſal Hiſtory, who muſt have had continual Occaſions of inſpecting our Author's, 'tis ſaid, That Sir Walter Ralegh is never to be mentioned without Honour. Shirley, in his Life of our Author, gives it as his Judgment of his Hiſtory, "That for the Exactneſs of its Chronology, Curiouſneſs of its Contexture, and Learning of all Sorts, it ſeems to be the Work of an Age." And a little further. "That a Man, who had been the greateſt Part of his Life taken up in Action, ſhould write ſo judiciouſly, ſo critically, of Times and Actions, is as great a Wonder as the Book itſelf; and it ſtill remains in Doubt, whether the Age he liv'd in was more oblig'd to his Pen or his Sword, the one being buſy in conquering the new, the other in ſo bravely deſcribing the old World." And Mr. Echard, in the Preface of his Roman Hiſtory, admires that Part of Ralegh's Hiſtory which treats of the Roman Story. "Eſpecially the laſt Hundred Years, which, ſays he, are written with very much Spirit and Judgment, and all of it with as much Skill and Clearneſs: yet that all before the firſt Panick War is not proportionably copious to the reſt.' But how duly it was conſidered by this particular Hiſtorian, whether that was not a judicious Diſproportion, in our general Hiſtorian, may be left to the Examination of others.

To this we may join the Character of Dr. Henry Felton in his Diſſertation upon the Claſſicks, where he ſays, "Sir Walter Ralegh's Hiſtory of the World is a Work of ſo vaſt a Compaſs, ſuch endleſs Variety, that no Genius but one adventurous as his own, durſt have undertaken that great Deſign. I do not apprehend any great Difficulty in collecting and common-placing an Univerſal Hiſtory from the whole Body of Hiſtorians; that is nothing but mechanick Labour. But to digeſt the ſeveral Authors in his Mind; to take in all their Majeſty, Strength and Beauty; to raiſe the Spirit of meaner Hiſtorians, and to equal all the Excellencies of the beſt; this is Sir Walter's peculiar Praiſe. His Stile is the moſt perfect, the happieſt, the moſt beautiful of the Age he wrote in; majeſtick, clear and manly; and he appears every where ſo ſuperior rather than unequal to his Subject, that the Spirit of Rome and Athens ſeems to be breathed into his Work."

*
Bearing this Title, Orders to be obſerv'd by the Commanders of the Fleet, and Land Companies, under the Charge and Conduct of Sir Walter Ralegh, Knight, bound for the South Parts of America or elſewhere. Given at Plymouth in Devon. 3 May 1617. They firſt enjoin, That Divine Service ſhould be read Morning and Evening, or, if interrupted by foul Weather, once a Day. That all Swearing and Blaſphemy ſhall, after Admonition, be fined. That no Man refuſe obeying his Officer in all Things commanded for the Benefit of the Journey, or refuſe to wait his Turn as directed, the Sailors by the Maſter and Boatſwain, the Landmen by their Captains, Lieutenants and others. Two Captains of the Watch in every Ship to chooſe two Soldiers every Night to ſearch between Decks, that no Fire nor Candlelight be carried about after the Watch ſet, nor burning in any Cabbin without a Lanthorn: Tobacco forbidden all Men but upon the upper Deck. Landmen to learn the Names and Places of the Ropes, to aſſiſt the Sailors upon Deck. Sailors to be trained as they do Landmen, ſo that all may be eſteemed Sailors or Soldiers, as there is Occaſion: Not to chaſe or board any Ship without Order of the General. To take nothing from any in League with his Majeſty; but, in Extremity, to agree for the Price. Every Night to fall aſtern the General's Ship and follow his Light, and receive Inſtructions of the Courſe to be held, every Morning. If ſeparated by Storms, to open their ſealed Billets, firſt on this Side the North Cape if needful; ſecondly, at the South Cape; third, after 23 Degrees; and fourth from the Height of Cape de Vert. Upon diſcovering any Sail at Sea, either to windward or leeward of the Admiral which he cannot diſcern, if ſhe be large and ſingle to ſtrike main Top-ſail, and hoiſe it again ſo often as they judge it to be 100 Tons B [...]rthen, as if 200, to ſtrike and hoiſe twice, &c. Upon diſcovering a ſmall Ship, to do the like with Fore-top-ſail; but if many great Ships appear, both to ſtrike the main-top Sail often, and hang out the Enſign in the Main-top. If they go large before Wind, to ſtand as they do, till it may be judg'd the Admiral had ſeen the ſaid Signs and Standing. But if you went large at the Diſcovery, to hale the Sheets after a while, then go large again; ſo if they have their Tacks aboard, and you yours aboard at the Diſcovery, bear up a little and hale your Sheet off again, to ſhew us what Courſe they hold. If you diſcover a Sail by Night to windward of you, and you windward of the Admiral, bear up to acquaint us: If you think you might ſpeak with her, keep aloof, and fire a Piece to give us Knowledge. None to fire any Ordnance but in diſcovering a Sail by Night, in Danger of Enemies, Fire, or ſinking. If you fire by Day we ſhall know 'tis to make a Ship ſtrike, if by Night we ſhall know you ſee more Sail than your own; if you think we hear not, in a Quarter of an Hour fire again. If you are in preſent Danger by a Leak ſhoot two Pieces ſoon after one another; if by Fire, three in like Manner. In foul Weather every Ship to fit her Sails to keep Company with the reſt, and not to run ſo far a-head by Day, but it may fall aſtern the Admiral at Night. If attack'd by Sea, the Captain to appoint ſufficient Aſſiſtance to the Gunner, and, if needful, the Cabbins between Decks to be taken down; all Beds and Sacks employ'd for Bulwarks. Muſketeers of every Ship to be divided under Captains for the Forecaſtle, the Waſt and the Poop. Gunners not to ſhoot great Ordnance at other Diſtance than point blank: Officers to ſee no looſe Powder be carried between Decks near Linſtock, or Match in Hand. Hogſheads ſawed in two, filled with Water ready on the Decks, and wet Blankets againſt Fire. Carpenters to be divided, in the Hold and between Decks, with Leaden Plates, Plugs, &c. at hand. Proper Number of Sailors to be appointed to every Sail under proper Commanders: So that all knowing their Charge and Places, may do their Duty without Confuſion or Noiſe, none being to ſpeak but the Officers. No Man to board a Ship of the Enemy without Order. Every Ship under Lee of the Enemy, muſt labour to recover the Wind, if the Admiral endeavour it; or if the Enemy be to Leeward, the whole Fleet to follow the Admiral, or other leading Ship, within Muſketſhot of the Enemy, giving ſo much Liberty to the leading Ship after her Broad-ſide deliver'd and her Sail trimm'd: Then the ſecond Ship to give her Side; ſo the third and fourth all taking as the firſt, and giving the Enemy the other Side, ſhall keep him under a perpetual Volley: And thus to the windermoſt Ship of the Enemy, till it be batter'd to Pieces, or forced up to intangle the reſt. If the Admiral chace and is headmoſt, the next Ship to take up his Boat, unleſs otherwiſe order'd; the like to be done by thoſe that follow other chaſing Ships. The divided Muſketeers not to deliver their Shot but at ſuch Diſtances as their Commander directs. Ships to be kept clean between Decks. Ordnance not cloy'd with Trunks and Cheſts. Proviſion to be delivered to the Steward. Apparel to be in Cloak-Bags, except ſome few Cheſts that will not peſter the Ships. Fire-arms to be kept clean; if out of Order, the Officer to order the Armorer to amend them. No Feaſting or Drinking between Meals; or drinking Healths on the Ship's Proviſion. Every Captain, by his Purſer or other Officer, to take weekly Accounts of the Victuals. No Candles to be delivered by the Steward to any private Man or private Uſe. Whoever ſteals Apparel, Victuals, &c. to be puniſhed as a Thief and a Murderer. No Man to ſtrike any Officer on Pain of Death: private Men ſtriking one another to be puniſhed by Court Martial. Players at Cards or Dice for Apparel, Arms, &c. to be diſarm'd and made Swabbers. Cowards upon any Landing or otherwiſe, to be diſarmed and made Labourers to carry Victuals for the reſt. None to land in foreign Parts without Order from ſome chief Commander; and where they land, none to force either Chriſtian or Heathen Woman on Pain of Death. When landed in the Indies, not to eat Fruits unknown, and ſuch not eaten by Birds on the Tree, or Beaſts under it. Not to ſleep on the Ground, or eat new Fleſh till ſalted two or three Hours. To ſwim in no Rivers but where the Indians do, and to uſe them with Courteſy. Other Orders on the Land to be eſtabliſhed by general Conſent when they ſhould arrive there. A Flag on the Mizen Shrouds of the Admiral, was to be the Signal for ſummoning the Officers to Council. See a Tract call'd, News of Sir Walter Ralegh, &c. 4to, 1618; from Page 19 to 28.
*
Tho' the Preſents Ralegh return'd to this Governor's Lady are not mentioned in his Apology, whence his Progreſs hitherto is chiefly extracted, I find in his own Journal aforeſaid of this Voyage, that they conſiſted of an Extract of Amber, Ambergreeſe, a fine cut-work Ruff, a very excellent Picture of Mary Magdalen, and a good Quantity of Roſe-Water, which was of great Value and Eſteem in theſe Parts.
*
'Tis ſaid in King James's Declaration, p. 34, that young Ralegh, likelieſt to know his Father's Secret, when he led his Soldiers upon this Town us'd theſe or the like Words, Come on my Hearts, here is the Mine that we muſt expect, they that look for any other Mine are Fools. As if Ralegh was at ſo much Toil, Hazard and Expence only to break the Peace, and drive a Pack of poor Spaniards out of a worthleſs Town. Nor does it ſeem likely, that if young Ralegh knew this to be his Father's Secret, that he would thus diſcloſe it; but rather if he did utter ſuch an Expreſſion, that he ſuddenly invented it to give his Men Hopes of Booty, knowing that would beſt excite them to Bravery.
*
The King of Spain's firſt Letter, ſent to Guiana by a Bark of Aviſo, to arm the Indians againſt Ralegh's Coming, was dated 19 March 1616, at Madrid (which Letter, ſays Ralegh, in his to Sir Ralph Winwood, I have, here encloſed, ſent you, the reſt I reſerve; not knowing whether they may be intercepted or not) The ſecond of that King's was dated 2d of May 1617, ſent alſo by a Caravel to Diego de Palameca, Governpr of Guiana, El Dorado and Trinidad. The third of his Majeſty's, was ſent by the Biſhop of Puerto Rico, and delivered to ihat Governor the 15th of July following: and the fourth was ſent from the Farmer and Secretary of his Cuſtoms in the Indies at the ſame Time. Thus Ralegh's Letter to Winwood (from St. Chriſtopher's) in his Remains (laſt Edition) p. 172. compared with ſome Manuſcript Copies of it in the Harleyan Library, &c. Others tell us, theſe Advertiſements and Preparations were the Cauſe of all the Reſiſtance that was made at St. Thome; that Ralegh's whole Deſign, under his own Hand was delivered by King James to Gondomar; and that his own Letter (thereof to King James) was found in the Governor of St. Thome's Cloſet; which Letter he brought back, and ſhewed to the Lords of the Council. See Obſervations on Sanderſon's Hiſtory, p. 13. Thus alſo in the State-Trials, Vol. I. p. 219; and in Dr. Welwood's Memoirs, it is ſaid, Ralegh's Plan, which King James promiſed to keep ſecret, was ſent by Gondomar to Spain, and thence to the Indies, before Ralegh left the Thames; and the very original Paper was found in the Spaniſh Governor's Cloſet.
*
Though Ralegh his charged this Matter of betraying him to the Spaniards in plain Terms, both in his Letter to the Secretary of State, which follows as above, and in his Apology; one, or both of which King James had certainly read, it is yet obſervable, that this Topic is not ſo much as touch'd upon in his Majeſty's Declaration, but entirely ſunk in Silence.
*
The Letters in the Remains aforeſaid, p. 178, 181. And the Apology, p. 39. James Howel ſays, that Captain Keymis, the main Inſtrument for the Diſcovery of the Mine, piſtol'd himſelf in a deſperate Mood of Diſcontent in his Cabbin in the Convertine; which not being Ralegh's Ship, would remove Keymis's Death ſtill further from all Surmiſe that he had any ſuch foul Play done him to prevent telling of Tales, as Sanderſon and other prejudiced Writers have maliciouſly inſinuated. The Obſervator on his Hiſtory of K [...]ng James, calls it a b [...]ſe Aſperſion; and Sanderſon, in his Anſwer, inſtead of producing any Authority in his own Juſtification, is for meddling no further with it; ſo refers to his Hiſtory, as a Matter too large to be inſerted again. But what entirely clears the Affair, is King James's Declaration; for had there been the leaſt Shadow of Suſpicion that Ralegh had been any Way concerned in Keymis's unfimely End, we may be well perſuaded, that Declaration would not have been ſilent thereof, which has amaſs'd and aggravated ſo many frivolous Circumſtances in this Voyage againſt him.
*

Here, ſince we are to take our Leave of this Don Diego Sarmiento the following Remarks upon him may not be thought very digreſſory, ſince they moſtly tend to the further Illuſtration of Sir Walter Ralegh's Story. His firſt coming into England is remember'd by Sir John Finet, in his Obſervations touching Foreign Ambaſſadors, to have been in 1613; being aged then, as I compute, from a Date upon one of his Pictures, 45 Years. Some have intimated, that the Spaniſh Ambaſſador could not with all his worrying and baiting of King James, prevail ſo effectually for the Deſtruction of Sir Walter Ralegh (how eaſy and tempting ſoever it might be to trample over the Fence that is already broken down) but that he was forced to belabour the Point with Spaniſh Gold, among thoſe Creatures who had the greateſt Influence at Court. For, as one writes, The Bargain was made, and Ralegh was devoted for a Sacrifice before they knew whether he was ſucceſsful or not; and if we may believe the Accounts that are left upon Record of that Part of Hiſtory, the King of Spain gave a good Sum of Money for his Head. Some have gone ſo ſar, as to tell us who had the Money, at leaſt a good Part of it. If this be true, the Engliſh Court had in it, at that Time, ſome of the moſt infamous People that were ever concerned in any Adminiſtration. As to thoſe who reprove the King himſelf with it, I ſhall ſay no more than this, they ought to have been very ſure of the Truth of it, before they recorded a Thing of a Britiſh King ſo much beneath the Character of any Monarch in the World, viz. to take Money of an Enemy for the Blood of their own Subjects, and of ſuch Subjects too as were moſt dangerous to the very Enemy they were ſold to; which is neither leſs nor more, than ſelling their own Safety, as well as innocent Blood. See An Hiſtorical Account of the Voyages and Adventures of Sir Walter Ralegh, 8vo. 1719, p. 38. Howeever it was, the Spaniſh Ambaſſador ſeems to have left the Engliſh Court well ſatisfied on the 16th, and embark'd for Spain on the 20th of July 1618, having firſt emptied all the Priſons in England of Romiſh Prieſts; many of whom he carried with him home, further to grace his Triumphs, But this Ambaſſador return'd to England in the Beginning of March 1619, under Pretence of purſuing that deluſive Negotiation, and was lodg'd not without Murmurs at the Biſhop of Eli's Houſe in Holborne. He was alſo trick d out with titular Honours, the uſual Reward of ſuch Services as his were; being newly made Conde de Gondomar, as Sir John Finet obſerves; otherwiſe, in the whole, not ſo ſubſtantially rewarded at Home, as the ſlaviſh Pains he took abroad to pleaſe his Prince was thought to deſerve. As for the pernicious Practices of this Spaniſh Ambaſſador in England, which might gain him thoſe airy Gratuities, they are unfolded in a Tract, entitled Vox Populi, or News from Spain; tranſlated according to the Spaniſh Copy; which may ſerve to forewarn both England and the United Provinces how far to truſt to Spaniſh Pretences.

In t [...]is Treatiſe Gondomar is repreſented in a Spaniſh Council lately held at Aragon, and delivering his chief Services to have been; 1ſt, His working a Diſlike between King James and his Houſe of Commons, perſuading him to to rule by his Prerogative; and as for Money, to furniſh himſelf by the Marriage with Spain and by domeſtick Projects, without any Subſidy Alſo that he hereby kept England from furniſhing its Navy. 2dly, His ſhewing only a colourable Reſiſtance of our Eaſt-India Trade, as being rather hurtful than helpful to the State, by carrying out our ſolid Treaſures, and bringing Home Spice, Silk, Feathers and Toys; beſides waſting our Mariners. 3dly, His oppoſing our Weſt-Indian Voyages moſt ſtrenuouſly, as what would raiſe another England to withſtand their New Spain in America; therefore that he croſs'd all the Undertakings for Virginia and the Bermudas, cauſing the Recuſonts, who were Sharers, to withdraw their Ventures and diſcourage the Work. 4thly, That by this Means likewiſe, he kept the voluntary Forces from Venice, till it was almoſt too late to ſuccour them. 5thly, That he ſtickled hard for the Cautionary Towns, which the late King Philip called the Keys of the Low Countries. And, 6thly, That the laſt, and not the leaſt Service he did was, in overthrowing Sir Walter Ralegh's Voyage, and purſuing him, I need not ſay almoſt to Death, ſays he, if all Things hit right and all Strings hold. Further, that his Commiſſion would not let him tarry to be a Specta or of his Execution, which I deſired the rather, ſays he, that by Conceſſion I might have wrung from the inconſiderate Engliſh an Acknowledgment of my Maſter's Right in thoſe Places, puniſhing him for attempting there, tho' they might preſcribe for the firſt Foot. And this I did to ſtop their Mouths hereafter, and becauſe I would quench the Heat and Valour of that Nation, that none ſhould ever dare hereafter to undertake the like, or be ſo hardy as to look out at Sea or breathe upon our Coaſt; and laſtly becauſe I would bring to ignominious Death that old Pirate, who is one of the laſt, now living, bred under that Engliſh Virago, and by her fleſh'd in our Blood and Ruin. To do this I had many Agents; firſt, divers Courtiers, who were hungry and gaped wide for Spaniſh Gold: Secondly, ſome who bare him at Heart for inveterate Quarrels: Thirdly, ſome Foreigners, who having in vain ſought the Elizir heretofore, hope to find it in his Head: Fourthly, all Men of the Komiſh Faith, who are of the Spaniſh Faction, and would have been my Blood hounds to hunt him or any ſuch to Death willingly. And laſtly, I left behind me ſuch an Inſtrument, compoſed artificially of a ſecular Underſtanding and a religious Profeſſion, as he is every Way adapted to ſcrew himſelf into the Cl [...]ſet of the Heart, and to work upon feminine Levity, who in that Country have maſculine Spirits to command, and purſue their Plots unto Death. How much ſoever this may be called a fictitious Speech, it is founded on ſuch Matters of Fact, that Ruſhworth, and others of our moſt ſerious Hiſtorians, have admitted the Subſtance thereof as perfect Hiſtory.

In 1622, about Eaſter, Gondomar committed a groſs Soleciſm in Politicks, by ſuffering his ungovernable Paſſion ſo to expoſe his leiger Honour, by ſtriking William Lithgow, the Scotch Traveller, whom he had long deceived with Promiſes of Reparation for the Impriſonment, Tortures, and Robberies committed on him by the Inquiſition at Malaga, as may be read in the Book of his Travels; that the ſaid Ambaſſador got his Ears ſoundly box'd by him before a numerous Crowd of noble Witneſſes. "His Fiſtula, ſays Lithgow, (meaning, I think, his Cane, tho' alluding to his Diſeaſe) was contrabanded by a Fiſt; and for Victory, Favour lent me Authority." He was impriſoned for it nine Weeks in the Marſhalſ [...]a: "Whence I returned (ſays he) with more Credit, than he left England with Honeſty." In June following, as Camden tells us, Gondomar was reported to be impriſoned in Spain, for ſo much promoting the Match; and that the Infanta was to be married to the Grand Duke of Tuſcany.

*
As much as to ſay, Behold there, M. Manourie, the Fruit of all my Toils; the Loſs of my Fortune and of my Son, the Sickneſs I have endured and the Sorrows: behold there, the Effect of that Faith I repoſed in his Majeſty. But behold where?—for that ve la or voila, repeated as it is, plainly points at ſome more copious or convincing Evidence which accompanied this Expreſſion, and more particularly demonſtrated thoſe Loſſes and Afflictions to have been the Fruit of Ralegh's Truſt or Faith in the King; to which theſe Words appear but a bare Direction; and which therefore ſeems here to have been ſuppreſs'd.
*

Ralegh might ſay this to get his Recommendation the ſtronger, but indeed his Fame was now in high Requeſt at the French Court. For one of the nobleſt Scholars in France, Nicholas Claudius Fabricius, Lord of Pereſk, writing, ſoon after, a Letter over to Camden, concludes it with theſe Words highly in his Favour.

The French Agent having form'd a Deſign of conveying Sir Walter Ralegh to France, Monſieur de la Cheſnaye was examined before the Lords of the Council, who confeſs'd that Le Clerc had employ'd him for that Purpoſe. Le Clerc was then cited to appear before them; but as Punctilios often ariſe in Relation to Ambaſſadors, ſo here a Diſpute ſprung up, which ſeem'd to add to the Indignation already conceiv'd againſt Sir Walter; for Le Clerc refus'd to anſwer any Interrogatories, till the Lords of the Council ſhould ſtand up and be uncovered as he was, inſiſting that Sir W. Becher, when Agent for King James in France, had claimed a Right to the ſame Privilege, and was granted it: To which the Lords reply'd, that different Countries had different Forms; but in Order to ſet all Objections aſide, they remov'd out of the Council Chamber into a private Room, where no Ceremony was obſerv'd; and Le Clerc being confronted by Le Cheſnaye, confeſs'd the whole Affair. King James being inform'd thereof, Le Clerc was forbid all further Exerciſe of his Charge, and ordered not to appear at Court, till it was known whether or no the French King approv'd of his Conduct.

Upon the great Murmurs which aroſe at the putting Sir Walter Ralegh to Death, King James publiſh'd a Declaration, which inſtead of mitigating the Affair, only aggravated it in the Eye of the World: And an Author writing on this Subject, ſays, that his Crime was, in having more Merit than ſuch a Prince k [...]w how to value; for his Attempt at Guiana was, even by his very Enemies, judg'd reaſonable.
*
About a Year after the Death of Sir Walter Ralegh, King James granted Captain Roger North, a Commiſſion to inhabit and ſettle a Colony near the River Amazons in Guiana; but was ſoon aw'd by Gondomar ſo much, that, on the 15th of May 1620, he iſſued a Proclamation to recall that Gentleman from the ſaid Undertaking and committed his Brother, the Lord North, to the Fleet Priſon for haſtning the ſaid Voyage.
King James, (ſays Oſborne) gave up this incomparable Jewel to the Will of this Monſter in Ambition (the Spaniard) under the pretence of a ſuperannuated Tranſgreſſion, contrary to the Opinion of the moſt Honeſt ſort of Gownmen; who maintain'd, that his Majeſty's Pardon lay incluſively in the Commiſſion he gave him upon his ſetting out to Sea; It being incongruous that he, who remain'd under the Notion of one dead in the Law, ſhould, as a General, diſpoſe of the Lives of others, not being himſelf Maſter of his own. But the Spaniſh Faction, then abſolute at Court, and ſole Managers of the King's Power no leſs than his Juſtice, did ſo far tender his Catholick Majeſty's full Satisfaction in the procuring of his Death, the only Man of Note left alive who had helped to beat them in the Year 1588; that no Abſurdity lying in the way of his Proſecution, could deter them from making Uſe of his former Condemnation; remembring, withal, how far his Wit had puzzled them at Wincheſter, and how much the Jury, who condemn'd him there, were touch'd in their Conſciences; which made it the leſs probable they ſhould be able to Impannel one ſo wicked as would do it then. Beſides, No Peace beyond the Line, was a Belief ſo rivetted in the Opinion of all, as he could not have been indicted anew, without the King's producing the original Articles, by which his Accuſers would have been convinced of Malice, or his Prince of Folly. Memoirs of King James, p. 108.
*
See Howels Letters, Vol. II. p. 371; and the Tract entitled, A brief Relation of Sir Walter Ralegh's Troubles, &c. where Carew Ralegh's Words are, p. 9. as follows. Here Juſtice was indeed Blind! Blindly executing one and the ſame Perſon, upon one and the ſame Condemnation, for things contradictory; for Sir Walter Ralegh was condemn'd for being a Friend to the Spaniard and l [...]ſt his Life for being their utter Enemy. Thus Kings, when they wi [...] do what they pleaſe, pleaſe not him they ſhould, God; and having made their Power ſubſervient to their Will, deprive themſelves of that juſt Power whereby where are [...] to them
*
Biſhop Burnet ſpeaking of ſome great Errors in King James's Reign, goes on thus: Beſides theſe publick Actings, King James ſuffer'd much in the Opinion of all People, by his ſtrange Way of uſing one of the greateſt Men of that Age, Sir Walter Ralegh, againſt whom the Proceedings at firſt were much cenſured, but the laſt Part of them was thought both barbarous and illegal. A little further, ſpeaking of the ſame King, he ſays, His Reign in England was a continual Courſe of mean Practices: The firſt Condemnation of Sir Walter Ralegh was very black; but the executing him after ſo many Yrars, and after an Employment that had been given him, was counted a barbarous ſacrificing him to the Spaniards. Hiſtory of his own Times. Vol. 1. 1724, fol. 16. and 17.
*
This Book was intitled, A Defence of the Queen's Proceedings, againſt Mary Queen of Scotland. Written by one Robert Snag. See the Arraignment of Sir Walter Ralegh. By Sir Thomas Overbury, 4to. 1648.
Distributed by the University of Oxford under a Creative Commons Attribution-ShareAlike 3.0 Unported License

Zitationsvorschlag für dieses Objekt
TextGrid Repository (2020). TEI. 5248 The life of Sir Walter Ralegh from his birth to his death on the scaffold The whole compiled from the most approved authorities and curious manuscripts. University of Oxford Text Archive. . https://hdl.handle.net/21.T11991/0000-001A-619A-9